Documente Academic
Documente Profesional
Documente Cultură
Graham
Lectures on the
Legal System of the United States
Foreword
This third edition, like the first two ones, is not aimed to be considered as
a cientifical contribution, but solely a casebook for my students. The
purpose of my classes is to present to Mexican lawyers the American
legal system and surely not to form US lawyers. I focused on what
seemed to me as the most important points to know in order to understand
a legal tradition far different from the Civil law system we are used to.
Due to the geographical proximity, I did also emphazise on cross-border
issues like jurisdiction and Private international law. I do not need to
emphazise that for a complete view of American law, the reader ought to
refer among others to the cited books in the bibliography.
The present work has been updated, and completed with a greater
emphasize on American Conflict of laws, mainly inspired by Richman &
Reynolds’ Understanding Conflict of Laws.
I
II
Contents
FOREWORD ...................................................................................I
GENERAL BIBLIOGRAPHY .................................................. VII
INTRODUCTION .......................................................................... 1
PART I – THE CONSTITUTION AND THE FEDERAL
SYSTEM.......................................................................................... 3
Lecture # 1 - The Legislative Power......................................... 5
Lecture # 2 - The Executive Power........................................... 7
Cases and Materials .............................................................. 8
YOUNGSTOWN CO. v. SAWYER, 343 U.S. 579 (1952)
.......................................................................................... 8
Lecture # 3: The Judicial Power ............................................ 15
Lecture # 4: The Separation of Powers .................................. 17
Cases and Materials ............................................................ 18
INS v. CHADHA, 462 U.S. 919 (1983) ......................... 18
UNITED STATES v. NIXON, 418 U.S. 683 (1974) ..... 40
Lecture # 5: The Court’s Main Eras ...................................... 57
PART II – THE BILL OF RIGHTS ........................................... 61
Lecture # 6: The Slavery Question ......................................... 63
Cases and Materials ............................................................ 65
BROWN v. BOARD OF EDUCATION, 347 U.S. 483
(1954).............................................................................. 65
Lecture # 7: Procedural Rights .............................................. 73
Cases and Materials ............................................................ 76
MIRANDA v. ARIZONA, 384 U.S. 436 (1966) ........... 76
Lecture # 8: Substantial Rights ............................................ 107
Section 1: First Amendment ..................................... 107
Section 2: Substantive Due Process.......................... 108
Cases and Materials .......................................................... 110
UNIVERSITY OF CALIFORNIA REGENTS v.
BAKKE, 438 U.S. 265 (1978)...................................... 110
RICHMOND v. J. A. CROSON CO., 488 U.S. 469
(1989)............................................................................ 113
FRONTIERO v. RICHARDSON, 411 U.S. 677 (1973)
...................................................................................... 119
III
SKINNER v. STATE OF OKL. EX REL.
WILLIAMSON, 316 U.S. 535 (1942).......................... 126
GRISWOLD v. CONNECTICUT, 381 U.S. 479 (1965)
...................................................................................... 130
CRUZAN v. DIRECTOR, MDH, 497 U.S. 261 (1990)
...................................................................................... 135
PART III – THE LAW............................................................... 151
Lecture # 9 – Self-government, Law and Democracy .......... 153
Lecture # 10 – International law v. Municipal law .............. 155
Lecture # 11 – Federal law v. State law ............................... 157
Cases and Materials ............................................................. 159
ICJ: AVENA (2004) .................................................... 159
Lecture # 12 Common Law................................................... 221
Section 1 – The Original English System......................... 221
Section 2 – The American System ................................... 222
Cases and Materials .......................................................... 224
JOHN SWIFT V. GEORGE TYSON........................... 224
ERIE R. Co. v. TOMPKINS, 304 U.S. 64 (1938) 304
U.S. 64 .......................................................................... 230
Lecture # 13 – Other Legal Sources..................................... 236
Section 1 - Equity ............................................................. 236
Section 2 – Codification and Uniform Law...................... 236
Section 3 – Doctrine ......................................................... 237
Lecture 14 – The Judge and Case Law................................. 238
Lecture # 15 - The Judge and the Interpretation of Law...... 240
Cases and Materials .......................................................... 243
NATIONAL SOC. OF PROFESSIONAL ENGINEERS
v. US, 435 U.S. 679 (1978) .......................................... 243
HOLY TRINITY CHURCH v. US .............................. 255
UNITED STEELWORKERS OF AMERICA, AFL-CIO-
CLC v. WEBER, .......................................................... 265
PART IV – COURTS AND LAWYERS .................................. 273
Lecture # 16– Courts ............................................................ 275
Section 1 – State Courts.................................................... 275
Section 2 - Federal Courts ................................................ 276
Cases and Materials .......................................................... 278
IV
President Issues Military Order Detention, Treatment,
and Trial of Certain Non-Citizens in the War Against
Terrorism ...................................................................... 278
Remarks of Chief Justice William H. Rehnquist 100th
Anniversiry Celebration Of the Norfolk and Portsmouth
Bar Association............................................................. 282
Lecture #17 – The Legal Profession..................................... 291
PART V – PROCEEDINGS ...................................................... 293
Lecture #18 – Proceedings ................................................... 295
Section 1 – Civil Lawsuits................................................ 295
Section 2 – Criminal Proceedings .................................... 298
Cases and Materials .......................................................... 300
KADIC v. KARADZIC ................................................ 300
A – Jurisdiction..................................................................... 320
Lecture # 19: Jurisdiction in personam............................... 320
Section 1 – Transactions................................................... 320
Cases and Materials .......................................................... 325
INTERNATIONAL SHOE CO. v. WASHINGTON, 326
U.S. 310 (1945) ............................................................ 325
WORLD-WIDE VOLKSWAGEN CORP. v.
WOODSON, 444 U.S. 286 (1980) ............................... 332
ASAHI METAL INDUSTRY CO. v. SUPERIOR
COURT, 480 U.S. 102 (1987) ...................................... 340
HELICOPTEROS NACIONALES DE COLOMBIA v.
HALL, 466 U.S. 408 (1984)......................................... 350
Section 2 – E-commerce................................................... 356
Cases and Materials .......................................................... 358
ZIPPO MFR. Co v. ZIPPO DOT COM INC, 952 F. Supp.
1119 (W.D. Pa. 1997) ................................................... 358
Section 3 – Torts............................................................... 369
Cases and Materials .......................................................... 371
CALDER v. JONES, 465 U.S. 783 (1984) .................. 371
Lecture # 20: Jurisdiction in rem ......................................... 378
Cases and Materials .......................................................... 379
SHAFFER v. HEITNER, 433 U.S. 186 (1977)............ 379
Lecture # 21 – Subject Matter Jurisdiction .......................... 394
Cases and Materials .......................................................... 396
V
COALITION OF CLERGY, ET AL. v. GEORGE
WALKER BUSH, ET AL. (C.D.Cal., 2002) ............... 396
Lecture # 22: Forum non conveniens ................................... 410
Cases and Materials .......................................................... 413
GULF OIL CORPORATION v. GILBERT, 330 U.S. 501
(1947)............................................................................ 413
PIPER AIRCRAFT CO. v. REYNO, 454 U.S. 235 (1981)
...................................................................................... 418
Lecture # 23 – Exceptions to Jurisdiction ............................ 433
Section 1 - Immunities...................................................... 433
Section 2 – Act of State .................................................... 433
Cases and Materials .......................................................... 436
UNDERHILL v. HERNANDEZ, 168 U.S. 250 (1897)436
BANCO NACIONAL DE CUBA v. SABBATINO, 376
U.S. 398 (1964) ............................................................ 438
B – Private International Law .............................................. 459
Lecture # 24 – Extraterritoriality ......................................... 461
Cases and Materials .......................................................... 465
US v. VERDUGO-URQUIDEZz, 494 U.S. 259 (1990)
...................................................................................... 465
Lecture # 25 – Conflict of Laws............................................ 493
Cases and Materials .......................................................... 496
ALLSTATE INS. CO. v. HAGUE, 449 U.S. 302 (1981)
...................................................................................... 496
Lecture # 26 - Recognition of Foreign Judgments ............... 526
ANNEX ........................................................................................ 528
THE CONSTITUTION .................................................... 528
OF THE UNITED STATES OF AMERICA ................... 528
VI
General Bibliography
The American Legal System
Burnham, Introduction to the Law and Legal System of the United States,
2nd ed, St Paul, Minnesota, West Group, 1999.
Farnsworth, An Introduction to the Legal System of the United States, 3rd
ed, New-York, Oceana Publications, 1996.
Emerson & Hardwicke, Business Law, 3rd ed, New York, Barron, 1997.
Hongju Koh, International Business Transactions in US Courts, 261
RCADI 13 (1996)
LaFave et alii, Criminal Procedure, 4th ed., Thomson West, 2004
Levy, International Litigation, ABA, 2003
US Conflict of Laws
Cramton & alii, Conflict of Laws, 5th ed, St Paul, West Publishing, 1993
Richman & Reynolds, Understanding Conflict of Laws, 2nd ed., New
York, Matthew Bender and Co, 1995
Rosenberg & alii, Conflict of Laws, New York, Foundation Press,
1996
VII
Weintraub, Commentary on the Conflict of Laws, New York,
Foundation Press, 1986.
VIII
IX
Introduction
1
The Commonwealth of Nations (CN), usually known as the Commonwealth, is
a voluntary association of 54 independent sovereign states (2006), the
majority of which are former colonies of the United Kingdom.
For a complete list, see:
http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/List_of_members_of_the_Commonwealth_of_Natio
ns_by_name.
1
On the opposite of French and Spanish colonies, there had been no
English state policy. All the American colonies were founded upon
private initiatives.The English crown only intervened to grant charters to
limit the existing freedom of regulation by inserting that no adopted rule
could be contrary or repugnant to the royal legal order. Thus the colons
were free to “invent” a new legal system, to organize themselves as them
pleased – to self-govern themselves. One has to bear in mind that most of
the colons left their country because they had been persecuted for their
faith or because they could not make fortune as they had wished. These
facts are the cornerstones of the American legal system: liberalism and
democracy, as reflected in the famous slogan “no taxation without
representation”. The Constitution adopted September the 17th, 1787
doesn’t express anything else. The founding fathers did not create a State,
but only a “federal government” and “a more perfect Union” between the
States, as yet shown by the first draft of the “Articles of the
Confederation” in 1777. However, the weakness of the central
government under the Articles generated demands for a reform. In 1787, a
“Constitutional Convention” of representatives from each of the States
assembled in Philadelphia and the drafted text was then submitted to state
conventions for ratification. In 1789, the required 9 States had ratified the
new Constitution. In 1791, the first ten amendments, known as Bill of
Rights, were ratified by the states. Prior to the Civil War (1861-1865),
state governments were primarly responsible for meeting the basic needs
of American citizens. The adoption of the Reconstruction Amendments,
which we will discuss later, modified this system basically, permitting
through the due process clauses and the equal protecion principle to
review state legislation, sharping the today existing legal system.
My lectures will only deal with the general structure of American Law,
excluding particular law-systems existing in the Dependent Territories
(Puerto Rico, US Virgin Islands), the Possessions (Guam, American
Samoa, Howland, Baker & Jarvis Islands, Johnston Islands, Kingman
Reef, Midway Islands, Navassa Island, Palmyra Island, Trust Territory of
the Pacific Island, Wake Island and the Indian Tribes Lands.
2
Part I – The Constitution and the Federal System
2
Madison, the father of the Constitution, became President of the United States ;
Jay became the first Chief Justice of the US Supreme Court; Hamilton served
in the Cabinet and was a major force in setting the early economic policy for
the United States.
3
4
Lecture # 1 - The Legislative Power
With a few exceptions, both houses have equal legislative powers. Thus, a
bill can originate in either house, with the notable exception for those
raising revenues that must always originate in the House of
Representatives. Bills must be passed by a majority vote in each house
before being submitted to the President, who signs the bill into law. In
case of a presidential veto, Congress can override it by a two-thirds vote
in both houses.
The Senate has exclusive powers to approve treaties and to appoint certain
officials nominated by the President, such as ambassadors, the justices of
the Supreme Court or cabinet members for instance.
5
A particularity of the American constitutional system is the admission of
lobbying, defined as a conduct of activities aimed at influencing public
officials and members of legislative body on legislation. At the moment to
draft the Constitution, Madison understood very well that lobbies cannot
be removed because factional disagreement and self-interest are sown into
the nature of man, and that’s why it has, at least, to be controlled. In 2002,
there have been for instance 17,000 lobbyists in Washington; and 1,600
registered lobbyists in Texas spending some 230 million of dollars for
influencing the Legislature and state agencies.
6
Lecture # 2 - The Executive Power
The President thus can nominate, and with a two-third consent of the
Senate, appoint the justices of the Supreme Court and other officers of the
United States. In regard to foreign affairs, he can, still with the consent of
the Senate, appoint ambassadors. He is also the commander-in-chief of
the armed forces and can act militarly under this power in case of
hostilities against the United States, even in absence of a congressional
declaration of war (as seen during the “Afghanistan crisis”).
Beneath his “rights”, there are also a set of “duties” derived from the
general duty to “faithfully execute” the laws of the United States,
submitted to the control of the Congress through the proceeding of
impeachment. To impeach means to present charges of wrongdoing
against a government official that can lead to his removal from office and,
if it deals with a crime, it can be tried in ordinary courts. The President,
the Vice President and all civil officers of the administration are subject to
impeachment for treason, bribery, high crimes or misdemeanors. In order
to impeach, the House of Representatives must, by a majority vote,
approve a bill of impeachment, which constitutes a form of indictment.
The bill is then sent to the Senate where a two-third vote is needed in
order to remove the impeached person from office.
7
Lectures on the US Legal System
8
The Executive Power
(c) Authority of the President to issue such an order in the circumstances of this
case cannot be implied from the aggregate of his powers under Article II of the
Constitution. Pp. 587-589.
(d) The Order cannot properly be sustained as an exercise of the President's
military power as commander in Chief of the Armed Forces. P. 587.
(e) Nor can the Order be sustained because of the several provisions of Article II
which grant executive power to the President. Pp. 587-589.
(f) The power here sought to be exercised is the lawmaking power, which the
Constitution vests in the Congress alone, in both good and bad times. Pp. 587-
589.
(g) Even if it be true that other Presidents have taken possession of private
business enterprises without congressional authority in order to settle labor
disputes, Congress has not thereby lost its exclusive constitutional authority to
make the laws necessary and proper to carry out all powers vested by the
Constitution "in the Government of the United States, or any Department or
Officer thereof." Pp. 588-589.
103 F. Supp. 569, affirmed.
For concurring opinion of MR. JUSTICE FRANKFURTER, see post, p. 593.
For concurring opinion of MR. JUSTICE DOUGLAS, see post, p. 629.
For concurring opinion of MR. JUSTICE JACKSON, see post, p. 634.
For concurring opinion of MR. JUSTICE BURTON, see post, p. 655.
For opinion of MR. JUSTICE CLARK, concurring in the judgment of the Court,
see post, p. 660.
For dissenting opinion of MR. CHIEF JUSTICE VINSON, joined by MR.
JUSTICE REED and MR. JUSTICE MINTON, see post, p. 667.
The District Court issued a preliminary injunction restraining the Secretary of
Commerce from carrying out the terms of Executive Order No. 10340, 16 Fed.
Reg. [343 U.S. 579, 581] 3503. 103 F. Supp. 569. The Court of Appeals issued a
stay. 90 U.S. App. D.C. ___, 197 F.2d 582. This Court granted certiorari. 343
U.S. 937 . The judgment of the District Court is affirmed, p. 589.
[ Footnote * ] Together with No. 745, Sawyer, Secretary of Commerce, v.
Youngstown Sheet & Tube Co. et al., also on certiorari to the same court.
John W. Davis argued the cause for petitioners in No. 744 and respondents in No.
745. On the brief were Mr. Davis, Nathan L. Miller, John Lord O'Brian, Roger
M. Blough, Theodore Kiendl, Porter R. Chandler and Howard C. Westwood for
the United States Steel Co.; Bruce Bromley, E. Fontaine Brown and John H.
Pickering for the Bethlehem Steel Co.; Luther Day, T. F. Patton, Edmund L.
Jones, Howard Boyd and John C. Gall for the Republic Steel Corp.; John C.
Bane, Jr., H. Parker Sharp and Sturgis Warner for the Jones & Laughlin Steel
9
Lectures on the US Legal System
Corp.; Mr. Gall, John J. Wilson and J. E. Bennett for the Youngstown Sheet &
Tube Co. et al.; Charles H. Tuttle, Winfred K. Petigrue and Joseph P. Tumulty,
Jr. (who also filed an additional brief) for the Armco Steel Corp. et al.; and
Randolph W. Childs, Edgar S. McKaig and James Craig Peacock (who also filed
an additional brief) for E. J. Lavino & Co., petitioners in No. 744 and respondents
in No. 745.
Solicitor General Perlman argued the cause for respondent in No. 744 and
petitioner in No. 745. With him on the brief were Assistant Attorney General
Baldridge, James L. Morrisson, Samuel D. Slade, Oscar H. Davis, Robert W.
Ginnane, Marvin E. Frankel, Benjamin Forman and Herman Marcuse.
By special leave of Court, Clifford D. O'Brien and Harold C. Heiss argued the
cause for the Brotherhood of Locomotive Engineers et al., as amici curiae,
supporting petitioners in No. 744 and respondents in No. 745. With them on the
brief were Ruth Weyand and V. C. Shuttleworth. [343 U.S. 579, 582]
By special leave of Court, Arthur J. Goldberg argued the cause for the United
Steelworkers of America, C. I. O., as amicus curiae. With him on the brief was
Thomas E. Harris.
MR. JUSTICE BLACK delivered the opinion of the Court.
We are asked to decide whether the President was acting within his constitutional
power when he issued an order directing the Secretary of Commerce to take
possession of and operate most of the Nation's steel mills. The mill owners argue
that the President's order amounts to lawmaking, a legislative function which the
Constitution has expressly confided to the Congress and not to the President. The
Government's position is that the order was made on findings of the President that
his action was necessary to avert a national catastrophe which would inevitably
result from a stoppage of steel production, and that in meeting this grave
emergency the President was acting within the aggregate of his constitutional
powers as the Nation's Chief Executive and the Commander in Chief of the
Armed Forces of the United States. The issue emerges here from the following
series of events:
In the latter part of 1951, a dispute arose between the steel companies and their
employees over terms and conditions that should be included in new collective
bargaining agreements. Long-continued conferences failed to resolve the dispute.
On December 18, 1951, the employees' representative, United Steelworkers of
America, C. I. O., gave notice of an intention to strike when the existing
bargaining agreements expired on December 31. The Federal Mediation and
Conciliation Service then intervened in an effort to get labor and management to
agree. This failing, the President on December 22, 1951, referred the dispute to
the Federal Wage Stabilization [343 U.S. 579, 583] Board 1 to investigate and
make recommendations for fair and equitable terms of settlement. This Board's
report resulted in no settlement. On April 4, 1952, the Union gave notice of a
nation-wide strike called to begin at 12:01 a. m. April 9. The indispensability of
steel as a component of substantially all weapons and other war materials led the
10
The Executive Power
11
Lectures on the US Legal System
extraordinary injunctive relief should have been denied because (a) seizure of the
companies' properties did not inflict irreparable damages, [343 U.S. 579, 585]
and (b) there were available legal remedies adequate to afford compensation for
any possible damages which they might suffer. While separately argued by the
Government, these two contentions are here closely related, if not identical.
Arguments as to both rest in large part on the Government's claim that should the
seizure ultimately be held unlawful, the companies could recover full
compensation in the Court of Claims for the unlawful taking. Prior cases in this
Court have cast doubt on the right to recover in the Court of Claims on account of
properties unlawfully taken by government officials for public use as these
properties were alleged to have been. See e. g., Hooe v. United States, 218 U.S.
322, 335 -336; United States v. North American Co., 253 U.S. 330, 333 . But see
Larson v. Domestic & Foreign Corp., 337 U.S. 682, 701 -702. Moreover, seizure
and governmental operation of these going businesses were bound to result in
many present and future damages of such nature as to be difficult, if not
incapable, of measurement. Viewing the case this way, and in the light of the
facts presented, the District Court saw no reason for delaying decision of the
constitutional validity of the orders. We agree with the District Court and can see
no reason why that question was not ripe for determination on the record
presented. We shall therefore consider and determine that question now.
II.
The President's power, if any, to issue the order must stem either from an act of
Congress or from the Constitution itself. There is no statute that expressly
authorizes the President to take possession of property as he did here. Nor is there
any act of Congress to which our attention has been directed from which such a
power can fairly be implied. Indeed, we do not understand the Government to
rely on statutory authorization for this seizure. There are two statutes which do
authorize the President [343 U.S. 579, 586] to take both personal and real
property under certain conditions. 2 However, the Government admits that these
conditions were not met and that the President's order was not rooted in either of
the statutes. The Government refers to the seizure provisions of one of these
statutes ( 201 (b) of the Defense Production Act) as "much too cumbersome,
involved, and time-consuming for the crisis which was at hand."
Moreover, the use of the seizure technique to solve labor disputes in order to
prevent work stoppages was not only unauthorized by any congressional
enactment; prior to this controversy, Congress had refused to adopt that method
of settling labor disputes. When the Taft-Hartley Act was under consideration in
1947, Congress rejected an amendment which would have authorized such
governmental seizures in cases of emergency. 3 Apparently it was thought that
the technique of seizure, like that of compulsory arbitration, would interfere with
the process of collective bargaining. 4 Consequently, the plan Congress adopted
in that Act did not provide for seizure under any circumstances. Instead, the plan
sought to bring about settlements by use of the customary devices of mediation,
conciliation, investigation by boards of inquiry, and public reports. In some
instances temporary injunctions were authorized to provide cooling-off periods.
12
The Executive Power
All this failing, unions were left free to strike after a secret vote by employees as
to whether they wished to accept their employers' final settlement offer. 5 [343
U.S. 579, 587]
It is clear that if the President had authority to issue the order he did, it must be
found in some provision of the Constitution. And it is not claimed that express
constitutional language grants this power to the President. The contention is that
presidential power should be implied from the aggregate of his powers under the
Constitution. Particular reliance is placed on provisions in Article II which say
that "The executive Power shall be vested in a President . . ."; that "he shall take
Care that the Laws be faithfully executed"; and that he "shall be Commander in
Chief of the Army and Navy of the United States."
The order cannot properly be sustained as an exercise of the President's military
power as Commander in Chief of the Armed Forces. The Government attempts to
do so by citing a number of cases upholding broad powers in military
commanders engaged in day-to-day fighting in a theater of war. Such cases need
not concern us here. Even though "theater of war" be an expanding concept, we
cannot with faithfulness to our constitutional system hold that the Commander in
Chief of the Armed Forces has the ultimate power as such to take possession of
private property in order to keep labor disputes from stopping production. This is
a job for the Nation's lawmakers, not for its military authorities.
Nor can the seizure order be sustained because of the several constitutional
provisions that grant executive power to the President. In the framework of our
Constitution, the President's power to see that the laws are faithfully executed
refutes the idea that he is to be a lawmaker. The Constitution limits his functions
in the lawmaking process to the recommending of laws he thinks wise and the
vetoing of laws he thinks bad. And the Constitution is neither silent nor equivocal
about who shall make laws which the President is to execute. The [343 U.S. 579,
588] first section of the first article says that "All legislative Powers herein
granted shall be vested in a Congress of the United States . . . ." After granting
many powers to the Congress, Article I goes on to provide that Congress may
"make all Laws which shall be necessary and proper for carrying into Execution
the foregoing Powers, and all other Powers vested by this Constitution in the
Government of the United States, or in any Department or Officer thereof."
The President's order does not direct that a congressional policy be executed in a
manner prescribed by Congress - it directs that a presidential policy be executed
in a manner prescribed by the President. The preamble of the order itself, like that
of many statutes, sets out reasons why the President believes certain policies
should be adopted, proclaims these policies as rules of conduct to be followed,
and again, like a statute, authorizes a government official to promulgate
additional rules and regulations consistent with the policy proclaimed and needed
to carry that policy into execution. The power of Congress to adopt such public
policies as those proclaimed by the order is beyond question. It can authorize the
taking of private property for public use. It can make laws regulating the
relationships between employers and employees, prescribing rules designed to
13
Lectures on the US Legal System
settle labor disputes, and fixing wages and working conditions in certain fields of
our economy. The Constitution does not subject this lawmaking power of
Congress to presidential or military supervision or control.
It is said that other Presidents without congressional authority have taken
possession of private business enterprises in order to settle labor disputes. But
even if this be true, Congress has not thereby lost its exclusive constitutional
authority to make laws necessary and proper to carry out the powers vested by the
Constitution [343 U.S. 579, 589] "in the Government of the United States, or
any Department or Officer thereof."
The Founders of this Nation entrusted the lawmaking power to the Congress
alone in both good and bad times. It would do no good to recall the historical
events, the fears of power and the hopes for freedom that lay behind their choice.
Such a review would but confirm our holding that this seizure order cannot stand.
The judgment of the District Court is
Affirmed.
14
Lecture # 3: The Judicial Power
Justices are nominated and appointed by the President, with the consent of
the Senate. Furthermore, the head of the executive cannot easily remove a
judge from the Supreme Court as the tenure of the justices is ensured
during good behavior pursuant to the terms of the Constitution, ensuring
thus a position for life.
3
5 US 137 (1803). Background and Explanations:
http://www.jmu.edu/madison/marbury/index.html.
4
10 US 87 (1810).
15
16
Lecture # 4: The Separation of Powers
17
Lectures on the US Legal System
No. 80-1832.
18
Separation of Powers
1. This Court has jurisdiction to entertain the INS's appeal in No. 80-1832 under
28 U.S.C. 1252, which provides that "[a]ny party" may appeal to the Supreme
Court from a judgment of "any court of the United States" holding an Act of
Congress unconstitutional in "any civil action, suit, or proceeding" to which the
United States or any of its agencies is a party. A court of appeals is "a court of the
United States" for purposes of 1252, the proceeding below was a "civil action,
suit, or proceeding," the INS is an agency of the United States and was a party to
the proceeding below, and the judgment below held an Act of Congress
unconstitutional. Moreover, for purposes of deciding whether the INS was "any
party" within the grant of appellate jurisdiction in 1252, the INS was sufficiently
aggrieved by the Court of Appeals' decision prohibiting it from taking action it
would otherwise take. An agency's status as an aggrieved party under 1252 is not
altered by the fact that the Executive may agree with the holding that the statute
in question is unconstitutional. Pp. 929-931.
2. Section 244(c)(2) is severable from the remainder of 244. Section 406 of the
Act provides that if any particular provision of the Act is held invalid, the
remainder of the Act shall not be affected. This gives rise to a presumption that
Congress did not intend the validity of the Act as a whole, or any part thereof, to
depend upon whether the veto clause of 244(c)(2) was invalid. This presumption
is supported by 244's legislative history. Moreover, a provision is further
presumed severable if what remains after severance is fully operative as a law.
Here, 244 can survive as a "fully operative" and workable administrative
mechanism without the one-House veto. Pp. 931-935.
3. Chadha has standing to challenge the constitutionality of 244(c)(2) since he has
demonstrated "injury in fact and a substantial likelihood that the judicial relief
requested will prevent or redress the claimed injury." Duke Power Co. v. Carolina
Environmental Study Group, Inc., 438 U.S. 59, 79 . Pp. 935-936.
4. The fact that Chadha may have other statutory relief available to him does not
preclude him from challenging the constitutionality of 244(c)(2), especially
where the other avenues of relief are at most speculative. Pp. 936-937.
5. The Court of Appeals had jurisdiction under 106(a) of the Act, which provides
that a petition for review in a court of appeals "shall be the sole and exclusive
procedure for the judicial review of all final orders of deportation . . . made
against aliens within the United States pursuant to administrative proceedings"
under 242(b) of the Act. Section 106(a) includes all matters on which the final
deportation order is contingent, rather than only those determinations made at the
deportation [462 U.S. 919, 921] hearing. Here, Chadha's deportation stands or
falls on the validity of the challenged veto, the final deportation order having
been entered only to implement that veto. Pp. 937-939.
6. A case or controversy is presented by these cases. From the time of the House's
formal intervention, there was concrete adverseness, and prior to such
intervention, there was adequate Art. III adverseness even though the only parties
were the INS and Chadha. The INS's agreement with Chadha's position does not
alter the fact that the INS would have deported him absent the Court of Appeals'
19
Lectures on the US Legal System
20
Separation of Powers
21
Lectures on the US Legal System
cause why he should not be deported for having "remained in the United States
for a longer time than permitted." App. 6. Pursuant to 242(b) of the Immigration
and Nationality Act (Act), 8 U.S.C. 1252(b), a deportation hearing was held
before an Immigration Judge on January 11, 1974. Chadha conceded that he was
deportable for overstaying his visa and the hearing was adjourned to enable him
to file an application for suspension of deportation under 244(a)(1) of the Act, 8
U.S.C. 1254(a)(1). Section 244(a)(1), at the time in question, provided:
"As hereinafter prescribed in this section, the Attorney General may, in his
discretion, suspend deportation and adjust the status to that of an alien lawfully
admitted for permanent residence, in the case of an alien who applies to the
Attorney General for suspension of deportation and -
"(1) is deportable under any law of the United States except the provisions
specified in paragraph (2) of this subsection; has been physically present in the
United [462 U.S. 919, 924] States for a continuous period of not less than seven
years immediately preceding the date of such application, and proves that during
all of such period he was and is a person of good moral character; and is a person
whose deportation would, in the opinion of the Attorney General, result in
extreme hardship to the alien or to his spouse, parent, or child, who is a citizen of
the United States or an alien lawfully admitted for permanent residence." 1
After Chadha submitted his application for suspension of deportation, the
deportation hearing was resumed on February 7, 1974. On the basis of evidence
adduced at the hearing, affidavits submitted with the application, and the results
of a character investigation conducted by the INS, the Immigration Judge, on
June 25, 1974, ordered that Chadha's deportation be suspended. The Immigration
Judge found that Chadha met the requirements of 244(a)(1): he had resided
continuously in the United States for over seven years, was of good moral
character, and would suffer "extreme hardship" if deported.
Pursuant to 244(c)(1) of the Act, 8 U.S.C. 1254(c)(1), the Immigration Judge
suspended Chadha's deportation and a report of the suspension was transmitted to
Congress. Section 244(c)(1) provides:
"Upon application by any alien who is found by the Attorney General to meet the
requirements of subsection (a) of this section the Attorney General may in his
discretion suspend deportation of such alien. If the deportation of any alien is
suspended under the provisions of this subsection, a complete and detailed
statement of the [462 U.S. 919, 925] facts and pertinent provisions of law in the
case shall be reported to the Congress with the reasons for such suspension. Such
reports shall be submitted on the first day of each calendar month in which
Congress is in session."
Once the Attorney General's recommendation for suspension of Chadha's
deportation was conveyed to Congress, Congress had the power under 244(c)(2)
of the Act, 8 U.S.C. 1254(c) (2), to veto 2 the Attorney General's determination
that Chadha should not be deported. Section 244(c)(2) provides:
22
Separation of Powers
"(2) In the case of an alien specified in paragraph (1) of subsection (a) of this
subsection -
"if during the session of the Congress at which a case is reported, or prior to the
close of the session of the Congress next following the session at which a case is
reported, either the Senate or the House of Representatives passes a resolution
stating in substance that it does not favor the suspension of such deportation, the
Attorney General shall thereupon deport such alien or authorize the alien's
voluntary departure at his own expense under the order of deportation in the
manner provided by law. If, within the time above specified, neither the Senate
nor the House of Representatives shall pass such a resolution, the Attorney
General shall cancel deportation proceedings." [462 U.S. 919, 926]
The June 25, 1974, order of the Immigration Judge suspending Chadha's
deportation remained outstanding as a valid order for a year and a half. For
reasons not disclosed by the record, Congress did not exercise the veto authority
reserved to it under 244(c)(2) until the first session of the 94th Congress. This
was the final session in which Congress, pursuant to 244(c)(2), could act to veto
the Attorney General's determination that Chadha should not be deported. The
session ended on December 19, 1975. 121 Cong. Rec. 42014, 42277 (1975).
Absent congressional action, Chadha's deportation proceedings would have been
canceled after this date and his status adjusted to that of a permanent resident
alien. See 8 U.S.C. 1254(d).
On December 12, 1975, Representative Eilberg, Chairman of the Judiciary
Subcommittee on Immigration, Citizenship, and International Law, introduced a
resolution opposing "the granting of permanent residence in the United States to
[six] aliens," including Chadha. H. Res. 926, 94th Cong., 1st Sess.; 121 Cong
Rec. 40247 (1975). The resolution was referred to the House Committee on the
Judiciary. On December 16, 1975, the resolution was discharged from further
consideration by the House Committee on the Judiciary and submitted to the
House of Representatives for a vote. 121 Cong. Rec. 40800. The resolution had
not been printed and was not made available to other Members of the House prior
to or at the time it was voted on. Ibid. So far as the record before us shows, the
House consideration of the resolution was based on Representative Eilberg's
statement from the floor that
"[i]t was the feeling of the committee, after reviewing 340 cases, that the aliens
contained in the resolution [Chadha and five others] did not meet these statutory
requirements, particularly as it relates to hardship; and it is the opinion of the
committee that their deportation should not be suspended." Ibid. [462 U.S. 919,
927]
The resolution was passed without debate or recorded vote. 3 Since the House
action was pursuant to 244(c)(2), the resolution was not treated as an Art. I
legislative act; it was not [462 U.S. 919, 928] submitted to the Senate or
presented to the President for his action.
23
Lectures on the US Legal System
After the House veto of the Attorney General's decision to allow Chadha to
remain in the United States, the Immigration Judge reopened the deportation
proceedings to implement the House order deporting Chadha. Chadha moved to
terminate the proceedings on the ground that 244(c)(2) is unconstitutional. The
Immigration Judge held that he had no authority to rule on the constitutional
validity of 244(c)(2). On November 8, 1976, Chadha was ordered deported
pursuant to the House action.
Chadha appealed the deportation order to the Board of Immigration Appeals,
again contending that 244(c)(2) is unconstitutional. The Board held that it had
"no power to declare unconstitutional an act of Congress" and Chadha's appeal
was dismissed. App. 55-56.
Pursuant to 106(a) of the Act, 8 U.S.C. 1105a(a), Chadha filed a petition for
review of the deportation order in the United States Court of Appeals for the
Ninth Circuit. The Immigration and Naturalization Service agreed with Chadha's
position before the Court of Appeals and joined him in arguing that 244(c)(2) is
unconstitutional. In light of the importance of the question, the Court of Appeals
invited both the Senate and the House of Representatives to file briefs amici
curiae.
After full briefing and oral argument, the Court of Appeals held that the House
was without constitutional authority to order Chadha's deportation; accordingly it
directed the Attorney General "to cease and desist from taking any steps to deport
this alien based upon the resolution enacted by the House of Representatives."
634 F.2d 408, 436 (1980). The essence of its holding was that 244(c)(2) violates
the constitutional doctrine of separation of powers.
We granted certiorari in Nos. 80-2170 and 80-2171, and postponed consideration
of our jurisdiction over the appeal in No. 80-1832, 454 U.S. 812 (1981), and we
now affirm. [462 U.S. 919, 929]
II
Before we address the important question of the constitutionality of the one-
House veto provision of 244(c)(2), we first consider several challenges to the
authority of this Court to resolve the issue raised.
A
Appellate Jurisdiction
Both Houses of Congress 4 contend that we are without jurisdiction under 28
U.S.C. 1252 to entertain the INS appeal in No. 80-1832. Section 1252 provides:
"Any party may appeal to the Supreme Court from an interlocutory or final
judgment, decree or order of any court of the United States, the United States
District Court for the District of the Canal Zone, the District Court of Guam and
the District Court of the Virgin Islands and any court of record of Puerto Rico,
holding an Act of Congress unconstitutional in any civil action, suit, or
24
Separation of Powers
proceeding to which the United States or any of its agencies, or any officer or
employee thereof, as such officer or employee, is a party."
Parker v. Levy, 417 U.S. 733, 742 , n. 10 (1974), makes clear that a court of
appeals is a "court of the United States" for purposes of 1252. It is likewise clear
that the proceeding below was a "civil action, suit, or proceeding," that the INS is
an agency of the United States and was a party to the proceeding below, and that
that proceeding held an Act of Congress - namely, the one-House veto provision
in 244(c)(2) - unconstitutional. The express requisites for an appeal under 1252,
therefore, have been met. [462 U.S. 919, 930]
In motions to dismiss the INS appeal, the congressional parties 5 direct attention,
however, to our statement that "[a] party who receives all that he has sought
generally is not aggrieved by the judgment affording the relief and cannot appeal
from it." Deposit Guaranty National Bank v. Roper, 445 U.S. 326, 333 (1980).
Here, the INS sought the invalidation of 244(c)(2), and the Court of Appeals
granted that relief. Both Houses contend that the INS has already received what it
sought from the Court of Appeals, is not an aggrieved party, and therefore cannot
appeal from the decision of the Court of Appeals. We cannot agree.
The INS was ordered by one House of Congress to deport Chadha. As we have
set out more fully, supra, at 928, the INS concluded that it had no power to rule
on the constitutionality of that order and accordingly proceeded to implement it.
Chadha's appeal challenged that decision and the INS presented the Executive's
views on the constitutionality of the House action to the Court of Appeals. But
the INS brief to the Court of Appeals did not alter the agency's decision to
comply with the House action ordering deportation of Chadha. The Court of
Appeals set aside the deportation proceedings and ordered the Attorney General
to cease and desist from taking any steps to deport Chadha; steps that the
Attorney General would have taken were it not for that decision.
At least for purposes of deciding whether the INS is "any party" within the grant
of appellate jurisdiction in 1252, we hold that the INS was sufficiently aggrieved
by the Court of Appeals decision prohibiting it from taking action it would
otherwise take. It is apparent that Congress intended that [462 U.S. 919, 931]
this Court take notice of cases that meet the technical prerequisites of 1252; in
other cases where an Act of Congress is held unconstitutional by a federal court,
review in this Court is available only by writ of certiorari. When an agency of the
United States is a party to a case in which the Act of Congress it administers is
held unconstitutional, it is an aggrieved party for purposes of taking an appeal
under 1252. The agency's status as an aggrieved party under 1252 is not altered
by the fact that the Executive may agree with the holding that the statute in
question is unconstitutional. The appeal in No. 80-1832 is therefore properly
before us. 6
25
Lectures on the US Legal System
B
Severability
Congress also contends that the provision for the one-House veto in 244(c)(2)
cannot be severed from 244. Congress argues that if the provision for the one-
House veto is held unconstitutional, all of 244 must fall. If 244 in its entirety is
violative of the Constitution, it follows that the Attorney General has no authority
to suspend Chadha's deportation under 244(a)(1) and Chadha would be deported.
From this, Congress argues that Chadha lacks standing to challenge the
constitutionality of the one-House veto provision because he could receive no
relief even if his constitutional challenge proves successful. 7
Only recently this Court reaffirmed that the invalid portions of a statute are to be
severed "`[u]nless it is evident that [462 U.S. 919, 932] the Legislature would
not have enacted those provisions which are within its power, independently of
that which is not.'" Buckley v. Valeo, 424 U.S. 1, 108 (1976), quoting Champlin
Refining Co. v. Corporation Comm'n of Oklahoma, 286 U.S. 210, 234 (1932).
Here, however, we need not embark on that elusive inquiry since Congress itself
has provided the answer to the question of severability in 406 of the Immigration
and Nationality Act, note following 8 U.S.C. 1101, which provides:
"If any particular provision of this Act, or the application thereof to any person or
circumstance, is held invalid, the remainder of the Act and the application of such
provision to other persons or circumstances shall not be affected thereby."
(Emphasis added.)
This language is unambiguous and gives rise to a presumption that Congress did
not intend the validity of the Act as a whole, or of any part of the Act, to depend
upon whether the veto clause of 244(c)(2) was invalid. The one-House veto
provision in 244(c)(2) is clearly a "particular provision" of the Act as that
language is used in the severability clause. Congress clearly intended "the
remainder of the Act" to stand if "any particular provision" were held invalid.
Congress could not have more plainly authorized the presumption that the
provision for a one-House veto in 244(c)(2) is severable from the remainder of
244 and the Act of which it is a part. See Electric Bond & Share Co. v. SEC, 303
U.S. 419, 434 (1938).
The presumption as to the severability of the one-House veto provision in
244(c)(2) is supported by the legislative history of 244. That section and its
precursors supplanted the long-established pattern of dealing with deportations
like Chadha's on a case-by-case basis through private bills. Although it may be
that Congress was reluctant to delegate final authority over cancellation of
deportations, such reluctance is not sufficient to overcome the presumption of
severability raised by 406. [462 U.S. 919, 933]
The Immigration Act of 1924, ch. 190, 14, 43 Stat. 162, required the Secretary of
Labor to deport any alien who entered or remained in the United States
unlawfully. The only means by which a deportable alien could lawfully remain in
the United States was to have his status altered by a private bill enacted by both
26
Separation of Powers
Houses and presented to the President pursuant to the procedures set out in Art. I,
7, of the Constitution. These private bills were found intolerable by Congress. In
the debate on a 1937 bill introduced by Representative Dies to authorize the
Secretary to grant permanent residence in "meritorious" cases, Dies stated:
"It was my original thought that the way to handle all these meritorious cases was
through special bills. I am absolutely convinced as a result of what has occurred
in this House that it is impossible to deal with this situation through special bills.
We had a demonstration of that fact not long ago when 15 special bills were
before this House. The House consumed 5 1/2 hours considering four bills and
made no disposition of any of the bills." 81 Cong. Rec. 5542 (1937).
Representative Dies' bill passed the House, id., at 5574, but did not come to a
vote in the Senate. 83 Cong. Rec. 8992-8996 (1938).
Congress first authorized the Attorney General to suspend the deportation of
certain aliens in the Alien Registration Act of 1940, ch. 439, 20, 54 Stat. 671.
That Act provided that an alien was to be deported, despite the Attorney General's
decision to the contrary, if both Houses, by concurrent resolution, disapproved
the suspension.
In 1948, Congress amended the Act to broaden the category of aliens eligible for
suspension of deportation. In addition, however, Congress limited the authority of
the Attorney General to suspend deportations by providing that the Attorney
General could not cancel a deportation unless both Houses affirmatively voted by
concurrent resolution to approve the Attorney General's action. Act of July 1,
1948, [462 U.S. 919, 934] ch. 783, 62 Stat. 1206. The provision for approval by
concurrent resolution in the 1948 Act proved almost as burdensome as private
bills. Just one year later, the House Judiciary Committee, in support of the
predecessor to 244(c)(2), stated in a Report:
"In the light of experience of the last several months, the committee came to the
conclusion that the requirement of affirmative action by both Houses of the
Congress in many thousands of individual cases which are submitted by the
Attorney General every year, is not workable and places upon the Congress and
particularly on the Committee on the Judiciary responsibilities which it cannot
assume. The new responsibilities placed upon the Committee on the Judiciary [by
the concurrent resolution mechanism] are of purely administrative nature and
they seriously interfere with the legislative work of the Committee on the
Judiciary and would, in time, interfere with the legislative work of the House." H.
R. Rep. No. 362, 81st Cong., 1st Sess., 2 (1949).
The proposal to permit one House of Congress to veto the Attorney General's
suspension of an alien's deportation was incorporated in the Immigration and
Nationality Act of 1952, Pub. L. 414, 244(a), 66 Stat. 214. Plainly, Congress'
desire to retain a veto in this area cannot be considered in isolation but must be
viewed in the context of Congress' irritation with the burden of private
immigration bills. This legislative history is not sufficient to rebut the
presumption of severability raised by 406 because there is insufficient evidence
27
Lectures on the US Legal System
that Congress would have continued to subject itself to the onerous burdens of
private bills had it known that 244(c)(2) would be held unconstitutional.
A provision is further presumed severable if what remains after severance "is
fully operative as a law." Champlin Refining Co. v. Corporation Comm'n, supra,
at 234. There can be no doubt that 244 is "fully operative" and workable
administrative machinery without the veto provision in 244(c)(2). Entirely
independent of the one-House veto, the [462 U.S. 919, 935] administrative
process enacted by Congress authorizes the Attorney General to suspend an
alien's deportation under 244(a). Congress' oversight of the exercise of this
delegated authority is preserved since all such suspensions will continue to be
reported to it under 244(c)(1). Absent the passage of a bill to the contrary, 8
deportation proceedings will be canceled when the period specified in 244(c)(2)
has expired. 9 Clearly, 244 survives as a workable administrative mechanism
without the one-House veto.
C
Standing
We must also reject the contention that Chadha lacks standing because a
consequence of his prevailing will advance [462 U.S. 919, 936] the interests of
the Executive Branch in a separation-of-powers dispute with Congress, rather
than simply Chadha's private interests. Chadha has demonstrated "injury in fact
and a substantial likelihood that the judicial relief requested will prevent or
redress the claimed injury . . . ." Duke Power Co. v. Carolina Environmental
Study Group, Inc., 438 U.S. 59, 79 (1978). If the veto provision violates the
Constitution, and is severable, the deportation order against Chadha will be
canceled. Chadha therefore has standing to challenge the order of the Executive
mandated by the House veto.
D
Alternative Relief
It is contended that the Court should decline to decide the constitutional question
presented by these cases because Chadha may have other statutory relief available
to him. It is argued that since Chadha married a United States citizen on August
10, 1980, it is possible that other avenues of relief may be open under 201(b),
204, and 245 of the Act, 8 U.S.C. 1151(b), 1154, and 1255. It is true that Chadha
may be eligible for classification as an "immediate relative" and, as such, could
lawfully be accorded permanent residence. Moreover, in March 1980, just prior
to the decision of the Court of Appeals in these cases, Congress enacted the
Refugee Act of 1980, Pub. L. 96-212, 94 Stat. 102, under which the Attorney
General is authorized to grant asylum, and then permanent residence, to any alien
who is unable to return to his country of nationality because of "a wellfounded
fear of persecution on account of race."
It is urged that these two intervening factors constitute a prudential bar to our
consideration of the constitutional question presented in these cases. See
28
Separation of Powers
Ashwander v. TVA, 297 U.S. 288, 346 (1936) (Brandeis, J., concurring). If we
could perceive merit in this contention we might well seek to avoid deciding the
constitutional claim advanced. But at most [462 U.S. 919, 937] these other
avenues of relief are speculative. It is by no means certain, for example, that
Chadha's classification as an immediate relative would result in the adjustment of
Chadha's status from nonimmigrant to permanent resident. See Menezes v. INS,
601 F.2d 1028 (CA9 1979). If Chadha is successful in his present challenge he
will not be deported and will automatically become eligible to apply for
citizenship. 10 A person threatened with deportation cannot be denied the right to
challenge the constitutional validity of the process which led to his status merely
on the basis of speculation over the availability of other forms of relief.
E
Jurisdiction
It is contended that the Court of Appeals lacked jurisdiction under 106(a) of the
Act, 8 U.S.C. 1105a(a). That section provides that a petition for review in the
Court of Appeals "shall be the sole and exclusive procedure for the judicial
review of all final orders of deportation . . . made against aliens within the United
States pursuant to administrative proceedings under section 242(b) of this Act."
Congress argues that the one-House veto authorized by 244(c)(2) takes place
outside the administrative proceedings conducted under 242(b), and that the
jurisdictional grant contained in 106(a) does not encompass Chadha's
constitutional challenge.
In Cheng Fan Kwok v. INS, 392 U.S. 206, 216 (1968), this Court held that "
106(a) embrace[s] only those determinations [462 U.S. 919, 938] made during a
proceeding conducted under 242(b), including those determinations made
incident to a motion to reopen such proceedings." It is true that one court has read
Cheng Fan Kwok to preclude appeals similar to Chadha's. See Dastmalchi v. INS,
660 F.2d 880 (CA3 1981). 11 However, we agree with the Court of Appeals in
these cases that the term "final orders" in 106(a) "includes all matters on which
the validity of the final order is contingent, rather than only those determinations
actually made at the hearing." 634 F.2d, at 412. Here, Chadha's deportation stands
or falls on the validity of the challenged veto; the final order of deportation was
entered against Chadha only to implement the action of the House of
Representatives. Although the Attorney General was satisfied that the House
action was invalid and that it should not have any effect on his decision to
suspend deportation, he appropriately let the controversy take its course through
the courts.
This Court's decision in Cheng Fan Kwok, supra, does not bar Chadha's appeal.
There, after an order of deportation had been entered, the affected alien requested
the INS to stay the execution of that order. When that request was denied, the
alien sought review in the Court of Appeals under 106(a). This Court's holding
that the Court of Appeals lacked jurisdiction was based on the fact that the alien
"did not `attack the deportation order itself but instead [sought] relief not
inconsistent with it.'" 392 U.S., at 213 , quoting [462 U.S. 919, 939] Mui v.
29
Lectures on the US Legal System
Esperdy, 371 F.2d 772, 777 (CA2 1966). Here, in contrast, Chadha directly
attacks the deportation order itself, and the relief he seeks - cancellation of
deportation - is plainly inconsistent with the deportation order. Accordingly, the
Court of Appeals had jurisdiction under 106(a) to decide these cases.
F
Case or Controversy
It is also contended that this is not a genuine controversy but "a friendly, non-
adversary, proceeding," Ashwander v. TVA, 297 U.S., at 346 (Brandeis, J.,
concurring), upon which the Court should not pass. This argument rests on the
fact that Chadha and the INS take the same position on the constitutionality of the
one-House veto. But it would be a curious result if, in the administration of
justice, a person could be denied access to the courts because the Attorney
General of the United States agreed with the legal arguments asserted by the
individual.
A case or controversy is presented by these cases. First, from the time of
Congress' formal intervention, see n. 5, supra, the concrete adverseness is beyond
doubt. Congress is both a proper party to defend the constitutionality of 244(c)(2)
and a proper petitioner under 28 U.S.C. 1254(1). Second, prior to Congress'
intervention, there was adequate Art. III adverseness even though the only parties
were the INS and Chadha. We have already held that the INS's agreement with
the Court of Appeals' decision that 244(c)(2) is unconstitutional does not affect
that agency's "aggrieved" status for purposes of appealing that decision under 28
U.S.C. 1252, see supra, at 929-931. For similar reasons, the INS's agreement with
Chadha's position does not alter the fact that the INS would have deported
Chadha absent the Court of Appeals' judgment. We agree with the Court of
Appeals that "Chadha has asserted a concrete controversy, and our decision will
have real meaning: if we rule for Chadha, he will not be deported; if we uphold
244(c)(2), [462 U.S. 919, 940] the INS will execute its order and deport him."
634 F.2d, at 419. 12
Of course, there may be prudential, as opposed to Art. III, concerns about
sanctioning the adjudication of these cases in the absence of any participant
supporting the validity of 244(c)(2). The Court of Appeals properly dispelled any
such concerns by inviting and accepting briefs from both Houses of Congress.
We have long held that Congress is the proper party to defend the validity of a
statute when an agency of government, as a defendant charged with enforcing the
statute, agrees with plaintiffs that the statute is inapplicable or unconstitutional.
See Cheng Fan Kwok v. INS, 392 U.S., at 210 , n. 9; United States v. Lovett, 328
U.S. 303 (1946).
G
Political Question
It is also argued that these cases present a nonjusticiable political question
because Chadha is merely challenging Congress' authority under the
30
Separation of Powers
Naturalization Clause, U.S. Const., Art. I, 8, cl. 4, and the Necessary and Proper
Clause, U.S. Const., Art. I, 8, cl. 18. It is argued that Congress' Art. I power "To
establish an uniform Rule of Naturalization," combined with the Necessary and
Proper Clause, grants it unreviewable authority over the regulation of aliens. The
plenary authority of Congress over aliens under Art. I, 8, cl. 4, is not open to
question, but what is [462 U.S. 919, 941] challenged here is whether Congress
has chosen a constitutionally permissible means of implementing that power. As
we made clear in Buckley v. Valeo, 424 U.S. 1 (1976): "Congress has plenary
authority in all cases in which it has substantive legislative jurisdiction,
McCulloch v. Maryland, 4 Wheat. 316 (1819), so long as the exercise of that
authority does not offend some other constitutional restriction." Id., at 132.
A brief review of those factors which may indicate the presence of a
nonjusticiable political question satisfies us that our assertion of jurisdiction over
these cases does no violence to the political question doctrine. As identified in
Baker v. Carr, 369 U.S. 186, 217 (1962), a political question may arise when any
one of the following circumstances is present:
"a textually demonstrable constitutional commitment of the issue to a coordinate
political department; or a lack of judicially discoverable and manageable
standards for resolving it; or the impossibility of deciding without an initial
policy determination of a kind clearly for nonjudicial discretion; or the
impossibility of a court's undertaking independent resolution without expressing
lack of the respect due coordinate branches of government; or an unusual need for
unquestioning adherence to a political decision already made; or the potentiality
of embarrassment from multifarious pronouncements by various departments on
one question."
Congress apparently directs its assertion of nonjusticiability to the first of the
Baker factors by asserting that Chadha's claim is "an assault on the legislative
authority to enact Section 244(c)(2)." Brief for Petitioner in No. 80-2170, p. 48.
But if this turns the question into a political question virtually every challenge to
the constitutionality of a statute would be a political question. Chadha indeed
argues that one House of Congress cannot constitutionally veto the Attorney
General's decision to allow him to remain in this country. No policy underlying
the political question doctrine [462 U.S. 919, 942] suggests that Congress or the
Executive, or both acting in concert and in compliance with Art. I, can decide the
constitutionality of a statute; that is a decision for the courts. 13
Other Baker factors are likewise inapplicable to this case. As we discuss more
fully below, Art. I provides the "judicially discoverable and manageable
standards" of Baker for resolving the question presented by these cases. Those
standards forestall reliance by this Court on nonjudicial "policy determinations"
or any showing of disrespect for a coordinate branch. Similarly, if Chadha's
arguments are accepted, 244(c)(2) cannot stand, and, since the constitutionality of
that statute is for this Court to resolve, there is no possibility of "multifarious
pronouncements" on this question.
31
Lectures on the US Legal System
It is correct that this controversy may, in a sense, be termed "political." But the
presence of constitutional issues with significant political overtones does not
automatically invoke [462 U.S. 919, 943] the political question doctrine.
Resolution of litigation challenging the constitutional authority of one of the three
branches cannot be evaded by courts because the issues have political
implications in the sense urged by Congress. Marbury v. Madison, 1 Cranch 137
(1803), was also a "political" case, involving as it did claims under a judicial
commission alleged to have been duly signed by the President but not delivered.
But "courts cannot reject as `no law suit' a bona fide controversy as to whether
some action denominated `political' exceeds constitutional authority." Baker v.
Carr, supra, at 217.
In Field v. Clark, 143 U.S. 649 (1892), this Court addressed and resolved the
question whether
"a bill signed by the Speaker of the House of Representatives and by the
President of the Senate, presented to and approved by the President of the United
States, and delivered by the latter to the Secretary of State, as an act passed by
Congress, does not become a law of the United States if it had not in fact been
passed by Congress. . . .
". . . We recognize, on one hand, the duty of this court, from the performance of
which it may not shrink, to give full effect to the provisions of the Constitution
relating to the enactment of laws that are to operate wherever the authority and
jurisdiction of the United States extend. On the other hand, we cannot be
unmindful of the consequences that must result if this court should feel obliged,
in fidelity to the Constitution, to declare that an enrolled bill, on which depend
public and private interests of vast magnitude, and which has been . . . deposited
in the public archives, as an act of Congress, . . . did not become a law." Id., at
669-670 (emphasis in original).
H
The contentions on standing and justiciability have been fully examined, and we
are satisfied the parties are properly before us. The important issues have been
fully briefed and [462 U.S. 919, 944] twice argued, see 458 U.S. 1120 (1982).
The Court's duty in these cases, as Chief Justice Marshall declared in Cohens v.
Virginia, 6 Wheat. 264, 404 (1821), is clear:
"Questions may occur which we would gladly avoid; but we cannot avoid them.
All we can do is, to exercise our best judgment, and conscientiously to perform
our duty."
III
A
We turn now to the question whether action of one House of Congress under
244(c)(2) violates strictures of the Constitution. We begin, of course, with the
presumption that the challenged statute is valid. Its wisdom is not the concern of
32
Separation of Powers
the courts; if a challenged action does not violate the Constitution, it must be
sustained:
"Once the meaning of an enactment is discerned and its constitutionality
determined, the judicial process comes to an end. We do not sit as a committee of
review, nor are we vested with the power of veto." TVA v. Hill, 437 U.S. 153,
194 -195 (1978).
By the same token, the fact that a given law or procedure is efficient, convenient,
and useful in facilitating functions of government, standing alone, will not save it
if it is contrary to the Constitution. Convenience and efficiency are not the
primary objectives - or the hallmarks - of democratic government and our inquiry
is sharpened rather than blunted by the fact that congressional veto provisions are
appearing with increasing frequency in statutes which delegate authority to
executive and independent agencies:
"Since 1932, when the first veto provision was enacted into law, 295
congressional veto-type procedures have been inserted in 196 different statutes as
follows: from 1932 to 1939, five statutes were affected; from 1940-49, nineteen
statutes; between 1950-59, thirty-four statutes; and from 1960-69, forty-nine.
From the year 1970 through 1975, at least one hundred sixty-three such
provisions [462 U.S. 919, 945] were included in eighty-nine laws." Abourezk,
The Congressional Veto: A Contemporary Response to Executive Encroachment
on Legislative Prerogatives, 52 Ind. L. Rev. 323, 324 (1977).
See also Appendix to JUSTICE WHITE's dissent, post, at 1003.
JUSTICE WHITE undertakes to make a case for the proposition that the one-
House veto is a useful "political invention," post, at 972, and we need not
challenge that assertion. We can even concede this utilitarian argument although
the longrange political wisdom of this "invention" is arguable. It has been
vigorously debated, and it is instructive to compare the views of the protagonists.
See, e. g., Javits & Klein, Congressional Oversight and the Legislative Veto: A
Constitutional Analysis, 52 N. Y. U. L. Rev. 455 (1977), and Martin, The
Legislative Veto and the Responsible Exercise of Congressional Power, 68 Va. L.
Rev. 253 (1982). But policy arguments supporting even useful "political
inventions" are subject to the demands of the Constitution which defines powers
and, with respect to this subject, sets out just how those powers are to be
exercised.
Explicit and unambiguous provisions of the Constitution prescribe and define the
respective functions of the Congress and of the Executive in the legislative
process. Since the precise terms of those familiar provisions are critical to the
resolution of these cases, we set them out verbatim. Article I provides:
"All legislative Powers herein granted shall be vested in a Congress of the United
States, which shall consist of a Senate and House of Representatives." Art. I, 1.
(Emphasis added.)
33
Lectures on the US Legal System
"Every Bill which shall have passed the House of Representatives and the Senate,
shall, before it becomes a law, be presented to the President of the United States .
. . ." Art. I, 7, cl. 2. (Emphasis added.)
"Every Order, Resolution, or Vote to which the Concurrence of the Senate and
House of Representatives may be necessary (except on a question of
Adjournment) [462 U.S. 919, 946] shall be presented to the President of the
United States; and before the Same shall take Effect, shall be approved by him, or
being disapproved by him, shall be repassed by two thirds of the Senate and
House of Representatives, according to the Rules and Limitations prescribed in
the Case of a Bill." Art. I, 7, cl. 3. (Emphasis added.)
These provisions of Art. I are integral parts of the constitutional design for the
separation of powers. We have recently noted that "[t]he principle of separation
of powers was not simply an abstract generalization in the minds of the Framers:
it was woven into the document that they drafted in Philadelphia in the summer
of 1787." Buckley v. Valeo, 424 U.S., at 124 . Just as we relied on the textual
provision of Art. II, 2, cl. 2, to vindicate the principle of separation of powers in
Buckley, we see that the purposes underlying the Presentment Clauses, Art. I, 7,
cls. 2, 3, and the bicameral requirement of Art. I, 1, and 7, cl. 2, guide our
resolution of the important question presented in these cases. The very structure
of the Articles delegating and separating powers under Arts. I, II, and III
exemplifies the concept of separation of powers, and we now turn to Art. I.
B
The Presentment Clauses
The records of the Constitutional Convention reveal that the requirement that all
legislation be presented to the President before becoming law was uniformly
accepted by the Framers. 14 Presentment to the President and the Presidential
[462 U.S. 919, 947] veto were considered so imperative that the draftsmen took
special pains to assure that these requirements could not be circumvented. During
the final debate on Art. I, 7, cl. 2, James Madison expressed concern that it might
easily be evaded by the simple expedient of calling a proposed law a "resolution"
or "vote" rather than a "bill." 2 Farrand 301-302. As a consequence, Art. I, 7, cl.
3, supra, at 945-946, was added. 2 Farrand 304-305.
The decision to provide the President with a limited and qualified power to
nullify proposed legislation by veto was based on the profound conviction of the
Framers that the powers conferred on Congress were the powers to be most
carefully circumscribed. It is beyond doubt that lawmaking was a power to be
shared by both Houses and the President. In The Federalist No. 73 (H. Lodge ed.
1888), Hamilton focused on the President's role in making laws:
"If even no propensity had ever discovered itself in the legislative body to invade
the rights of the Executive, the rules of just reasoning and theoretic propriety
would of themselves teach us that the one ought not to be left to the mercy of the
other, but ought to possess a constitutional and effectual power of self-defence."
Id., at 458.
34
Separation of Powers
See also The Federalist No. 51. In his Commentaries on the Constitution, Joseph
Story makes the same point. 1 J. Story, Commentaries on the Constitution of the
United States 614-615 (3d ed. 1858).
The President's role in the lawmaking process also reflects the Framers' careful
efforts to check whatever propensity a particular Congress might have to enact
oppressive, improvident, [462 U.S. 919, 948] or ill-considered measures. The
President's veto role in the legislative process was described later during public
debate on ratification:
"It establishes a salutary check upon the legislative body, calculated to guard the
community against the effects of faction, precipitancy, or of any impulse
unfriendly to the public good, which may happen to influence a majority of that
body.
". . . The primary inducement to conferring the power in question upon the
Executive is, to enable him to defend himself; the secondary one is to increase the
chances in favor of the community against the passing of bad laws, through haste,
inadvertence, or design." The Federalist No. 73, supra, at 458 (A. Hamilton).
See also The Pocket Veto Case, 279 U.S. 655, 678 (1929); Myers v. United
States, 272 U.S. 52, 123 (1926). The Court also has observed that the
Presentment Clauses serve the important purpose of assuring that a "national"
perspective is grafted on the legislative process:
"The President is a representative of the people just as the members of the Senate
and of the House are, and it may be, at some times, on some subjects, that the
President elected by all the people is rather more representative of them all than
are the members of either body of the Legislature whose constituencies are local
and not countrywide . . . ." Myers v. United States, supra, at 123.
C
Bicameralism
The bicameral requirement of Art. I, 1, 7, was of scarcely less concern to the
Framers than was the Presidential veto and indeed the two concepts are
interdependent. By providing that no law could take effect without the
concurrence of the prescribed majority of the Members of both Houses, the
Framers reemphasized their belief, already remarked [462 U.S. 919, 949] upon
in connection with the Presentment Clauses, that legislation should not be enacted
unless it has been carefully and fully considered by the Nation's elected officials.
In the Constitutional Convention debates on the need for a bicameral legislature,
James Wilson, later to become a Justice of this Court, commented:
"Despotism comes on mankind in different shapes. sometimes in an Executive,
sometimes in a military, one. Is there danger of a Legislative despotism? Theory
& practice both proclaim it. If the Legislative authority be not restrained, there
can be neither liberty nor stability; and it can only be restrained by dividing it
within itself, into distinct and independent branches. In a single house there is no
35
Lectures on the US Legal System
check, but the inadequate one, of the virtue & good sense of those who compose
it." 1 Farrand 254.
Hamilton argued that a Congress comprised of a single House was antithetical to
the very purposes of the Constitution. Were the Nation to adopt a Constitution
providing for only one legislative organ, he warned:
"[W]e shall finally accumulate, in a single body, all the most important
prerogatives of sovereignty, and thus entail upon our posterity one of the most
execrable forms of government that human infatuation ever contrived. Thus we
should create in reality that very tyranny which the adversaries of the new
Constitution either are, or affect to be, solicitous to avert." The Federalist No. 22,
p. 135 (H. Lodge ed. 1888).
This view was rooted in a general skepticism regarding the fallibility of human
nature later commented on by Joseph Story:
"Public bodies, like private persons, are occasionally under the dominion of
strong passions and excitements; impatient, irritable, and impetuous. . . . If [a
legislature] [462 U.S. 919, 950] feels no check but its own will, it rarely has the
firmness to insist upon holding a question long enough under its own view, to see
and mark it in all its bearings and relations on society." 1 Story, supra, at 383-
384.
These observations are consistent with what many of the Framers expressed, none
more cogently than Madison in pointing up the need to divide and disperse power
in order to protect liberty:
"In republican government, the legislative authority necessarily predominates.
The remedy for this inconveniency is to divide the legislature into different
branches; and to render them, by different modes of election and different
principles of action, as little connected with each other as the nature of their
common functions and their common dependence on the society will admit." The
Federalist No. 51, p. 324 (H. Lodge ed. 1888) (sometimes attributed to "Hamilton
or Madison" but now generally attributed to Madison).
See also The Federalist No. 62.
However familiar, it is useful to recall that apart from their fear that special
interests could be favored at the expense of public needs, the Framers were also
concerned, although not of one mind, over the apprehensions of the smaller
states. Those states feared a commonality of interest among the larger states
would work to their disadvantage; representatives of the larger states, on the other
hand, were skeptical of a legislature that could pass laws favoring a minority of
the people. See 1 Farrand 176-177, 484-491. It need hardly be repeated here that
the Great Compromise, under which one House was viewed as representing the
people and the other the states, allayed the fears of both the large and small states.
15 [462 U.S. 919, 951]
36
Separation of Powers
We see therefore that the Framers were acutely conscious that the bicameral
requirement and the Presentment Clauses would serve essential constitutional
functions. The President's participation in the legislative process was to protect
the Executive Branch from Congress and to protect the whole people from
improvident laws. The division of the Congress into two distinctive bodies
assures that the legislative power would be exercised only after opportunity for
full study and debate in separate settings. The President's unilateral veto power, in
turn, was limited by the power of two-thirds of both Houses of Congress to
overrule a veto thereby precluding final arbitrary action of one person. See id., at
99-104. It emerges clearly that the prescription for legislative action in Art. I, 1,
7, represents the Framers' decision that the legislative power of the Federal
Government be exercised in accord with a single, finely wrought and
exhaustively considered, procedure.
IV
The Constitution sought to divide the delegated powers of the new Federal
Government into three defined categories, Legislative, Executive, and Judicial, to
assure, as nearly as possible, that each branch of government would confine itself
to its assigned responsibility. The hydraulic pressure inherent within each of the
separate Branches to exceed the outer limits of its power, even to accomplish
desirable objectives, must be resisted.
Although not "hermetically" sealed from one another, Buckley v. Valeo, 424
U.S., at 121 , the powers delegated to the three Branches are functionally
identifiable. When any Branch acts, it is presumptively exercising the power the
Constitution has delegated to it. See J. W. Hampton & Co. v. United States, 276
U.S. 394, 406 (1928). When the Executive acts, he presumptively acts in an
executive or administrative capacity as defined in Art. II. And when, as here, [462
U.S. 919, 952] one House of Congress purports to act, it is presumptively acting
within its assigned sphere.
Beginning with this presumption, we must nevertheless establish that the
challenged action under 244(c)(2) is of the kind to which the procedural
requirements of Art. I, 7, apply. Not every action taken by either House is subject
to the bicameralism and presentment requirements of Art. I. See infra, at 955, and
nn. 20, 21. Whether actions taken by either House are, in law and fact, an
exercise of legislative power depends not on their form but upon "whether they
contain matter which is properly to be regarded as legislative in its character and
effect." S. Rep. No. 1335, 54th Cong., 2d Sess., 8 (1897).
Examination of the action taken here by one House pursuant to 244(c)(2) reveals
that it was essentially legislative in purpose and effect. In purporting to exercise
power defined in Art. I, 8, cl. 4, to "establish an uniform Rule of Naturalization,"
the House took action that had the purpose and effect of altering the legal rights,
duties, and relations of persons, including the Attorney General, Executive
Branch officials and Chadha, all outside the Legislative Branch. Section
244(c)(2) purports to authorize one House of Congress to require the Attorney
General to deport an individual alien whose deportation otherwise would be
37
Lectures on the US Legal System
canceled under 244. The one-House veto operated in these cases to overrule the
Attorney General and mandate Chadha's deportation; absent the House action,
Chadha would remain in the United States. Congress has acted and its action has
altered Chadha's status.
The legislative character of the one-House veto in these cases is confirmed by the
character of the congressional action it supplants. Neither the House of
Representatives nor the Senate contends that, absent the veto provision in
244(c)(2), either of them, or both of them acting together, could effectively
require the Attorney General to deport an alien once the Attorney General, in the
exercise of legislatively [462 U.S. 919, 953] delegated authority, 16 had
determined the alien should remain in the United States. Without the challenged
provision in 244(c)(2), this could have been achieved, if at all, only [462 U.S.
919, 954] by legislation requiring deportation. 17 Similarly, a veto by one
House of Congress under 244(c)(2) cannot be justified as an attempt at amending
the standards set out in 244(a)(1), or as a repeal of 244 as applied to Chadha.
Amendment and repeal of statutes, no less than enactment, must conform with
Art. I. 18
The nature of the decision implemented by the one-House veto in these cases
further manifests its legislative character. After long experience with the clumsy,
time-consuming private bill procedure, Congress made a deliberate choice to
delegate to the Executive Branch, and specifically to the Attorney General, the
authority to allow deportable aliens to remain in this country in certain specified
circumstances. It is not disputed that this choice to delegate authority is precisely
the kind of decision that can be implemented only in accordance with the
procedures set out in Art. I. Disagreement with the Attorney General's decision
on Chadha's deportation - that is, Congress' decision to deport Chadha - no less
than Congress' original choice to delegate to the Attorney General the authority to
make that decision, involves determinations of policy that Congress can
implement in only one way; bicameral passage followed by presentment to the
[462 U.S. 919, 955] President. Congress must abide by its delegation of
authority until that delegation is legislatively altered or revoked. 19
Finally, we see that when the Framers intended to authorize either House of
Congress to act alone and outside of its prescribed bicameral legislative role, they
narrowly and precisely defined the procedure for such action. There are four
provisions in the Constitution, 20 explicit and unambiguous, by which one House
may act alone with the unreviewable force of law, not subject to the President's
veto:
(a) The House of Representatives alone was given the power to initiate
impeachments. Art. I, 2, cl. 5;
(b) The Senate alone was given the power to conduct trials following
impeachment on charges initiated by the House and to convict following trial.
Art. I, 3, cl. 6;
38
Separation of Powers
(c) The Senate alone was given final unreviewable power to approve or to
disapprove Presidential appointments. Art. II, 2, cl. 2;
(d) The Senate alone was given unreviewable power to ratify treaties negotiated
by the President. Art. II, 2, cl. 2.
Clearly, when the Draftsmen sought to confer special powers on one House,
independent of the other House, or of the President, they did so in explicit,
unambiguous terms. 21 [462 U.S. 919, 956] These carefully defined exceptions
from presentment and bicameralism underscore the difference between the
legislative functions of Congress and other unilateral but important and binding
one-House acts provided for in the Constitution. These exceptions are narrow,
explicit, and separately justified; none of them authorize the action challenged
here. On the contrary, they provide further support for the conclusion that
congressional authority is not to be implied and for the conclusion that the veto
provided for in 244(c)(2) is not authorized by the constitutional design of the
powers of the Legislative Branch.
Since it is clear that the action by the House under 244(c)(2) was not within any
of the express constitutional exceptions authorizing one House to act alone, and
equally [462 U.S. 919, 957] clear that it was an exercise of legislative power,
that action was subject to the standards prescribed in Art. I. 22 The bicameral
requirement, the Presentment Clauses, the President's veto, and Congress' power
to override a veto were intended to erect enduring checks on each Branch and to
protect the people from the improvident exercise of power by mandating certain
prescribed steps. To preserve those [462 U.S. 919, 958] checks, and maintain
the separation of powers, the carefully defined limits on the power of each
Branch must not be eroded. To accomplish what has been attempted by one
House of Congress in this case requires action in conformity with the express
procedures of the Constitution's prescription for legislative action: passage by a
majority of both Houses and presentment to the President. 23
The veto authorized by 244(c)(2) doubtless has been in many respects a
convenient shortcut; the "sharing" with the Executive by Congress of its authority
over aliens in this manner is, on its face, an appealing compromise. In purely
practical terms, it is obviously easier for action to be taken by one House without
submission to the President; but it is crystal [462 U.S. 919, 959] clear from the
records of the Convention, contemporaneous writings and debates, that the
Framers ranked other values higher than efficiency. The records of the
Convention and debates in the states preceding ratification underscore the
common desire to define and limit the exercise of the newly created federal
powers affecting the states and the people. There is unmistakable expression of a
determination that legislation by the national Congress be a step-by-step,
deliberate and deliberative process.
The choices we discern as having been made in the Constitutional Convention
impose burdens on governmental processes that often seem clumsy, inefficient,
even unworkable, but those hard choices were consciously made by men who had
lived under a form of government that permitted arbitrary governmental acts to
39
Lectures on the US Legal System
No. 73-1766.
40
Separation of Powers
1. The District Court's order was appealable as a "final" order under 28 U.S.C.
1291, was therefore properly "in" the Court of Appeals, 28 U.S.C. 1254, when the
petition for certiorari before judgment was filed in this Court, and is now properly
before this Court for review. Although such an order is normally not final and
subject to appeal, an exception is made in a "limited class of [418 U.S. 683, 684]
cases where denial of immediate review would render impossible any review
whatsoever of an individual's claims," United States v. Ryan, 402 U.S. 530, 533 .
Such an exception is proper in the unique circumstances of this case where it
would be inappropriate to subject the President to the procedure of securing
review by resisting the order and inappropriate to require that the District Court
proceed by a traditional contempt citation in order to provide appellate review.
Pp. 690-692.
2. The dispute between the Special Prosecutor and the President presents a
justiciable controversy. Pp. 692-697.
(a) The mere assertion of an "intra-branch dispute," without more, does not defeat
federal jurisdiction. United States v. ICC, 337 U.S. 426 . P. 693.
(b) The Attorney General by regulation has conferred upon the Special Prosecutor
unique tenure and authority to represent the United States and has given the
Special Prosecutor explicit power to contest the invocation of executive privilege
in seeking evidence deemed relevant to the performance of his specially
delegated duties. While the regulation remains in effect, the Executive Branch is
bound by it. United States ex rel. Accardi v. Shaughnessy, 347 U.S. 260 . Pp.
694-696.
(c) The action of the Special Prosecutor within the scope of his express authority
seeking specified evidence preliminarily determined to be relevant and admissible
in the pending criminal case, and the President's assertion of privilege in
opposition thereto, present issues "of a type which are traditionally justiciable,"
United States v. ICC, supra, at 430, and the fact that both litigants are officers of
the Executive Branch is not a bar to justiciability. Pp. 696-697.
3. From this Court's examination of the material submitted by the Special
Prosecutor in support of his motion for the subpoena, much of which is under
seal, it is clear that the District Court's denial of the motion to quash comported
with Rule 17 (c) and that the Special Prosecutor has made a sufficient showing to
justify a subpoena for production before trial. Pp. 697-702.
4. Neither the doctrine of separation of powers nor the generalized need for
confidentiality of high-level communications, without more, can sustain an
absolute, unqualified Presidential privilege of immunity from judicial process
under all circumstances. See, e. g., Marbury v. Madison, 1 Cranch 137, 177;
Baker v. Carr, 369 U.S. 186, 211 . Absent a claim of need to protect military,
diplomatic, or sensitive national security secrets, the confidentiality of [418 U.S.
683, 685] Presidential communications is not significantly diminished by
producing material for a criminal trial under the protected conditions of in camera
inspection, and any absolute executive privilege under Art. II of the Constitution
41
Lectures on the US Legal System
would plainly conflict with the function of the courts under the Constitution. Pp.
703-707.
5. Although the courts will afford the utmost deference to Presidential acts in the
performance of an Art. II function, United States v. Burr, 25 F. Cas. 187, 190,
191-192 (No. 14,694), when a claim of Presidential privilege as to materials
subpoenaed for use in a criminal trial is based, as it is here, not on the ground that
military or diplomatic secrets are implicated, but merely on the ground of a
generalized interest in confidentiality, the President's generalized assertion of
privilege must yield to the demonstrated, specific need for evidence in a pending
criminal trial and the fundamental demands of due process of law in the fair
administration of criminal justice. Pp. 707-713.
6. On the basis of this Court's examination of the record, it cannot be concluded
that the District Court erred in ordering in camera examination of the subpoenaed
material, which shall now forthwith be transmitted to the District Court. Pp. 713-
714.
7. Since a President's communications encompass a vastly wider range of
sensitive material than would be true of an ordinary individual, the public interest
requires that Presidential confidentiality be afforded the greatest protection
consistent with the fair administration of justice, and the District Court has a
heavy responsibility to ensure that material involving Presidential conversations
irrelevant to or inadmissible in the criminal prosecution be accorded the high
degree of respect due a President and that such material be returned under seal to
its lawful custodian. Until released to the Special Prosecutor no in camera
material is to be released to anyone. Pp. 714-716.
No. 73-1766, 377 F. Supp. 1326, affirmed; No. 73-1834, certiorari dismissed as
improvidently granted.
BURGER, C. J., delivered the opinion of the Court, in which all Members joined
except REHNQUIST, J., who took no part in the consideration or decision of the
cases.
Leon Jaworski and Philip A. Lacovara argued the cause and filed briefs for the
United States in both cases.
James D. St. Clair argued the cause for the President [418 U.S. 683, 686] in both
cases. With him on the briefs were Charles Alan Wright, Leonard Garment,
Michael A. Sterlacci, Jerome J. Murphy, Loren A. Smith, James R. Prochnow,
Theodore J. Garrish, James J. Tansey, and Larry G. Gutterridge. William Snow
Frates, Andrew C. Hall, Spencer H. Boyer, and Henry H. Jones filed a brief for
respondent Ehrlichman in No. 73-1766. John M. Bray filed a brief for respondent
Strachan in No. 73-1766.Fn
Fn [418 U.S. 683, 686] Norman Dorsen and Melvin L Wulf filed a brief for the
American Civil Liberties Union as amicus curiae urging affirmance of the
District Court judgment.
42
Separation of Powers
43
Lectures on the US Legal System
44
Separation of Powers
applying this principle to an order denying a motion to quash and requiring the
production of evidence pursuant [418 U.S. 683, 691] to a subpoena duces tecum,
it has been repeatedly held that the order is not final and hence not appealable.
United States v. Ryan, 402 U.S. 530, 532 (1971); Cobbledick v. United States,
supra; Alexander v. United States, 201 U.S. 117 (1906). This Court has
"consistently held that the necessity for expedition in the administration of the
criminal law justifies putting one who seeks to resist the production of desired
information to a choice between compliance with a trial court's order to produce
prior to any review of that order, and resistance to that order with the concomitant
possibility of an adjudication of contempt if his claims are rejected on appeal."
United States v. Ryan, supra, at 533.
The requirement of submitting to contempt, however, is not without exception
and in some instances the purposes underlying the finality rule require a different
result. For example, in Perlman v. United States, 247 U.S. 7 (1918), a subpoena
had been directed to a third party requesting certain exhibits; the appellant, who
owned the exhibits, sought to raise a claim of privilege. The Court held an order
compelling production was appealable because it was unlikely that the third party
would risk a contempt citation in order to allow immediate review of the
appellant's claim of privilege. Id., at 12-13. That case fell within the "limited class
of cases where denial of immediate review would render impossible any review
whatsoever of an individual's claims." United States v. Ryan, supra, at 533.
Here too, the traditional contempt avenue to immediate appeal is peculiarly
inappropriate due to the unique setting in which the question arises. To require a
President of the United States to place himself in the posture of disobeying an
order of a court merely to trigger the procedural mechanism for review of the
ruling would be [418 U.S. 683, 692] unseemly, and would present an
unnecessary occasion for constitutional confrontation between two branches of
the Government. Similarly, a federal judge should not be placed in the posture of
issuing a citation to a President simply in order to invoke review. The issue
whether a President can be cited for contempt could itself engender protracted
litigation, and would further delay both review on the merits of his claim of
privilege and the ultimate termination of the underlying criminal action for which
his evidence is sought. These considerations lead us to conclude that the order of
the District Court was an appealable order. The appeal from that order was
therefore properly "in" the Court of Appeals, and the case is now properly before
this Court on the writ of certiorari before judgment. 28 U.S.C. 1254; 28 U.S.C.
2101 (e). Gay v. Ruff, 292 U.S. 25, 30 (1934). 7
II
JUSTICIABILITY
In the District Court, the President's counsel argued that the court lacked
jurisdiction to issue the subpoena because the matter was an intra-branch dispute
between a subordinate and superior officer of the Executive Branch and hence not
subject to judicial resolution. That argument has been renewed in this Court with
45
Lectures on the US Legal System
emphasis on the contention that the dispute does not present a "case" or
"controversy" which can be adjudicated in the federal courts. The President's
counsel argues that the federal courts should not intrude into areas committed to
the other branches of Government. [418 U.S. 683, 693] He views the present
dispute as essentially a "jurisdictional" dispute within the Executive Branch
which he analogizes to a dispute between two congressional committees. Since
the Executive Branch has exclusive authority and absolute discretion to decide
whether to prosecute a case, Confiscation Cases, 7 Wall. 454 (1869); United
States v. Cox, 342 F.2d 167, 171 (CA5), cert. denied sub nom. Cox v. Hauberg,
381 U.S. 935 (1965), it is contended that a President's decision is final in
determining what evidence is to be used in a given criminal case. Although his
counsel concedes that the President has delegated certain specific powers to the
Special Prosecutor, he has not "waived nor delegated to the Special Prosecutor
the President's duty to claim privilege as to all materials . . . which fall within the
President's inherent authority to refuse to disclose to any executive officer." Brief
for the President 42. The Special Prosecutor's demand for the items therefore
presents, in the view of the President's counsel, a political question under Baker
v. Carr, 369 U.S. 186 (1962), since it involves a "textually demonstrable" grant of
power under Art. II.
The mere assertion of a claim of an "intra-branch dispute," without more, has
never operated to defeat federal jurisdiction; justiciability does not depend on
such a surface inquiry. In United States v. ICC, 337 U.S. 426 (1949), the Court
observed, "courts must look behind names that symbolize the parties to determine
whether a justiciable case or controversy is presented." Id., at 430. See also
Powell v. McCormack, 395 U.S. 486 (1969); ICC v. Jersey City, 322 U.S. 503
(1944); United States ex rel. Chapman v. FPC, 345 U.S. 153 (1953); Secretary of
Agriculture v. United States, 347 U.S. 645 (1954); FMB v. Isbrandtsen Co., 356
U.S. 481, 483 n. 2 (1958); United States v. Marine Bancorporation, ante, p. 602;
and United States v. Connecticut National Bank, ante, p. 656. [418 U.S. 683, 694]
Our starting point is the nature of the proceeding for which the evidence is sought
- here a pending criminal prosecution. It is a judicial proceeding in a federal court
alleging violation of federal laws and is brought in the name of the United States
as sovereign. Berger v. United States, 295 U.S. 78, 88 (1935). Under the authority
of Art. II, 2, Congress has vested in the Attorney General the power to conduct
the criminal litigation of the United States Government. 28 U.S.C. 516. It has also
vested in him the power to appoint subordinate officers to assist him in the
discharge of his duties. 28 U.S.C. 509, 510, 515, 533. Acting pursuant to those
statutes, the Attorney General has delegated the authority to represent the United
States in these particular matters to a Special Prosecutor with unique authority
and tenure. 8 The regulation gives the [418 U.S. 683, 695] Special Prosecutor
explicit power to contest the invocation of executive privilege in the process of
seeking evidence deemed relevant to the performance of these specially delegated
duties. 9 38 Fed. Reg. 30739, as amended by 38 Fed. Reg. 32805.
46
Separation of Powers
So long as this regulation is extant it has the force of law. In United States ex rel.
Accardi v. Shaughnessy, 347 U.S. 260 (1954), regulations of the Attorney
General delegated certain of his discretionary powers to the Board [418 U.S. 683,
696] of Immigration Appeals and required that Board to exercise its own
discretion on appeals in deportation cases. The Court held that so long as the
Attorney General's regulations remained operative, he denied himself the
authority to exercise the discretion delegated to the Board even though the
original authority was his and he could reassert it by amending the regulations.
Service v. Dulles, 354 U.S. 363, 388 (1957), and Vitarelli v. Seaton, 359 U.S. 535
(1959), reaffirmed the basic holding of Accardi.
Here, as in Accardi, it is theoretically possible for the Attorney General to amend
or revoke the regulation defining the Special Prosecutor's authority. But he has
not done so. 10 So long as this regulation remains in force the Executive Branch
is bound by it, and indeed the United States as the sovereign composed of the
three branches is bound to respect and to enforce it. Moreover, the delegation of
authority to the Special Prosecutor in this case is not an ordinary delegation by
the Attorney General to a subordinate officer: with the authorization of the
President, the Acting Attorney General provided in the regulation that the Special
Prosecutor was not to be removed without the "consensus" of eight designated
leaders of Congress. N. 8, supra.
The demands of and the resistance to the subpoena present an obvious
controversy in the ordinary sense, but that alone is not sufficient to meet
constitutional standards. In the constitutional sense, controversy means more than
disagreement and conflict; rather it means the kind of controversy courts
traditionally resolve. Here [418 U.S. 683, 697] at issue is the production or
nonproduction of specified evidence deemed by the Special Prosecutor to be
relevant and admissible in a pending criminal case. It is sought by one official of
the Executive Branch within the scope of his express authority; it is resisted by
the Chief Executive on the ground of his duty to preserve the confidentiality of
the communications of the President. Whatever the correct answer on the merits,
these issues are "of a type which are traditionally justiciable." United States v.
ICC, 337 U.S., at 430 . The independent Special Prosecutor with his asserted
need for the subpoenaed material in the underlying criminal prosecution is
opposed by the President with his steadfast assertion of privilege against
disclosure of the material. This setting assures there is "that concrete adverseness
which sharpens the presentation of issues upon which the court so largely
depends for illumination of difficult constitutional questions." Baker v. Carr, 369
U.S., at 204 . Moreover, since the matter is one arising in the regular course of a
federal criminal prosecution, it is within the traditional scope of Art. III power.
Id., at 198.
In light of the uniqueness of the setting in which the conflict arises, the fact that
both parties are officers of the Executive Branch cannot be viewed as a barrier to
justiciability. It would be inconsistent with the applicable law and regulation, and
the unique facts of this case to conclude other than that the Special Prosecutor has
47
Lectures on the US Legal System
standing to bring this action and that a justiciable controversy is presented for
decision.
III
RULE 17 (c)
The subpoena duces tecum is challenged on the ground that the Special
Prosecutor failed to satisfy the requirements of Fed. Rule Crim. Proc. 17 (c),
which governs [418 U.S. 683, 698] the issuance of subpoenas duces tecum in
federal criminal proceedings. If we sustained this challenge, there would be no
occasion to reach the claim of privilege asserted with respect to the subpoenaed
material. Thus we turn to the question whether the requirements of Rule 17 (c)
have been satisfied. See Arkansas Louisiana Gas Co. v. Dept. of Public Utilities,
304 U.S. 61, 64 (1938); Ashwander v. TVA, 297 U.S. 288, 346 -347 (1936)
(Brandeis, J., concurring).
Rule 17 (c) provides:
"A subpoena may also command the person to whom it is directed to produce the
books, papers, documents or other objects designated therein. The court on
motion made promptly may quash or modify the subpoena if compliance would
be unreasonable or oppressive. The court may direct that books, papers,
documents or objects designated in the subpoena be produced before the court at
a time prior to the trial or prior to the time when they are to be offered in
evidence and may upon their production permit the books, papers, documents or
objects or portions thereof to be inspected by the parties and their attorneys."
A subpoena for documents may be quashed if their production would be
"unreasonable or oppressive," but not otherwise. The leading case in this Court
interpreting this standard is Bowman Dairy Co. v. United States, 341 U.S. 214
(1951). This case recognized certain fundamental characteristics of the subpoena
duces tecum in criminal cases: (1) it was not intended to provide a means of
discovery for criminal cases, id., at 220; (2) its chief innovation was to expedite
the trial by providing a time and place before trial for the inspection of [418 U.S.
683, 699] subpoenaed materials, 11 ibid. As both parties agree, cases decided in
the wake of Bowman have generally followed Judge Weinfeld's formulation in
United States v. Iozia, 13 F. R. D. 335, 338 (SDNY 1952), as to the required
showing. Under this test, in order to require production prior to trial, the moving
party must show: (1) that the documents are evidentiary 12 and relevant; (2) that
they are not otherwise procurable reasonably in advance of trial by exercise of
due diligence; (3) that the party cannot properly prepare for trial without such
production and inspection in advance of trial and that the failure to obtain such
inspection may tend unreasonably to delay the trial; and (4) that [418 U.S. 683,
700] the application is made in good faith and is not intended as a general
"fishing expedition."
Against this background, the Special Prosecutor, in order to carry his burden,
must clear three hurdles: (1) relevancy; (2) admissibility; (3) specificity. Our own
review of the record necessarily affords a less comprehensive view of the total
48
Separation of Powers
situation than was available to the trial judge and we are unwilling to conclude
that the District Court erred in the evaluation of the Special Prosecutor's showing
under Rule 17 (c). Our conclusion is based on the record before us, much of
which is under seal. Of course, the contents of the subpoenaed tapes could not at
that stage be described fully by the Special Prosecutor, but there was a sufficient
likelihood that each of the tapes contains conversations relevant to the offenses
charged in the indictment. United States v. Gross, 24 F. R. D. 138 (SDNY 1959).
With respect to many of the tapes, the Special Prosecutor offered the sworn
testimony or statements of one or more of the participants in the conversations as
to what was said at the time. As for the remainder of the tapes, the identity of the
participants and the time and place of the conversations, taken in their total
context, permit a rational inference that at least part of the conversations relate to
the offenses charged in the indictment.
We also conclude there was a sufficient preliminary showing that each of the
subpoenaed tapes contains evidence admissible with respect to the offenses
charged in the indictment. The most cogent objection to the admissibility of the
taped conversations here at issue is that they are a collection of out-of-court
statements by declarants who will not be subject to cross-examination and that
the statements are therefore inadmissible hearsay. Here, however, most of the
tapes apparently contain conversations [418 U.S. 683, 701] to which one or
more of the defendants named in the indictment were party. The hearsay rule
does not automatically bar all out-of-court statements by a defendant in a criminal
case. 13 Declarations by one defendant may also be admissible against other
defendants upon a sufficient showing, by independent evidence, 14 of a
conspiracy among one or more other defendants and the declarant and if the
declarations at issue were in furtherance of that conspiracy. The same is true of
declarations of coconspirators who are not defendants in the case on trial. Dutton
v. Evans, 400 U.S. 74, 81 (1970). Recorded conversations may also be admissible
for the limited purpose of impeaching the credibility of any defendant who
testifies or any other coconspirator who testifies. Generally, the need for evidence
to impeach witnesses is insufficient to require its production in advance of trial.
See, e. g., United States v. Carter, 15 F. R. D. 367, [418 U.S. 683, 702] 371 (DC
1954). Here, however, there are other valid potential evidentiary uses for the
same material, and the analysis and possible transcription of the tapes may take a
significant period of time. Accordingly, we cannot conclude that the District
Court erred in authorizing the issuance of the subpoena duces tecum.
Enforcement of a pretrial subpoena duces tecum must necessarily be committed
to the sound discretion of the trial court since the necessity for the subpoena most
often turns upon a determination of factual issues. Without a determination of
arbitrariness or that the trial court finding was without record support, an
appellate court will not ordinarily disturb a finding that the applicant for a
subpoena complied with Rule 17 (c). See, e. g., Sue v. Chicago Transit Authority,
279 F.2d 416, 419 (CA7 1960); Shotkin v. Nelson, 146 F.2d 402 (CA10 1944).
In a case such as this, however, where a subpoena is directed to a President of the
United States, appellate review, in deference to a coordinate branch of
49
Lectures on the US Legal System
50
Separation of Powers
51
Lectures on the US Legal System
52
Separation of Powers
citizens and, added to those values, is the necessity for protection of the public
interest in candid, objective, and even blunt or harsh opinions in Presidential
decision-making. A President and those who assist him must be free to explore
alternatives in the process of shaping policies and making decisions and to do so
in a way many would be unwilling to express except privately. These are the
considerations justifying a presumptive privilege for Presidential
communications. The privilege is fundamental to the operation of Government
and inextricably rooted in the separation of powers under the Constitution. 17 In
Nixon v. Sirica, 159 U.S. App. D.C. 58, 487 F.2d 700 (1973), the Court of
Appeals held that such Presidential communications are "presumptively
privileged," id., at 75, 487 F.2d, at 717, and this position is accepted by both
parties in the present litigation. We agree with Mr. Chief Justice Marshall's
observation, therefore, that "[i]n no case of this kind would a court be required to
proceed against the president as against an ordinary individual." United States v.
Burr, 25 F. Cas., at 192.
But this presumptive privilege must be considered in light of our historic
commitment to the rule of law. This [418 U.S. 683, 709] is nowhere more
profoundly manifest than in our view that "the twofold aim [of criminal justice] is
that guilt shall not escape or innocence suffer." Berger v. United States, 295 U.S.,
at 88 . We have elected to employ an adversary system of criminal justice in
which the parties contest all issues before a court of law. The need to develop all
relevant facts in the adversary system is both fundamental and comprehensive.
The ends of criminal justice would be defeated if judgments were to be founded
on a partial or speculative presentation of the facts. The very integrity of the
judicial system and public confidence in the system depend on full disclosure of
all the facts, within the framework of the rules of evidence. To ensure that justice
is done, it is imperative to the function of courts that compulsory process be
available for the production of evidence needed either by the prosecution or by
the defense.
Only recently the Court restated the ancient proposition of law, albeit in the
context of a grand jury inquiry rather than a trial,
"that `the public . . . has a right to every man's evidence,' except for those persons
protected by a constitutional, common-law, or statutory privilege, United States
v. Bryan, 339 U.S. [323, 331 (1950)]; Blackmer v. United States, 284 U.S. 421,
438 (1932) . . . ." Branzburg v. Hayes, 408 U.S. 665, 688 (1972).
The privileges referred to by the Court are designed to protect weighty and
legitimate competing interests. Thus, the Fifth Amendment to the Constitution
provides that no man "shall be compelled in any criminal case to be a witness
against himself." And, generally, an attorney or a priest may not be required to
disclose what has been revealed in professional confidence. These and other
interests are recognized in law by privileges [418 U.S. 683, 710] against forced
disclosure, established in the Constitution, by statute, or at Common law.
Whatever their origins, these exceptions to the demand for every man's evidence
53
Lectures on the US Legal System
are not lightly created nor expansively construed, for they are in derogation of the
search for truth. 18
In this case the President challenges a subpoena served on him as a third party
requiring the production of materials for use in a criminal prosecution; he does so
on the claim that he has a privilege against disclosure of confidential
communications. He does not place his claim of privilege on the ground they are
military or diplomatic secrets. As to these areas of Art. II duties the courts have
traditionally shown the utmost deference to Presidential responsibilities. In C. &
S. Air Lines v. Waterman S. S. Corp., 333 U.S. 103, 111 (1948), dealing with
Presidential authority involving foreign policy considerations, the Court said:
"The President, both as Commander-in-Chief and as the Nation's organ for
foreign affairs, has available intelligence services whose reports are not and ought
not to be published to the world. It would be intolerable that courts, without the
relevant information, should review and perhaps nullify actions of the Executive
taken on information properly held secret."
In United States v. Reynolds, 345 U.S. 1 (1953), dealing [418 U.S. 683, 711]
with a claimant's demand for evidence in a Tort Claims Act case against the
Government, the Court said:
"It may be possible to satisfy the court, from all the circumstances of the case,
that there is a reasonable danger that compulsion of the evidence will expose
military matters which, in the interest of national security, should not be
divulged. When this is the case, the occasion for the privilege is appropriate, and
the court should not jeopardize the security which the privilege is meant to
protect by insisting upon an examination of the evidence, even by the judge
alone, in chambers." Id., at 10.
No case of the Court, however, has extended this high degree of deference to a
President's generalized interest in confidentiality. Nowhere in the Constitution, as
we have noted earlier, is there any explicit reference to a privilege of
confidentiality, yet to the extent this interest relates to the effective discharge of a
President's powers, it is constitutionally based.
The right to the production of all evidence at a criminal trial similarly has
constitutional dimensions. The Sixth Amendment explicitly confers upon every
defendant in a criminal trial the right "to be confronted with the witnesses against
him" and "to have compulsory process for obtaining witnesses in his favor."
Moreover, the Fifth Amendment also guarantees that no person shall be deprived
of liberty without due process of law. It is the manifest duty of the courts to
vindicate those guarantees, and to accomplish that it is essential that all relevant
and admissible evidence be produced.
In this case we must weigh the importance of the general privilege of
confidentiality of Presidential communications in performance of the President's
responsibilities against the inroads of such a privilege on the fair [418 U.S. 683,
712] administration of criminal justice. 19 The interest in preserving
confidentiality is weighty indeed and entitled to great respect. However, we
54
Separation of Powers
cannot conclude that advisers will be moved to temper the candor of their
remarks by the infrequent occasions of disclosure because of the possibility that
such conversations will be called for in the context of a criminal prosecution. 20
On the other hand, the allowance of the privilege to withhold evidence that is
demonstrably relevant in a criminal trial would cut deeply into the guarantee of
due process of law and gravely impair the basic function of the courts. A
President's acknowledged need for confidentiality [418 U.S. 683, 713] in the
communications of his office is general in nature, whereas the constitutional need
for production of relevant evidence in a criminal proceeding is specific and
central to the fair adjudication of a particular criminal case in the administration
of justice. Without access to specific facts a criminal prosecution may be totally
frustrated. The President's broad interest in confidentiality of communications
will not be vitiated by disclosure of a limited number of conversations
preliminarily shown to have some bearing on the pending criminal cases.
We conclude that when the ground for asserting privilege as to subpoenaed
materials sought for use in a criminal trial is based only on the generalized
interest in confidentiality, it cannot prevail over the fundamental demands of due
process of law in the fair administration of criminal justice. The generalized
assertion of privilege must yield to the demonstrated, specific need for evidence
in a pending criminal trial.
D
We have earlier determined that the District Court did not err in authorizing the
issuance of the subpoena. If a President concludes that compliance with a
subpoena would be injurious to the public interest he may properly, as was done
here, invoke a claim of privilege on the return of the subpoena. Upon receiving a
claim of privilege from the Chief Executive, it became the further duty of the
District Court to treat the subpoenaed material as presumptively privileged and to
require the Special Prosecutor to demonstrate that the Presidential material was
"essential to the justice of the [pending criminal] case." United States v. Burr, 25
F. Cas., at 192. Here the District Court treated the material as presumptively
privileged, proceeded to find that the Special [418 U.S. 683, 714] Prosecutor
had made a sufficient showing to rebut the presumption, and ordered an in
camera examination of the subpoenaed material. On the basis of our examination
of the record we are unable to conclude that the District Court erred in ordering
the inspection. Accordingly we affirm the order of the District Court that
subpoenaed materials be transmitted to that court. We now turn to the important
question of the District Court's responsibilities in conducting the in camera
examination of Presidential materials or communications delivered under the
compulsion of the subpoena duces tecum.
E
Enforcement of the subpoena duces tecum was stayed pending this Court's
resolution of the issues raised by the petitions for certiorari. Those issues now
having been disposed of, the matter of implementation will rest with the District
55
Lectures on the US Legal System
Court. "[T]he guard, furnished to [the President] to protect him from being
harassed by vexatious and unnecessary subpoenas, is to be looked for in the
conduct of a [district] court after those subpoenas have issued; not in any
circumstance which is to precede their being issued." United States v. Burr, 25 F.
Cas., at 34. Statements that meet the test of admissibility and relevance must be
isolated; all other material must be excised. At this stage the District Court is not
limited to representations of the Special Prosecutor as to the evidence sought by
the subpoena; the material will be available to the District Court. It is elementary
that in camera inspection of evidence is always a procedure calling for scrupulous
protection against any release or publication of material not found by the court, at
that stage, probably admissible in evidence and relevant to the issues of the trial
for which it is sought. That being true of an ordinary situation, it is obvious that
the District Court has [418 U.S. 683, 715] a very heavy responsibility to see to it
that Presidential conversations, which are either not relevant or not admissible,
are accorded that high degree of respect due the President of the United States.
Mr. Chief Justice Marshall, sitting as a trial judge in the Burr case, supra, was
extraordinarily careful to point out that
"[i]n no case of this kind would a court be required to proceed against the
president as against an ordinary individual." 25 F. Cas., at 192.
Marshall's statement cannot be read to mean in any sense that a President is above
the law, but relates to the singularly unique role under Art. II of a President's
communications and activities, related to the performance of duties under that
Article. Moreover, a President's communications and activities encompass a
vastly wider range of sensitive material than would be true of any "ordinary
individual." It is therefore necessary 21 in the public interest to afford
Presidential confidentiality the greatest protection consistent with the fair
administration of justice. The need for confidentiality even as to idle
conversations with associates in which casual reference might be made
concerning political leaders within the country or foreign statesmen is too
obvious to call for further treatment. We have no doubt that the District Judge
will at all times accord to Presidential records that high degree of deference
suggested in United States v. Burr, supra, and will discharge his responsibility to
see to [418 U.S. 683, 716] it that until released to the Special Prosecutor no in
camera material is revealed to anyone. This burden applies with even greater
force to excised material; once the decision is made to excise, the material is
restored to its privileged status and should be returned under seal to its lawful
custodian.
Since this matter came before the Court during the pendency of a criminal
prosecution, and on representations that time is of the essence, the mandate shall
issue forthwith.
Affirmed.
56
Lecture # 5: The Court’s Main Eras5
1. Federalism (1801-1835)
The First Chief Justice of the Supreme Court of the United States was
John Jay (1789-1795). After the resignation of the third Chief Justice
Oliver Ellsworth, Secretary of State John Marshall proposed Associate
Justice William Paterson as new Chief Justice; however President Adams
opted for Marshall, who would be soon the “father” of the US Supreme
Court.
Marshall, the oldest of 15 children, indeed never really had any legal
training, besides a year spent at William and Mary College, and for today
standards it is hard to understand how he could turn to be one of the
greatest justices in American history. In the same time, the Court had one
of the youngest and greatest scholars as Associate, namely Joseph Story,
appointed at the age of 32, and who later became professor at Harvard.
5
Taken from Farber & alii, Constitutional Law, St Paul, West Publishing, 1993.
6
5 US 137 (1803).
7
14 US 304 (1816).
8
17 US 316 (1819).
57
Lectures on the US Legal System
2. Slavery (1836-1873)
However, the most significant, and debated ruling happened in Dred Scott
v. Sandford9, the second decision to declare a federal law unconstitutional.
Qualified as the ‘biggest disaster in the history of the Court”10, it fueled
the flames that led to the Civil War as it “prohibited” to abolish slavery.
After the war, the Supreme Court didn’t change its attitude toward the
Afro-American minority and diluted the amendments in order to allow
racial apartheid, through the “separate but equal” principle of Plessy v.
Ferguson11.
As its has been pointed out, “Lochner was emblematic of a whole era, in
which the Court transformed the Fourteenth Amendment from a radical
9
60 US 393 (1856); infra Lecture #6..
10
Farber, op.cit., p. 12.
11
163 US 537 (1896).
12
198 US 45 (1905).
58
The Court’s Main Eras
However, the period was also marked by the famous dissenting opinions
of Justice Holmes (1902-1932).Wounded three times during the Civil
War, he taught at Harvard before joining the Massachusetts Supreme
Judicial Court. Friend of the philospher William James, his life spanned
much of American history. As a small boy he was introduced to President
Adams; as an old man, he met the young John F. Kennedy. He left his
estate to the United States Government, which ultimately uses the money
to finance a multi-volume history of the Supreme Court.
As Justice, he defended the rights of labor unions, the action of the federal
government to experiment with novel forms of market regulation and
freedom of speech. Somehow, its voice was the one of the future.
The Great Depression ended the era of nostalgia and wealth, and President
Franklin Dwight Roosevelt won smashing electoral victories in 1932 and
1936 for his vision of a New Deal for the American people.
Till 1934, almost all New Deal legislation survived judicial review. The
first big shock came in 1935, when a 5-4 Court invalidated the Railroad
retirement Act in Railroad Retirement Board v. Alton Railroad Co14.
The dismantling of his further projects by the Court, led him to take his
case to the people, who in 1936 gave him the largest electoral vote
landslide of this century. Armed with this electoral mandate, FDR
launched a neverseen attack against the Supreme Court with its “Court-
packing plan”, consisting to add one Justice to the Court for each Justice
over 70 years old, “in order to ameliorate the “heavy burden” faced by the
Court”. Since there were six justices older than 70 in 1937, the plan would
allow the President to appoint “his” justices. Foreseeing what was going
on, the Court handed down two important pro-New Deal decisions,
although the Senate Judiciary Committee killed the Court-packing plan in
June 1937.
13
Farber, op.cit., p. 17.
14
295 US 330 (1935).
59
Lectures on the US Legal System
Ironically, FDR got the chance to appoint 7 new justices between 1937
and 1941 because of retirements and deaths. \the new nominees were
young, talented and loyal to the President, transforming definitively
constitutional law, assuming a new role in protection individual civil
liberties.
Hugo Black, former Klu Klux Klan member, turned to be the strongest
supporter of civil rights. Intelectual leader of the civil libertarian camp on
the Court, he championed the view that the bill of rights applies to the
states via the Fourteenth Amendment.
His closest ally on the Court was William Douglas, a rising star as law
profesor, first at Columbia then at Yale, followed by a term as president of
the Securities Exchange Commission (SEC). Besides the fact that he was
a poker-buddy of FDR, he has till today the record for length of service on
the Court with some 36 years.
The most important case of the Court in that period is doubtlessly Brown
v. Board of Education15 that put an end to segregation. It is also the
Warren Court who first used the First Amendment as an aggressive
instrument to protect the rights of peaceful demonstrations.
The Warren Court was followed by the Burger and the Rehnquist Court.
We do consider that today it is too soon to evaluate their work, as time
needs to pass by to make relevant their legacy. Today, the Court is
presided by John Roberts.
15
347 US 483, infra cases & material.
60
Part II – The Bill of Rights
One of the controversial points in the ratification debate was the
Constitution’s failure to guarantee specific individual “rights”. Federalists
argued that a specific bill of rights was unnecessary because the federal
government had only limited powers. And, furthermore, such a text could
be harmful because it would preclude whatever rights were left off the
specific list. However, the states of Virginia and New York called for
such a bill in their ratification resolution. Consecuently, the Federalists
accepted a ratification deal and pursuant to his bargain, Madison
introduced a series of constitutional amendments in the first Congress.
One of his main arguments against the Federalists’ objection was to say
that “it is true, the powers of the General Government are circumscribed,
they are directed to particular objects, but even if Government keeps
within those limits, it has certain discretionary powers with respect to the
means, which may admit of abuse to a certain extent, in the same manner
as the powers of the State governments under their constitutions”16.
Originally the first ten amendments did not apply to states governement. It
was not until the 1830’s that the Supreme Court first considered the
question of whether the Bill of Rights was also applicable to the states.
Following the theory of selective corporation17, the totality of the First,
Fourth and Sixth Amendments; the self-incrimination, double jeopardy
and just compensation clauses of the Fifth Amendment; and the guarantee
against cruel and unusual punishment of the Eightth Amendment do today
apply to states as well.
16
Farber, op.cit., 5.
17
Selective corporation is grounded in the Fourteenth Amendment which
prohbits states from denying an individual due process of law.
61
Lectures on the US Legal System
62
Lecture # 6: The Slavery Question
One of the main evolutions of the Bill of rights was the slavery question.
In order to appease the Southern states, the Framers of the Constitution
had included three provisions contemplating slavery, giving thus, in an
indirect manner its recognition. However, in the Missouri Compromise of
1820, Congress prohibited slavery in the Northwest Territory in return for
allowing the rest of the country to follow a local option approach. The odd
consequences were illustrated in the case of Dred Scott. As a slave he
moved with his master from Missouri (a slave state under the 1820
compromise), where he and his owner resided, to Illinois where slavery
was forbidden. However, once arrived in Illinois, he brought his case
against his “master” before a court in order to obtain freedom. He invoked
federal jurisdiction by claiming diversity of citizenship (as more than one
state had been involved), and a claim for relief based on the local
Constitution and the 1820 federal statute probiting slavery.
Chief Justice Taney first ruled that federal courts had no jurisdiction,
because Scott was no ”citizen” of Missouri as the local constitution
contemplate slaves as a “subordinate and inferior class of beings, who had
been subjugated by the dominant race”. Next, Taney established that the
applicable law was the one of his residence, in this case the law of
Missouri. And finally, and most importantly, he declared the 1820 federal
statute unconstitutional: a federal law cannot give ipso jure freedom to a
slave, as the Fifth Amendment prohibits the federal government from
depriving citizens of their property [the slave] without just compensation
and due process of law.
The Civil War (1861-1865) put in exergue some of the main failures of
the Constitution: it did not deal with secession. Strict constitutionalists
like President Buchanan believed that the North was powerless to oppose
secession; newly elected President Lincoln defended a vision of a
inviolable national community.
The South’s defeat meant the formal end of slavery in the United States.
President Lincoln’s Emancipation Proclamation of January 1, 1863
63
Lectures on the US Legal System
No State shall make or enforce any law which shall abridge the privi-leges or
immunities of citizens of the United States; nor shall any State deprive any
person of life, liberty, or property, with-out due process of law; nor deny to any
person within its juris-diction the equal protection of the laws.
Finally, a fifteenth Amendment also had been ratified (1870), which
prohibits racial discrimination in access to voting.
18
The today 42 USC §§1981, 1982.
64
The Slavery Question
65
Lectures on the US Legal System
66
The Slavery Question
(e) The "separate but equal" doctrine adopted in Plessy v. Ferguson, 163 U.S. 537
, has no place in the field of public education. P. 495. [347 U.S. 483, 484]
(f) The cases are restored to the docket for further argument on specified
questions relating to the forms of the decrees. Pp. 495-496.
Together with No. 2, Briggs et al. v. Elliott et al., on appeal from the United
States District Court for the Eastern District of South Carolina, argued December
9-10, 1952, reargued December 7-8, 1953; No. 4, Davis et al. v. County School
Board of Prince Edward County, Virginia, et al., on appeal from the United States
District Court for the Eastern District of Virginia, argued December 10, 1952,
reargued December 7-8, 1953; and No. 10, Gebhart et al. v. Belton et al., on
certiorari to the Supreme Court of Delaware, argued December 11, 1952,
reargued December 9, 1953.
Robert L. Carter argued the cause for appellants in No. 1 on the original argument
and on the reargument. Thurgood Marshall argued the cause for appellants in No.
2 on the original argument and Spottswood W. Robinson, III, for appellants in
No. 4 on the original argument, and both argued the causes for appellants in Nos.
2 and 4 on the reargument. Louis L. Redding and Jack Greenberg argued the
cause for respondents in No. 10 on the original argument and Jack Greenberg and
Thurgood Marshall on the reargument.
On the briefs were Robert L. Carter, Thurgood Marshall, Spottswood W.
Robinson, III, Louis L. Redding, Jack Greenberg, George E. C. Hayes, William
R. Ming, Jr., Constance Baker Motley, James M. Nabrit, Jr., Charles S. Scott,
Frank D. Reeves, Harold R. Boulware and Oliver W. Hill for appellants in Nos.
1, 2 and 4 and respondents in No. 10; George M. Johnson for appellants in Nos.
1, 2 and 4; and Loren Miller for appellants in Nos. 2 and 4. Arthur D. Shores and
A. T. Walden were on the Statement as to Jurisdiction and a brief opposing a
Motion to Dismiss or Affirm in No. 2.
Paul E. Wilson, Assistant Attorney General of Kansas, argued the cause for
appellees in No. 1 on the original argument and on the reargument. With him on
the briefs was Harold R. Fatzer, Attorney General.
John W. Davis argued the cause for appellees in No. 2 on the original argument
and for appellees in Nos. 2 and 4 on the reargument. With him on the briefs in
No. 2 were T. C. Callison, Attorney General of South Carolina, Robert McC.
Figg, Jr., S. E. Rogers, William R. Meagher and Taggart Whipple. [347 U.S. 483,
485]
J. Lindsay Almond, Jr., Attorney General of Virginia, and T. Justin Moore argued
the cause for appellees in No. 4 on the original argument and for appellees in
Nos. 2 and 4 on the reargument. On the briefs in No. 4 were J. Lindsay Almond,
Jr., Attorney General, and Henry T. Wickham, Special Assistant Attorney
General, for the State of Virginia, and T. Justin Moore, Archibald G. Robertson,
John W. Riely and T. Justin Moore, Jr. for the Prince Edward County School
Authorities, appellees.
67
Lectures on the US Legal System
H. Albert Young, Attorney General of Delaware, argued the cause for petitioners
in No. 10 on the original argument and on the reargument. With him on the briefs
was Louis J. Finger, Special Deputy Attorney General.
By special leave of Court, Assistant Attorney General Rankin argued the cause
for the United States on the reargument, as amicus curiae, urging reversal in Nos.
1, 2 and 4 and affirmance in No. 10. With him on the brief were Attorney General
Brownell, Philip Elman, Leon Ulman, William J. Lamont and M. Magdelena
Schoch. James P. McGranery, then Attorney General, and Philip Elman filed a
brief for the United States on the original argument, as amicus curiae, urging
reversal in Nos. 1, 2 and 4 and affirmance in No. 10.
Briefs of amici curiae supporting appellants in No. 1 were filed by Shad Polier,
Will Maslow and Joseph B. Robison for the American Jewish Congress; by
Edwin J. Lukas, Arnold Forster, Arthur Garfield Hays, Frank E. Karelsen,
Leonard Haas, Saburo Kido and Theodore Leskes for the American Civil
Liberties Union et al.; and by John Ligtenberg and Selma M. Borchardt for the
American Federation of Teachers. Briefs of amici curiae supporting appellants in
No. 1 and respondents in No. 10 were filed by Arthur J. Goldberg and Thomas E.
Harris [347 U.S. 483, 486] for the Congress of Industrial Organizations and by
Phineas Indritz for the American Veterans Committee, Inc.
MR. CHIEF JUSTICE WARREN delivered the opinion of the Court.
These cases come to us from the States of Kansas, South Carolina, Virginia, and
Delaware. They are premised on different facts and different local conditions, but
a common legal question justifies their consideration together in this consolidated
opinion. [347 U.S. 483, 487]
In each of the cases, minors of the Negro race, through their legal representatives,
seek the aid of the courts in obtaining admission to the public schools of their
community on a nonsegregated basis. In each instance, [347 U.S. 483, 488] they
had been denied admission to schools attended by white children under laws
requiring or permitting segregation according to race. This segregation was
alleged to deprive the plaintiffs of the equal protection of the laws under the
Fourteenth Amendment. In each of the cases other than the Delaware case, a
three-judge federal district court denied relief to the plaintiffs on the so-called
"separate but equal" doctrine announced by this Court in Plessy v. Ferguson, 163
U.S. 537 . Under that doctrine, equality of treatment is accorded when the races
are provided substantially equal facilities, even though these facilities be separate.
In the Delaware case, the Supreme Court of Delaware adhered to that doctrine,
but ordered that the plaintiffs be admitted to the white schools because of their
superiority to the Negro schools.
The plaintiffs contend that segregated public schools are not "equal" and cannot
be made "equal," and that hence they are deprived of the equal protection of the
laws. Because of the obvious importance of the question presented, the Court
took jurisdiction. Argument was heard in the 1952 Term, and reargument was
68
The Slavery Question
heard this Term on certain questions propounded by the Court. [347 U.S. 483,
489]
Reargument was largely devoted to the circumstances surrounding the adoption
of the Fourteenth Amendment in 1868. It covered exhaustively consideration of
the Amendment in Congress, ratification by the states, then existing practices in
racial segregation, and the views of proponents and opponents of the
Amendment. This discussion and our own investigation convince us that,
although these sources cast some light, it is not enough to resolve the problem
with which we are faced. At best, they are inconclusive. The most avid
proponents of the post-War Amendments undoubtedly intended them to remove
all legal distinctions among "all persons born or naturalized in the United States."
Their opponents, just as certainly, were antagonistic to both the letter and the
spirit of the Amendments and wished them to have the most limited effect. What
others in Congress and the state legislatures had in mind cannot be determined
with any degree of certainty.
An additional reason for the inconclusive nature of the Amendment's history,
with respect to segregated schools, is the status of public education at that time.
In the South, the movement toward free common schools, supported [347 U.S.
483, 490] by general taxation, had not yet taken hold. Education of white
children was largely in the hands of private groups. Education of Negroes was
almost nonexistent, and practically all of the race were illiterate. In fact, any
education of Negroes was forbidden by law in some states. Today, in contrast,
many Negroes have achieved outstanding success in the arts and sciences as well
as in the business and professional world. It is true that public school education at
the time of the Amendment had advanced further in the North, but the effect of
the Amendment on Northern States was generally ignored in the congressional
debates. Even in the North, the conditions of public education did not
approximate those existing today. The curriculum was usually rudimentary;
ungraded schools were common in rural areas; the school term was but three
months a year in many states; and compulsory school attendance was virtually
unknown. As a consequence, it is not surprising that there should be so little in
the history of the Fourteenth Amendment relating to its intended effect on public
education.
In the first cases in this Court construing the Fourteenth Amendment, decided
shortly after its adoption, the Court interpreted it as proscribing all state-imposed
discriminations against the Negro race. The doctrine of [347 U.S. 483, 491]
"separate but equal" did not make its appearance in this Court until 1896 in the
case of Plessy v. Ferguson, supra, involving not education but transportation.
American courts have since labored with the doctrine for over half a century. In
this Court, there have been six cases involving the "separate but equal" doctrine
in the field of public education. In Cumming v. County Board of Education, 175
U.S. 528 , and Gong Lum v. Rice, 275 U.S. 78 , the validity of the doctrine itself
was not challenged. In more recent cases, all on the graduate school [347 U.S.
483, 492] level, inequality was found in that specific benefits enjoyed by white
students were denied to Negro students of the same educational qualifications.
69
Lectures on the US Legal System
Missouri ex rel. Gaines v. Canada, 305 U.S. 337 ; Sipuel v. Oklahoma, 332 U.S.
631 ; Sweatt v. Painter, 339 U.S. 629 ; McLaurin v. Oklahoma State Regents, 339
U.S. 637 . In none of these cases was it necessary to re-examine the doctrine to
grant relief to the Negro plaintiff. And in Sweatt v. Painter, supra, the Court
expressly reserved decision on the question whether Plessy v. Ferguson should be
held inapplicable to public education.
In the instant cases, that question is directly presented. Here, unlike Sweatt v.
Painter, there are findings below that the Negro and white schools involved have
been equalized, or are being equalized, with respect to buildings, curricula,
qualifications and salaries of teachers, and other "tangible" factors. Our decision,
therefore, cannot turn on merely a comparison of these tangible factors in the
Negro and white schools involved in each of the cases. We must look instead to
the effect of segregation itself on public education.
In approaching this problem, we cannot turn the clock back to 1868 when the
Amendment was adopted, or even to 1896 when Plessy v. Ferguson was written.
We must consider public education in the light of its full development and its
present place in American life throughout [347 U.S. 483, 493] the Nation. Only
in this way can it be determined if segregation in public schools deprives these
plaintiffs of the equal protection of the laws.
Today, education is perhaps the most important function of state and local
governments. Compulsory school attendance laws and the great expenditures for
education both demonstrate our recognition of the importance of education to our
democratic society. It is required in the performance of our most basic public
responsibilities, even service in the armed forces. It is the very foundation of
good citizenship. Today it is a principal instrument in awakening the child to
cultural values, in preparing him for later professional training, and in helping
him to adjust normally to his environment. In these days, it is doubtful that any
child may reasonably be expected to succeed in life if he is denied the
opportunity of an education. Such an opportunity, where the state has undertaken
to provide it, is a right which must be made available to all on equal terms.
We come then to the question presented: Does segregation of children in public
schools solely on the basis of race, even though the physical facilities and other
"tangible" factors may be equal, deprive the children of the minority group of
equal educational opportunities? We believe that it does.
In Sweatt v. Painter, supra, in finding that a segregated law school for Negroes
could not provide them equal educational opportunities, this Court relied in large
part on "those qualities which are incapable of objective measurement but which
make for greatness in a law school." In McLaurin v. Oklahoma State Regents,
supra, the Court, in requiring that a Negro admitted to a white graduate school be
treated like all other students, again resorted to intangible considerations: ". . . his
ability to study, to engage in discussions and exchange views with other students,
and, in general, to learn his profession." [347 U.S. 483, 494] Such
considerations apply with added force to children in grade and high schools. To
separate them from others of similar age and qualifications solely because of their
70
The Slavery Question
race generates a feeling of inferiority as to their status in the community that may
affect their hearts and minds in a way unlikely ever to be undone. The effect of
this separation on their educational opportunities was well stated by a finding in
the Kansas case by a court which nevertheless felt compelled to rule against the
Negro plaintiffs:
"Segregation of white and colored children in public schools has a detrimental
effect upon the colored children. The impact is greater when it has the sanction of
the law; for the policy of separating the races is usually interpreted as denoting
the inferiority of the negro group. A sense of inferiority affects the motivation of
a child to learn. Segregation with the sanction of law, therefore, has a tendency to
[retard] the educational and mental development of negro children and to deprive
them of some of the benefits they would receive in a racial[ly] integrated school
system."
Whatever may have been the extent of psychological knowledge at the time of
Plessy v. Ferguson, this finding is amply supported by modern authority. Any
language [347 U.S. 483, 495] in Plessy v. Ferguson contrary to this finding is
rejected.
We conclude that in the field of public education the doctrine of "separate but
equal" has no place. Separate educational facilities are inherently unequal.
Therefore, we hold that the plaintiffs and others similarly situated for whom the
actions have been brought are, by reason of the segregation complained of,
deprived of the equal protection of the laws guaranteed by the Fourteenth
Amendment. This disposition makes unnecessary any discussion whether such
segregation also violates the Due Process Clause of the Fourteenth Amendment.
Because these are class actions, because of the wide applicability of this decision,
and because of the great variety of local conditions, the formulation of decrees in
these cases presents problems of considerable complexity. On reargument, the
consideration of appropriate relief was necessarily subordinated to the primary
question - the constitutionality of segregation in public education. We have now
announced that such segregation is a denial of the equal protection of the laws. In
order that we may have the full assistance of the parties in formulating decrees,
the cases will be restored to the docket, and the parties are requested to present
further argument on Questions 4 and 5 previously propounded by the Court for
the reargument this Term. The Attorney General [347 U.S. 483, 496] of the
United States is again invited to participate. The Attorneys General of the states
requiring or permitting segregation in public education will also be permitted to
appear as amici curiae upon request to do so by September 15, 1954, and
submission of briefs by October 1, 1954.
It is so ordered.
71
Lectures on the US Legal System
72
Lecture # 7: Procedural Rights
Fair proceeding means, at least, that the individual must have the
opportunity to object to the deprivation and that the dispute has to be
settled by a fair and neutral decision-maker. The government thus has a
certain amount of discretion, without being nonetheless absolute, in
deciding what type of “proceeding” it will give to the individual. For
example, if the individual has committed a crime punishable by life
imprisonment, his liberty is clearly at stake and the individual interest
involved is obviously great. In this instance, the required proceeding is a
full scale judicial trial. If the government merely wants to stop making
welfare payments to an individual, procedural due process does not
require the government to give the individual a full scale trial. In this
instance, an administrative hearing with an impartial decision-maker is
considered sufficient, as the individual interest is important but not
paramount.
73
Lectures on the US Legal System
The Sixth Amendment requires in federal and state courts public criminal
trials without unnecessary delay, and in case of serious offense, which
could entail imprisonment of over six months, the constitution of a jury.
The suspect is also entitled to be informed of the specific charges which
are brought against him in order to be able to prepare its defense. The
right to counsel is the last major right dictated by the Sith Amendment and
has been held by the Supreme Court to mean that a suspect has the right to
an attorney even if he cannot afford one, in which case a public counsel
will be paid for by the government. This fundemental right exists at all
critical stages of the adjudicatory process which includes many pre-trial
proceedings and some forms of appeals.
74
Procedural Rights
75
Lectures on the US Legal System
76
Procedural Rights
remain silent, and that anything he says will be used against him in court; he must
be clearly informed that he has the right to consult with a lawyer and to have the
lawyer with him during interrogation, and that, if he is indigent, a lawyer will be
appointed to represent him. Pp. 467-473.
(e) If the individual indicates, prior to or during questioning, that he wishes to
remain silent, the interrogation must cease; if he states that he wants an attorney,
the questioning must cease until an attorney is present. Pp. 473-474.
(f) Where an interrogation is conducted without the presence of an attorney and a
statement is taken, a heavy burden rests on the Government to demonstrate that
the defendant knowingly and intelligently waived his right to counsel. P. 475.
(g) Where the individual answers some questions during incustody interrogation
he has not waived his privilege and may invoke his right to remain silent
thereafter. Pp. 475-476.
(h) The warnings required and the waiver needed are, in the absence of a fully
effective equivalent, prerequisites to the admissibility of any statement,
inculpatory or exculpatory, made by a defendant. Pp. 476-477.
2. The limitations on the interrogation process required for the protection of the
individual's constitutional rights should not cause an undue interference with a
proper system of law enforcement, as demonstrated by the procedures of the FBI
and the safeguards afforded in other jurisdictions. Pp. 479-491.
3. In each of these cases the statements were obtained under circumstances that
did not meet constitutional standards for protection of the privilege against self-
incrimination. Pp. 491-499.
98 Ariz. 18, 401 P.2d 721; 15 N. Y. 2d 970, 207 N. E. 2d 527; 16 N. Y. 2d 614,
209 N. E. 2d 110; 342 F.2d 684, reversed; 62 Cal. 2d 571, 400 P.2d 97, affirmed.
[384 U.S. 436, 438]
John J. Flynn argued the cause for petitioner in No. 759. With him on the brief
was John P. Frank. Victor M. Earle III argued the cause and filed a brief for
petitioner in No. 760. F. Conger Fawcett argued the cause and filed a brief for
petitioner in No. 761. Gordon Ringer, Deputy Attorney General of California,
argued the cause for petitioner in No. 584. With him on the briefs were Thomas
C. Lynch, Attorney General, and William E. James, Assistant Attorney General.
Gary K. Nelson, Assistant Attorney General of Arizona, argued the cause for
respondent in No. 759. With him on the brief was Darrell F. Smith, Attorney
General. William I. Siegel argued the cause for respondent in No. 760. With him
on the brief was Aaron E. Koota. Solicitor General Marshall argued the cause for
the United States in No. 761. With him on the brief were Assistant Attorney
General Vinson, Ralph S. Spritzer, Nathan Lewin, Beatrice Rosenberg and
Ronald L. Gainer. William A. Norris, by appointment of the Court, 382 U.S. 952
, argued the cause and filed a brief for respondent in No. 584.
77
Lectures on the US Legal System
Telford Taylor, by special leave of Court, argued the cause for the State of New
York, as amicus curiae, in all cases. With him on the brief were Louis J.
Lefkowitz, Attorney General of New York, Samuel A. Hirshowitz, First Assistant
Attorney General, and Barry Mahoney and George D. Zuckerman, Assistant
Attorneys General, joined by the Attorneys General for their respective States and
jurisdictions as follows: Richmond M. Flowers of Alabama, Darrell F. Smith of
Arizona, Bruce Bennett of Arkansas, Duke W. Dunbar of Colorado, David P.
Buckson of Delaware, Earl Faircloth of Florida, Arthur K. Bolton of Georgia,
Allan G. Shepard of Idaho, William G. Clark of Illinois, Robert C. Londerholm
of Kansas, Robert Matthews of Kentucky, Jack P. F. [384 U.S. 436, 439]
Gremillion of Louisiana, Richard J. Dubord of Maine, Thomas B. Finan of
Maryland, Norman H. Anderson of Missouri, Forrest H. Anderson of Montana,
Clarence A. H. Meyer of Nebraska, T. Wade Bruton of North Carolina, Helgi
Johanneson of North Dakota, Robert Y. Thornton of Oregon, Walter E.
Alessandroni of Pennsylvania, J. Joseph Nugent of Rhode Island, Daniel R.
McLeod of South Carolina, Waggoner Carr of Texas, Robert Y. Button of
Virginia, John J. O'Connell of Washington, C. Donald Robertson of West
Virginia, John F. Raper of Wyoming, Rafael Hernandez Colon of Puerto Rico
and Francisco Corneiro of the Virgin Islands.
Duane R. Nedrud, by special leave of Court, argued the cause for the National
District Attorneys Association, as amicus curiae, urging affirmance in Nos. 759
and 760, and reversal in No. 584. With him on the brief was Marguerite D.
Oberto.
Anthony G. Amsterdam, Paul J. Mishkin, Raymond L. Bradley, Peter Hearn and
Melvin L. Wulf filed a brief for the American Civil Liberties Union, as amicus
curiae, in all cases.
MR. CHIEF JUSTICE WARREN delivered the opinion of the Court.
The cases before us raise questions which go to the roots of our concepts of
American criminal jurisprudence: the restraints society must observe consistent
with the Federal Constitution in prosecuting individuals for crime. More
specifically, we deal with the admissibility of statements obtained from an
individual who is subjected to custodial police interrogation and the necessity for
procedures which assure that the individual is accorded his privilege under the
Fifth Amendment to the Constitution not to be compelled to incriminate himself.
[384 U.S. 436, 440]
We dealt with certain phases of this problem recently in Escobedo v. Illinois, 378
U.S. 478 (1964). There, as in the four cases before us, law enforcement officials
took the defendant into custody and interrogated him in a police station for the
purpose of obtaining a confession. The police did not effectively advise him of
his right to remain silent or of his right to consult with his attorney. Rather, they
confronted him with an alleged accomplice who accused him of having
perpetrated a murder. When the defendant denied the accusation and said "I didn't
shoot Manuel, you did it," they handcuffed him and took him to an interrogation
room. There, while handcuffed and standing, he was questioned for four hours
78
Procedural Rights
until he confessed. During this interrogation, the police denied his request to
speak to his attorney, and they prevented his retained attorney, who had come to
the police station, from consulting with him. At his trial, the State, over his
objection, introduced the confession against him. We held that the statements
thus made were constitutionally inadmissible.
This case has been the subject of judicial interpretation and spirited legal debate
since it was decided two years ago. Both state and federal courts, in assessing its
implications, have arrived at varying conclusions. A wealth of scholarly material
has been written tracing its ramifications and underpinnings. Police and
prosecutor [384 U.S. 436, 441] have speculated on its range and desirability. We
granted certiorari in these cases, 382 U.S. 924, 925 , 937, in order further to
explore some facets of the problems, thus exposed, of applying the privilege
against self-incrimination to in-custody interrogation, and to give [384 U.S. 436,
442] concrete constitutional guidelines for law enforcement agencies and courts
to follow.
We start here, as we did in Escobedo, with the premise that our holding is not an
innovation in our jurisprudence, but is an application of principles long
recognized and applied in other settings. We have undertaken a thorough re-
examination of the Escobedo decision and the principles it announced, and we
reaffirm it. That case was but an explication of basic rights that are enshrined in
our Constitution - that "No person . . . shall be compelled in any criminal case to
be a witness against himself," and that "the accused shall . . . have the Assistance
of Counsel" - rights which were put in jeopardy in that case through official
overbearing. These precious rights were fixed in our Constitution only after
centuries of persecution and struggle. And in the words of Chief Justice Marshall,
they were secured "for ages to come, and . . . designed to approach immortality as
nearly as human institutions can approach it," Cohens v. Virginia, 6 Wheat. 264,
387 (1821).
Over 70 years ago, our predecessors on this Court eloquently stated:
"The maxim nemo tenetur seipsum accusare had its origin in a protest against the
inquisitorial and manifestly unjust methods of interrogating accused persons,
which [have] long obtained in the continental system, and, until the expulsion of
the Stuarts from the British throne in 1688, and the erection of additional barriers
for the protection of the people against the exercise of arbitrary power, [were] not
uncommon even in England. While the admissions or confessions of the prisoner,
when voluntarily and freely made, have always ranked high in the scale of
incriminating evidence, if an accused person be asked to explain his apparent
connection with a crime under investigation, the ease with which the [384 U.S.
436, 443] questions put to him may assume an inquisitorial character, the
temptation to press the witness unduly, to browbeat him if he be timid or
reluctant, to push him into a corner, and to entrap him into fatal contradictions,
which is so painfully evident in many of the earlier state trials, notably in those of
Sir Nicholas Throckmorton, and Udal, the Puritan minister, made the system so
odious as to give rise to a demand for its total abolition. The change in the
79
Lectures on the US Legal System
80
Procedural Rights
fact that he may have answered some questions or volunteered some statements
on his own does not deprive him of the right to refrain from answering any
further inquiries until he has consulted with an attorney and thereafter consents to
be questioned.
I.
The constitutional issue we decide in each of these cases is the admissibility of
statements obtained from a defendant questioned while in custody or otherwise
deprived of his freedom of action in any significant way. In each, the defendant
was questioned by police officers, detectives, or a prosecuting attorney in a room
in which he was cut off from the outside world. In none of these cases was the
defendant given a full and effective warning of his rights at the outset of the
interrogation process. In all the cases, the questioning elicited oral admissions,
and in three of them, signed statements as well which were admitted at their
trials. They all thus share salient features - incommunicado interrogation of
individuals in a police-dominated atmosphere, resulting in self-incriminating
statements without full warnings of constitutional rights.
An understanding of the nature and setting of this in-custody interrogation is
essential to our decisions today. The difficulty in depicting what transpires at
such interrogations stems from the fact that in this country they have largely
taken place incommunicado. From extensive factual studies undertaken in the
early 1930's, including the famous Wickersham Report to Congress by a
Presidential Commission, it is clear that police violence and the "third degree"
flourished at that time. [384 U.S. 436, 446] In a series of cases decided by this
Court long after these studies, the police resorted to physical brutality - beating,
hanging, whipping - and to sustained and protracted questioning incommunicado
in order to extort confessions. The Commission on Civil Rights in 1961 found
much evidence to indicate that "some policemen still resort to physical force to
obtain confessions," 1961 Comm'n on Civil Rights Rep., Justice, pt. 5, 17. The
use of physical brutality and violence is not, unfortunately, relegated to the past
or to any part of the country. Only recently in Kings County, New York, the
police brutally beat, kicked and placed lighted cigarette butts on the back of a
potential witness under interrogation for the purpose of securing a statement
incriminating a third party. People v. Portelli, 15 N. Y. 2d 235, 205 N. E. 2d 857,
257 N. Y. S. 2d 931 (1965). [384 U.S. 436, 447]
The examples given above are undoubtedly the exception now, but they are
sufficiently widespread to be the object of concern. Unless a proper limitation
upon custodial interrogation is achieved - such as these decisions will advance -
there can be no assurance that practices of this nature will be eradicated in the
foreseeable future. The conclusion of the Wickersham Commission Report, made
over 30 years ago, is still pertinent:
"To the contention that the third degree is necessary to get the facts, the reporters
aptly reply in the language of the present Lord Chancellor of England (Lord
Sankey): `It is not admissible to do a great right by doing a little wrong. . . . It is
not sufficient to do justice by obtaining a proper result by irregular or improper
81
Lectures on the US Legal System
means.' Not only does the use of the third degree involve a flagrant violation of
law by the officers of the law, but it involves also the dangers of false
confessions, and it tends to make police and prosecutors less zealous in the search
for objective evidence. As the New York prosecutor quoted in the report said, `It
is a short cut and makes the police lazy and unenterprising.' Or, as another official
quoted remarked: `If you use your fists, you [384 U.S. 436, 448] are not so
likely to use your wits.' We agree with the conclusion expressed in the report, that
`The third degree brutalizes the police, hardens the prisoner against society, and
lowers the esteem in which the administration of justice is held by the public.'" IV
National Commission on Law Observance and Enforcement, Report on
Lawlessness in Law Enforcement 5 (1931).
Again we stress that the modern practice of in-custody interrogation is
psychologically rather than physically oriented. As we have stated before, "Since
Chambers v. Florida, 309 U.S. 227 , this Court has recognized that coercion can
be mental as well as physical, and that the blood of the accused is not the only
hallmark of an unconstitutional inquisition." Blackburn v. Alabama, 361 U.S.
199, 206 (1960). Interrogation still takes place in privacy. Privacy results in
secrecy and this in turn results in a gap in our knowledge as to what in fact goes
on in the interrogation rooms. A valuable source of information about present
police practices, however, may be found in various police manuals and texts
which document procedures employed with success in the past, and which
recommend various other effective tactics. These [384 U.S. 436, 449] texts are
used by law enforcement agencies themselves as guides. It should be noted that
these texts professedly present the most enlightened and effective means
presently used to obtain statements through custodial interrogation. By
considering these texts and other data, it is possible to describe procedures
observed and noted around the country.
The officers are told by the manuals that the "principal psychological factor
contributing to a successful interrogation is privacy - being alone with the person
under interrogation." The efficacy of this tactic has been explained as follows:
"If at all practicable, the interrogation should take place in the investigator's
office or at least in a room of his own choice. The subject should be deprived of
every psychological advantage. In his own home he may be confident, indignant,
or recalcitrant. He is more keenly aware of his rights and [384 U.S. 436, 450]
more reluctant to tell of his indiscretions or criminal behavior within the walls of
his home. Moreover his family and other friends are nearby, their presence
lending moral support. In his own office, the investigator possesses all the
advantages. The atmosphere suggests the invincibility of the forces of the law."
To highlight the isolation and unfamiliar surroundings, the manuals instruct the
police to display an air of confidence in the suspect's guilt and from outward
appearance to maintain only an interest in confirming certain details. The guilt of
the subject is to be posited as a fact. The interrogator should direct his comments
toward the reasons why the subject committed the act, rather than court failure by
asking the subject whether he did it. Like other men, perhaps the subject has had
82
Procedural Rights
a bad family life, had an unhappy childhood, had too much to drink, had an
unrequited desire for women. The officers are instructed to minimize the moral
seriousness of the offense, to cast blame on the victim or on society. These tactics
are designed to put the subject in a psychological state where his story is but an
elaboration of what the police purport to know already - that he is guilty.
Explanations to the contrary are dismissed and discouraged.
The texts thus stress that the major qualities an interrogator should possess are
patience and perseverance. [384 U.S. 436, 451] One writer describes the
efficacy of these characteristics in this manner:
"In the preceding paragraphs emphasis has been placed on kindness and
stratagems. The investigator will, however, encounter many situations where the
sheer weight of his personality will be the deciding factor. Where emotional
appeals and tricks are employed to no avail, he must rely on an oppressive
atmosphere of dogged persistence. He must interrogate steadily and without
relent, leaving the subject no prospect of surcease. He must dominate his subject
and overwhelm him with his inexorable will to obtain the truth. He should
interrogate for a spell of several hours pausing only for the subject's necessities in
acknowledgment of the need to avoid a charge of duress that can be technically
substantiated. In a serious case, the interrogation may continue for days, with the
required intervals for food and sleep, but with no respite from the atmosphere of
domination. It is possible in this way to induce the subject to talk without
resorting to duress or coercion. The method should be used only when the guilt of
the subject appears highly probable."
The manuals suggest that the suspect be offered legal excuses for his actions in
order to obtain an initial admission of guilt. Where there is a suspected revenge-
killing, for example, the interrogator may say:
"Joe, you probably didn't go out looking for this fellow with the purpose of
shooting him. My guess is, however, that you expected something from him and
that's why you carried a gun - for your own protection. You knew him for what
he was, no good. Then when you met him he probably started using foul, abusive
language and he gave some indication [384 U.S. 436, 452] that he was about to
pull a gun on you, and that's when you had to act to save your own life. That's
about it, isn't it, Joe?"
Having then obtained the admission of shooting, the interrogator is advised to
refer to circumstantial evidence which negates the self-defense explanation. This
should enable him to secure the entire story. One text notes that "Even if he fails
to do so, the inconsistency between the subject's original denial of the shooting
and his present admission of at least doing the shooting will serve to deprive him
of a self-defense `out' at the time of trial."
When the techniques described above prove unavailing, the texts recommend
they be alternated with a show of some hostility. One ploy often used has been
termed the "friendly-unfriendly" or the "Mutt and Jeff" act:
83
Lectures on the US Legal System
". . . In this technique, two agents are employed. Mutt, the relentless investigator,
who knows the subject is guilty and is not going to waste any time. He's sent a
dozen men away for this crime and he's going to send the subject away for the
full term. Jeff, on the other hand, is obviously a kindhearted man. He has a family
himself. He has a brother who was involved in a little scrape like this. He
disapproves of Mutt and his tactics and will arrange to get him off the case if the
subject will cooperate. He can't hold Mutt off for very long. The subject would be
wise to make a quick decision. The technique is applied by having both
investigators present while Mutt acts out his role. Jeff may stand by quietly and
demur at some of Mutt's tactics. When Jeff makes his plea for cooperation, Mutt
is not present in the room." [384 U.S. 436, 453]
The interrogators sometimes are instructed to induce a confession out of trickery.
The technique here is quite effective in crimes which require identification or
which run in series. In the identification situation, the interrogator may take a
break in his questioning to place the subject among a group of men in a line-up.
"The witness or complainant (previously coached, if necessary) studies the line-
up and confidently points out the subject as the guilty party." Then the
questioning resumes "as though there were now no doubt about the guilt of the
subject." A variation on this technique is called the "reverse line-up":
"The accused is placed in a line-up, but this time he is identified by several
fictitious witnesses or victims who associated him with different offenses. It is
expected that the subject will become desperate and confess to the offense under
investigation in order to escape from the false accusations."
The manuals also contain instructions for police on how to handle the individual
who refuses to discuss the matter entirely, or who asks for an attorney or
relatives. The examiner is to concede him the right to remain silent. "This usually
has a very undermining effect. First of all, he is disappointed in his expectation of
an unfavorable reaction on the part of the interrogator. Secondly, a concession of
this right to remain silent impresses [384 U.S. 436, 454] the subject with the
apparent fairness of his interrogator." After this psychological conditioning,
however, the officer is told to point out the incriminating significance of the
suspect's refusal to talk:
"Joe, you have a right to remain silent. That's your privilege and I'm the last
person in the world who'll try to take it away from you. If that's the way you want
to leave this, O. K. But let me ask you this. Suppose you were in my shoes and I
were in yours and you called me in to ask me about this and I told you, `I don't
want to answer any of your questions.' You'd think I had something to hide, and
you'd probably be right in thinking that. That's exactly what I'll have to think
about you, and so will everybody else. So let's sit here and talk this whole thing
over."
Few will persist in their initial refusal to talk, it is said, if this monologue is
employed correctly.
84
Procedural Rights
In the event that the subject wishes to speak to a relative or an attorney, the
following advice is tendered:
"[T]he interrogator should respond by suggesting that the subject first tell the
truth to the interrogator himself rather than get anyone else involved in the
matter. If the request is for an attorney, the interrogator may suggest that the
subject save himself or his family the expense of any such professional service,
particularly if he is innocent of the offense under investigation. The interrogator
may also add, `Joe, I'm only looking for the truth, and if you're telling the truth,
that's it. You can handle this by yourself.'" [384 U.S. 436, 455]
From these representative samples of interrogation techniques, the setting
prescribed by the manuals and observed in practice becomes clear. In essence, it
is this: To be alone with the subject is essential to prevent distraction and to
deprive him of any outside support. The aura of confidence in his guilt
undermines his will to resist. He merely confirms the preconceived story the
police seek to have him describe. Patience and persistence, at times relentless
questioning, are employed. To obtain a confession, the interrogator must
"patiently maneuver himself or his quarry into a position from which the desired
objective may be attained." When normal procedures fail to produce the needed
result, the police may resort to deceptive stratagems such as giving false legal
advice. It is important to keep the subject off balance, for example, by trading on
his insecurity about himself or his surroundings. The police then persuade, trick,
or cajole him out of exercising his constitutional rights.
Even without employing brutality, the "third degree" or the specific stratagems
described above, the very fact of custodial interrogation exacts a heavy toll on
individual liberty and trades on the weakness of individuals. [384 U.S. 436, 456]
This fact may be illustrated simply by referring to three confession cases
decided by this Court in the Term immediately preceding our Escobedo decision.
In Townsend v. Sain, 372 U.S. 293 (1963), the defendant was a 19-year-old
heroin addict, described as a "near mental defective," id., at 307-310. The
defendant in Lynumn v. Illinois, 372 U.S. 528 (1963), was a woman who
confessed to the arresting officer after being importuned to "cooperate" in order
to prevent her children from being taken by relief authorities. This Court as in
those cases reversed the conviction of a defendant in Haynes v. Washington, 373
U.S. 503 (1963), whose persistent request during his interrogation was to phone
his wife or attorney. In other settings, these individuals might have exercised their
constitutional rights. In the incommunicado police-dominated atmosphere, they
succumbed.
In the cases before us today, given this background, we concern ourselves
primarily with this interrogation atmosphere and the evils it can bring. In No.
759, Miranda v. Arizona, the police arrested the defendant and took him to a
special interrogation room where they secured a confession. In No. 760, Vignera
v. New York, the defendant made oral admissions to the police after interrogation
in the afternoon, and then signed an inculpatory statement upon being questioned
by an assistant district attorney later the same evening. In No. 761, Westover v.
85
Lectures on the US Legal System
United States, the defendant was handed over to the Federal Bureau of
Investigation by [384 U.S. 436, 457] local authorities after they had detained
and interrogated him for a lengthy period, both at night and the following
morning. After some two hours of questioning, the federal officers had obtained
signed statements from the defendant. Lastly, in No. 584, California v. Stewart,
the local police held the defendant five days in the station and interrogated him
on nine separate occasions before they secured his inculpatory statement.
In these cases, we might not find the defendants' statements to have been
involuntary in traditional terms. Our concern for adequate safeguards to protect
precious Fifth Amendment rights is, of course, not lessened in the slightest. In
each of the cases, the defendant was thrust into an unfamiliar atmosphere and run
through menacing police interrogation procedures. The potentiality for
compulsion is forcefully apparent, for example, in Miranda, where the indigent
Mexican defendant was a seriously disturbed individual with pronounced sexual
fantasies, and in Stewart, in which the defendant was an indigent Los Angeles
Negro who had dropped out of school in the sixth grade. To be sure, the records
do not evince overt physical coercion or patent psychological ploys. The fact
remains that in none of these cases did the officers undertake to afford
appropriate safeguards at the outset of the interrogation to insure that the
statements were truly the product of free choice.
It is obvious that such an interrogation environment is created for no purpose
other than to subjugate the individual to the will of his examiner. This atmosphere
carries its own badge of intimidation. To be sure, this is not physical intimidation,
but it is equally destructive of human dignity. The current practice of
incommunicado interrogation is at odds with one of our [384 U.S. 436, 458]
Nation's most cherished principles - that the individual may not be compelled to
incriminate himself. Unless adequate protective devices are employed to dispel
the compulsion inherent in custodial surroundings, no statement obtained from
the defendant can truly be the product of his free choice.
From the foregoing, we can readily perceive an intimate connection between the
privilege against self-incrimination and police custodial questioning. It is fitting
to turn to history and precedent underlying the Self-Incrimination Clause to
determine its applicability in this situation.
II.
We sometimes forget how long it has taken to establish the privilege against self-
incrimination, the sources from which it came and the fervor with which it was
defended. Its roots go back into ancient times. Perhaps [384 U.S. 436, 459] the
critical historical event shedding light on its origins and evolution was the trial of
one John Lilburn, a vocal anti-Stuart Leveller, who was made to take the Star
Chamber Oath in 1637. The oath would have bound him to answer to all
questions posed to him on any subject. The Trial of John Lilburn and John
Wharton, 3 How. St. Tr. 1315 (1637). He resisted the oath and declaimed the
proceedings, stating:
86
Procedural Rights
"Another fundamental right I then contended for, was, that no man's conscience
ought to be racked by oaths imposed, to answer to questions concerning himself
in matters criminal, or pretended to be so." Haller & Davies, The Leveller Tracts
1647-1653, p. 454 (1944).
On account of the Lilburn Trial, Parliament abolished the inquisitorial Court of
Star Chamber and went further in giving him generous reparation. The lofty
principles to which Lilburn had appealed during his trial gained popular
acceptance in England. These sentiments worked their way over to the Colonies
and were implanted after great struggle into the Bill of Rights. Those who framed
our Constitution and the Bill of Rights were ever aware of subtle encroachments
on individual liberty. They knew that "illegitimate and unconstitutional practices
get their first footing . . . by silent approaches and slight deviations from legal
modes of procedure." Boyd v. United States, 116 U.S. 616, 635 (1886). The
privilege was elevated to constitutional status and has always been "as broad as
the mischief [384 U.S. 436, 460] against which it seeks to guard." Counselman
v. Hitchcock, 142 U.S. 547, 562 (1892). We cannot depart from this noble
heritage.
Thus we may view the historical development of the privilege as one which
groped for the proper scope of governmental power over the citizen. As a "noble
principle often transcends its origins," the privilege has come rightfully to be
recognized in part as an individual's substantive right, a "right to a private enclave
where he may lead a private life. That right is the hallmark of our democracy."
United States v. Grunewald, 233 F.2d 556, 579, 581-582 (Frank, J., dissenting),
rev'd, 353 U.S. 391 (1957). We have recently noted that the privilege against self-
incrimination - the essential mainstay of our adversary system - is founded on a
complex of values, Murphy v. Waterfront Comm'n, 378 U.S. 52, 55 -57, n. 5
(1964); Tehan v. Shott, 382 U.S. 406, 414 -415, n. 12 (1966). All these policies
point to one overriding thought: the constitutional foundation underlying the
privilege is the respect a government - state or federal - must accord to the dignity
and integrity of its citizens. To maintain a "fair state-individual balance," to
require the government "to shoulder the entire load," 8 Wigmore, Evidence 317
(McNaughton rev. 1961), to respect the inviolability of the human personality,
our accusatory system of criminal justice demands that the government seeking to
punish an individual produce the evidence against him by its own independent
labors, rather than by the cruel, simple expedient of compelling it from his own
mouth. Chambers v. Florida, 309 U.S. 227, 235 -238 (1940). In sum, the privilege
is fulfilled only when the person is guaranteed the right "to remain silent unless
he chooses to speak in the unfettered exercise of his own will." Malloy v. Hogan,
378 U.S. 1, 8 (1964).
The question in these cases is whether the privilege is fully applicable during a
period of custodial interrogation. [384 U.S. 436, 461] In this Court, the privilege
has consistently been accorded a liberal construction. Albertson v. SACB, 382
U.S. 70, 81 (1965); Hoffman v. United States, 341 U.S. 479, 486 (1951);
Arndstein v. McCarthy, 254 U.S. 71, 72 -73 (1920); Counselman v. Hitchock,
142 U.S. 547, 562 (1892). We are satisfied that all the principles embodied in the
87
Lectures on the US Legal System
88
Procedural Rights
In addition to the expansive historical development of the privilege and the sound
policies which have nurtured [384 U.S. 436, 463] its evolution, judicial
precedent thus clearly establishes its application to incommunicado interrogation.
In fact, the Government concedes this point as well established in No. 761,
Westover v. United States, stating: "We have no doubt . . . that it is possible for a
suspect's Fifth Amendment right to be violated during in-custody questioning by
a law-enforcement officer."
Because of the adoption by Congress of Rule 5 (a) of the Federal Rules of
Criminal Procedure, and this Court's effectuation of that Rule in McNabb v.
United States, 318 U.S. 332 (1943), and Mallory v. United States, 354 U.S. 449
(1957), we have had little occasion in the past quarter century to reach the
constitutional issues in dealing with federal interrogations. These supervisory
rules, requiring production of an arrested person before a commissioner "without
unnecessary delay" and excluding evidence obtained in default of that statutory
obligation, were nonetheless responsive to the same considerations of Fifth
Amendment policy that unavoidably face us now as to the States. In McNabb,
318 U.S., at 343 -344, and in Mallory, 354 U.S., at 455 -456, we recognized both
the dangers of interrogation and the appropriateness of prophylaxis stemming
from the very fact of interrogation itself.
Our decision in Malloy v. Hogan, 378 U.S. 1 (1964), necessitates an examination
of the scope of the privilege in state cases as well. In Malloy, we squarely held
the [384 U.S. 436, 464] privilege applicable to the States, and held that the
substantive standards underlying the privilege applied with full force to state
court proceedings. There, as in Murphy v. Waterfront Comm'n, 378 U.S. 52
(1964), and Griffin v. California, 380 U.S. 609 (1965), we applied the existing
Fifth Amendment standards to the case before us. Aside from the holding itself,
the reasoning in Malloy made clear what had already become apparent - that the
substantive and procedural safeguards surrounding admissibility of confessions in
state cases had become exceedingly exacting, reflecting all the policies embedded
in the privilege, 378 U.S., at 7 -8. The voluntariness doctrine in the state cases, as
Malloy indicates, encompasses all interrogation practices which are likely to exert
such pressure upon an individual as to disable him from [384 U.S. 436, 465]
making a free and rational choice. The implications of this proposition were
elaborated in our decision in Escobedo v. Illinois, 378 U.S. 478 , decided one
week after Malloy applied the privilege to the States.
Our holding there stressed the fact that the police had not advised the defendant
of his constitutional privilege to remain silent at the outset of the interrogation,
and we drew attention to that fact at several points in the decision, 378 U.S., at
483 , 485, 491. This was no isolated factor, but an essential ingredient in our
decision. The entire thrust of police interrogation there, as in all the cases today,
was to put the defendant in such an emotional state as to impair his capacity for
rational judgment. The abdication of the constitutional privilege - the choice on
his part to speak to the police - was not made knowingly or competently because
of the failure to apprise him of his rights; the compelling atmosphere of the in-
89
Lectures on the US Legal System
custody interrogation, and not an independent decision on his part, caused the
defendant to speak.
A different phase of the Escobedo decision was significant in its attention to the
absence of counsel during the questioning. There, as in the cases today, we
sought a protective device to dispel the compelling atmosphere of the
interrogation. In Escobedo, however, the police did not relieve the defendant of
the anxieties which they had created in the interrogation rooms. Rather, they
denied his request for the assistance of counsel, 378 U.S., at 481 , 488, 491. This
heightened his dilemma, and [384 U.S. 436, 466] made his later statements the
product of this compulsion. Cf. Haynes v. Washington, 373 U.S. 503, 514 (1963).
The denial of the defendant's request for his attorney thus undermined his ability
to exercise the privilege - to remain silent if he chose or to speak without any
intimidation, blatant or subtle. The presence of counsel, in all the cases before us
today, would be the adequate protective device necessary to make the process of
police interrogation conform to the dictates of the privilege. His presence would
insure that statements made in the government-established atmosphere are not the
product of compulsion.
It was in this manner that Escobedo explicated another facet of the pre-trial
privilege, noted in many of the Court's prior decisions: the protection of rights at
trial. That counsel is present when statements are taken from an individual during
interrogation obviously enhances the integrity of the fact-finding processes in
court. The presence of an attorney, and the warnings delivered to the individual,
enable the defendant under otherwise compelling circumstances to tell his story
without fear, effectively, and in a way that eliminates the evils in the
interrogation process. Without the protections flowing from adequate warnings
and the rights of counsel, "all the careful safeguards erected around the giving of
testimony, whether by an accused or any other witness, would become empty
formalities in a procedure where the most compelling possible evidence of guilt,
a confession, would have already been obtained at the unsupervised pleasure of
the police." Mapp v. Ohio, 367 U.S. 643, 685 (1961) (HARLAN, J., dissenting).
Cf. Pointer v. Texas, 380 U.S. 400 (1965). [384 U.S. 436, 467]
III.
Today, then, there can be no doubt that the Fifth Amendment privilege is
available outside of criminal court proceedings and serves to protect persons in
all settings in which their freedom of action is curtailed in any significant way
from being compelled to incriminate themselves. We have concluded that without
proper safeguards the process of in-custody interrogation of persons suspected or
accused of crime contains inherently compelling pressures which work to
undermine the individual's will to resist and to compel him to speak where he
would not otherwise do so freely. In order to combat these pressures and to
permit a full opportunity to exercise the privilege against self-incrimination, the
accused must be adequately and effectively apprised of his rights and the exercise
of those rights must be fully honored.
90
Procedural Rights
91
Lectures on the US Legal System
92
Procedural Rights
In Carnley v. Cochran, 369 U.S. 506, 513 (1962), we stated: "[I]t is settled that
where the assistance of counsel is a constitutional requisite, the right to be
furnished counsel does not depend on a request." This proposition applies with
equal force in the context of providing counsel to protect an accused's Fifth
Amendment privilege in the face of interrogation. Although the role of counsel at
trial differs from the role during interrogation, the differences are not relevant to
the question whether a request is a prerequisite.
Accordingly we hold that an individual held for interrogation must be clearly
informed that he has the right to consult with a lawyer and to have the lawyer
with him during interrogation under the system for protecting the privilege we
delineate today. As with the warnings of the right to remain silent and that
anything stated can be used in evidence against him, this warning is an absolute
prerequisite to interrogation. No amount of [384 U.S. 436, 472] circumstantial
evidence that the person may have been aware of this right will suffice to stand in
its stead: Only through such a warning is there ascertainable assurance that the
accused was aware of this right.
If an individual indicates that he wishes the assistance of counsel before any
interrogation occurs, the authorities cannot rationally ignore or deny his request
on the basis that the individual does not have or cannot afford a retained attorney.
The financial ability of the individual has no relationship to the scope of the
rights involved here. The privilege against self-incrimination secured by the
Constitution applies to all individuals. The need for counsel in order to protect the
privilege exists for the indigent as well as the affluent. In fact, were we to limit
these constitutional rights to those who can retain an attorney, our decisions today
would be of little significance. The cases before us as well as the vast majority of
confession cases with which we have dealt in the past involve those unable to
retain counsel. While authorities are not required to relieve the accused of his
poverty, they have the obligation not to take advantage of indigence in the
administration of justice. Denial [384 U.S. 436, 473] of counsel to the indigent
at the time of interrogation while allowing an attorney to those who can afford
one would be no more supportable by reason or logic than the similar situation at
trial and on appeal struck down in Gideon v. Wainwright, 372 U.S. 335 (1963),
and Douglas v. California, 372 U.S. 353 (1963).
In order fully to apprise a person interrogated of the extent of his rights under this
system then, it is necessary to warn him not only that he has the right to consult
with an attorney, but also that if he is indigent a lawyer will be appointed to
represent him. Without this additional warning, the admonition of the right to
consult with counsel would often be understood as meaning only that he can
consult with a lawyer if he has one or has the funds to obtain one. The warning of
a right to counsel would be hollow if not couched in terms that would convey to
the indigent - the person most often subjected to interrogation - the knowledge
that he too has a right to have counsel present. As with the warnings of the right
to remain silent and of the general right to counsel, only by effective and express
explanation to the indigent of this right can there be assurance that he was truly in
a position to exercise it.
93
Lectures on the US Legal System
Once warnings have been given, the subsequent procedure is clear. If the
individual indicates in any manner, [384 U.S. 436, 474] at any time prior to or
during questioning, that he wishes to remain silent, the interrogation must cease.
At this point he has shown that he intends to exercise his Fifth Amendment
privilege; any statement taken after the person invokes his privilege cannot be
other than the product of compulsion, subtle or otherwise. Without the right to cut
off questioning, the setting of in-custody interrogation operates on the individual
to overcome free choice in producing a statement after the privilege has been
once invoked. If the individual states that he wants an attorney, the interrogation
must cease until an attorney is present. At that time, the individual must have an
opportunity to confer with the attorney and to have him present during any
subsequent questioning. If the individual cannot obtain an attorney and he
indicates that he wants one before speaking to police, they must respect his
decision to remain silent.
This does not mean, as some have suggested, that each police station must have a
"station house lawyer" present at all times to advise prisoners. It does mean,
however, that if police propose to interrogate a person they must make known to
him that he is entitled to a lawyer and that if he cannot afford one, a lawyer will
be provided for him prior to any interrogation. If authorities conclude that they
will not provide counsel during a reasonable period of time in which investigation
in the field is carried out, they may refrain from doing so without violating the
person's Fifth Amendment privilege so long as they do not question him during
that time. [384 U.S. 436, 475]
If the interrogation continues without the presence of an attorney and a statement
is taken, a heavy burden rests on the government to demonstrate that the
defendant knowingly and intelligently waived his privilege against self-
incrimination and his right to retained or appointed counsel. Escobedo v. Illinois,
378 U.S. 478, 490 , n. 14. This Court has always set high standards of proof for
the waiver of constitutional rights, Johnson v. Zerbst, 304 U.S. 458 (1938), and
we re-assert these standards as applied to in-custody interrogation. Since the State
is responsible for establishing the isolated circumstances under which the
interrogation takes place and has the only means of making available
corroborated evidence of warnings given during incommunicado interrogation,
the burden is rightly on its shoulders.
An express statement that the individual is willing to make a statement and does
not want an attorney followed closely by a statement could constitute a waiver.
But a valid waiver will not be presumed simply from the silence of the accused
after warnings are given or simply from the fact that a confession was in fact
eventually obtained. A statement we made in Carnley v. Cochran, 369 U.S. 506,
516 (1962), is applicable here:
"Presuming waiver from a silent record is impermissible. The record must show,
or there must be an allegation and evidence which show, that an accused was
offered counsel but intelligently and understandingly rejected the offer. Anything
less is not waiver."
94
Procedural Rights
See also Glasser v. United States, 315 U.S. 60 (1942). Moreover, where in-
custody interrogation is involved, there is no room for the contention that the
privilege is waived if the individual answers some questions or gives [384 U.S.
436, 476] some information on his own prior to invoking his right to remain
silent when interrogated.
Whatever the testimony of the authorities as to waiver of rights by an accused,
the fact of lengthy interrogation or incommunicado incarceration before a
statement is made is strong evidence that the accused did not validly waive his
rights. In these circumstances the fact that the individual eventually made a
statement is consistent with the conclusion that the compelling influence of the
interrogation finally forced him to do so. It is inconsistent with any notion of a
voluntary relinquishment of the privilege. Moreover, any evidence that the
accused was threatened, tricked, or cajoled into a waiver will, of course, show
that the defendant did not voluntarily waive his privilege. The requirement of
warnings and waiver of rights is a fundamental with respect to the Fifth
Amendment privilege and not simply a preliminary ritual to existing methods of
interrogation.
The warnings required and the waiver necessary in accordance with our opinion
today are, in the absence of a fully effective equivalent, prerequisites to the
admissibility of any statement made by a defendant. No distinction can be drawn
between statements which are direct confessions and statements which amount to
"admissions" of part or all of an offense. The privilege against self-incrimination
protects the individual from being compelled to incriminate himself in any
manner; it does not distinguish degrees of incrimination. Similarly, [384 U.S.
436, 477] for precisely the same reason, no distinction may be drawn between
inculpatory statements and statements alleged to be merely "exculpatory." If a
statement made were in fact truly exculpatory it would, of course, never be used
by the prosecution. In fact, statements merely intended to be exculpatory by the
defendant are often used to impeach his testimony at trial or to demonstrate
untruths in the statement given under interrogation and thus to prove guilt by
implication. These statements are incriminating in any meaningful sense of the
word and may not be used without the full warnings and effective waiver
required for any other statement. In Escobedo itself, the defendant fully intended
his accusation of another as the slayer to be exculpatory as to himself.
The principles announced today deal with the protection which must be given to
the privilege against self-incrimination when the individual is first subjected to
police interrogation while in custody at the station or otherwise deprived of his
freedom of action in any significant way. It is at this point that our adversary
system of criminal proceedings commences, distinguishing itself at the outset
from the inquisitorial system recognized in some countries. Under the system of
warnings we delineate today or under any other system which may be devised
and found effective, the safeguards to be erected about the privilege must come
into play at this point.
95
Lectures on the US Legal System
Our decision is not intended to hamper the traditional function of police officers
in investigating crime. See Escobedo v. Illinois, 378 U.S. 478, 492 . When an
individual is in custody on probable cause, the police may, of course, seek out
evidence in the field to be used at trial against him. Such investigation may
include inquiry of persons not under restraint. General on-the-scene questioning
as to facts surrounding a crime or other general questioning of citizens in the fact-
finding process is not affected by our holding. It is an act of [384 U.S. 436, 478]
responsible citizenship for individuals to give whatever information they may
have to aid in law enforcement. In such situations the compelling atmosphere
inherent in the process of in-custody interrogation is not necessarily present.
In dealing with statements obtained through interrogation, we do not purport to
find all confessions inadmissible. Confessions remain a proper element in law
enforcement. Any statement given freely and voluntarily without any compelling
influences is, of course, admissible in evidence. The fundamental import of the
privilege while an individual is in custody is not whether he is allowed to talk to
the police without the benefit of warnings and counsel, but whether he can be
interrogated. There is no requirement that police stop a person who enters a
police station and states that he wishes to confess to a crime, or a person who
calls the police to offer a confession or any other statement he desires to make.
Volunteered statements of any kind are not barred by the Fifth Amendment and
their admissibility is not affected by our holding today.
To summarize, we hold that when an individual is taken into custody or otherwise
deprived of his freedom by the authorities in any significant way and is subjected
to questioning, the privilege against self-incrimination is jeopardized. Procedural
safeguards must be employed to [384 U.S. 436, 479] protect the privilege, and
unless other fully effective means are adopted to notify the person of his right of
silence and to assure that the exercise of the right will be scrupulously honored,
the following measures are required. He must be warned prior to any questioning
that he has the right to remain silent, that anything he says can be used against
him in a court of law, that he has the right to the presence of an attorney, and that
if he cannot afford an attorney one will be appointed for him prior to any
questioning if he so desires. Opportunity to exercise these rights must be afforded
to him throughout the interrogation. After such warnings have been given, and
such opportunity afforded him, the individual may knowingly and intelligently
waive these rights and agree to answer questions or make a statement. But unless
and until such warnings and waiver are demonstrated by the prosecution at trial,
no evidence obtained as a result of interrogation can be used against him.
IV.
A recurrent argument made in these cases is that society's need for interrogation
outweighs the privilege. This argument is not unfamiliar to this Court. See, e. g.,
Chambers v. Florida, 309 U.S. 227, 240 -241 (1940). The whole thrust of our
foregoing discussion demonstrates that the Constitution has prescribed the rights
of the individual when confronted with the power of government when it
provided in the Fifth Amendment that an individual cannot be compelled to be a
96
Procedural Rights
witness against himself. That right cannot be abridged. As Mr. Justice Brandeis
once observed:
"Decency, security and liberty alike demand that government officials shall be
subjected to the same [384 U.S. 436, 480] rules of conduct that are commands to
the citizen. In a government of laws, existence of the government will be
imperilled if it fails to observe the law scrupulously. Our Government is the
potent, the omnipresent teacher. For good or for ill, it teaches the whole people
by its example. Crime is contagious. If the Government becomes a lawbreaker, it
breeds contempt for law; it invites every man to become a law unto himself; it
invites anarchy. To declare that in the administration of the criminal law the end
justifies the means . . . would bring terrible retribution. Against that pernicious
doctrine this Court should resolutely set its face." Olmstead v. United States, 277
U.S. 438, 485 (1928) (dissenting opinion).
In this connection, one of our country's distinguished jurists has pointed out: "The
quality of a nation's civilization can be largely measured by the methods it uses in
the enforcement of its criminal law."
If the individual desires to exercise his privilege, he has the right to do so. This is
not for the authorities to decide. An attorney may advise his client not to talk to
police until he has had an opportunity to investigate the case, or he may wish to
be present with his client during any police questioning. In doing so an attorney is
merely exercising the good professional judgment he has been taught. This is not
cause for considering the attorney a menace to law enforcement. He is merely
carrying out what he is sworn to do under his oath - to protect to the extent of his
ability the rights of his [384 U.S. 436, 481] client. In fulfilling this responsibility
the attorney plays a vital role in the administration of criminal justice under our
Constitution.
In announcing these principles, we are not unmindful of the burdens which law
enforcement officials must bear, often under trying circumstances. We also fully
recognize the obligation of all citizens to aid in enforcing the criminal laws. This
Court, while protecting individual rights, has always given ample latitude to law
enforcement agencies in the legitimate exercise of their duties. The limits we
have placed on the interrogation process should not constitute an undue
interference with a proper system of law enforcement. As we have noted, our
decision does not in any way preclude police from carrying out their traditional
investigatory functions. Although confessions may play an important role in
some convictions, the cases before us present graphic examples of the
overstatement of the "need" for confessions. In each case authorities conducted
interrogations ranging up to five days in duration despite the presence, through
standard investigating practices, of considerable evidence against each defendant.
Further examples are chronicled in our prior cases. See, e. g., Haynes v.
Washington, 373 U.S. 503, 518 -519 (1963); Rogers v. Richmond, 365 U.S. 534,
541 (1961); Malinski v. New York, 324 U.S. 401, 402 (1945). [384 U.S. 436,
482]
97
Lectures on the US Legal System
98
Procedural Rights
"`After passage of the Criminal Justice Act of 1964, which provides free counsel
for Federal defendants unable to pay, we added to our instructions to Special
Agents the requirement that any person who is under arrest for an offense under
FBI jurisdiction, or whose arrest is contemplated following the interview, must
also be advised of his right to free counsel if he is unable to pay, and the fact that
such counsel will be assigned by the Judge. At the same time, we broadened the
right to counsel warning [384 U.S. 436, 485] to read counsel of his own choice,
or anyone else with whom he might wish to speak.
"`(2) When is the warning given?
"`The FBI warning is given to a suspect at the very outset of the interview, as
shown in the Westover case, cited above. The warning may be given to a person
arrested as soon as practicable after the arrest, as shown in the Jackson case, also
cited above, and in U.S. v. Konigsberg, 336 F.2d 844 (1964), cert. den. 379 U.S.
933 , but in any event it must precede the interview with the person for a
confession or admission of his own guilt.
"`(3) What is the Bureau's practice in the event that (a) the individual requests
counsel and (b) counsel appears?
"`When the person who has been warned of his right to counsel decides that he
wishes to consult with counsel before making a statement, the interview is
terminated at that point, Shultz v. U.S., 351 F.2d 287 (1965). It may be continued,
however, as to all matters other than the person's own guilt or innocence. If he is
indecisive in his request for counsel, there may be some question on whether he
did or did not waive counsel. Situations of this kind must necessarily be left to the
judgment of the interviewing Agent. For example, in Hiram v. U.S., 354 F.2d 4
(1965), the Agent's conclusion that the person arrested had waived his right to
counsel was upheld by the courts.
"`A person being interviewed and desiring to consult counsel by telephone must
be permitted to do so, as shown in Caldwell v. U.S., 351 F.2d 459 (1965). When
counsel appears in person, he is permitted to confer with his client in private.
[384 U.S. 436, 486]
"`(4) What is the Bureau's practice if the individual requests counsel, but cannot
afford to retain an attorney?
"`If any person being interviewed after warning of counsel decides that he wishes
to consult with counsel before proceeding further the interview is terminated, as
shown above. FBI Agents do not pass judgment on the ability of the person to
pay for counsel. They do, however, advise those who have been arrested for an
offense under FBI jurisdiction, or whose arrest is contemplated following the
interview, of a right to free counsel if they are unable to pay, and the availability
of such counsel from the Judge.'"
The practice of the FBI can readily be emulated by state and local enforcement
agencies. The argument that the FBI deals with different crimes than are dealt
with by state authorities does not mitigate the significance of the FBI experience.
99
Lectures on the US Legal System
The experience in some other countries also suggests that the danger to law
enforcement in curbs on interrogation is overplayed. The English procedure since
1912 under the Judges' Rules is significant. As recently [384 U.S. 436, 487]
strengthened, the Rules require that a cautionary warning be given an accused by
a police officer as soon as he has evidence that affords reasonable grounds for
suspicion; they also require that any statement made be given by the accused
without questioning by police. [384 U.S. 436, 488] The right of the individual to
consult with an attorney during this period is expressly recognized.
The safeguards present under Scottish law may be even greater than in England.
Scottish judicial decisions bar use in evidence of most confessions obtained
through police interrogation. In India, confessions made to police not in the
presence of a magistrate have been excluded [384 U.S. 436, 489] by rule of
evidence since 1872, at a time when it operated under British law. Identical
provisions appear in the Evidence Ordinance of Ceylon, enacted in 1895.
Similarly, in our country the Uniform Code of Military Justice has long provided
that no suspect may be interrogated without first being warned of his right not to
make a statement and that any statement he makes may be used against him.
Denial of the right to consult counsel during interrogation has also been
proscribed by military tribunals. There appears to have been no marked
detrimental effect on criminal law enforcement in these jurisdictions as a result of
these rules. Conditions of law enforcement in our country are sufficiently similar
to permit reference to this experience as assurance that lawlessness will not result
from warning an individual of his rights or allowing him to exercise them.
Moreover, it is consistent with our legal system that we give at least as much
protection to these rights as is given in the jurisdictions described. We deal in our
country with rights grounded in a specific requirement of the Fifth Amendment of
the Constitution, [384 U.S. 436, 490] whereas other jurisdictions arrived at their
conclusions on the basis of principles of justice not so specifically defined.
It is also urged upon us that we withhold decision on this issue until state
legislative bodies and advisory groups have had an opportunity to deal with these
problems by rule making. We have already pointed out that the Constitution does
not require any specific code of procedures for protecting the privilege against
self-incrimination during custodial interrogation. Congress and the States are free
to develop their own safeguards for the privilege, so long as they are fully as
effective as those described above in informing accused persons of their right of
silence and in affording a continuous opportunity to exercise it. In any event,
however, the issues presented are of constitutional dimensions and must be
determined by the courts. The admissibility of a statement in the face of a claim
that it was obtained in violation of the defendant's constitutional rights is an issue
the resolution of which has long since been undertaken by this Court. See Hopt v.
Utah, 110 U.S. 574 (1884). Judicial solutions to problems of constitutional
dimension have evolved decade by decade. As courts have been presented with
the need to enforce constitutional rights, they have found means of doing so. That
was our responsibility when Escobedo was before us and it is our [384 U.S. 436,
100
Procedural Rights
101
Lectures on the US Legal System
Petitioner, Michael Vignera, was picked up by New York police on October 14,
1960, in connection with the robbery three days earlier of a Brooklyn dress shop.
They took him to the 17th Detective Squad headquarters in Manhattan. Sometime
thereafter he was taken to the 66th Detective Squad. There a detective questioned
Vignera with respect to the robbery. Vignera orally admitted the robbery to the
detective. The detective was asked on cross-examination at trial by defense
counsel whether Vignera was warned of his right to counsel before being
interrogated. The prosecution objected to the question and the trial judge
sustained the objection. Thus, the defense was precluded from making any
showing that warnings had not been given. While at the 66th Detective Squad,
Vignera was identified by the store owner and a saleslady as the man who robbed
the dress shop. At about 3 p. m. he was formally arrested. The police then
transported him to still another station, the 70th Precinct in Brooklyn, "for
detention." At 11 p. m. Vignera was questioned by an assistant district attorney in
the presence of a hearing reporter who transcribed the questions and Vignera's
answers. This verbatim account of these proceedings contains no statement of any
warnings given by the assistant district attorney. At Vignera's trial on a charge of
first degree robbery, the detective testified as to the oral confession. The
transcription of the statement taken was also introduced in evidence. At the
conclusion of the testimony, the trial judge charged the jury in part as follows:
"The law doesn't say that the confession is void or invalidated because the police
officer didn't advise the defendant as to his rights. Did you hear what [384 U.S.
436, 494] I said? I am telling you what the law of the State of New York is."
Vignera was found guilty of first degree robbery. He was subsequently adjudged
a third-felony offender and sentenced to 30 to 60 years' imprisonment. The
conviction was affirmed without opinion by the Appellate Division, Second
Department, 21 App. Div. 2d 752, 252 N. Y. S. 2d 19, and by the Court of
Appeals, also without opinion, 15 N. Y. 2d 970, 207 N. E. 2d 527, 259 N. Y. S.
2d 857, remittitur amended, 16 N. Y. 2d 614, 209 N. E. 2d 110, 261 N. Y. S. 2d
65. In argument to the Court of Appeals, the State contended that Vignera had no
constitutional right to be advised of his right to counsel or his privilege against
self-incrimination.
We reverse. The foregoing indicates that Vignera was not warned of any of his
rights before the questioning by the detective and by the assistant district
attorney. No other steps were taken to protect these rights. Thus he was not
effectively apprised of his Fifth Amendment privilege or of his right to have
counsel present and his statements are inadmissible.
No. 761. Westover v. United States.
At approximately 9:45 p. m. on March 20, 1963, petitioner, Carl Calvin
Westover, was arrested by local police in Kansas City as a suspect in two Kansas
City robberies. A report was also received from the FBI that he was wanted on a
felony charge in California. The local authorities took him to a police station and
placed him in a line-up on the local charges, and at about 11:45 p. m. he was
booked. Kansas City police interrogated Westover [384 U.S. 436, 495] on the
102
Procedural Rights
night of his arrest. He denied any knowledge of criminal activities. The next day
local officers interrogated him again throughout the morning. Shortly before noon
they informed the FBI that they were through interrogating Westover and that the
FBI could proceed to interrogate him. There is nothing in the record to indicate
that Westover was ever given any warning as to his rights by local police. At
noon, three special agents of the FBI continued the interrogation in a private
interview room of the Kansas City Police Department, this time with respect to
the robbery of a savings and loan association and a bank in Sacramento,
California. After two or two and one-half hours, Westover signed separate
confessions to each of these two robberies which had been prepared by one of the
agents during the interrogation. At trial one of the agents testified, and a
paragraph on each of the statements states, that the agents advised Westover that
he did not have to make a statement, that any statement he made could be used
against him, and that he had the right to see an attorney.
Westover was tried by a jury in federal court and convicted of the California
robberies. His statements were introduced at trial. He was sentenced to 15 years'
imprisonment on each count, the sentences to run consecutively. On appeal, the
conviction was affirmed by the Court of Appeals for the Ninth Circuit. 342 F.2d
684.
We reverse. On the facts of this case we cannot find that Westover knowingly and
intelligently waived his right to remain silent and his right to consult with counsel
prior to the time he made the statement. At the [384 U.S. 436, 496] time the FBI
agents began questioning Westover, he had been in custody for over 14 hours and
had been interrogated at length during that period. The FBI interrogation began
immediately upon the conclusion of the interrogation by Kansas City police and
was conducted in local police headquarters. Although the two law enforcement
authorities are legally distinct and the crimes for which they interrogated
Westover were different, the impact on him was that of a continuous period of
questioning. There is no evidence of any warning given prior to the FBI
interrogation nor is there any evidence of an articulated waiver of rights after the
FBI commenced its interrogation. The record simply shows that the defendant did
in fact confess a short time after being turned over to the FBI following
interrogation by local police. Despite the fact that the FBI agents gave warnings
at the outset of their interview, from Westover's point of view the warnings came
at the end of the interrogation process. In these circumstances an intelligent
waiver of constitutional rights cannot be assumed.
We do not suggest that law enforcement authorities are precluded from
questioning any individual who has been held for a period of time by other
authorities and interrogated by them without appropriate warnings. A different
case would be presented if an accused were taken into custody by the second
authority, removed both in time and place from his original surroundings, and
then adequately advised of his rights and given an opportunity to exercise them.
But here the FBI interrogation was conducted immediately following the state
interrogation in the same police station - in the same compelling surroundings.
Thus, in obtaining a confession from Westover [384 U.S. 436, 497] the federal
103
Lectures on the US Legal System
authorities were the beneficiaries of the pressure applied by the local in-custody
interrogation. In these circumstances the giving of warnings alone was not
sufficient to protect the privilege.
No. 584. California v. Stewart.
In the course of investigating a series of purse-snatch robberies in which one of
the victims had died of injuries inflicted by her assailant, respondent, Roy Allen
Stewart, was pointed out to Los Angeles police as the endorser of dividend
checks taken in one of the robberies. At about 7:15 p. m., January 31, 1963,
police officers went to Stewart's house and arrested him. One of the officers
asked Stewart if they could search the house, to which he replied, "Go ahead."
The search turned up various items taken from the five robbery victims. At the
time of Stewart's arrest, police also arrested Stewart's wife and three other
persons who were visiting him. These four were jailed along with Stewart and
were interrogated. Stewart was taken to the University Station of the Los Angeles
Police Department where he was placed in a cell. During the next five days,
police interrogated Stewart on nine different occasions. Except during the first
interrogation session, when he was confronted with an accusing witness, Stewart
was isolated with his interrogators.
During the ninth interrogation session, Stewart admitted that he had robbed the
deceased and stated that he had not meant to hurt her. Police then brought Stewart
before a magistrate for the first time. Since there was no evidence to connect
them with any crime, the police then released the other four persons arrested with
him.
Nothing in the record specifically indicates whether Stewart was or was not
advised of his right to remain silent or his right to counsel. In a number of
instances, [384 U.S. 436, 498] however, the interrogating officers were asked to
recount everything that was said during the interrogations. None indicated that
Stewart was ever advised of his rights.
Stewart was charged with kidnapping to commit robbery, rape, and murder. At
his trial, transcripts of the first interrogation and the confession at the last
interrogation were introduced in evidence. The jury found Stewart guilty of
robbery and first degree murder and fixed the penalty as death. On appeal, the
Supreme Court of California reversed. 62 Cal. 2d 571, 400 P.2d 97, 43 Cal. Rptr.
201. It held that under this Court's decision in Escobedo, Stewart should have
been advised of his right to remain silent and of his right to counsel and that it
would not presume in the face of a silent record that the police advised Stewart of
his rights.
We affirm. In dealing with custodial interrogation, we will not presume that a
defendant has been effectively apprised of his rights and that his privilege against
self-incrimination has been adequately safeguarded on a record that does not
show that any warnings have been given or that any effective alternative has been
employed. Nor can a knowing and intelligent waiver of [384 U.S. 436, 499]
these rights be assumed on a silent record. Furthermore, Stewart's steadfast denial
104
Procedural Rights
of the alleged offenses through eight of the nine interrogations over a period of
five days is subject to no other construction than that he was compelled by
persistent interrogation to forgo his Fifth Amendment privilege.
Therefore, in accordance with the foregoing, the judgments of the Supreme Court
of Arizona in No. 759, of the New York Court of Appeals in No. 760, and of the
Court of Appeals for the Ninth Circuit in No. 761 are reversed. The judgment of
the Supreme Court of California in No. 584 is affirmed.
It is so ordered.
105
Lectures on the US Legal System
106
Lecture # 8: Substantial Rights
Freedom of religion is based on two clauses, the free exercice clause and
the establishment clause. With respect to the first clause, an individual’s
right to hold any religious belief is completely protected under the First
Amendment. However, the right to engage in certain conduct or action
because of one’s religious belief is only relatively protected. In fact, the
Supreme Court, through a balancing test, weighs the individual’s interest
in engaging in such conduct or action against the state or federal
government’s interest in regulation such conduct or action. For example,
religious conduct such as polygamy or ceremonial use of drugs is not
protected by the free exercice clause since there is an important and
compelling public interest in the safety and morality of the community
that justifies the prohibition of these acts. The establishment clause not
only prohibits the establishment of a state church or state religion, but also
bars government sponsorship or financial support of religion as well as the
active involvement of government in religious activities.
Freedom of speech and its logical counterpart freedom of press are not
absolutely protected; however the government usually has the burdon of
justifying its restriction or prohibition. It has to be proven that the
imposed regulation furthers an important governmental interest unrelated
to the message being communicated and that is no greater than necessary
to protect the interest. The fundamental theory underlying freedom of
speech is that any restraint on ideas is intolerable, unless it has to be
considered in one of the following exceptions. Speeches presenting a
clear and present danger of imminent lawless action; fighting words or
the use of personally abusive words which are likely to incite immediate
physical retaliation; obscenity, being material which, when taken as a
whole by an average person applying contemporary community standards,
appeals to the prurient interest in sex, portrays sexual conduct in a
patently offensive way and lacks serious literary, artistic, political or
scientific value; defamation consisting in making a false statement
107
Lectures on the US Legal System
Finally, people have the right to assemble peacefully and the right to
petition the government for grievances.
Substantive due process and Equal protection are thus closely linked,
although they are not to be confused. For instance, it is a substantive due
process question when a law limits the liberty of everyone to engage in a
specific activity; it is an equal protection question when the law limits the
liberty of some persons, but not others, to engage in the same activity.
The Supreme Court has developed two tests for substantive due process.
First, in order to challenge the government’s power to enact a legislation,
it may be proved that a fundemental right is involved, the latter being all
the rights of the First Amendment as well as those to interstate travel, to
privacy and the right to vote. A law that limits the exercise of one of these
rights must be “necessary to promote a compelling or overriding interest”
in order to be upheld. If the law does not involve a fundemental interest,
the second test permits to upheld it if it “rationnaly relates to a legitimate
governmental goal”. It is nearly impossible for a statute to fail this test.
Under the Equal protection doctrine, the Supreme Court has also
established two tests. The strict scrutiny test invalids a classification,
unless it promotes a compelling governmental interest. It is used when the
classification relates to those who may exercise a fundemental right or
when the classification is based on a suspect class, which includes race,
108
Substantial Rights
national origin and alienage19. The second test, called minimal scrutiny,
states that a classification is valid if there is a reasonable basis for the
classification and relates to a legitimate governmental interest or purpose.
This test is almost impossible to fail and is primarly used to test non-
suspect categories like age or wealth.
Beneath the two “official” tests, the Supreme Court also applies a third
one for almost suspect classes like legitimacy, distinction between
legitimate and illegitimate children, or distinctions drawn on the basis of
sex20.
19
I.e. the legal status of an alien.
20
The Equal Rights Amendment could have provided a legal basis for this kind
of protection, but it has not been ratified by all the states.
109
Lectures on the US Legal System
110
Substantial Rights – Affirmative Actions
Davis in 1973 and 1974, in both years being considered only under the general
admissions program. Though he had a 468 out of 500 score in 1973, he was
rejected since no general applicants with scores less than 470 were being
accepted after respondent's application, which was filed late in the year, had been
processed and completed. At that time four special admission slots were still
unfilled. In 1974 respondent applied early, and though he had a total score of 549
out of 600, he was again rejected. In neither year was his name placed on the
discretionary waiting list. In both years special applicants were admitted with
significantly lower scores than respondent's. After his second rejection,
respondent filed this action in state court for mandatory, injunctive, and
declaratory relief to compel his admission to Davis, alleging that the special
admissions program operated to exclude him on the basis of his race in violation
of the Equal Protection Clause of the Fourteenth Amendment, a provision of the
California Constitution, and 601 of Title VI of the Civil Rights Act of 1964,
which provides, inter alia, that no person shall on the ground of race or color be
excluded from participating in any program receiving federal financial assistance.
Petitioner cross-claimed for a declaration that its special admissions program was
lawful. The trial court found that the special program operated as a racial quota,
because minority applicants in that program were rated only against one another,
and 16 places in the class of 100 were reserved for them. Declaring that petitioner
could not take race into account in making admissions decisions, the program
was held to violate the Federal and State Constitutions and Title VI. Respondent's
admission was not ordered, however, for lack of proof that he would have been
admitted but for the special program. The California Supreme Court, applying a
strict-scrutiny standard, concluded that the special admissions program was not
the least intrusive means of achieving the goals of the admittedly compelling state
interests of integrating the medical profession and increasing the number of
doctors willing to serve minority patients. Without passing on the state
constitutional or federal statutory grounds the court held that petitioner's special
admissions program violated the Equal Protection Clause. Since petitioner could
not satisfy its burden of demonstrating that respondent, absent the special
program, would not have been admitted, the court ordered his admission to
Davis.
Held: The judgment below is affirmed insofar as it orders respondent's admission
to Davis and invalidates petitioner's special admissions program, [438 U.S. 265,
267] but is reversed insofar as it prohibits petitioner from taking race into
account as a factor in its future admissions decisions.
18 Cal. 3d 34, 553 P.2d 1152, affirmed in part and reversed in part.
MR. JUSTICE POWELL, concluded:
1. Title VI proscribes only those racial classifications that would violate the
Equal Protection Clause if employed by a State or its agencies. Pp. 281-287.
2. Racial and ethnic classifications of any sort are inherently suspect and call for
the most exacting judicial scrutiny. While the goal of achieving a diverse student
body is sufficiently compelling to justify consideration of race in admissions
111
Lectures on the US Legal System
112
Substantial Rights – Affirmative Actions
No. 87-998.
113
Lectures on the US Legal System
discrimination by the city itself in awarding contracts, and (2) the 30% set-aside
was not narrowly tailored to accomplish a remedial purpose.
Held:
The judgment is affirmed.
822 F.2d 1355, affirmed.
JUSTICE O'CONNOR delivered the opinion of the Court with respect to Parts I,
III-B, and IV, concluding that:
1. The city has failed to demonstrate a compelling governmental interest
justifying the Plan, since the factual predicate supporting the Plan does not
establish the type of identified past discrimination in the city's construction
industry that would authorize race-based relief under the Fourteenth
Amendment's Equal Protection Clause. Pp. 498-506.
(a) A generalized assertion that there has been past discrimination in the entire
construction industry cannot justify the use of an unyielding racial quota, since it
provides no guidance for the city's legislative body to determine the precise scope
of the injury it seeks to remedy and would allow race-based decisionmaking
essentially limitless in scope and duration. The city's argument that it is
attempting to remedy various forms of past societal discrimination that are
alleged to be responsible for the small number of minority entrepreneurs in the
local contracting industry fails, since the city also lists a host of nonracial factors
which would seem to face a member of any racial group seeking to establish a
new business enterprise, such as deficiencies in working capital, inability to meet
bonding requirements, unfamiliarity with bidding procedures, and disability
caused by an inadequate track record. Pp. 498-499.
(b) None of the "facts" cited by the city or relied on by the District Court, singly
or together, provide a basis for a prima facie case of a constitutional or statutory
violation by anyone in the city's construction industry. The fact that the Plan
declares itself to be "remedial" is insufficient, since the mere recitation of a
"benign" or legitimate purpose for a racial classification is entitled to little or no
weight. Similarly, the views of Plan proponents as to past and present
discrimination in the industry are highly conclusory and of little probative value.
Reliance on the disparity between the number of prime contracts awarded to
minority businesses and the city's minority population is also misplaced, since the
proper statistical evaluation would compare the percentage of MBE's [488 U.S.
469, 471] in the relevant market that are qualified to undertake city
subcontracting work with the percentage of total city construction dollars that are
presently awarded to minority subcontractors, neither of which is known to the
city. The fact that MBE membership in local contractors' associations was
extremely low is also not probative absent some link to the number of MBE's
eligible for membership, since there are numerous explanations for the dearth of
minority participation, including past societal discrimination in education and
economic opportunities as well as both black and white career and entrepreneurial
choices. Congress' finding in connection with the set-aside approved in Fullilove
114
Substantial Rights – Affirmative Actions
that there had been nationwide discrimination in the construction industry also
has extremely limited probative value, since, by including a waiver procedure in
the national program, Congress explicitly recognized that the scope of the
problem would vary from market area to market area. In any event, Congress was
acting pursuant to its unique enforcement powers under 5 of the Fourteenth
Amendment. Pp. 499-504.
(c) The "evidence" relied upon by JUSTICE MARSHALL's dissent - the city's
history of school desegregation and numerous congressional reports - does little
to define the scope of any injury to minority contractors in the city or the
necessary remedy, and could justify a preference of any size or duration.
Moreover, JUSTICE MARSHALL's suggestion that discrimination findings may
be "shared" from jurisdiction to jurisdiction is unprecedented and contrary to this
Court's decisions. Pp. 504-506.
(d) Since there is absolutely no evidence of past discrimination against Spanish-
speaking, Oriental, Indian, Eskimo, or Aleut persons in any aspect of the city's
construction industry, the Plan's random inclusion of those groups strongly
impugns the city's claim of remedial motivation. P. 506.
2. The Plan is not narrowly tailored to remedy the effects of prior discrimination,
since it entitles a black, Hispanic, or Oriental entrepreneur from anywhere in the
country to an absolute preference over other citizens based solely on their race.
Although many of the barriers to minority participation in the construction
industry relied upon by the city to justify the Plan appear to be race neutral, there
is no evidence that the city considered using alternative, race-neutral means to
increase minority participation in city contracting. Moreover, the Plan's rigid 30%
quota rests upon the completely unrealistic assumption that minorities will choose
to enter construction in lockstep proportion to their representation in the local
population. Unlike the program upheld in Fullilove, the Plan's waiver system
focuses upon the availability of MBE's, and does not inquire whether the
particular MBE seeking a racial preference has suffered from the effects of past
discrimination by the city or prime contractors. Given the fact that the city must
already consider bids and [488 U.S. 469, 472] waivers on a case-by-case basis,
the city's only interest in maintaining a quota system rather than investigating the
need for remedial action in particular cases would seem to be simply
administrative convenience, which, standing alone, cannot justify the use of a
suspect classification under equal protection strict scrutiny. Pp. 507-508.
JUSTICE O'CONNOR, joined by THE CHIEF JUSTICE and JUSTICE WHITE,
concluded in Part II that if the city could identify past discrimination in the local
construction industry with the particularity required by the Equal Protection
Clause, it would have the power to adopt race-based legislation designed to
eradicate the effects of that discrimination. The principal opinion in Fullilove
cannot be read to relieve the city of the necessity of making the specific findings
of discrimination required by the Clause, since the congressional finding of past
discrimination relied on in that case was made pursuant to Congress' unique
power under 5 of the Amendment to enforce, and therefore to identify and redress
115
Lectures on the US Legal System
116
Substantial Rights – Affirmative Actions
not limit permissible racial classifications to those that remedy past wrongs, but
requires that race-based governmental decisions be evaluated primarily by
studying their probable impact on the future. Pp. 511-518.
(a) Disregarding the past history of racial injustice, there is not even an arguable
basis for suggesting that the race of a subcontractor or contractor on city projects
should have any relevance to his or her access to the market. Although race is not
always irrelevant to sound governmental decisionmaking, the city makes no
claim that the public interest in the efficient performance of its construction
contracts will be served by granting a preference to minority-business enterprises.
Pp. 512-513.
(b) Legislative bodies such as the city council, which are primarily policymaking
entities that promulgate rules to govern future conduct, raise valid constitutional
concerns when they use the political process to punish or characterize past
conduct of private citizens. Courts, on the other hand, are well equipped to
identify past wrongdoers and to fashion remedies that will create the conditions
that presumably would have existed had no wrong been committed, and should
have the same broad discretion in racial discrimination cases that chancellors
enjoy in other areas of the law to fashion remedies against persons who have been
proved guilty of violations of law. Pp. 513-514. [488 U.S. 469, 474]
(c) Rather than engaging in debate over the proper standard of review to apply in
affirmative-action litigation, it is more constructive to try to identify the
characteristics of the advantaged and disadvantaged classes that may justify their
disparate treatment. Here, instead of carefully identifying those characteristics,
the city has merely engaged in the type of stereotypical analysis that is the
hallmark of Equal Protection Clause violations. The class of persons benefited by
the Plan is not limited to victims of past discrimination by white contractors in
the city, but encompasses persons who have never been in business in the city,
minority contractors who may have themselves been guilty of discrimination
against other minority group members, and firms that have prospered
notwithstanding discriminatory treatment. Similarly, although the Plan
unquestionably disadvantages some white contractors who are guilty of past
discrimination against blacks, it also punishes some who discriminated only
before it was forbidden by law and some who have never discriminated against
anyone. Pp. 514-517.
JUSTICE KENNEDY concluded that the Fourteenth Amendment ought not to be
interpreted to reduce a State's power to eradicate racial discrimination and its
effects in both the public and private sectors, or its absolute duty to do so where
those wrongs were caused intentionally by the State itself, except where there is a
conflict with federal law or where, as here, a state remedy itself violates equal
protection. Although a rule striking down all racial preferences which are not
necessary remedies to victims of unlawful discrimination would serve important
structural goals by eliminating the necessity for courts to pass on each such
preference that is enacted, that rule would be a significant break with this Court's
precedents that require a case-by-case test, and need not be adopted. Rather, it
117
Lectures on the US Legal System
may be assumed that the principle of race neutrality found in the Equal Protection
Clause will be vindicated by the less absolute strict scrutiny standard, the
application of which demonstrates that the city's Plan is not a remedy but is itself
an unconstitutional preference. Pp. 518-520.
JUSTICE SCALIA, agreeing that strict scrutiny must be applied to all
governmental racial classifications, concluded that:
1. The Fourteenth Amendment prohibits state and local governments from
discriminating on the basis of race in order to undo the effects of past
discrimination, except in one circumstance: where that is necessary to eliminate
their own maintenance of a system of unlawful racial classification. Moreover,
the State's remedial power in that instance extends no further than the scope of
the constitutional violation, and does not encompass the continuing effects of a
discriminatory system once the system itself has been eliminated. Pp. 520-525.
[488 U.S. 469, 475]
2. The State remains free to undo the effects of past discrimination in permissible
ways that do not involve classification by race - for example, by according a
contracting preference to small or new businesses or to actual victims of
discrimination who can be identified. In the latter instance, the classification
would not be based on race but on the fact that the victims were wronged. Pp.
526-528.
O'CONNOR, J., announced the judgment of the Court and delivered the opinion
of the Court with respect to Parts I, III-B, and IV, in which REHNQUIST, C. J.,
and WHITE, STEVENS, and KENNEDY, JJ., joined, an opinion with respect to
Part II, in which REHNQUIST, C. J., and WHITE, J., joined, and an opinion with
respect to Parts III-A and V, in which REHNQUIST, C. J., and WHITE and
KENNEDY, JJ., joined. STEVENS, J., post, p. 511, and KENNEDY, J., post, p.
518, filed opinions concurring in part and concurring in the judgment. SCALIA,
J., filed an opinion concurring in the judgment, post, p. 520. MARSHALL, J.,
filed a dissenting opinion, in which BRENNAN and BLACKMUN, JJ., joined,
post, p. 528. BLACKMUN, J., filed a dissenting opinion, in which BRENNAN,
J., joined, post, p. 561.
John Payton argued the cause for appellant. With him on the briefs were Mark S.
Hersh, Drew St. J. Carneal, Michael L. Sarahan, Michael K. Jackson, and John H.
Pickering.
Walter H. Ryland argued the cause and filed a brief for appellee.
118
Substantial Rights – Gender Equality
No. 71-1694.
119
Lectures on the US Legal System
Samuel Huntington argued the cause for appellees. On the brief were Solicitor
General Griswold, Assistant Attorney General Wood, and Mark L. Evans.
Ruth Bader Ginsburg argued the cause for the American Civil Liberties Union as
amicus curiae urging reversal. With her on the brief was Melvin L. Wulf.
MR. JUSTICE BRENNAN announced the judgment of the Court and an opinion
in which MR. JUSTICE DOUGLAS, MR. JUSTICE WHITE, and MR. JUSTICE
MARSHALL join.
The question before us concerns the right of a female member of the uniformed
services 1 to claim her spouse as a "dependent" for the purposes of obtaining
increased quarters allowances and medical and dental benefits under 37 U.S.C.
401, 403, and 10 U.S.C. 1072, 1076, on an equal footing with male members.
Under these statutes, a serviceman may claim his wife as a "dependent" without
regard to whether she is in fact dependent upon him for any part of her support.
37 U.S.C. 401 (1); 10 U.S.C. 1072 (2) (A). A servicewoman, on the other hand,
may not claim her husband as a "dependent" under these programs unless he is in
fact dependent upon her for over one-half of his support. [411 U.S. 677, 679] 37
U.S.C. 401; 10 U.S.C. 1072 (2) (C). 2 Thus, the question for decision is whether
this difference in treatment constitutes an unconstitutional discrimination against
servicewomen in violation of the Due Process Clause of the Fifth Amendment. A
three-judge District Court for the Middle District of Alabama, one judge
dissenting, rejected this contention and sustained the constitutionality of the
provisions of the statutes making this distinction. 341 F. Supp. 201 (1972). We
noted probable jurisdiction. 409 U.S. 840 (1972). We reverse.
I
In an effort to attract career personnel through reenlistment, Congress established,
in 37 U.S.C. 401 et seq., and 10 U.S.C. 1071 et seq., a scheme for the provision
of fringe benefits to members of the uniformed services on a competitive basis
with business and industry. 3 Thus, under 37 U.S.C. 403, a member of the
uniformed services with dependents is entitled to an [411 U.S. 677, 680]
increased "basic allowance for quarters" and, under 10 U.S.C. 1076, a member's
dependents are provided comprehensive medical and dental care.
Appellant Sharron Frontiero, a lieutenant in the United States Air Force, sought
increased quarters allowances, and housing and medical benefits for her husband,
appellant Joseph Frontiero, on the ground that he was her "dependent." Although
such benefits would automatically have been granted with respect to the wife of a
male member of the uniformed services, appellant's application was denied
because she failed to demonstrate that her husband was dependent on her for
more than one-half of his support. 4 Appellants then commenced this suit,
contending that, by making this distinction, the statutes unreasonably
discriminate on the basis of sex in violation of the Due Process Clause of the
Fifth Amendment. 5 In essence, appellants asserted that the discriminatory impact
of the statutes is twofold: first, as a procedural matter, a female member is
required to demonstrate her spouse's dependency, while no such burden is
120
Substantial Rights – Gender Equality
121
Lectures on the US Legal System
In an effort to meet this standard, appellee contended that the statutory scheme
was a reasonable measure designed to reduce the workload on probate courts by
eliminating one class of contests. Moreover, appellee argued that the mandatory
preference for male applicants was in itself reasonable since "men [are] as a rule
more conversant with business affairs than . . . women." 10 Indeed, appellee
maintained that "it is a matter of common knowledge, that women still are not
engaged in politics, the professions, business or industry to the extent that men
are." 11 And the Idaho Supreme Court, in upholding the constitutionality of this
statute, suggested that the Idaho Legislature might reasonably have "concluded
that in general men are better qualified to act as an administrator than are
women." 12
Despite these contentions, however, the Court held the statutory preference for
male applicants unconstitutional. In reaching this result, the Court implicitly
rejected appellee's apparently rational explanation of the statutory scheme, and
concluded that, by ignoring the individual qualifications of particular applicants,
the challenged statute provided "dissimilar treatment for men and women who are
. . . similarly situated." 404 U.S., [411 U.S. 677, 684] at 77. The Court therefore
held that, even though the State's interest in achieving administrative efficiency
"is not without some legitimacy," "[t]o give a mandatory preference to members
of either sex over members of the other, merely to accomplish the elimination of
hearings on the merits, is to make the very kind of arbitrary legislative choice
forbidden by the [Constitution] . . . ." Id., at 76. This departure from "traditional"
rational-basis analysis with respect to sex-based classifications is clearly justified.
There can be no doubt that our Nation has had a long and unfortunate history of
sex discrimination. 13 Traditionally, such discrimination was rationalized by an
attitude of "romantic paternalism" which, in practical effect, put women, not on a
pedestal, but in a cage. Indeed, this paternalistic attitude became so firmly rooted
in our national consciousness that, 100 years ago, a distinguished Member of this
Court was able to proclaim:
"Man is, or should be, woman's protector and defender. The natural and proper
timidity and delicacy which belongs to the female sex evidently unfits it for many
of the occupations of civil life. The constitution of the family organization, which
is founded in the divine ordinance, as well as in the nature of things, indicates the
domestic sphere as that which properly belongs to the domain and functions of
womanhood. The harmony, not to say identity, of interests and views which
belong, or should belong, to the family institution is repugnant to the idea of a
woman adopting a distinct and [411 U.S. 677, 685] independent career from that
of her husband. . . .
". . . The paramount destiny and mission of woman are to fulfil the noble and
benign offices of wife and mother. This is the law of the Creator." Bradwell v.
State, 16 Wall. 130, 141 (1873) (Bradley, J., concurring).
As a result of notions such as these, our statute books gradually became laden
with gross, stereotyped distinctions between the sexes and, indeed, throughout
much of the 19th century the position of women in our society was, in many
122
Substantial Rights – Gender Equality
respects, comparable to that of blacks under the pre-Civil War slave codes.
Neither slaves nor women could hold office, serve on juries, or bring suit in their
own names, and married women traditionally were denied the legal capacity to
hold or convey property or to serve as legal guardians of their own children. See
generally L. Kanowitz, Women and the Law: The Unfinished Revolution 5-6
(1969); G. Myrdal, An American Dilemma 1073 (20th anniversary ed. 1962).
And although blacks were guaranteed the right to vote in 1870, women were
denied even that right - which is itself "preservative of other basic civil and
political rights" 14 - until adoption of the Nineteenth Amendment half a century
later.
It is true, of course, that the position of women in America has improved
markedly in recent decades. 15 [411 U.S. 677, 686] Nevertheless, it can hardly
be doubted that, in part because of the high visibility of the sex characteristic, 16
women still face pervasive, although at times more subtle, discrimination in our
educational institutions, in the job market and, perhaps most conspicuously, in the
political arena. 17 See generally K. Amundsen, The Silenced Majority: Women
and American Democracy (1971); The President's Task Force on Women's
Rights and Responsibilities, A Matter of Simple Justice (1970).
Moreover, since sex, like race and national origin, is an immutable characteristic
determined solely by the accident of birth, the imposition of special disabilities
upon the members of a particular sex because of their sex would seem to violate
"the basic concept of our system that legal burdens should bear some relationship
to individual responsibility . . . ." Weber v. Aetna Casualty & Surety Co., 406
U.S. 164, 175 (1972). And what differentiates sex from such nonsuspect statuses
as intelligence or physical disability, and aligns it with the recognized suspect
criteria, is that the sex characteristic frequently bears no relation to ability to
perform or contribute to society. 18 As a result, statutory distinctions [411 U.S.
677, 687] between the sexes often have the effect of invidiously relegating the
entire class of females to inferior legal status without regard to the actual
capabilities of its individual members.
We might also note that, over the past decade, Congress has itself manifested an
increasing sensitivity to sex-based classifications. In Tit. VII of the Civil Rights
Act of 1964, for example, Congress expressly declared that no employer, labor
union, or other organization subject to the provisions of the Act shall discriminate
against any individual on the basis of "race, color, religion, sex, or national
origin." 19 Similarly, the Equal Pay Act of 1963 provides that no employer
covered by the Act "shall discriminate . . . between employees on the basis of
sex." 20 And 1 of the Equal Rights Amendment, passed by Congress on March
22, 1972, and submitted to the legislatures of the States for ratification, declares
that "[e]quality of rights under the law shall not be denied or abridged by the
United States or by any State on account of sex." 21 Thus, Congress itself has
concluded that classifications based upon sex are inherently invidious, and this
conclusion of a coequal [411 U.S. 677, 688] branch of Government is not
without significance to the question presently under consideration. Cf. Oregon v.
123
Lectures on the US Legal System
Mitchell, 400 U.S. 112, 240 , 248-249 (1970) (opinion of BRENNAN, WHITE,
and MARSHALL, JJ.); Katzenbach v. Morgan, 384 U.S. 641, 648 -649 (1966).
With these considerations in mind, we can only conclude that classifications
based upon sex, like classifications based upon race, alienage, or national origin,
are inherently suspect, and must therefore be subjected to strict judicial scrutiny.
Applying the analysis mandated by that stricter standard of review, it is clear that
the statutory scheme now before us is constitutionally invalid.
III
The sole basis of the classification established in the challenged statutes is the sex
of the individuals involved. Thus, under 37 U.S.C. 401, 403, and 10 U.S.C. 1072,
1076, a female member of the uniformed services seeking to obtain housing and
medical benefits for her spouse must prove his dependency in fact, whereas no
such burden is imposed upon male members. In addition, the statutes operate so
as to deny benefits to a female member, such as appellant Sharron Frontiero, who
provides less than one-half of her spouse's support, while at the same time
granting such benefits to a male member who likewise provides less than one-half
of his spouse's support. Thus, to this extent at least, it may fairly be said that these
statutes command "dissimilar treatment for men and women who are . . . similarly
situated." Reed v. Reed, 404 U.S., at 77 .
Moreover, the Government concedes that the differential treatment accorded men
and women under these statutes serves no purpose other than mere
"administrative convenience." In essence, the Government maintains that, as an
empirical matter, wives in our society frequently are dependent upon their
husbands, while husbands [411 U.S. 677, 689] rarely are dependent upon their
wives. Thus, the Government argues that Congress might reasonably have
concluded that it would be both cheaper and easier simply conclusively to
presume that wives of male members are financially dependent upon their
husbands, while burdening female members with the task of establishing
dependency in fact. 22
The Government offers no concrete evidence, however, tending to support its
view that such differential treatment in fact saves the Government any money. In
order to satisfy the demands of strict judicial scrutiny, the Government must
demonstrate, for example, that it is actually cheaper to grant increased benefits
with respect to all male members, than it is to determine which male members are
in fact entitled to such benefits and to grant increased benefits only to those
members whose wives actually meet the dependency requirement. Here,
however, there is substantial evidence that, if put to the test, many of the wives of
male members would fail to qualify for benefits. 23 And in light of the fact that
the [411 U.S. 677, 690] dependency determination with respect to the husbands
of female members is presently made solely on the basis of affidavits, rather than
through the more costly hearing process, 24 the Government's explanation of the
statutory scheme is, to say the least, questionable.
124
Substantial Rights – Gender Equality
In any case, our prior decisions make clear that, although efficacious
administration of governmental programs is not without some importance, "the
Constitution recognizes higher values than speed and efficiency." Stanley v.
Illinois, 405 U.S. 645, 656 (1972). And when we enter the realm of "strict judicial
scrutiny," there can be no doubt that "administrative convenience" is not a
shibboleth, the mere recitation of which dictates constitutionality. See Shapiro v.
Thompson, 394 U.S. 618 (1969); Carrington v. Rash, 380 U.S. 89 (1965). On the
contrary, any statutory scheme which draws a sharp line between the sexes, solely
for the purpose of achieving administrative convenience, necessarily commands
"dissimilar treatment for men and women who are . . . similarly situated," and
therefore involves the "very kind of arbitrary legislative choice forbidden by the
[Constitution] . . . ." Reed v. Reed, 404 U.S., at 77 , 76. We therefore conclude
that, by according differential treatment to male and female members of the
uniformed services for the sole purpose of achieving administrative [411 U.S.
677, 691] convenience, the challenged statutes violate the Due Process Clause
of the Fifth Amendment insofar as they require a female member to prove the
dependency of her husband. 25
Reversed.
MR. JUSTICE STEWART concurs in the judgment, agreeing that the statutes
before us work an invidious discrimination in violation of the Constitution. Reed
v. Reed, 404 U.S. 71 .
MR. JUSTICE REHNQUIST dissents for the reasons stated by Judge Rives in his
opinion for the District Court, Frontiero v. Laird, 341 F. Supp. 201 (1972).
125
Lectures on the US Legal System
126
Substantial Rights – The Right to Procreate
the Attorney General instituted proceedings against him. Petitioner in his answer
challenged the Act as unconstitutional by reason of the Fourteenth Amendment.
A jury trial was had. The court instructed the jury that the crimes of which
petitioner had been convicted were felonies involving moral turpitude and that
the only question for the jury was whether the operation of vasectomy could be
performed on petitioner without detriment to his general health. The jury found
that it could be. A judgment directing that the operation of vasectomy be
performed on petitioner was affirmed by the Supreme Court of Oklahoma by a
five to four decision. 189 Okl. 235, 115 P.2d 123.
Several objections to the constitutionality of the Act have been pressed upon us.
It is urged that the Act cannot be sustained as an exercise of the police power in
view [316 U.S. 535, 538] of the state of scientific authorities respecting
inheritability of criminal traits. 1 It is argued that due process is lacking because
under this Act, unlike the act2 upheld in Buck v. Bell, 274 U.S. 200 , 47 S.Ct.
584, the defendant is given no opportunity to be heard on the issue as to whether
he is the probable potential parent of socially undesirable offspring. See Davis v.
Berry, D.C., 216 F. 413; Williams v. Smith, 190 Ind. 526, 131 N.E. 2. It is also
suggested that the Act is penal in character and that the sterilization provided for
is cruel and unusual punishment and violative of the Fourteenth Amendment. See
Davis v. Berry, supra. Cf. State v. Feilen, 70 Wash. 65, 126 P. 75, 41
L.R.A.,N.S., 418, Ann.Cas.1914B, 512; Mickle v. Henrichs, D.C., 262 F. 687.
We pass those points without intimating an opinion on them, for there is a feature
of the Act which clearly condemns it. That is its failure to meet the requirements
of the equal protection clause of the Fourteenth Amendment.
We do not stop to point out all of the inequalities in this Act. A few examples will
suffice. In Oklahoma grand larceny is a felony. Okl.St. Ann. Tit. 21, 1705 ( 5).
Larceny is grand larceny when the property taken exceeds $20 in value. Id. 1704.
Embezzlement is punishable 'in the manner prescribed for feloniously stealing
property of the value of that embezzled.' Id. 1462. Hence he who embezzles
property worth more than $ 20 is guilty of a felony. A clerk who appropriates
over $20 from his employer's till (id. 1456) and a stranger who steals the same
[316 U.S. 535, 539] amount are thus both guilty of felonies. If the latter repeats
his act and is convicted three times, he may be sterilized. But the clerk is not
subject to the pains and penalties of the Act no matter how large his
embezzlements nor how frequent his convictions. A person who enters a chicken
coop and steals chickens commits a felony (id. 1719); and he may be sterilized if
he is thrice convicted. If, however, he is a bailee of the property and fraudulently
appropriates it, he is an embezzler. Id. 1455. Hence no matter how habitual his
proclivities for embezzlement are and no matter how often his conviction, he may
not be sterilized. Thus the nature of the two crimes is intrinsically the same and
they are punishable in the same manner. Furthermore, the line between them
follows close distinctions-distinctions comparable to those highly technical ones
which shaped the Common law as to 'trespass' or 'taking'. Bishop, Criminal Law,
9th Ed., Vol. 2, 760, 799, et seq. There may be larceny by fraud rather than
embezzlement even where the owner of the personal property delivers it to the
127
Lectures on the US Legal System
defendant, if the latter has at that time 'a fraudulent intention to make use of the
possession as a means of converting such property to his own use, and does so
convert it'. Bivens v. State, 6 Okl. Cr. 521, 529, 120 P. 1033, 1036. If the
fraudulent intent occurs later and the defendant converts the property, he is guilty
of embezzlement. Bivens v. State, supra; Flohr v. Territory, 14 Okl. 477, 78 P.
565. Whether a particular act is larceny by fraud or embezzlement thus turns not
on the intrinsic quality of the act but on when the felonious intent arose-a
question for the jury under appropriate instructions. Bivens v. State, supra; Riley
v. State, 64 Okl.Cr. 183, 78 P.2d 712.
It was stated in Buck v. Bell, supra, that the claim that state legislation violates
the equal protection clause of the Fourteenth Amendment is 'the usual last resort
of constitutional arguments.' 274 U.S. page 208, 47 S.Ct. page 585. Under our
con- [316 U.S. 535, 540] stitutional system the States in determining the reach
and scope of particular legislation need not provide 'abstract symmetry'. Patsone
v. Pennsylvania, 232 U.S. 138, 144 , 34 S.Ct. 281, 282. They may mark and set
apart the classes and types of problems according to the needs and as dictated or
suggested by experience. See People of State of New York ex rel. Bryant v.
Zimmerman, 278 U.S. 63 , 49 S.Ct. 61, 62 A.L.R. 785, and cases cited. It was in
that connection that Mr. Justice Holmes, speaking for the Court in Bain Peanut
Co. v. Pinson, 282 U.S. 499, 501 , 51 S.Ct. 228, 229, stated, 'We must remember
that the machinery of government would not work if it were not allowed a little
play in its joints.' Only recently we reaffirmed the view that the equal protection
clause does not prevent the legislture from recognizing 'degrees of evil' (Truax v.
Raich, 239 U.S. 33, 43 , 36 S.Ct. 7, 11, L.R.A.1916D, 545, Ann.Cas.1917B, 283)
by our ruling in Tigner v. Texas, 310 U.S. 141, 147 , 60 S.Ct. 879, 882, 130
A.L.R. 1321, that 'the Constitution does not require things which are different in
fact or opinion to be treated in law as though they were the same.' And see
Nashville, Chattanooga & St. Louis Ry. v. Browning, 310 U.S. 362 , 60 S. Ct.
968. Thus, if we had here only a question as to a State's classification of crimes,
such as embezzlement or larceny, no substantial federal question would be raised.
See Moore v. Missouri, 159 U.S. 673 , 16 S.Ct. 179; Hawker v. New York, 170
U.S. 189 , 18 S. Ct. 573; Finley v. California, 222 U.S. 28 , 32 S.Ct. 13; Patsone
v. Pennsylvania, supra. For a State is not constrained in the exercise of its police
power to ignore experience which marks a class of offenders or a family of
offenses for special treatment. Nor is it prevented by the equal protection clause
from confining 'its restrictions to those classes of cases where the need is deemed
to be clearest'. Miller v. Wilson, 236 U.S. 373, 384 , 35 S.Ct. 342, 344,
L.R.A.1915F, 829. And see McLean v. Arkansas, 211 U.S. 539 , 29 S.Ct. 206. As
stated in Buck v. Bell, supra, 274 U.S. page 208, 47 S.Ct. page 585, '... the law
does all that is needed when it does all that it can, indicates a policy, applies it to
all within the lines, and seeks to bring within the lines all similarly situated so far
and so fast as its means allow.' [316 U.S. 535, 541] But the instant legislation
runs afoul of the equal protection clause, though we give Oklahoma that large
deference which the rule of the foregoing cases requires. We are dealing here
with legislation which involves one of the basic civil rights of man. Marriage and
procreation are fundamental to the very existence and survival of the race. The
128
Substantial Rights – The Right to Procreate
129
Lectures on the US Legal System
reference to the severability clause. We have therefore a situation where the Act
as construed and applied to petitioner is allowed to perpetuate the discrimination
which we have found to be fatal. Whether the severability clause would be so
applied as to remove this particular constitutional objection is a question which
may be more appropriately left for adjudication by the Oklahoma court. Dorchy
v. Kansas, 264 U.S. 286 , 44 S.Ct. 323. That is reemphasized here by our
uncertainty as to what excision, if any, would be made as a matter of Oklahoma
law. Cf. Smith v. Cahoon, 283 U.S. 553 , 51 S.Ct. 582. It is by no means clear
whether if an excision were made, this particular constitutional difficulty might
be solved by enlarging on the one hand or contracting on the other (cf. Mr.
Justice Brandeis dissenting, National Life Insurance Co. v. United States, 277
U.S. 508, 534 , 535 S., 48 S.Ct. 591, 598) the class of criminals who might be
sterilized.
REVERSED.
Mr. Chief Justice STONE concurring.
No. 496.
Argued March 29-30, 1965.
Decided June 7, 1965.
Appellants, the Executive Director of the Planned Parenthood League of
Connecticut, and its medical director, a licensed physician, were convicted as
accessories for giving married persons information and medical advice on how to
prevent conception and, following examination, prescribing a contraceptive
device or material for the wife's use. A Connecticut statute makes it a crime for
any person to use any drug or article to prevent conception. Appellants claimed
that the accessory statute as applied violated the Fourteenth Amendment. An
intermediate appellate court and the State's highest court affirmed the judgment.
Held:
1. Appellants have standing to assert the constitutional rights of the married
people. Tileston v. Ullman, 318 U.S. 44 , distinguished. P. 481.
2. The Connecticut statute forbidding use of contraceptives violates the right of
marital privacy which is within the penumbra of specific guarantees of the Bill of
Rights. Pp. 481-486.
151 Conn. 544, 200 A. 2d 479, reversed.
Thomas I. Emerson argued the cause for appellants. With him on the briefs was
Catherine G. Roraback.
Joseph B. Clark argued the cause for appellee. With him on the brief was Julius
Maretz.
130
Substantial Rights – The Right to Procreate
Briefs of amici curiae, urging reversal, were filed by Whitney North Seymour and
Eleanor M. Fox for Dr. John M. Adams et al.; by Morris L. Ernst, Harriet F.
Pilpel and Nancy F. Wechsler for the Planned Parenthood Federation of America,
Inc.; by Alfred L. Scanlon for the Catholic Council on Civil Liberties, and by
Rhoda H. Karpatkin, Melvin L. Wulf and Jerome E. Caplan for the American
Civil Liberties Union et al. [381 U.S. 479, 480]
MR. JUSTICE DOUGLAS delivered the opinion of the Court.
Appellant Griswold is Executive Director of the Planned Parenthood League of
Connecticut. Appellant Buxton is a licensed physician and a professor at the Yale
Medical School who served as Medical Director for the League at its Center in
New Haven - a center open and operating from November 1 to November 10,
1961, when appellants were arrested.
They gave information, instruction, and medical advice to married persons as to
the means of preventing conception. They examined the wife and prescribed the
best contraceptive device or material for her use. Fees were usually charged,
although some couples were serviced free.
The statutes whose constitutionality is involved in this appeal are 53-32 and 54-
196 of the General Statutes of Connecticut (1958 rev.). The former provides:
"Any person who uses any drug, medicinal article or instrument for the purpose
of preventing conception shall be fined not less than fifty dollars or imprisoned
not less than sixty days nor more than one year or be both fined and imprisoned."
Section 54-196 provides:
"Any person who assists, abets, counsels, causes, hires or commands another to
commit any offense may be prosecuted and punished as if he were the principal
offender."
The appellants were found guilty as accessories and fined $100 each, against the
claim that the accessory statute as so applied violated the Fourteenth Amendment.
The Appellate Division of the Circuit Court affirmed. The Supreme Court of
Errors affirmed that judgment. 151 Conn. 544, 200 A. 2d 479. We noted probable
jurisdiction. 379 U.S. 926 . [381 U.S. 479, 481]
We think that appellants have standing to raise the constitutional rights of the
married people with whom they had a professional relationship. Tileston v.
Ullman, 318 U.S. 44 , is different, for there the plaintiff seeking to represent
others asked for a declaratory judgment. In that situation we thought that the
requirements of standing should be strict, lest the standards of "case or
controversy" in Article III of the Constitution become blurred. Here those doubts
are removed by reason of a criminal conviction for serving married couples in
violation of an aiding-and-abetting statute. Certainly the accessory should have
standing to assert that the offense which he is charged with assisting is not, or
cannot constitutionally be, a crime.
131
Lectures on the US Legal System
This case is more akin to Truax v. Raich, 239 U.S. 33 , where an employee was
permitted to assert the rights of his employer; to Pierce v. Society of Sisters, 268
U.S. 510 , where the owners of private schools were entitled to assert the rights of
potential pupils and their parents; and to Barrows v. Jackson, 346 U.S. 249 ,
where a white defendant, party to a racially restrictive covenant, who was being
sued for damages by the covenantors because she had conveyed her property to
Negroes, was allowed to raise the issue that enforcement of the covenant violated
the rights of prospective Negro purchasers to equal protection, although no Negro
was a party to the suit. And see Meyer v. Nebraska, 262 U.S. 390 ; Adler v.
Board of Education, 342 U.S. 485 ; NAACP v. Alabama, 357 U.S. 449 ; NAACP
v. Button, 371 U.S. 415 . The rights of husband and wife, pressed here, are likely
to be diluted or adversely affected unless those rights are considered in a suit
involving those who have this kind of confidential relation to them.
Coming to the merits, we are met with a wide range of questions that implicate
the Due Process Clause of the Fourteenth Amendment. Overtones of some
arguments [381 U.S. 479, 482] suggest that Lochner v. New York, 198 U.S. 45 ,
should be our guide. But we decline that invitation as we did in West Coast Hotel
Co. v. Parrish, 300 U.S. 379 ; Olsen v. Nebraska, 313 U.S. 236 ; Lincoln Union v.
Northwestern Co., 335 U.S. 525 ; Williamson v. Lee Optical Co., 348 U.S. 483 ;
Giboney v. Empire Storage Co., 336 U.S. 490 . We do not sit as a super-
legislature to determine the wisdom, need, and propriety of laws that touch
economic problems, business affairs, or social conditions. This law, however,
operates directly on an intimate relation of husband and wife and their physician's
role in one aspect of that relation.
The association of people is not mentioned in the Constitution nor in the Bill of
Rights. The right to educate a child in a school of the parents' choice - whether
public or private or parochial - is also not mentioned. Nor is the right to study any
particular subject or any foreign language. Yet the First Amendment has been
construed to include certain of those rights.
By Pierce v. Society of Sisters, supra, the right to educate one's children as one
chooses is made applicable to the States by the force of the First and Fourteenth
Amendments. By Meyer v. Nebraska, supra, the same dignity is given the right to
study the German language in a private school. In other words, the State may not,
consistently with the spirit of the First Amendment, contract the spectrum of
available knowledge. The right of freedom of speech and press includes not only
the right to utter or to print, but the right to distribute, the right to receive, the
right to read (Martin v. Struthers, 319 U.S. 141, 143 ) and freedom of inquiry,
freedom of thought, and freedom to teach (see Wieman v. Updegraff, 344 U.S.
183, 195 ) - indeed the freedom of the entire university community. Sweezy v.
New Hampshire, 354 U.S. 234, 249 -250, 261-263; Barenblatt v. United States,
360 U.S. 109, 112 ; Baggett v. Bullitt, 377 U.S. 360, 369 . Without [381 U.S.
479, 483] those peripheral rights the specific rights would be less secure. And so
we reaffirm the principle of the Pierce and the Meyer cases.
132
Substantial Rights – The Right to Procreate
133
Lectures on the US Legal System
Privacy, 1962 Sup. Ct. Rev. 212; Griswold, The Right to be Let Alone, 55 Nw.
U. L. Rev. 216 (1960).
We have had many controversies over these penumbral rights of "privacy and
repose." See, e. g., Breard v. Alexandria, 341 U.S. 622, 626 , 644; Public Utilities
Comm'n v. Pollak, 343 U.S. 451 ; Monroe v. Pape, 365 U.S. 167 ; Lanza v. New
York, 370 U.S. 139 ; Frank v. Maryland, 359 U.S. 360 ; Skinner v. Oklahoma,
316 U.S. 535, 541 . These cases bear witness that the right of privacy which
presses for recognition here is a legitimate one.
The present case, then, concerns a relationship lying within the zone of privacy
created by several fundamental constitutional guarantees. And it concerns a law
which, in forbidding the use of contraceptives rather than regulating their
manufacture or sale, seeks to achieve its goals by means having a maximum
destructive impact upon that relationship. Such a law cannot stand in light of the
familiar principle, so often applied by this Court, that a "governmental purpose to
control or prevent activities constitutionally subject to state regulation may not be
achieved by means which sweep unnecessarily broadly and thereby invade the
area of protected freedoms." NAACP v. Alabama, 377 U.S. 288, 307 . Would we
allow the police to search the sacred precincts of marital bedrooms for telltale
signs of the use of contraceptives? The [381 U.S. 479, 486] very idea is
repulsive to the notions of privacy surrounding the marriage relationship.
We deal with a right of privacy older than the Bill of Rights - older than our
political parties, older than our school system. Marriage is a coming together for
better or for worse, hopefully enduring, and intimate to the degree of being
sacred. It is an association that promotes a way of life, not causes; a harmony in
living, not political faiths; a bilateral loyalty, not commercial or social projects.
Yet it is an association for as noble a purpose as any involved in our prior
decisions.
Reversed.
134
Substantial Rights – The Right to Die
No. 88-1503.
135
Lectures on the US Legal System
law, state courts have also turned to state statutes for guidance, see, e.g.,
Conservatorship of Drabick, 200 Cal.App. 3d 185, 245 Cal.Rptr. 840. However,
these sources are not available to this Court, where the question is simply whether
the Federal Constitution prohibits Missouri from choosing the rule of law which
it did. Pp. 269-278.
(b) A competent person has a liberty interest under the Due Process Clause in
refusing unwanted medical treatment. Cf., e.g., Jacobson v. Massachusetts, 197
U.S. 11, 24 -30. However, the question whether that constitutional right has been
violated must be determined by balancing the liberty interest against relevant
state interests. For purposes of this case, it is assumed that a competent person
would have a constitutionally protected right to refuse lifesaving hydration and
nutrition. This does not mean that an incompetent person should possess the same
right, since such a person is unable to make an informed and voluntary choice to
exercise that hypothetical right or any other right. While Missouri has in effect
recognized that, under certain circumstances, a surrogate may act for the patient
in electing to withdraw hydration and nutrition and thus cause death, it has
established a procedural safeguard to assure that the surrogate's action conforms
as best it may to the wishes expressed by the patient while competent. Pp. 280-
285.
(c) It is permissible for Missouri, in its proceedings, to apply a clear and
convincing evidence standard, which is an appropriate standard when the
individual interests at stake are both particularly important and more substantial
than mere loss of money, Santosky v. Kramer, 455 U.S. 745, 756 . Here, Missouri
has a general interest in the protection and preservation of human life, as well as
other, more particular interests, at stake. It may legitimately seek to safeguard the
personal element of an individual's choice between life and death. The State is
also entitled to guard against potential abuses by surrogates who may not act to
protect the patient. Similarly, it is entitled to consider that a judicial proceeding
regarding an incompetent's wishes may not be adversarial, with the added
guarantee of accurate factfinding that the adversary process brings with it. The
State may also properly decline to make judgments about the "quality" of a
particular individual's life, and simply assert an unqualified interest in the
preservation of human life to be weighed against the constitutionally protected
interests of the individual. It is self-evident that these interests are more
substantial, both on [497 U.S. 261, 263] an individual and societal level, than
those involved in a common civil dispute. The clear and convincing evidence
standard also serves as a societal judgment about how the risk of error should be
distributed between the litigants. Missouri may permissibly place the increased
risk of an erroneous decision on those seeking to terminate life-sustaining
treatment. An erroneous decision not to terminate results in a maintenance of the
status quo, with at least the potential that a wrong decision will eventually be
corrected or its impact mitigated by an event such as an advancement in medical
science or the patient's unexpected death. However, an erroneous decision to
withdraw such treatment is not susceptible of correction. Although Missouri's
proof requirement may have frustrated the effectuation of Cruzan's not-fully-
136
Substantial Rights – The Right to Die
expressed desires, the Constitution does not require general rules to work
flawlessly. Pp. 280-285.
2. The State Supreme Court did not commit constitutional error in concluding
that the evidence adduced at trial did not amount to clear and convincing proof of
Cruzan's desire to have hydration and nutrition withdrawn. The trial court had not
adopted a clear and convincing evidence standard, and Cruzan's observations that
she did not want to live life as a "vegetable" did not deal in terms with
withdrawal of medical treatment or of hydration and nutrition. P. 285.
3. The Due Process Clause does not require a State to accept the "substituted
judgment" of close family members in the absence of substantial proof that their
views reflect the patient's. This Court's decision upholding a State's favored
treatment of traditional family relationships, Michael H. v. Gerald D., 491 U.S.
110 , may not be turned into a constitutional requirement that a State must
recognize the primacy of these relationships in a situation like this. Nor may a
decision upholding a State's right to permit family decisionmaking, Parham v.
J.R., 442 U.S. 584 , be turned into a constitutional requirement that the State
recognize such decisionmaking. Nancy Cruzan's parents would surely be
qualified to exercise such a right of "substituted judgment" were it required by the
Constitution. However, for the same reasons that Missouri may require clear and
convincing evidence of a patient's wishes, it may also choose to defer only to
those wishes, rather than confide the decision to close family members. Pp. 285-
287.
760 S.W.2d 408, affirmed.
REHNQUIST, C.J., delivered the opinion of the Court, in which WHITE,
O'CONNOR, SCALIA, and KENNEDY, JJ., joined. O'CONNOR, J., post, p.
287, and SCALIA, J., post, p. 292, filed concurring opinions. BRENNAN, J.,
filed a dissenting opinion, in which MARSHALL and BLACKMUN, [497 U.S.
261, 264] JJ., joined, post, p. 301. STEVENS, J., filed a dissenting opinion,
post, p. 330.
William H. Colby argued the cause for petitioners. With him on the briefs were
David J. Waxse, Walter E. Williams, Edward J. Kelly III, John A. Powell, and
Steven R. Shapiro.
Robert L. Presson, Assistant Attorney General of Missouri, argued the cause for
respondent Director, Missouri Department of Health, et al. With him on the brief
were William L. Webster, Attorney General, and Robert Northcutt.
Thad C. McCanse, pro se, and David B. Mouton filed a brief for respondent
guardian ad litem.
Solicitor General Starr argued the cause for the United States as amicus curiae
urging affirmance. With him on the brief were Acting Assistant Attorney General
Schiffer, Deputy Solicitor General Merrill, and Brian J. Martin. *
137
Lectures on the US Legal System
[ Footnote * ] Briefs of amici curiae urging reversal were filed for the AIDS Civil
Rights Project by Walter R. Allan; for the American Academy of Neurology by
John H. Pickering; for the American College of Physicians by Nancy J.
Bregstein; for the American Geriatrics Society by Keith R. Anderson; for the
American Hospital Association by Paul W. Armstrong; for the American Medical
Association et al. by Rex E. Lee, Carter G. Phillips, Elizabeth H. Esty, Jack R.
Bierig, Russell M. Pelton, Paul G. Gebhard, Laurie R. Rockett, and Henry Hart;
for the Colorado Medical Society et al. by Garth C. Grissom; for Concern for
Dying by Henry Putzel III and George J. Annas; for the Evangelical Lutheran
Church in America by Susan D. Reece Martyn and Henry J. Bourguignon; for the
General Board of Church and Society of the United Methodist Church by Thomas
S. Martin and Magda Lopez; for Missouri Hospitals et al. by Mark A. Thornhill,
E.J. Holland, Jr., and John C. Shepherd; for the National Hospice Organization by
Barbara F. Mishkin and Walter A. Smith, Jr.; for the National Academy of Elder
Law Attorneys by Robert K. Huffman; for the Society of Critical Care Medicine
et al. by Stephan E. Lawton; for the Society for the Right to Die, Inc., by Fenella
Rouse; for Wisconsin Bioethicists et al. by Robyn S. Shapiro, Charles H. Barr,
and Jay A. Gold; for Barbara Burgoon et al. by Vicki Gottlich, Leslie Blair Fried,
and Stephanie M. Edelstein; and for John E. McConnell et al. by Stephen A.
Wise.
Briefs of amici curiae urging affirmance were filed for Agudath Israel of America
by David Zwiebel; for the American Academy of Medical Ethics by James Bopp,
Jr.; for the Association of American Physicians and [497 U.S. 261, 265]
Surgeons et al. by Edward R. Grant and Kent Masterson Brown; for the
Association for Retarded Citizens of the United States et al. by James Bopp, Jr.,
Thomas J. Marzen, and Stanley S. Herr; for the Catholic Lawyers Guild of the
Archdiocese of Boston, Inc., by Calum B, Anderson and Leonard F. Zandrow,
Jr.; for the District Attorney of Milwaukee County, Wisconsin, by E. Michael
McCann, pro se, and John M. Stoiber; for Doctors for Life et al. by David O.
Danis and Gerard F. Hempstead; for Families for Life et al. by Robert L. Mauro;
for Focus on the Family et al. by Clarke D. Forsythe, Paul Benjamin Linton, and
H. Robert Showers; for Free Speech Advocates et al. by Thomas Patrick
Monaghan and Jay Alan Sekulow; for the International Anti-Euthanasia Task
Force et al. by Jordan Lorence; for the Knights of Columbus by James H. Burnley
IV, Robert J. Cynkar, and Carl A. Anderson; for the National Right to Life
Committee, Inc., by James Bopp, Jr.; for the New Jersey Right to Life
Committee, Inc., et al. by Donald D. Campbell and Anne M. Perone; for the
Rutherford Institute et al. by John W. Whitehead, James J. Knicely, David E.
Morris, William B. Hollberg, Amy Dougherty, Thomas W. Strahan, William
Bonner, John F. Southworth, Jr., and W. Charles Bundren; for the United States
Catholic Conference by Mark E. Chopko and Phillip H. Harris; for the Value of
Life Committee, Inc., by Walter M. Weber; and for Elizabeth Sadowski et al. by
Robert L. Mauro.
138
Substantial Rights – The Right to Die
Briefs of amici curiae were filed for the American Nurses Association et al. by
Diane Trace Warlick; and for SSM Health Care System et al. by J. Jerome
Mansmann and Melanie DiPietro. [497 U.S. 261, 265]
CHIEF JUSTICE REHNQUIST delivered the opinion of the Court.
Petitioner Nancy Beth Cruzan was rendered incompetent as a result of severe
injuries sustained during an automobile accident. Copetitioners Lester and Joyce
Cruzan, Nancy's parents and coguardians, sought a court order directing the
withdrawal of their daughter's artificial feeding and hydration equipment after it
became apparent that she had virtually no chance of recovering her cognitive
faculties. The Supreme Court of Missouri held that, because there was no clear
and convincing evidence of Nancy's desire to have life-sustaining treatment
withdrawn under such circumstances, her parents lacked authority to effectuate
such a request. We granted certiorari, 492 U.S. 917 (1989), and now affirm. [497
U.S. 261, 266]
On the night of January 11, 1983, Nancy Cruzan lost control of her car as she
traveled down Elm Road in Jasper County, Missouri. The vehicle overturned, and
Cruzan was discovered lying face down in a ditch without detectable respiratory
or cardiac function. Paramedics were able to restore her breathing and heartbeat
at the accident site, and she was transported to a hospital in an unconscious state.
An attending neurosurgeon diagnosed her as having sustained probable cerebral
contusions compounded by significant anoxia (lack of oxygen). The Missouri
trial court in this case found that permanent brain damage generally results after 6
minutes in an anoxic state; it was estimated that Cruzan was deprived of oxygen
from 12 to 14 minutes. She remained in a coma for approximately three weeks,
and then progressed to an unconscious state in which she was able to orally ingest
some nutrition. In order to ease feeding and further the recovery, surgeons
implanted a gastrostomy feeding and hydration tube in Cruzan with the consent
of her then husband. Subsequent rehabilitative efforts proved unavailing. She
now lies in a Missouri state hospital in what is commonly referred to as a
persistent vegetative state: generally, a condition in which a person exhibits
motor reflexes but evinces no indications of significant cognitive function. 1 The
State of Missouri is bearing the cost of her care. [497 U.S. 261, 267]
After it had become apparent that Nancy Cruzan had virtually no chance of
regaining her mental faculties, her parents asked hospital employees to terminate
the artificial nutrition and hydration procedures. All agree that such a [497 U.S.
261, 268] removal would cause her death. The employees refused to honor the
request without court approval. The parents then sought and received
authorization from the state trial court for termination. The court found that a
person in Nancy's condition had a fundamental right under the State and Federal
Constitutions to refuse or direct the withdrawal of "death prolonging procedures."
App. to Pet. for Cert. A99. The court also found that Nancy's "expressed thoughts
at age twenty-five in somewhat serious conversation with a housemate friend
that, if sick or injured, she would not wish to continue her life unless she could
139
Lectures on the US Legal System
live at least halfway normally suggests that, given her present condition, she
would not wish to continue on with her nutrition and hydration." Id., at A97-A98.
The Supreme Court of Missouri reversed by a divided vote. The court recognized
a right to refuse treatment embodied in the Common law doctrine of informed
consent, but expressed skepticism about the application of that doctrine in the
circumstances of this case. Cruzan v. Harmon, 760 S.W.2d 408, 416-417 (1988)
(en banc). The court also declined to read a broad right of privacy into the State
Constitution which would "support the right of a person to refuse medical
treatment in every circumstance," and expressed doubt as to whether such a right
existed under the United States Constitution. Id., at 417-418. It then decided that
the Missouri Living Will statute, Mo.Rev.Stat. 459.010 et seq. (1986), embodied
a state policy strongly favoring the preservation of life. 760 S.W.2d, at 419-420.
The court found that Cruzan's statements to her roommate regarding her desire to
live or die under certain conditions were "unreliable for the purpose of
determining her intent," id., at 424, "and thus insufficient to support the
coguardians['] claim to exercise substituted judgment on Nancy's behalf." Id., at
426. It rejected the argument that Cruzan's parents were entitled to order the
termination of her medical treatment, [497 U.S. 261, 269] concluding that "no
person can assume that choice for an incompetent in the absence of the
formalities required under Missouri's Living Will statutes or the clear and
convincing, inherently reliable evidence absent here." Id., at 425. The court also
expressed its view that "[b]road policy questions bearing on life and death are
more properly addressed by representative assemblies" than judicial bodies. Id.,
at 426.
We granted certiorari to consider the question of whether Cruzan has a right
under the United States Constitution which would require the hospital to
withdraw life-sustaining treatment from her under these circumstances.
At Common law, even the touching of one person by another without consent and
without legal justification was a battery. See W. Keeton, D. Dobbs, R. Keeton, &
D. Owen, Prosser and Keeton on Law of Torts 9, pp. 39-42 (5th ed. 1984). Before
the turn of the century, this Court observed that "[n]o right is held more sacred, or
is more carefully guarded by the Common law, than the right of every individual
to the possession and control of his own person, free from all restraint or
interference of others, unless by clear and unquestionable authority of law."
Union Pacific R. Co. v. Botsford, 141 U.S. 250, 251 (1891). This notion of bodily
integrity has been embodied in the requirement that informed consent is generally
required for medical treatment. Justice Cardozo, while on the Court of Appeals of
New York, aptly described this doctrine: "Every human being of adult years and
sound mind has a right to determine what shall be done with his own body, and a
surgeon who performs an operation without his patient's consent commits an
assault, for which he is liable in damages." Schloendorff v. Society of New York
Hospital, 211 N.Y. 125, 129-30, 105 N.E. 92, 93 (1914). The informed consent
doctrine has become firmly entrenched in American tort law. See Dobbs, Keeton,
& Owen, supra, 32, pp. 189-192; F. Rozovsky, Consent to Treatment, A Practical
Guide 1-98 (2d ed. 1990). [497 U.S. 261, 270]
140
Substantial Rights – The Right to Die
The logical corollary of the doctrine of informed consent is that the patient
generally possesses the right not to consent, that is, to refuse treatment. Until
about 15 years ago and the seminal decision in In re Quinlan, 70 N.J. 10, 355
A.2d 647, cert. denied sub nom. Garger v. New Jersey, 429 U.S. 922 (1976), the
number of right-to-refuse-treatment decisions were relatively few. 2 Most of the
earlier cases involved patients who refused medical treatment forbidden by their
religious beliefs, thus implicating First Amendment rights as well as Common
law rights of self-determination. 3 More recently, however, with the advance of
medical technology capable of sustaining life well past the point where natural
forces would have brought certain death in earlier times, cases involving the right
to refuse life-sustaining treatment have burgeoned. See 760 S.W.2d at 412, n. 4
(collecting 54 reported decisions from 1976 through 1988).
In the Quinlan case, young Karen Quinlan suffered severe brain damage as the
result of anoxia, and entered a persistent vegetative state. Karen's father sought
judicial approval to disconnect his daughter's respirator. The New Jersey
Supreme Court granted the relief, holding that Karen had a right of privacy
grounded in the Federal Constitution to terminate treatment. In re Quinlan, 70
N.J. at 38-42, 355 A.2d at 662-664. Recognizing that this right was not absolute,
however, the court balanced it against asserted state interests. Noting that the
State's interest "weakens and the individual's right to privacy grows as the degree
of bodily invasion increases and the prognosis dims," the court concluded that the
state interests had to give way in that case. Id., at [497 U.S. 261, 271] 41, 355
A.2d at 664. The court also concluded that the "only practical way" to prevent the
loss of Karen's privacy right due to her incompetence was to allow her guardian
and family to decide "whether she would exercise it in these circumstances." Ibid.
After Quinlan, however, most courts have based a right to refuse treatment either
solely on the Common law right to informed consent or on both the Common law
right and a constitutional privacy right. See L. Tribe, American Constitutional
Law 15-11, p. 1365 (2d ed. 1988). In Superintendent of Belchertown State School
v. Saikewicz, 373 Mass. 728, 370 N.E.2d 417 (1977), the Supreme Judicial Court
of Massachusetts relied on both the right of privacy and the right of informed
consent to permit the withholding of chemotherapy from a profoundly-retarded
67-year-old man suffering from leukemia. Id., at 737-738, 370 N.E.2d at 424.
Reasoning that an incompetent person retains the same rights as a competent
individual "because the value of human dignity extends to both," the court
adopted a "substituted judgment" standard whereby courts were to determine
what an incompetent individual's decision would have been under the
circumstances. Id., at 745, 752-753, 757-758, 370 N.E.2d at 427, 431, 434.
Distilling certain state interests from prior case law - the preservation of life, the
protection of the interests of innocent third parties, the prevention of suicide, and
the maintenance of the ethical integrity of the medical profession - the court
recognized the first interest as paramount and noted it was greatest when an
affliction was curable, "as opposed to the State interest where, as here, the issue is
not whether, but when, for how long, and at what cost to the individual [a] life
may be briefly extended." Id., at 742, 370 N.E.2d at 426.
141
Lectures on the US Legal System
In In re Storar, 52 N.Y.2d 363, 438 N.Y.S.2d 266, 420 N.E.2d 64, cert. denied,
454 U.S. 858 (1981), the New York Court of Appeals declined to base a right to
refuse treatment on a constitutional privacy right. Instead, it found such a right
"adequately [497 U.S. 261, 272] supported" by the informed consent doctrine.
Id., at 376-377, 420 N.E.2d at 70. In In re Eichner (decided with In re Storar,
supra), an 83-year-old man who had suffered brain damage from anoxia entered a
vegetative state and was thus incompetent to consent to the removal of his
respirator. The court, however, found it unnecessary to reach the question of
whether his rights could be exercised by others, since it found the evidence clear
and convincing from statements made by the patient when competent that he "did
not want to be maintained in a vegetative coma by use of a respirator." Id., at 380,
420 N.E.2d at 72. In the companion Storar case, a 52-year-old man suffering
from bladder cancer had been profoundly retarded during most of his life.
Implicitly rejecting the approach taken in Saikewicz, supra, the court reasoned
that, due to such life-long incompetency, "it is unrealistic to attempt to determine
whether he would want to continue potentially life-prolonging treatment if he
were competent." 52 N.Y.2d at 380, 420 N.E.2d at 72. As the evidence showed
that the patient's required blood transfusions did not involve excessive pain and,
without them, his mental and physical abilities would deteriorate, the court
concluded that it should not "allow an incompetent patient to bleed to death
because someone, even someone as close as a parent or sibling, feels that this is
best for one with an incurable disease." Id., at 382, 420 N.E.2d, at 73.
Many of the later cases build on the principles established in Quinlan, Saikewicz
and Storar/Eichner. For instance, in In re Conroy, 98 N.J. 321, 486 A.2d 1209
(1985), the same court that decided Quinlan considered whether a nasogastric
feeding tube could be removed from an 84-year-old incompetent nursing-home
resident suffering irreversible mental and physical ailments. While recognizing
that a federal right of privacy might apply in the case, the court, contrary to its
approach in Quinlan, decided to base its decision on the Common law right to
self-determination and informed consent. [497 U.S. 261, 273] 98 N.J. at 348,
486 A.2d at 1223. "On balance, the right to self-determination ordinarily
outweighs any countervailing state interests, and competent persons generally are
permitted to refuse medical treatment, even at the risk of death. Most of the cases
that have held otherwise, unless they involved the interest in protecting innocent
third parties, have concerned the patient's competency to make a rational and
considered choice." Id., at 353-354, 486 A.2d at 1225.
Reasoning that the right of self-determination should not be lost merely because
an individual is unable to sense a violation of it, the court held that incompetent
individuals retain a right to refuse treatment. It also held that such a right could be
exercised by a surrogate decisionmaker using a "subjective" standard when there
was clear evidence that the incompetent person would have exercised it. Where
such evidence was lacking, the court held that an individual's right could still be
invoked in certain circumstances under objective "best interest" standards. Id., at
361-368, 486 A.2d at 1229-1233. Thus, if some trustworthy evidence existed that
the individual would have wanted to terminate treatment, but not enough to
142
Substantial Rights – The Right to Die
clearly establish a person's wishes for purposes of the subjective standard, and the
burden of a prolonged life from the experience of pain and suffering markedly
outweighed its satisfactions, treatment could be terminated under a "limited-
objective" standard. Where no trustworthy evidence existed, and a person's
suffering would make the administration of life-sustaining treatment inhumane, a
"pure-objective" standard could be used to terminate treatment. If none of these
conditions obtained, the court held it was best to err in favor of preserving life.
Id., at 364-368, 486 A.2d at 1231-1233.
The court also rejected certain categorical distinctions that had been drawn in
prior refusal-of-treatment cases as lacking substance for decision purposes: the
distinction between actively hastening death by terminating treatment and
passively [497 U.S. 261, 274] allowing a person to die of a disease; between
treating individuals as an initial matter versus withdrawing treatment afterwards;
between ordinary versus extraordinary treatment; and between treatment by
artificial feeding versus other forms of life-sustaining medical procedures. Id., at
369-374, 486 A.2d at 1233-1237. As to the last item, the court acknowledged the
"emotional significance" of food, but noted that feeding by implanted tubes is a
"medical procedur[e] with inherent risks and possible side effects, instituted by
skilled healthcare providers to compensate for impaired physical functioning"
which analytically was equivalent to artificial breathing using a respirator. Id., at
373, 486 A.2d at 1236. 4
In contrast to Conroy, the Court of Appeals of New York recently refused to
accept less than the clearly expressed wishes of a patient before permitting the
exercise of her right to refuse treatment by a surrogate decisionmaker. In re
Westchester County Medical Center on behalf of O'Connor, 72 N.Y.2d 517, 534
N.Y.S.2d 886, 531 N.E.2d 607 (1988) (O'Connor). There, the court, over the
objection of the patient's family members, granted an order to insert a feeding
tube into a 77-year-old [497 U.S. 261, 275] woman rendered incompetent as a
result of several strokes. While continuing to recognize a Common law right to
refuse treatment, the court rejected the substituted judgment approach for
asserting it "because it is inconsistent with our fundamental commitment to the
notion that no person or court should substitute its judgment as to what would be
an acceptable quality of life for another. Consequently, we adhere to the view
that, despite its pitfalls and inevitable uncertainties, the inquiry must always be
narrowed to the patient's expressed intent, with every effort made to minimize the
opportunity for error." Id., at 530, 531 N.E.2d, at 613 (citation omitted). The
court held that the record lacked the requisite clear and convincing evidence of
the patient's expressed intent to withhold life-sustaining treatment. Id., at 531-
534, 531 N.E.2d, at 613-615.
Other courts have found state statutory law relevant to the resolution of these
issues. In Conservatorship of Drabick, 200 Cal.App. 3d 185, 245 Cal.Rptr. 840,
cert. denied, 488 U.S. 958 (1988), the California Court of Appeal authorized the
removal of a nasogastric feeding tube from a 44-year-old man who was in a
persistent vegetative state as a result of an auto accident. Noting that the right to
refuse treatment was grounded in both the Common law and a constitutional right
143
Lectures on the US Legal System
of privacy, the court held that a state probate statute authorized the patient's
conservator to order the withdrawal of life-sustaining treatment when such a
decision was made in good faith based on medical advice and the conservatee's
best interests. While acknowledging that "to claim that [a patient's] `right to
choose' survives incompetence is a legal fiction at best," the court reasoned that
the respect society accords to persons as individuals is not lost upon
incompetence, and is best preserved by allowing others "to make a decision that
reflects [a patient's] interests more closely than would a purely technological
decision to do whatever is possible." 5 [497 U.S. 261, 276] Id., at 208, 245
Cal.Rptr., at 854-855. See also In re Conservatorship of Torres, 357 N.W.2d 332
(Minn. 1984) (Minnesota court had constitutional and statutory authority to
authorize a conservator to order the removal of an incompetent individual's
respirator since in patient's best interests).
In In re Estate of Longeway, 133 Ill.2d 33, 549 N.E.2d 292 (1989), the Supreme
Court of Illinois considered whether a 76-year-old woman rendered incompetent
from a series of strokes had a right to the discontinuance of artificial nutrition and
hydration. Noting that the boundaries of a federal right of privacy were uncertain,
the court found a right to refuse treatment in the doctrine of informed consent.
Id., at 43-45, 549 N.E.2d at 296-297. The court further held that the State Probate
Act impliedly authorized a guardian to exercise a ward's right to refuse artificial
sustenance in the event that the ward was terminally ill and irreversibly comatose.
Id., at 45-47, 549 N.E.2d at 298. Declining to adopt a best interests standard for
deciding when it would be appropriate to exercise a ward's right because it "lets
another make a determination of a patient's quality of life," the court opted
instead for a substituted judgment standard. Id., at 49, 549 N.E.2d at 299. Finding
the "expressed intent" standard utilized in O'Connor, supra, too rigid, the court
noted that other clear and convincing evidence of the patient's intent could be
considered. 133 Ill.2d, at 50-51, 549 N.E.2d, at 300. The court also adopted the
"consensus opinion [that] treats artificial nutrition and hydration as medical
treatment." Id., at 42, 549 N.E.2d at 296. Cf. McConnell v. Beverly Enterprises-
Connecticut, Inc., 209 Conn. 692, 705, [497 U.S. 261, 277] 553 A.2d 596, 603
(1989) (right to withdraw artificial nutrition and hydration found in the
Connecticut Removal of Life Support Systems Act, which "provid[es] functional
guidelines for the exercise of the Common law and constitutional rights of self-
determination"; attending physician authorized to remove treatment after finding
that patient is in a terminal condition, obtaining consent of family, and
considering expressed wishes of patient). 6
As these cases demonstrate, the Common law doctrine of informed consent is
viewed as generally encompassing the right of a competent individual to refuse
medical treatment. Beyond that, these decisions demonstrate both similarity and
diversity in their approach to decision of what all agree is a perplexing question
with unusually strong moral and ethical overtones. State courts have available to
them for decision a number of sources - state constitutions, statutes, and Common
law - which are not available to us. In this Court, the question is simply and
starkly whether the United States Constitution prohibits Missouri from choosing
144
Substantial Rights – The Right to Die
the rule of decision which it did. This is the first case in which we have been
squarely presented with the issue of whether the United States Constitution grants
what is in common parlance referred to as a "right to die." We follow the
judicious counsel of our decision in Twin City Bank v. Nebeker, 167 U.S. 196,
202 (1897), where we said that, in deciding "a question [497 U.S. 261, 278] of
such magnitude and importance . . . it is the [better] part of wisdom not to
attempt, by any general statement, to cover every possible phase of the subject."
The Fourteenth Amendment provides that no State shall "deprive any person of
life, liberty, or property, without due process of law." The principle that a
competent person has a constitutionally protected liberty interest in refusing
unwanted medical treatment may be inferred from our prior decisions. In
Jacobson v. Massachusetts, 197 U.S. 11, 24 -30 (1905), for instance, the Court
balanced an individual's liberty interest in declining an unwanted smallpox
vaccine against the State's interest in preventing disease. Decisions prior to the
incorporation of the Fourth Amendment into the Fourteenth Amendment
analyzed searches and seizures involving the body under the Due Process Clause
and were thought to implicate substantial liberty interests. See, e.g., Breithaupt v.
Abram, 352 U.S. 432, 439 (1957) ("As against the right of an individual that his
person be held inviolable . . . must be set the interests of society. . . .")
Just this Term, in the course of holding that a State's procedures for administering
antipsychotic medication to prisoners were sufficient to satisfy due process
concerns, we recognized that prisoners possess "a significant liberty interest in
avoiding the unwanted administration of antipsychotic drugs under the Due
Process Clause of the Fourteenth Amendment." Washington v. Harper, 494 U.S.
210, 221 -222 (1990); see also id., at 229 ("The forcible injection of medication
into a nonconsenting person's body represents a substantial interference with that
person's liberty"). Still other cases support the recognition of a general liberty
interest in refusing medical treatment. Vitek v. Jones, 445 U.S. 480, 494 (1980)
(transfer to mental hospital coupled with mandatory behavior modification
treatment implicated liberty interests); Parham v. J.R., 442 U.S. 584, 600 (1979)
("a child, in common with adults, has a substantial liberty [497 U.S. 261, 279]
interest in not being confined unnecessarily for medical treatment").
But determining that a person has a "liberty interest" under the Due Process
Clause does not end the inquiry; 7 "whether respondent's constitutional rights
have been violated must be determined by balancing his liberty interests against
the relevant state interests." Youngberg v. Romeo, 457 U.S. 307, 321 (1982). See
also Mills v. Rogers, 457 U.S. 291, 299 (1982).
Petitioners insist that, under the general holdings of our cases, the forced
administration of life-sustaining medical treatment, and even of artificially-
delivered food and water essential to life, would implicate a competent person's
liberty interest. Although we think the logic of the cases discussed above would
embrace such a liberty interest, the dramatic consequences involved in refusal of
such treatment would inform the inquiry as to whether the deprivation of that
interest is constitutionally permissible. But for purposes of this case, we assume
145
Lectures on the US Legal System
146
Substantial Rights – The Right to Die
147
Lectures on the US Legal System
148
Substantial Rights – The Right to Die
149
Lectures on the US Legal System
150
Part III – The Law
21
The Kurt Goedel Society, http://www.logic.at/kgs/home.html.
22
John McIntosh, http://urticator.net, <what is law?>.
151
Lectures on the US Legal System
152
Lecture # 9 – Self-government, Law and
Democracy
At the end of the 19th century Congress started to delegate some powers to
special ad hoc commissions, and this movement since then never stopped.
Roughly there have been three waves. The first commission to be created
had been the Interstate Commerce Commission in 1887, in charge of
regulating train tariffs. The second wave started with the New Deal, and
the creation of, among others, the Securities Exchange Commission (SEC)
and the Social Security Agency (SSA). The last wave covered more or less
the period 1960-1970 in regard to environment and health: among others,
the creation of the Environmental Protection Agency, the Consumer
Product Safety Commission, etc..
Section 553 (c) of the U.S.C. aims to give the answer in the following
prescription:
153
Lectures on the US Legal System
(c) After notice required by this section, the agency shall give
interested persons an opportunity to participate in the rule
making through submission of written data, views, or
arguments with or without opportunity for oral presentation.
After consideration of the relevant matter presented, the agency
shall incorporate in the rules adopted a concise general statement of
their basis and purpose. When rules are required by statute to be
made on the record after opportunity for an agency hearing, sections
556 and 557 of this title apply instead of this subsection.
23
US v. Nova Scotia Food Products Corp (1977).
See also : The OALJ Law Library (http://www.oalj.dol.gov/libapa.htm)
and the Manual for Administrative Law Judges
(http://www.oalj.dol.gov/public/apa/refrnc/aljmantc.htm).
154
International law v. Municipal law
“This Constitution, and the Laws of the United States which shall be made in
Pursuance thereof; and all Treaties made, or which shall be made, under the
Authority of the United States, shall be the supreme Law of the Land; and the
Judges in every State shall be bound thereby, any Thing in the Constitution or
Laws of any state to the Contrary notwithstanding”.
The formulation of the text does not permit to conclude that there is a real
choice for one or the other above-mentioned systems. However, the ruling
of the Supreme Court in Whitney v. Robertson24 leads us to the conclusion
that the United States opted for a dualistic approach.
24
124 US 190 (1888).
25
Cited by Vagts, The United States and its Treaties:Oberservance and Breach,
AJIL, 2001.313, 314.
155
Lectures on the US Legal System
conclude that the latest sovereign act should prevail. Proponents of the
second reason saw no justification for preferring an act in which only two
parties – the President and the Senate – cooperate over another one in
which the House of Representatives also intervened. It is this last reason
that lead Justice Benjamin Robbins Curtis to defend the later-in-time rule:
“By a treaty with a foreign nation, the United States may rightfully stipulate that
the Congress will or will not exercise its legislative power in some particular
manner, on some particular subject. Such promises when made, should be
voluntary kept, with the most scrupulous good faith. But that a treaty with a
foreign nation can deprive the Congress of any part of the legislative power
conferred by the people, so that it no longer can legislate as it was empowered by
the Constitution to do, I more than doubt”26.
As a body, the Supreme Court for the first time adopted the later-in-time
rule in The Cherokee Tobacco27 and in the Head Money Cases28. Through
the adoption of the lex posterior derogat priori principle, any new federal
statute can override in the national legal order a treaty. As illustrated in
the Whitney v. Robertson case, “by the Constitution, a treaty is placed on
the same footing, and made of like obligation, with an act of legislation.
Both are declared by that instrument to be the supreme law of the land,
and no superior efficacy is given to either over the other. When the two
relate to the same subject, the courts will always endeavor to construe
them as to give effect to both, if that can be done without violating the
language of either; but, if the two are inconsistent, the one last in date will
control the other”29. This does not mean, however, that this can override
the international obligations of the United States30.
26
Cited by Vagts, op.cit., 315.
27
78 US 616 (1870).
28
Edye v. Robertson, 112 US 580 (1884).
29
Furthermore, the Court underlines that “if the country with which the treaty is
made is dissatisfied with the action of the legislative department, it may
present its complaint to the executive head of the governement, and take such
other measures as it may deem essential for the protection of its interests. The
courts can aford no redress. Whether the complaining nation has just cause of
complaint, or our country was justified in its legislation, are not matters for
judicial cognizance”.
30
Cf Restatement (Third) §115. For a practical application, see for exemple: ICJ,
LaGrand, Germany v. U.S., 27/6/2001; Avena, Mexico v. U.S., 31/3/2004.
156
International law v. Municipal law
From a constitutional point of view, state law is the main source of the
legal system. However, from a practical point of view, through the impact
of the Supremacy clause of Article VI, federal law takes more and more
over state law.
157
Lectures on the US Legal System
158
International law v. Municipal law
31 March 2004
CASE CONCERNING AVENA AND OTHER MEXICAN NATIONALS
(MEXICO v. UNITED STATES OF AMERICA)
Facts of the case • Article 36 of the Vienna Convention on Consular
Relations of
24 April 1963.
**
**
32
Graham, Los extranjeros condenados a muerte en los Estados Unidos de
América y sus derechos consulares, Lex Artis, Udem, 2006.
159
Lectures on the US Legal System
**
Admissibility of Mexico’s claims.
160
International law v. Municipal law
Article 36, paragraph 1 (a) and (c) • Interrelated nature of the three
subparagraphs of paragraph 1 • Violation by United States of the obligation to
enable Mexican consular officers to communicate with, have access to and visit
their nationals in 49 cases • Violation by United States of the obligation to enable
Mexican consular officers to arrange for legal representation of their nationals in
34 cases.
161
Lectures on the US Legal System
JUDGMENT
Present: President SHI; Vice-President RANJEVA; Judges
GUILLAUME, KOROMA, VERESHCHETIN, HIGGINS, PARRA-
ARANGUREN, KOOIJMANS, REZEK, AL-KHASAWNEH,
BUERGENTHAL, ELARABY, OWADA, TOMKA;
Judge ad hoc SEPÚLVEDA; Registrar COUVREUR.
Between
represented by
as Agent;
162
International law v. Municipal law
as Advisers;
163
Lectures on the US Legal System
as Assistant,
and
represented by
as Agent;
as Co-Agent;
164
International law v. Municipal law
as Counsel;
as Administrative Staff,
THE COURT,
composed as above,
after deliberation,
165
Lectures on the US Legal System
3. On 9 January 2003, the day on which the Application was filed, the
Mexican Government also filed in the Registry of the Court a request for the
indication of provisional measures based on Article 41 of the Statute and Articles
73, 74 and 75 of the Rules of Court.
“(a) The United States of America shall take all measures necessary to
ensure that Mr. César Roberto Fierro Reyna, Mr. Roberto Moreno Ramos and
Mr. Osvaldo Torres Aguilera are not executed pending final judgment in these
proceedings;
(b) The Government of the United States of America shall inform the
Court of all measures taken in implementation of this Order.”
It further decided that, “until the Court has rendered its final judgment, it
shall remain seised of the matters” which formed the subject of that Order.
166
International law v. Municipal law
By a letter dated 20 June 2003 and received in the Registry on the same
day, the Agent of Mexico informed the Court that Mexico was unable for
technical reasons to file the original of its Memorial on time and accordingly
asked the Court to decide, under Article 44, paragraph 3, of the Rules of Court,
that the filing of the Memorial after the expiration of the time-limit fixed
therefore would be considered as valid; that letter was accompanied by two
electronic copies of the Memorial and its annexes. Mexico having filed the
original of the Memorial on 23 June 2003 and the United States having informed
the Court, by a letter of 24 June 2003, that it had no comment to make on the
matter, the Court decided on 25 June 2003 that the filing would be considered as
valid.
167
Lectures on the US Legal System
He also informed the Parties that the Court had taken note that the
United States had made no objection to the withdrawal by Mexico of its request
for relief in the cases of Mr. Zambrano and Mr. Hernández.
10. Pursuant to Article 53, paragraph 2, of its Rules, the Court, having
consulted the Parties, decided that copies of the pleadings and documents
annexed would be made accessible to the public on the opening of the oral
proceedings.
168
International law v. Municipal law
“The Government of the United Mexican States therefore asks the Court
to adjudge and declare:
(1) that the United States, in arresting, detaining, trying, convicting, and
sentencing the 54 Mexican nationals on death row described in this Application,
violated its international legal obligations to Mexico, in its own right and in the
exercise of its right of consular protection of its nationals, as provided by Articles
5 and 36, respectively of the Vienna Convention;
(3) that the United States is under an international legal obligation not to
apply the doctrine of procedural default, or any other doctrine of its municipal
law, to preclude the exercise of the rights afforded by Article 36 of the Vienna
Convention;
(5) that the right to consular notification under the Vienna Convention is
a human right; and that, pursuant to the foregoing international legal obligations,
(1) the United States must restore the status quo ante, that is, re-establish
the situation that existed before the detention of, proceedings against, and
convictions and sentences of, Mexico’s nationals in violation of the United States
international legal obligations;
(2) the United States must take the steps necessary and sufficient to
ensure that the provisions of its municipal law enable full effect to be given to the
purposes for which the rights afforded by Article 36 are intended;
169
Lectures on the US Legal System
(3) the United States must take the steps necessary and sufficient to
establish a meaningful remedy at law for violations of the rights afforded to
Mexico and its nationals by Article 36 of the Vienna Convention, including by
barring the imposition, as a matter of municipal law, of any procedural penalty
for the failure timely to raise a claim or defence based on the Vienna Convention
where competent authorities of the United States have breached their obligation
to advise the national of his or her rights under the Convention; and
(4) the United States, in light of the pattern and practice of violations set
forth in this Application, must provide Mexico a full guarantee of the non-
repetition of the illegal acts.”
in the Memorial:
(1) that the United States, in arresting, detaining, trying, convicting, and
sentencing the fifty-four Mexican nationals on death row described in Mexico’s
Application and this Memorial, violated its international legal obligations to
Mexico, in its own right and in the exercise of its right of diplomatic protection of
its nationals, as provided by Article 36 of the Vienna Convention;
(3) that the United States, in applying the doctrine of procedural default,
or any other doctrine of its municipal law, to preclude the exercise and review of
the rights afforded by Article 36 of the Vienna Convention, violated its
international legal obligations to Mexico, in its own right and in the exercise of
its right of diplomatic protection of its nationals, as provided by Article 36 of the
Vienna Convention; and
170
International law v. Municipal law
(2) the United States, in light of the regular and continuous violations set
forth in Mexico’s Application and Memorial, is under an obligation to take all
legislative, executive, and judicial steps necessary to:
(a) ensure that the regular and continuing violations of the Article 36
consular notification, access, and assistance rights of Mexico and its nationals
cease;
(b) guarantee that its competent authorities, of federal, state, and local
jurisdiction, maintain regular and routine compliance with their Article 36
obligations;
171
Lectures on the US Legal System
(c) ensure that its judicial authorities cease applying, and guarantee that
in the future they will not apply:
(i) any procedural penalty for a Mexican national’s failure timely to raise
a claim or defense based on the Vienna Convention where competent authorities
of the United States have breached their obligation to advise the national of his or
her rights under the Convention;
(ii) any municipal law doctrine or judicial holding that prevents a court
in the United States from providing a remedy, including the relief to which this
Court holds that Mexico is entitled here, to a Mexican national whose Article 36
rights have been violated; and
in the Counter-Memorial:
“On the basis of the facts and arguments set out above, the Government
of the United States of America requests that the Court adjudge and declare that
the claims of the United Mexican States are dismissed.”
172
International law v. Municipal law
access before the competent authorities of the receiving State take any action
potentially detrimental to the foreign national’s rights;
(3) That the United States of America violated its obligations under
Article 36 (2) of the Vienna Convention by failing to provide meaningful and
effective review and reconsideration of convictions and sentences impaired by a
violation of Article 36 (1); by substituting for such review and reconsideration
clemency proceedings; and by applying the “procedural default” doctrine and
other municipal law doctrines that fail to attach legal significance to an Article 36
(1) violation on its own terms;
(4) That pursuant to the injuries suffered by Mexico in its own right and
in the exercise of diplomatic protection of its nationals, Mexico is entitled to full
reparation for those injuries in the form of restitutio in integrum;
(5) That this restitution consists of the obligation to restore the status
quo ante by annulling or otherwise depriving of full force or effect the
convictions and sentences of all 52 Mexican nationals;
(6) That this restitution also includes the obligation to take all measures
necessary to ensure that a prior violation of Article 36 shall not affect the
subsequent proceedings;
(7) That to the extent that any of the 52 convictions or sentences are not
annulled, the United States shall provide, by means of its own choosing,
meaningful and effective review and reconsideration of the convictions and
sentences of the 52 nationals, and that this obligation cannot be satisfied by
means of clemency proceedings or if any municipal law rule or doctrine
inconsistent with paragraph (3) above is applied; and
(8) That the United States of America shall cease its violations of Article
36 of the Vienna Convention with regard to Mexico and its 52 nationals and shall
provide appropriate guarantees and assurances that it shall take measures
sufficient to achieve increased compliance with Article 36 (1) and to ensure
compliance with Article 36 (2).”
“On the basis of the facts and arguments made by the United States in its
Counter-Memorial and in these proceedings, the Government of the
United States of America requests that the Court, taking into account
that the United States has conformed its conduct to this Court’s
Judgment in the LaGrand Case (Germany v. United States of America),
not only with respect to German nationals but, consistent with the
Declaration of the President of the Court in that case, to all detained
173
Lectures on the US Legal System
foreign nationals, adjudge and declare that the claims of the United
Mexican States are dismissed.”
*
**
15. The present proceedings have been brought by Mexico against the United
States on the basis of the Vienna Convention, and of the Optional Protocol
providing for the jurisdiction of the Court over “disputes arising out of the
interpretation or application” of the Convention. Mexico and the United States
are, and were at all relevant times, parties to the Vienna Convention and to the
Optional Protocol. Mexico claims that the United States has committed breaches
of the Vienna Convention in relation to the treatment of a number of Mexican
nationals who have been tried, convicted and sentenced to death in criminal
proceedings in the United States. The original claim related to 54 such persons,
but as a result of subsequent adjustments to its claim made by Mexico (see
paragraph 7 above), only 52 individual cases are involved. These criminal
proceedings have been taking place in nine different States of the United States,
namely California (28 cases), Texas (15 cases), Illinois (three cases), Arizona
(one case), Arkansas (one case), Nevada (one case), Ohio (one case), Oklahoma
(one case) and Oregon (one case), between 1979 and the present.
16. For convenience, the names of the 52 individuals, and the numbers
by which their cases will be referred to, are set out below:
1. Carlos Avena Guillen
2. Héctor Juan Ayala
3. Vicente Benavides Figueroa
4. Constantino Carrera Montenegro
5. Jorge Contreras López
6. Daniel Covarrubias Sánchez
7. Marcos Esquivel Barrera
8. Rubén Gómez Pérez
9. Jaime Armando Hoyos
10. Arturo Juárez Suárez
11. Juan Manuel López
12. José Lupercio Casares
13. Luis Alberto Maciel Hernández
14. Abelino Manríquez Jáquez
15. Omar Fuentes Martínez (a.k.a. Luis Aviles de la Cruz)
16. Miguel Angel Martínez Sánchez
17. Martín Mendoza García
18. Sergio Ochoa Tamayo
19. Enrique Parra Dueñas
20. Juan de Dios Ramírez Villa
21. Magdaleno Salazar
22. Ramón Salcido Bojórquez
174
International law v. Municipal law
175
Lectures on the US Legal System
reasons to be explained below (see paragraphs 98 et seq.), that the United States
is also in breach of paragraph 1 (a) and (c) and of paragraph 2 of Article 36, in
view of the relationship of these provisions with paragraph 1 (b).
176
International law v. Municipal law
21. On 9 January 2003, the day on which Mexico filed its Application
and a request for the indication of provisional measures, all 52 individuals the
subject of the claims were on death row. However, two days later the Governor of
the State of Illinois, exercising his power of clemency review, commuted the
sentences of all convicted individuals awaiting execution in that State, including
those of three individuals named in Mexico’s Application (Mr. Caballero (case
No. 45), Mr. Flores (case No. 46) and Mr. Solache (case No. 47)). By a letter
dated 20 January 2003, Mexico informed the Court that, further to that decision,
it withdrew its request for the indication of provisional measures on behalf of
these three individuals, but that its Application remained unchanged. In the Order
of 5 February 2003, mentioned in paragraph 3 above, on the request by Mexico
for the indication of provisional measures, the Court considered that it was
apparent from the information before it that the three Mexican nationals named in
the Application who had exhausted all judicial remedies in the United States (see
paragraph 20 above) were at risk of execution in the following months, or even
weeks. Consequently, it ordered by way of provisional measure that the United
States take all measures necessary to ensure that these individuals would not be
executed pending final judgment in these proceedings. The Court notes that, at
the date of the present Judgment, these three individuals have not been executed,
but further notes with great concern that, by an Order dated 1 March 2004, the
Oklahoma Court of Criminal Appeals has set an execution date of 18 May 2004
for Mr. Torres.
*
**
22. As noted above, the present dispute has been brought before the
Court by Mexico on the basis of the Vienna Convention and the Optional
Protocol to that Convention. Article I of the Optional Protocol provides:
177
Lectures on the US Legal System
the objections raised by the United States are inadmissible as having been raised
after the expiration of the time-limit laid down by the Rules of Court. Mexico
draws attention to the text of Article 79, paragraph 1, of the Rules of Court as
amended in 2000, which provides that
24. The United States has observed that, during the proceedings on the
request made by Mexico for the indication of provisional measures in this case, it
specifically reserved its right to make jurisdictional arguments at the appropriate
stage, and that subsequently the Parties agreed that there should be a single round
of pleadings. The Court would however emphasize that parties to cases before it
cannot, by purporting to “reserve their rights” to take some procedural action,
exempt themselves from the application to such action of the provisions of the
Statute and Rules of Court (cf. Application of the Convention on the Prevention
and Punishment of the Crime of Genocide (Bosnia and Herzegovina v.
Yugoslavia), Order of 13 September 1993, I.C.J. Reports 1993, p. 338, para. 28).
The Court notes, however, that Article 79 of the Rules applies only to
preliminary objections, as is indicated by the title of the subsection of the Rules
which it constitutes. As the Court observed in the Lockerbie cases, “if it is to be
covered by Article 79, an objection must . . .possess a ‘preliminary’ character,”
and “Paragraph 1 of Article 79 of the Rules of Court characterizes as
‘preliminary’ an objection ‘the decision upon which is requested before any
further proceedings’” (Questions of Interpretation and Application of the 1971
Montreal Convention arising from the Aerial Incident at Lockerbie (Libyan Arab
Jamahiriya v. United Kingdom) (Libyan Arab Jamahiriya v. United States of
America), Preliminary Objections, I.C.J. Reports 1998, p. 26, para. 47; p. 131,
para. 46); and the effect of the timely presentation of such an objection is that the
proceedings on the merits are suspended (paragraph 5 of Article 79). An
objection that is not presented as a preliminary objection in accordance with
paragraph 1 of Article 79 does not thereby become inadmissible. There are of
course circumstances in which the party failing to put forward an objection to
jurisdiction might be held to have acquiesced in jurisdiction (Appeal Relating to
the Jurisdiction of the ICAO Council, Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 1972, p. 52, para.
13). However, apart from such circumstances, a party failing to avail itself of the
178
International law v. Municipal law
Article 79 procedure may forfeit the right to bring about a suspension of the
proceedings on the merits, but can still argue the objection along with the merits.
That is indeed what the United States has done in this case; and, for reasons to be
indicated below, many of its objections are of such a nature that they would in
any event probably have had to be heard along with the merits. The Court
concludes that it should not exclude from consideration the objections of the
United States to jurisdiction and admissibility by reason of the fact that they were
not presented within three months from the date of filing of the Memorial.
25. The United States has submitted four objections to the jurisdiction of
the Court, and five to the admissibility of the claims of Mexico. As noted above,
these have not been submitted as preliminary objections under Article 79 of the
Rules of Court; and they are not of such a nature that the Court would be required
to examine and dispose of all of them in limine, before dealing with any aspect of
the merits of the case. Some are expressed to be only addressed to certain claims;
some are addressed to questions of the remedies to be indicated if the Court finds
that breaches of the Vienna Convention have been committed; and some are of
such a nature that they would have to be dealt with along with the merits. The
Court will however now examine each of them in turn.
*
26. The United States contends that the Court lacks jurisdiction to decide
many of Mexico’s claims, inasmuch as Mexico’s submissions in the Memorial
asked the Court to decide questions which do not arise out of the interpretation or
application of the Vienna Convention, and which the United States has never
agreed to submit to the Court.
27. By its first jurisdictional objection, the United States suggested that
the Memorial is fundamentally addressed to the treatment of Mexican nationals in
the federal and state criminal justice systems of the United States, and the
operation of the United States criminal justice system as a whole. It suggested
that Mexico’s invitation to the Court to make what the United States regards as
“far-reaching and unsustainable findings concerning the United States criminal
justice systems” would be an abuse of the Court’s jurisdiction. At the hearings,
the United States contended that Mexico is asking the Court to interpret and
apply the treaty as if it were intended principally to govern the operation of a
State’s criminal justice system as it affects foreign nationals.
28. The Court would recall that its jurisdiction in the present case has
been invoked under the Vienna Convention and Optional Protocol to determine
the nature and extent of the obligations undertaken by the United States towards
179
Lectures on the US Legal System
Mexico by becoming party to that Convention. If and so far as the Court may find
that the obligations accepted by the parties to the Vienna Convention included
commitments as to the conduct of their municipal courts in relation to the
nationals of other parties, then in order to ascertain whether there have been
breaches of the Convention, the Court must be able to examine the actions of
those courts in the light of international law. The Court is unable to uphold the
contention of the United States that, as a matter of jurisdiction, it is debarred from
enquiring into the conduct of criminal proceedings in United States courts. How
far it may do so in the present case is a matter for the merits. The first objection
of the United States to jurisdiction cannot therefore be upheld.
180
International law v. Municipal law
31. The third objection by the United States to the jurisdiction of the
Court refers to the first of the submissions in the Mexican Memorial concerning
remedies. By that submission, which was confirmed in substance in the final
submissions, Mexico claimed that
On that basis, Mexico went on in its first submission to invite the Court to declare
that the United States was bound to vacate the convictions and sentences of the
Mexican nationals concerned, to exclude from any subsequent proceedings any
statements and confessions obtained from them, to prevent the application of any
procedural penalty for failure to raise a timely defence on the basis of the
Convention, and to prevent the application of any municipal law rule preventing
courts in the United States from providing a remedy for the violation of Article
36 rights.
181
Lectures on the US Legal System
32. The United States objects that so to require specific acts by the
United States in its municipal criminal justice systems would intrude deeply into
the independence of its courts; and that for the Court to declare that the United
States is under a specific obligation to vacate convictions and sentences would be
beyond its jurisdiction. The Court, the United States claims, has no jurisdiction to
review appropriateness of sentences in criminal cases, and even less to determine
guilt or innocence, matters which only a court of criminal appeal could go into.
33. For its part, Mexico points out that the United States accepts that the
Court has jurisdiction to interpret the Vienna Convention and to determine the
appropriate form of reparation under international law. In Mexico’s view, these
two considerations are sufficient to defeat the third objection to jurisdiction of the
United States.
35. The fourth and last jurisdictional objection of the United States is
that “the Court lacks jurisdiction to determine whether or not consular
notification is a ‘human right’, or to declare fundamental requirements of
substantive or procedural due process”. As noted above, it is on the basis of
Mexico’s contention that the right to consular notification has been widely
recognized as a fundamental due process right, and indeed a human right, that it
argues that the rights of the detained Mexican nationals have been violated by the
authorities of the United States, and that they have been “subjected to criminal
proceedings without the fairness and dignity to which each person is entitled”.
The Court observes that Mexico has presented this argument as being a matter of
interpretation of Article 36, paragraph 1 (b), and therefore belonging to the
merits. The Court considers that this is indeed a question of interpretation of the
Vienna Convention, for which it has jurisdiction; the fourth objection of the
United States to jurisdiction cannot therefore be upheld.
**
182
International law v. Municipal law
37. The first objection under this head is that “Mexico’s submissions
should be found inadmissible because they seek to have this Court function as a
court of criminal appeal”; there is, in the view of the United States, “no other apt
characterization of Mexico’s two submissions in respect of remedies”. The Court
notes that this contention is addressed solely to the question of remedies. The
United States does not contend on this ground that the Court should decline
jurisdiction to enquire into the question of breaches of the Vienna Convention at
all, but simply that, if such breaches are shown, the Court should do no more than
decide that the United States must provide “review and reconsideration” along
the lines indicated in the Judgment in the LaGrand case (I.C.J. Reports 2001, pp.
513-514, para. 125). The Court notes that this is a matter of merits. The first
objection of the United States to admissibility cannot therefore be upheld.
38. The Court now turns to the objection of the United States based on
the rule of exhaustion of local remedies. The United States contends that the
Court “should find inadmissible Mexico’s claim to exercise its right of diplomatic
protection on behalf of any Mexican national who has failed to meet the
customary legal requirement of exhaustion of municipal remedies”. It asserts that
in a number of the cases the subject of Mexico’s claims, the detained Mexican
national, even with the benefit of the provision of Mexican consular assistance,
failed to raise the alleged non-compliance with Article 36, paragraph 1, of the
Vienna Convention at the trial. Furthermore, it contends that all of the claims
relating to cases referred to in the Mexican Memorial are inadmissible because
local remedies remain available in every case. It has drawn attention to the fact
that litigation is pending before courts in the United States in a large number of
the cases the subject of Mexico’s claims and that, in those cases where judicial
remedies have been exhausted, the defendants have not had recourse to the
clemency process available to them; from this it concludes that none of the cases
“is in an appropriate posture for review by an international tribunal”.
183
Lectures on the US Legal System
39. Mexico responds that the rule of exhaustion of local remedies cannot
preclude the admissibility of its claims. It first states that a majority of the
Mexican nationals referred to in paragraph 16 above have sought judicial
remedies in the United States based on the Vienna Convention and that their
claims have been barred, notably on the basis of the procedural default doctrine.
In this regard, it quotes the Court’s statement in the LaGrand case that “the
United States may not . . . rely before this Court on this fact in order to preclude
the admissibility of Germany’s [claim] . . ., as it was the United States itself
which had failed to carry out its obligation under the Convention to inform the
LaGrand brothers” (I.C.J. Reports 2001, p. 488, para. 60). Further, in respect of
the other Mexican nationals, Mexico asserts that
“the courts of the United States have never granted a judicial remedy to
any foreign national for a violation of Article 36. The United States courts hold
either that Article 36 does not create an individual right, or that a foreign national
who has been denied his Article 36 rights but given his constitutional and
statutory rights, cannot establish prejudice and therefore cannot get relief.”
40. In its final submissions Mexico asks the Court to adjudge and
declare that the United States, in failing to comply with Article 36, paragraph 1,
of the Vienna Convention, has “violated its international legal obligations to
Mexico, in its own right and in the exercise of its right of diplomatic protection of
its nationals”.
The Court would first observe that the individual rights of Mexican
nationals under subparagraph 1 (b) of Article 36 of the Vienna Convention are
rights which are to be asserted, at any rate in the first place, within the domestic
legal system of the United States. Only when that process is completed and local
remedies are exhausted would Mexico be entitled to espouse the individual
claims of its nationals through the procedure of diplomatic protection.
In the present case Mexico does not, however, claim to be acting solely
on that basis. It also asserts its own claims, basing them on the injury which it
contends that it has itself suffered, directly and through its nationals, as a result of
the violation by the United States of the obligations incumbent upon it under
Article 36, paragraph 1 (a), (b) and (c).
The Court would recall that, in the LaGrand case, it recognized that
“Article 36, paragraph 1 [of the Vienna Convention], creates individual rights
[for the national concerned], which . . . may be invoked in this Court by the
national State of the detained person” (I.C.J. Reports 2001, p. 494, para. 77). It
would further observe that violations of the rights of the individual under Article
184
International law v. Municipal law
36 may entail a violation of the rights of the sending State, and that violations of
the rights of the latter may entail a violation of the rights of the individual. In
these special circumstances of interdependence of the rights of the State and of
individual rights, Mexico may, in submitting a claim in its own name, request the
Court to rule on the violation of rights which it claims to have suffered both
directly and through the violation of individual rights conferred on Mexican
nationals under Article 36, paragraph 1 (b). The duty to exhaust local remedies
does not apply to such a request. Further, for reasons just explained, the Court
does not find it necessary to deal with Mexico’s claims of violation under a
distinct heading of diplomatic protection. Without needing to pronounce at this
juncture on the issues raised by the procedural default rule, as explained by
Mexico in paragraph 39 above, the Court accordingly finds that the second
objection by the United States to admissibility cannot be upheld.
41. The Court now turns to the question of the alleged dual nationality of
certain of the Mexican nationals the subject of Mexico’s claims. This question is
raised by the United States by way of an objection to the admissibility of those
claims: the United States contends that in its Memorial Mexico had failed to
establish that it may exercise diplomatic protection based on breaches of
Mexico’s rights under the Vienna Convention with respect to those of its
nationals who are also nationals of the United States. The United States regards it
as an accepted principle that, when a person arrested or detained in the receiving
State is a national of that State, then even if he is also a national of another State
party to the Vienna Convention, Article 36 has no application, and the authorities
of the receiving State are not required to proceed as laid down in that Article; and
Mexico has indicated that, for the purposes of the present case it does not contest
that dual nationals have no right to be advised of their rights under Article 36.
185
Lectures on the US Legal System
dual nationals in law. Without prejudice to the outcome of such examination, the
third objection of the United States to admissibility cannot therefore be upheld.
43. The Court now turns to the fourth objection advanced by the United
States to the admissibility of Mexico’s claims: the contention that “The
Court should not permit Mexico to pursue a claim against the United
States with respect to any individual case where Mexico had actual
knowledge of a breach of the [Vienna Convention] but failed to bring
such breach to the attention of the United States or did so only after
considerable delay.” In the Counter-Memorial, the United States
advances two considerations in support of this contention: that if the
cases had been mentioned promptly, corrective action might have been
possible; and that by inaction Mexico created an impression that it
considered that the United States was meeting its obligations under the
Convention, as Mexico understood them. At the hearings, the United
States suggested that Mexico had in effect waived its right to claim in
respect of the alleged breaches of the Convention, and to seek
reparation.
45. The Court has now to examine the objection of the United States that
the claim of Mexico is inadmissible in that Mexico should not be allowed to
invoke against the United States standards that Mexico does not follow in its own
practice. The United States contends that, in accordance with basic principles of
administration of justice and the equality of States, both litigants are to be held
accountable to the same rules of international law. The objection in this regard
was presented in terms of the interpretation of Article 36 of the Vienna
Convention, in the sense that, according to the United States, a treaty may not be
186
International law v. Municipal law
46. The Court would recall that the United States had already raised an
objection of a similar nature before it in the LaGrand case; there, the Court held
that it need not decide “whether this argument of the United States, if true, would
result in the inadmissibility of Germany’s submissions”, since the United States
had failed to prove that Germany’s own practice did not conform to the standards
it was demanding from the United States (I.C.J. Reports 2001, p. 489, para. 63).
47. The Court would recall that it is in any event essential to have in
mind the nature of the Vienna Convention. It lays down certain standards to be
observed by all States parties, with a view to the “unimpeded conduct of consular
relations”, which, as the Court observed in 1979, is important in present-day
international law “in promoting the development of friendly relations among
nations, and ensuring protection and assistance for aliens resident in the territories
of other States” (United States Diplomatic and Consular Staff in Tehran (United
States of America v. Iran), Order of 15 December 1979, I.C.J. Reports 1979, pp.
19-20, para. 40). Even if it were shown, therefore, that Mexico’s practice as
regards the application of Article 36 was not beyond reproach, this would not
constitute a ground of objection to the admissibility of Mexico’s claim. The fifth
objection of the United States to admissibility cannot therefore be upheld.
*
**
**
49. In its final submissions Mexico asks the Court to adjudge and
declare that,
187
Lectures on the US Legal System
provide consular protection and the 52 nationals’ right to receive such protection
as Mexico would provide under Article 36 (1) (a) and (c) of the Convention”.
50. The Court has already in its Judgment in the LaGrand case described
Article 36, paragraph 1, as “an interrelated régime designed to facilitate the
implementation of the system of consular protection” (I.C.J. Reports 2001, p.
492, para. 74). It is thus convenient to set out the entirety of that paragraph.
(c) consular officers shall have the right to visit a national of the sending
State who is in prison, custody or detention, to converse and correspond with him
and to arrange for his legal representation. They shall also have the right to visit
any national of the sending State who is in prison, custody or detention in their
district in pursuance of a judgment. Nevertheless, consular officers shall refrain
from taking action on behalf of a national who is in prison, custody or detention if
he expressly opposes such action.”
51. The United States as the receiving State does not deny its duty to
perform these obligations. However, it claims that the obligations apply only to
individuals shown to be of Mexican nationality alone, and not to those of dual
Mexican/United States nationality. The United States further contends inter alia
that it has not committed any breach of Article 36, paragraph 1 (b), upon the
proper interpretation of “without delay” as used in that subparagraph.
52. Thus two major issues under Article 36, paragraph 1 (b), that are in
dispute between the Parties are, first, the question of the nationality of the
individuals concerned; and second, the question of the meaning to be given to the
expression “without delay”. The Court will examine each of these in turn.
188
International law v. Municipal law
54. The Parties disagree as to what each of them must show as regards
nationality in connection with the applicability of the terms of Article 36,
paragraph 1, and as to how the principles of evidence have been met on the facts
of the cases.
56. The United States accepts that in such cases it has the burden of
proof to demonstrate United States nationality, but contends that nonetheless the
“burden of evidence” as to this remains with Mexico. This distinction is
explained by the United States as arising out of the fact that persons of Mexican
nationality may also have acquired United States citizenship by operation of law,
depending on their parents’ dates and places of birth, places of residency, marital
status at time of their birth and so forth. In the view of the United States
“virtually all such information is in the hands of Mexico through the now 52
individuals it represents”. The United States contends that it was the
responsibility of Mexico to produce such information, which responsibility it has
not discharged.
57. The Court finds that it is for Mexico to show that the 52 persons
listed in paragraph 16 above held Mexican nationality at the time of their arrest.
The Court notes that to this end Mexico has produced birth certificates and
189
Lectures on the US Legal System
The Court observes further that the United States has, however,
questioned whether some of these individuals were not also United States
nationals. Thus, the United States has informed the Court that, “in the case of
defendant Ayala (case No. 2) we are close to certain that Ayala is a United States
citizen”, and that this could be confirmed with absolute certainty if Mexico
produced facts about this matter. Similarly Mr. Avena (case No. 1) was said to be
“likely” to be a United States citizen, and there was “some possibility” that some
16 other defendants were United States citizens. As to six others, the United
States said it “cannot rule out the possibility” of United States nationality. The
Court takes the view that it was for the United States to demonstrate that this was
so and to furnish the Court with all information on the matter in its possession. In
so far as relevant data on that matter are said by the United States to lie within the
knowledge of Mexico, it was for the United States to have sought that
information from the Mexican authorities. The Court cannot accept that, because
such information may have been in part in the hands of Mexico, it was for
Mexico to produce such information. It was for the United States to seek such
information, with sufficient specificity, and to demonstrate both that this was
done and that the Mexican authorities declined or failed to respond to such
specific requests. At no stage, however, has the United States shown the Court
that it made specific enquiries of those authorities about particular cases and that
responses were not forthcoming. The Court accordingly concludes that the United
States has not met its burden of proof in its attempt to show that persons of
Mexican nationality were also United States nationals. The Court therefore finds
that, as regards the 52 persons listed in paragraph 16 above, the United States had
obligations under Article 36, paragraph 1 (b).
59. Mexico contends that, in each of the 52 cases before the Court, the
United States failed to provide the arrested persons with information as to their
rights under Article 36, paragraph 1 (b), “without delay”. It alleges that in one
case, Mr. Esquivel (case No. 7), the arrested person was informed, but only some
18 months after the arrest, while in another, that of Mr. Juárez (case No. 10),
information was given to the arrested person of his rights some 40 hours after
arrest. Mexico contends that this still constituted a violation, because “without
delay” is to be understood as meaning “immediately”, and in any event before
any interrogation occurs. Mexico further draws the Court’s attention to the fact
that in this case a United States court found that there had been a violation of
190
International law v. Municipal law
Article 36, paragraph 1 (b), and claims that the United States cannot disavow
such a determination by its own courts. In an Annex to its Memorial, Mexico
mentions that, in a third case (Mr. Ayala, case No. 2), the accused was informed
of his rights upon his arrival on death row, some four years after arrest. Mexico
contends that in the remaining cases the Mexicans concerned were in fact never
so informed by the United States authorities.
60. The United States disputes both the facts as presented by Mexico and
the legal analysis of Article 36, paragraph 1 (b), of the Vienna Convention
offered by Mexico. The United States claims that Mr. Solache (case No. 47) was
informed of his rights under the Vienna Convention some seven months after his
arrest. The United States further claims that many of the persons concerned were
of United States nationality and that at least seven of these individuals “appear to
have affirmatively claimed to be United States citizens at the time of their arrest”.
These cases were said to be those of Avena (case No. 1), Ayala (case No. 2),
Benavides (case No. 3), Ochoa (case No. 18), Salcido (case No. 22), Tafoya (case
No. 24), and Alvarez (case No. 30). In the view of the United States no duty of
consular information arose in these cases. Further, in the contention of the United
States, in the cases of Mr. Ayala (case No. 2) and Mr. Salcido (case No. 22) there
was no reason to believe that the arrested persons were Mexican nationals at any
stage; the information in the case of Mr. Juárez (case No. 10) was given “without
delay”.
61. The Court thus now turns to the interpretation of Article 36,
paragraph 1 (b), having found in paragraph 57 above that it is applicable to the 52
persons listed in paragraph 16. It begins by noting that Article 36, paragraph 1
(b), contains three separate but interrelated elements: the right of the individual
concerned to be informed without delay of his rights under Article 36, paragraph
1 (b); the right of the consular post to be notified without delay of the individual’s
detention, if he so requests; and the obligation of the receiving State to forward
without delay any communication addressed to the consular post by the detained
person.
62. The third element of Article 36, paragraph 1 (b), has not been raised
on the facts before the Court. The Court thus begins with the right of an arrested
or detained individual to information.
63. The Court finds that the duty upon the detaining authorities to give
the Article 36, paragraph 1 (b), information to the individual arises once it is
realized that the person is a foreign national, or once there are grounds to think
that the person is probably a foreign national. Precisely when this may occur will
vary with circumstances. The United States Department of State booklet,
Consular Notification and Access • Instructions for Federal, State and Local Law
Enforcement and Other Officials Regarding Foreign Nationals in the United
States and the Rights of Consular Officials to Assist Them, issued to federal, state
and local authorities in order to promote compliance with Article 36 of the
191
Lectures on the US Legal System
Vienna Convention points out in such cases that: “most, but not all, persons born
outside the United States are not [citizens]. Unfamiliarity with English may also
indicate foreign nationality.” The Court notes that when an arrested person
himself claims to be of United States nationality, the realization by the authorities
that he is not in fact a United States national, or grounds for that realization, is
likely to come somewhat later in time.
64. The United States has told the Court that millions of aliens reside,
either legally or illegally, on its territory, and moreover that its laws concerning
citizenship are generous. The United States has also pointed out that it is a
multicultural society, with citizenship being held by persons of diverse
appearance, speaking many languages. The Court appreciates that in the United
States the language that a person speaks, or his appearance, does not necessarily
indicate that he is a foreign national. Nevertheless, and particularly in view of the
large numbers of foreign nationals living in the United States, these very
circumstances suggest that it would be desirable for enquiry routinely to be made
of the individual as to his nationality upon his detention, so that the obligations of
the Vienna Convention may be complied with. The United States has informed
the Court that some of its law enforcement authorities do routinely ask persons
taken into detention whether they are United States citizens. Indeed, were each
individual to be told at that time that, should he be a foreign national, he is
entitled to ask for his consular post to be contacted, compliance with this
requirement under Article 36, paragraph 1 (b), would be greatly enhanced.
65. Bearing in mind the complexities explained by the United States, the
Court now begins by examining the application of Article 36, paragraph 1 (b), of
the Vienna Convention to the 52 cases. In 45 of these cases, the Court has no
evidence that the arrested persons claimed United States nationality, or were
reasonably thought to be United States nationals, with specific enquiries being
made in timely fashion to verify such dual nationality. The Court has explained in
paragraph 57 above what inquiries it would have expected to have been made,
within a short time period, and what information should have been provided to
the Court.
66. Seven persons, however, are asserted by the United States to have
stated at the time of arrest that they were United States citizens. Only in the case
192
International law v. Municipal law
of Mr. Salcido (case No. 22) has the Court been provided by the United States
with evidence of such a statement. This has been acknowledged by Mexico.
Further, there has been no evidence before the Court to suggest that there were in
this case at the same time also indications of Mexican nationality, which should
have caused rapid enquiry by the arresting authorities and the providing of
consular information “without delay”. Mexico has accordingly not shown that in
the case of Mr. Salcido the United States violated its obligations under Article 36,
paragraph 1 (b).
67. In the case of Mr. Ayala (case No. 2), while he was identified in a
court record in 1989 (three years after his arrest) as a United States citizen, there
is no evidence to show this Court that the accused did indeed claim upon his
arrest to be a United States citizen. The Court has not been informed of any
enquiries made by the United States to confirm these assertions of United States
nationality.
68. In the five other cases listed by the United States as cases where the
individuals “appear to have affirmatively claimed to be United States citizens at
the time of their arrest”, no evidence has been presented that such a statement was
made at the time of arrest.
69. Mr. Avena (case No. 1) is listed in his arrest report as having been
born in California. His prison records describe him as of Mexican nationality.
The United States has not shown the Court that it was engaged in enquiries to
confirm United States nationality.
71. So far as Mr. Ochoa is concerned (case No. 18), the Court observes
that his arrest report in 1990 refers to him as having been born in Mexico, an
assertion that is repeated in a second police report. Some two years later details in
his court record refer to him as a United States citizen born in Mexico. The Court
is not provided with any further details. The United States has not shown this
Court that it was aware of, or was engaged in active enquiry as to, alleged United
States nationality at the time of his arrest.
72. Mr. Tafoya (case No. 24) was listed on the police booking sheet as
having been born in Mexico. No further information is provided by the United
States as to why this was done and what, if any, further enquiries were being
made concerning the defendant’s nationality.
193
Lectures on the US Legal System
73. Finally, the last of the seven persons referred to by the United States
in this group, Mr. Alvarez (case No. 30), was arrested in Texas on 20 June 1998.
Texas records identified him as a United States citizen. Within three days of his
arrest, however, the Texas authorities were informed that the Immigration and
Naturalization Service was holding investigations to determine whether, because
of a previous conviction, Mr. Alvarez was subject to deportation as a foreign
national. The Court has not been presented with evidence that rapid resolution
was sought as to the question of Mr. Alvarez’s nationality.
74. The Court concludes that Mexico has failed to prove the violation by
the United States of its obligations under Article 36, paragraph 1 (b), in the case
of Mr. Salcido (case No. 22), and his case will not be further commented upon.
On the other hand, as regards the other individuals who are alleged to have
claimed United States nationality on arrest, whose cases have been considered in
paragraphs 67 to 73 above, the argument of the United States cannot be upheld.
76. The Court has been provided with declarations from a number of the
Mexican nationals concerned that attest to their never being informed of their
rights under Article 36, paragraph 1 (b). The Court at the outset notes that, in 47
such cases, the United States nowhere challenges this fact of information not
being given. Nevertheless, in the case of Mr. Hernández (case No. 34), the United
States observes that
“Although the [arresting] officer did not ask Hernández Llanas whether
he wanted them to inform the Mexican Consulate of his arrest, it was certainly
not unreasonable for him to assume that an escaped convict would not want the
Consulate of the country from which he escaped notified of his arrest.”
The Court notes that the clear duty to provide consular information
under Article 36, paragraph 1 (b), does not invite assumptions as to what the
arrested person might prefer, as a ground for not informing him. It rather gives
the arrested person, once informed, the right to say he nonetheless does not wish
his consular post to be notified. It necessarily follows that in each of these 47
cases, the duty to inform “without delay” has been violated.
77. In four cases, namely Ayala (case No. 2), Esquivel (case No. 7),
Juárez (case No. 10) and Solache (case No. 47), some doubts remain as to
whether the information that was given was provided without delay. For these,
some examination of the term is thus necessary.
194
International law v. Municipal law
78. This is a matter on which the Parties have very different views.
According to Mexico, the timing of the notice to the detained person “is critical
to the exercise of the rights provided by Article 36” and the phrase “without
delay” in paragraph 1 (b) requires “unqualified immediacy”. Mexico further
contends that, in view of the object and purpose of Article 36, which is to enable
“meaningful consular assistance” and the safeguarding of the vulnerability of
foreign nationals in custody, “consular notification . . . must occur immediately
upon detention and prior to any interrogation of the foreign detainee, so that the
consul may offer useful advice about the foreign legal system and provide
assistance in obtaining counsel before the foreign national makes any ill-informed
decisions or the State takes any action potentially prejudicial to his rights”.
79. Thus, in Mexico’s view, it would follow that in any case in which a
foreign national was interrogated before being informed of his rights under
Article 36, there would ipso facto be a breach of that Article, however rapidly
after the interrogation the information was given to the foreign national. Mexico
accordingly includes the case of Mr. Juárez among those where it claims
violation of Article 36, paragraph 1 (b), as he was interrogated before being
informed of his consular rights, some 40 hours after arrest.
80. Mexico has also invoked the travaux préparatoires of the Vienna
Convention in support of its interpretation of the requirement that the arrested
person be informed “without delay” of the right to ask that the consular post be
notified. In particular, Mexico recalled that the phrase proposed to the Conference
by the International Law Commission, “without undue delay”, was replaced by
the United Kingdom proposal to delete the word “undue”. The United Kingdom
representative had explained that this would avoid the implication that “some
delay was permissible” and no delegate had expressed dissent with the USSR and
Japanese statements that the result of the amendment would be to require
information “immediately”.
81. The United States disputed this interpretation of the phrase “without
delay”. In its view it did not mean “immediately, and before interrogation” and
such an understanding was supported neither by the terminology, nor by the
object and purpose of the Vienna Convention, nor by its travaux préparatoires. In
the booklet referred to in paragraph 63 above, the State Department explains that
“without delay” means “there should be no deliberate delay” and that the required
action should be taken “as soon as reasonably possible under the circumstances”.
It was normally to be expected that “notification to consular officers” would have
been made “within 24 to 72 hours of the arrest or detention”. The United States
further contended that such an interpretation of the words “without delay” would
be reasonable in itself and also allow a consistent interpretation of the phrase as it
occurs in each of three different occasions in Article 36, paragraph 1 (b). As for
the travaux préparatoires, they showed only that undue or deliberate delay had
been rejected as unacceptable.
195
Lectures on the US Legal System
83. The Court now addresses the question of the proper interpretation of
the expression “without delay” in the light of arguments put to it by the Parties.
The Court begins by noting that the precise meaning of “without delay”, as it is to
be understood in Article 36, paragraph 1 (b), is not defined in the Convention.
This phrase therefore requires interpretation according to the customary rules of
treaty interpretation reflected in Articles 31 and 32 of the Vienna Convention on
the Law of Treaties.
85. As for the object and purpose of the Convention, the Court observes
that Article 36 provides for consular officers to be free to communicate with
nationals of the sending State, to have access to them, to visit and speak with
them and to arrange for their legal representation. It is not envisaged, either in
Article 36, paragraph 1, or elsewhere in the Convention, that consular functions
entail a consular officer himself or herself acting as the legal representative or
more directly engaging in the criminal justice process. Indeed, this is confirmed
by the wording of Article 36, paragraph 2, of the Convention. Thus, neither the
terms of the Convention as normally understood, nor its object and purpose,
suggest that “without delay” is to be understood as “immediately upon arrest and
before interrogation”.
86. The Court further notes that, notwithstanding the uncertainties in the
travaux préparatoires, they too do not support such an interpretation. During the
diplomatic conference, the conference’s expert, former Special Rapporteur of the
International Law Commission, explained to the delegates that the words
“without undue delay” had been introduced by the Commission, after long
discussion in both the plenary and drafting committee, to allow for special
circumstances which might permit information as to consular notification not to
be given at once. Germany, the only one of two States to present an amendment,
proposed adding “but at latest within one month”. There was an extended
196
International law v. Municipal law
87. The Court thus finds that “without delay” is not necessarily to be
interpreted as “immediately” upon arrest. It further observes that during the
Conference debates on this term, no delegate made any connection with the issue
of interrogation. The Court considers that the provision in Article 36, paragraph 1
(b), that the receiving State authorities “shall inform the person concerned
without delay of his rights” cannot be interpreted to signify that the provision of
such information must necessarily precede any interrogation, so that the
commencement of interrogation before the information is given would be a
breach of Article 36.
197
Lectures on the US Legal System
90. The Court accordingly concludes that, with respect to each of the
individuals listed in paragraph 16, with the exception of Mr. Salcido (case No.
22; see paragraph 74 above), the United States has violated its obligation under
Article 36, paragraph 1 (b), of the Vienna Convention to provide information to
the arrested person.
91. As noted above, Article 36, paragraph 1 (b), contains three elements.
Thus far, the Court has been dealing with the right of an arrested person to be
informed that he may ask for his consular post to be notified. The Court now
turns to another aspect of Article 36, paragraph 1 (b). The Court finds the United
States is correct in observing that the fact that a Mexican consular post was not
notified under Article 36, paragraph 1 (b), does not of necessity show that the
arrested person was not informed of his rights under that provision. He may have
been informed and declined to have his consular post notified. The giving of the
information is relevant, however, for satisfying the element in Article 36,
paragraph 1 (b), on which the other two elements therein depend.
92. In only two cases has the United States claimed that the arrested
person was informed of his consular rights but asked for the consular post not to
be notified. These are Mr. Juárez (case No. 10) and Mr. Solache (case No. 47).
93. The Court is satisfied that when Mr. Juárez (case No. 10) was
informed of his consular rights 40 hours after his arrest (see paragraph 89) he
chose not to have his consular post notified. As regards Mr. Solache (case No.
47), however, it is not sufficiently clear to the Court, on the evidence before it,
that he requested that his consular post should not be notified. Indeed, the Court
has not been provided with any reasons as to why, if a request of non-notification
was made, the consular post was then notified some three months later.
94. In a further three cases, the United States alleges that the consular
post was formally notified of the detention of one of its Mexican nationals
without prior information to the individual as to his consular rights. These are Mr.
Covarrubias (case No. 6), Mr. Hernández (case No. 34) and Mr. Reyes (case No.
54). The United States further contends that the Mexican authorities were
contacted regarding the case of Mr. Loza (case No. 52).
95. The Court notes that, in the case of Mr. Covarrubias (case No. 6), the
consular authorities learned from third parties of his arrest shortly after it
occurred. Some 16 months later, a court-appointed interpreter requested that the
consulate intervene in the case prior to trial. It would appear doubtful whether an
interpreter can be considered a competent authority for triggering the interrelated
provisions of Article 36, paragraph 1 (b), of the Vienna Convention. In the case
of Mr. Reyes (case No. 34), the United States has simply told the Court that an
Oregon Department of Justice attorney had advised United States authorities that
both the District Attorney and the arresting detective advised the Mexican
198
International law v. Municipal law
96. In the case of Mr. Loza (case No. 52), a United States Congressman
from Ohio contacted the Mexican Embassy on behalf of Ohio prosecutors, some
four months after the accused’s arrest, “to enquire about the procedures for
obtaining a certified copy of Loza’s birth certificate”. The Court has not been
provided with a copy of the Congressman’s letter and is therefore unable to
ascertain whether it explained that Mr. Loza had been arrested. The response
from the Embassy (which is also not included in the documentation provided to
the Court) was passed by the Congressman to the prosecuting attorney, who then
asked the Civil Registry of Guadalajara for a copy of the birth certificate. This
request made no specific mention of Mr. Loza’s arrest. Mexico contends that its
consulate was never formally notified of Mr. Loza’s arrest, of which it only
became aware after he had been convicted and sentenced to death. Mexico
includes the case of Mr. Loza among those in which the United States was in
breach of its obligation of consular notification. Taking account of all these
elements, and in particular of the fact that the Embassy was contacted four
months after the arrest, and that the consular post became aware of the
defendant’s detention only after he had been convicted and sentenced, the Court
concludes that in the case of Mr. Loza the United States violated the obligation of
consular notification without delay incumbent upon it under Article 36, paragraph
1 (b).
97. Mr. Hernández (case No. 34) was arrested in Texas on Wednesday
15 October 1997. The United States authorities had no reason to believe he might
have American citizenship. The consular post was notified the following
Monday, that is five days (corresponding to only three working days) thereafter.
The Court finds that, in the circumstances, the United States did notify the
consular post without delay, in accordance with its obligation under Article 36,
paragraph 1 (b).
98. In the first of its final submissions, Mexico also asks the Court to
find that the violations it ascribes to the United States in respect of Article 36,
paragraph 1 (b), have also deprived “Mexico of its right to provide consular
protection and the 52 nationals’ right to receive such protection as Mexico would
provide under Article 36 (1) (a) and (c) of the Convention”.
199
Lectures on the US Legal System
facts of each case. In the LaGrand case, the Court found that the failure for 16
years to inform the brothers of their right to have their consul notified effectively
prevented the exercise of other rights that Germany might have chosen to
exercise under subparagraphs (a) and (c).
101. The Court would first recall that, in the case of Mr. Juárez (case
No. 10) (see paragraph 93 above), when the defendant was informed of his rights,
he declined to have his consular post notified. Thus in this case there was no
violation of either subparagraph (a) or subparagraph (c) of Article 36, paragraph
1.
102. In the remaining cases, because of the failure of the United States to
act in conformity with Article 36, paragraph 1 (b), Mexico was in effect
precluded (in some cases totally, and in some cases for prolonged periods of
time) from exercising its right under paragraph 1 (a) to communicate with its
nationals and have access to them. As the Court has already had occasion to
explain, it is immaterial whether Mexico would have offered consular assistance,
“or whether a different verdict would have been rendered. It is sufficient that the
Convention conferred these rights” (I.C.J. Reports 2001, p. 492, para. 74), which
might have been acted upon.
104. On the other hand, and on the particular facts of this case, no such
generalized answer can be given as regards a further entitlement mentioned in
subparagraph (c), namely, the right of consular officers “to arrange for [the] legal
representation” of the foreign national. Mexico has laid much emphasis in this
litigation upon the importance of consular officers being able to arrange for such
representation before and during trial, and especially at sentencing, in cases in
which a severe penalty may be imposed. Mexico has further indicated the
importance of any financial or other assistance that consular officers may provide
to defence counsel, inter alia for investigation of the defendant’s family
background and mental condition, when such information is relevant to the case.
The Court observes that the exercise of the rights of the sending State under
Article 36, paragraph 1 (c), depends upon notification by the authorities of the
receiving State. It may be, however, that information drawn to the attention of the
sending State by other means may still enable its consular officers to assist in
arranging legal representation for its national. In the following cases, the Mexican
consular authorities learned of their national’s detention in time to provide such
200
International law v. Municipal law
105. In relation to Mr. Manríquez (case No. 14), the Court lacks precise
information as to when his consular post was notified. It is merely given to
understand that it was two years prior to conviction, and that Mr. Manríquez
himself had never been informed of his consular rights. There is also divergence
between the Parties in regard to the case of Mr. Fuentes (case No. 15), where
Mexico claims it became aware of his detention during trial and the United States
says this occurred during jury selection, prior to the actual commencement of the
trial. In the case of Mr. Arias (case No. 44), the Mexican authorities became
aware of his detention less than one week before the commencement of the trial.
In those three cases, the Court concludes that the United States violated its
obligations under Article 36, paragraph 1 (c).
201
Lectures on the US Legal System
(4) that the United States, by virtue of these breaches of Article 36,
paragraph 1 (b), also violated the obligation incumbent upon it under paragraph 1
(c) of that Article to enable Mexican consular officers to arrange for legal
representation of their nationals in the case of the following individuals: Avena
(case No. 1), Ayala (case No. 2), Carrera (case No. 4), Contreras (case No. 5),
Gómez (case No. 8), López (case No. 11), Lupercio (case No. 12), Maciel (case
No. 13), Manríquez (case No. 14), Fuentes (case No. 15), Martínez (case No. 16),
Ochoa (case No. 18), Parra (case No. 19), Salazar (case No. 21), Tafoya (case No.
24), Valdez (case No. 25), Vargas (case No. 26), Alvarez (case No. 30), Fierro
(case No. 31), García (case No. 32), Ibarra (case No. 35), Leal (case No. 36),
Maldonado (case No. 37), Medellín (case No. 38), Moreno (case No. 39), Plata
(case No. 40), Regalado (case No. 43), Arias (case No. 44), Caballero (case No.
45), Flores (case No. 46), Fong (case No. 48), Pérez (case No. 51), Loza (case
No. 52) and Torres (case No. 53).
107. In its third final submission Mexico asks the Court to adjudge and
declare that “the United States violated its obligations under Article 36 (2) of the
Vienna Convention by failing to provide meaningful and effective review and
reconsideration of convictions and sentences impaired by a violation of Article 36
(1)”.
109. In this connection, Mexico has argued that the United States
202
International law v. Municipal law
110. Against this contention by Mexico, the United States argues that:
“the criminal justice systems of the United States address all errors in
process through both judicial and executive clemency proceedings, relying upon
the latter when rules of default have closed out the possibility of the former. That
is, the ‘laws and regulations’ of the United States provide for the correction of
mistakes that may be relevant to a criminal defendant to occur through a
combination of judicial review and clemency. These processes together, working
with other competent authorities, give full effect to the purposes for which Article
36 (1) is intended, in conformity with Article 36 (2). And, insofar as a breach of
Article 36 (1) has occurred, these procedures satisfy the remedial function of
Article 36 (2) by allowing the United States to provide review and
reconsideration of convictions and sentences consistent with LaGrand.”
111. The “procedural default” rule in United States law has already been
brought to the attention of the Court in the LaGrand case. The following brief
definition of the rule was provided by Mexico in its Memorial in this case and has
not been challenged by the United States: “a defendant who could have raised,
but fails to raise, a legal issue at trial will generally not be permitted to raise it in
future proceedings, on appeal or in a petition for a writ of habeas corpus”.
The rule requires exhaustion of remedies, inter alia, at the state level and
before a habeas corpus motion can be filed with federal courts. In the LaGrand
case, the rule in question was applied by United States federal courts; in the
present case, Mexico also complains of the application of the rule in certain state
courts of criminal appeal.
112. The Court has already considered the application of the “procedural
default” rule, alleged by Mexico to be a hindrance to the full implementation of
the international obligations of the United States under Article 36, in the LaGrand
case, when the Court addressed the issue of its implications for the application of
Article 36, paragraph 2, of the Vienna Convention. The Court emphasized that “a
203
Lectures on the US Legal System
distinction must be drawn between that rule as such and its specific application in
the present case”. The Court stated:
“In itself, the rule does not violate Article 36 of the Vienna Convention.
The problem arises when the procedural default rule does not allow the detained
individual to challenge a conviction and sentence by claiming, in reliance on
Article 36, paragraph 1, of the Convention, that the competent national authorities
failed to comply with their obligation to provide the requisite consular
information ‘without delay’, thus preventing the person from seeking and
obtaining consular assistance from the sending State.” (I.C.J. Reports 2001, p.
497, para. 90.) On this basis, the Court concluded that “the procedural default
rule prevented counsel for the LaGrands to effectively challenge their convictions
and sentences other than on United States constitutional grounds” (ibid., para.
91). This statement of the Court seems equally valid in relation to the present
case, where a number of Mexican nationals have been placed exactly in such a
situation.
113. The Court will return to this aspect below, in the context of
Mexico’s claims as to remedies. For the moment, the Court simply notes that the
procedural default rule has not been revised, nor has any provision been made to
prevent its application in cases where it has been the failure of the United States
itself to inform that may have precluded counsel from being in a position to have
raised the question of a violation of the Vienna Convention in the initial trial. It
thus remains the case that the procedural default rule may continue to prevent
courts from attaching legal significance to the fact, inter alia, that the violation of
the rights set forth in Article 36, paragraph 1, prevented Mexico, in a timely
fashion, from retaining private counsel for certain nationals and otherwise
assisting in their defence. In such cases, application of the procedural default rule
would have the effect of preventing “full effect [from being] given to the
purposes for which the rights accorded under this article are intended”, and thus
violate paragraph 2 of Article 36. The Court notes moreover that in several of the
cases cited in Mexico’s final submissions the procedural default rule has already
been applied, and that in others it could be applied at subsequent stages in the
proceedings. However, in none of the cases, save for the three mentioned in
paragraph 114 below, have the criminal proceedings against the Mexican
nationals concerned already reached a stage at which there is no further
possibility of judicial re-examination of those cases; that is to say, all possibility
is not yet excluded of “review and reconsideration” of conviction and sentence, as
called for in the LaGrand case, and as explained further in paragraphs 128 and
following below. It would therefore be premature for the Court to conclude at this
stage that, in those cases, there is already a violation of the obligations under
Article 36, paragraph 2, of the Vienna Convention.
114. By contrast, the Court notes that in the case of three Mexican
nationals, Mr. Fierro (case No. 31), Mr. Moreno (case No. 39), and Mr. Torres
(case No. 53), conviction and sentence have become final. Moreover, in the case
204
International law v. Municipal law
of Mr. Torres the Oklahoma Court of Criminal Appeals has set an execution date
(see paragraph 21 above, in fine). The Court must therefore conclude that, in
relation to these three individuals, the United States is in breach of the obligations
incumbent upon it under Article 36, paragraph 2, of the Vienna Convention.
**
115. Having concluded that in most of the cases brought before the
Court by Mexico in the 52 instances, there has been a failure to observe the
obligations prescribed by Article 36, paragraph 1 (b), of the Vienna Convention,
the Court now proceeds to the examination of the legal consequences of such a
breach and of what legal remedies should be considered for the breach.
116. Mexico in its fourth, fifth and sixth submissions asks the Court to
adjudge and declare:
“(4) that pursuant to the injuries suffered by Mexico in its own right and
in the exercise of diplomatic protection of its nationals, Mexico is entitled to full
reparation for these injuries in the form of restitutio in integrum;
(5) that this restitution consists of the obligation to restore the status quo
ante by annulling or otherwise depriving of full force or effect the conviction and
sentences of all 52 Mexican nationals; [and]
(6) that this restitution also includes the obligation to take all measures
necessary to ensure that a prior violation of Article 36 shall not affect the
subsequent proceedings.”
117. In support of its fourth and fifth submissions, Mexico argues that
“It is well-established that the primary form of reparation available to a State
injured by an internationally wrongful act is restitutio in integrum”, and that “The
United States is therefore obliged to take the necessary action to restore the status
quo ante in respect of Mexico’s nationals detained, tried, convicted and sentenced
in violation of their internationally recognized rights”. To restore the status quo
ante, Mexico contends that “restitution here must take the form of annulment of
the convictions and sentences that resulted from the proceedings tainted by the
Article 36 violations”, and that “It follows from the very nature of restitutio that,
when a violation of an international obligation is manifested in a judicial act, that
act must be annulled and thereby deprived of any force or effect in the national
legal system”. Mexico therefore asks in its submissions that the convictions and
sentences of the 52 Mexican nationals be annulled, and that, in any future
criminal proceedings against these 52 Mexican nationals, evidence obtained in
breach of Article 36 of the Vienna Convention be excluded.
205
Lectures on the US Legal System
“LaGrand’s holding calls for the United States to provide, in each case,
‘review and reconsideration’ that ‘takes account of’ the violation, not ‘review and
reversal’, not across-the-board exclusions of evidence or nullification of
convictions simply because a breach of Article 36 (1) occurred and without
regard to its effect upon the conviction and sentence and, not . . . ‘a precise,
concrete, stated result: to re-establish the status quo ante’”.
120. In the LaGrand case the Court made a general statement on the
principle involved as follows:
121. Similarly, in the present case the Court’s task is to determine what
would be adequate reparation for the violations of Article 36. It should be clear
206
International law v. Municipal law
from what has been observed above that the internationally wrongful acts
committed by the United States were the failure of its competent authorities to
inform the Mexican nationals concerned, to notify Mexican consular posts and to
enable Mexico to provide consular assistance. It follows that the remedy to make
good these violations should consist in an obligation on the United States to
permit review and reconsideration of these nationals’ cases by the United States
courts, as the Court will explain further in paragraphs 128 to 134 below, with a
view to ascertaining whether in each case the violation of Article 36 committed
by the competent authorities caused actual prejudice to the defendant in the
process of administration of criminal justice.
122. The Court reaffirms that the case before it concerns Article 36 of
the Vienna Convention and not the correctness as such of any conviction or
sentencing. The question of whether the violations of Article 36, paragraph 1, are
to be regarded as having, in the causal sequence of events, ultimately led to
convictions and severe penalties is an integral part of criminal proceedings before
the courts of the United States and is for them to determine in the process of
review and reconsideration. In so doing, it is for the courts of the United States to
examine the facts, and in particular the prejudice and its causes, taking account of
the violation of the rights set forth in the Convention.
124. Mexico has further contended that the right to consular notification
and consular communication under the Vienna Convention is a fundamental
human right that constitutes part of due process in criminal proceedings and
should be guaranteed in the territory of each of the Contracting Parties to the
Vienna Convention; according to Mexico, this right, as such, is so fundamental
that its infringement will ipso facto produce the effect of vitiating the entire
process of the criminal proceedings conducted in violation of this fundamental
207
Lectures on the US Legal System
right. Whether or not the Vienna Convention rights are human rights is not a
matter that this Court need decide. The Court would, however, observe that
neither the text nor the object and purpose of the Convention, nor any indication
in the travaux préparatoires, support the conclusion that Mexico draws from its
contention in that regard.
125. For these reasons, Mexico’s fourth and fifth submissions cannot be
upheld.
127. The Court does not consider that it is necessary to enter into an
examination of the merits of the contention advanced by Mexico that the
“exclusionary rule” is “a general principle of law under Article 38(1) (c) of the
Statute” of the Court. The issue raised by Mexico in its sixth submission relates
to the question of what legal consequences flow from the breach of the
obligations under Article 36, paragraph 1 • a question which the Court has
already sufficiently discussed above in relation to the fourth and the fifth
submissons of Mexico. The Court is of the view that this question is one which
has to be examined under the concrete circumstances of each case by the United
States courts concerned in the process of their review and reconsideration. For
this reason, the sixth submission of Mexico cannot be upheld.
128. While the Court has rejected the fourth, fifth and sixth submissions
of Mexico relating to the remedies for the breaches by the United States of its
international obligations under Article 36 of the Vienna Convention, the fact
remains that such breaches have been committed, as the Court has found, and it is
thus incumbent upon the Court to specify what remedies are required in order to
redress the injury done to Mexico and to its nationals by the United States
through non-compliance with those international obligations. As has already been
observed in paragraph 120, the Court in the LaGrand Judgment stated the general
208
International law v. Municipal law
129. In this regard, Mexico’s seventh submission also asks the Court to
adjudge and declare:
“That to the extent that any of the 52 convictions or sentences are not
annulled, the United States shall provide, by means of its own choosing,
meaningful and effective review and reconsideration of the convictions and
sentences of the 52 nationals, and that this obligation cannot be satisfied by
means of clemency proceedings or if any municipal law rule or doctrine [that fails
to attach legal significance to an Article 36 (1) violation] is applied.”
131. In stating in its Judgment in the LaGrand case that “the United
States of America, by means of its own choosing, shall allow the review and
reconsideration of the conviction and sentence” (I.C.J. Reports 2001, p. 516, para.
128; emphasis added), the Court acknowledged that the concrete modalities for
such review and reconsideration should be left primarily to the United States. It
should be underlined, however, that this freedom in the choice of means for such
review and reconsideration is not without qualification: as the passage of the
Judgment quoted above makes abundantly clear, such review and reconsideration
has to be carried out “by taking account of the violation of the rights set forth in
the Convention” (I.C.J. Reports 2001, p. 514, para. 125), including, in particular,
the question of the legal consequences of the violation upon the criminal
proceedings that have followed the violation.
132. The United States argues (1) “that the Court’s decision in LaGrand
in calling for review and reconsideration called for a process to re-examine a
conviction and sentence in light of a breach of Article 36”; (2) that “in calling for
a process of review, the Court necessarily implied that one legitimate result of
that process might be a conclusion that the conviction and sentence should
stand”; and (3) “that the relief Mexico seeks in this case is flatly inconsistent with
the Judgment in LaGrand: it seeks precisely the award of a substantive outcome
that the LaGrand Court declined to provide”.
133. However, the Court wishes to point out that the current situation in
the United States criminal procedure, as explained by the Agent at the hearings, is
209
Lectures on the US Legal System
that “If the defendant alleged at trial that a failure of consular information
resulted in harm to a particular right essential to a fair trial, an appeals court can
review how the lower court handled that claim of prejudice”, but that “If the
foreign national did not raise his Article 36 claim at trial, he may face procedural
constraints [i.e., the application of the procedural default rule] on raising that
particular claim in direct or collateral judicial appeals” (emphasis added). As a
result, a claim based on the violation of Article 36, paragraph 1, of the Vienna
Convention, however meritorious in itself, could be barred in the courts of the
United States by the operation of the procedural default rule (see paragraph 111
above).
134. It is not sufficient for the United States to argue that “[w]hatever
label [the Mexican defendant] places on his claim, his right . . . must and will be
vindicated if it is raised in some form at trial” (emphasis added), and that
“In that way, even though a failure to label the complaint as a breach of
the Vienna Convention may mean that he has technically speaking forfeited his
right to raise this issue as a Vienna Convention claim, on appeal that failure
would not bar him from independently asserting a claim that he was prejudiced
because he lacked this critical protection needed for a fair trial.” (Emphasis
added.)
135. Mexico, in the latter part of its seventh submission, has stated that
“this obligation [of providing review and reconsideration] cannot be satisfied by
means of clemency proceedings”. Mexico elaborates this point by arguing first of
all that “the United States’s reliance on clemency proceedings is wholly
inconsistent with its obligation to provide a remedy, as that obligation was found
by this Court in LaGrand”. More specifically, Mexico contends:
Second, the Court was fully aware that the LaGrand brothers had
received a clemency hearing, during which the Arizona Pardons Board took into
account the violation of their consular rights. Accordingly, the Court determined
in LaGrand that clemency review alone did not constitute the required ‘review
and reconsideration’ . . .
210
International law v. Municipal law
Finally, the Court specified that the United States must ‘allow the review
and reconsideration of the conviction and sentence by taking account of the
violation of the rights set forth in the Convention’ . . . it is a basic matter of U.S.
criminal procedural law that courts review convictions; clemency panels do not.
With the rare exception of pardons based on actual innocence, the focus of capital
clemency review is on the propriety of the sentence and not on the underlying
conviction.” Furthermore, Mexico argues that the clemency process is in itself an
ineffective remedy to satisfy the international obligations of the United States. It
concludes: “clemency review is standardless, secretive, and immune from judicial
oversight”. Finally, in support of its contention, Mexico argues that
136. Against this contention of Mexico, the United States claims that it
“gives ‘full effect’ to the ‘purposes for which the rights accorded under [Article
36, paragraph 1,] are intended’ through executive clemency”. It argues that “[t]he
clemency process . . . is well suited to the task of providing review and
reconsideration”. The United States explains that “Clemency . . . is more than a
matter of grace; it is part of the overall scheme for ensuring justice and fairness in
the legal process” and that “Clemency procedures are an integral part of the
existing ‘laws and regulations’ of the United States through which errors are
addressed”.
137. Specifically in the context of the present case, the United States
contends that the following two points are particularly noteworthy:
138. The Court would emphasize that the “review and reconsideration”
prescribed by it in the LaGrand case should be effective. Thus it should “tak[e]
account of the violation of the rights set forth in [the] Convention” (I.C.J. Reports
2001, p. 516, para. 128 (7)) and guarantee that the violation and the possible
prejudice caused by that violation will be fully examined and taken into account
in the review and reconsideration process. Lastly, review and reconsideration
should be both of the sentence and of the conviction.
211
Lectures on the US Legal System
140. As has been explained in paragraphs 128 to 134 above, the Court is of the
view that, in cases where the breach of the individual rights of Mexican nationals
under Article 36, paragraph 1 (b), of the Convention has resulted, in the sequence
of judicial proceedings that has followed, in the individuals concerned being
subjected to prolonged detention or convicted and sentenced to severe penalties,
the legal consequences of this breach have to be examined and taken into account
in the course of review and reconsideration. The Court considers that it is the
judicial process that is suited to this task.
141. The Court in the LaGrand case left to the United States the choice
of means as to how review and reconsideration should be achieved, especially in
the light of the procedural default rule. Nevertheless, the premise on which the
Court proceeded in that case was that the process of review and reconsideration
should occur within the overall judicial proceedings relating to the individual
defendant concerned.
142. As regards the clemency procedure, the Court notes that this
performs an important function in the administration of criminal justice in the
United States and is “the historic remedy for preventing miscarriages of justice
where judicial process has been exhausted” (Herrera v. Collins, 506 U.S. 390
(1993) at pp. 411-412). The Court accepts that executive clemency, while not
judicial, is an integral part of the overall scheme for ensuring justice and fairness
in the legal what is at issue in the present case is not whether executive clemency
as an institution is or is not an integral part of the “existing laws and regulations
of the United States”, but whether the clemency process as practised within the
criminal justice systems of different states in the United States can, in and of
itself, qualify as an appropriate means for undertaking the effective “review and
reconsideration of the conviction and sentence by taking account of the violation
of the rights set forth in the Convention”, as the Court prescribed in the LaGrand
Judgment (I.C.J. Reports 2001, p. 514, para. 125).
212
International law v. Municipal law
144. Finally, the Court will consider the eighth submission of Mexico, in
which it asks the Court to adjudge and declare:
“That the [United States] shall cease its violations of Article 36 of the
Vienna Convention with regard to Mexico and its 52 nationals and shall provide
appropriate guarantees and assurances that it shall take measures sufficient to
achieve increased compliance with Article 36 (1) and to ensure compliance with
Article 36 (2).”
145. In this respect, Mexico recognizes the efforts by the United States
to raise awareness of consular assistance rights, through the distribution of
pamphlets and pocket cards and by the conduct of training programmes, and that
the measures adopted by the United States to that end were noted by the Court in
its decision in the LaGrand case (I.C.J. Reports 2001, pp. 511-513, paras. 121,
123-124). Mexico, however, notes with regret that “the United States program,
whatever its components, has proven ineffective to prevent the regular and
continuing violation by its competent authorities of consular notification and
assistance rights guaranteed by Article 36”.
213
Lectures on the US Legal System
214
International law v. Municipal law
that the United States has been making considerable efforts to ensure that its law
enforcement authorities provide consular information to every arrested person
they know or have reason to believe is a foreign national.
Especially at the stage of pre-trial consular information, it is noteworthy
that the United States has been making good faith efforts to implement the
obligations incumbent upon it under Article 36, paragraph 1, of the Vienna
Convention, through such measures as a new outreach programme launched in
1998, including the dissemination to federal, state and local authorities of the
State Department booklet mentioned above in paragraph 63. The Court wishes to
recall in this context what it has said in paragraph 64 about efforts in some
jurisdictions to provide the information under Article 36, paragraph 1 (b), in
parallel with the reading of the “Miranda rights”.
150. The Court would further note in this regard that in the LaGrand
case Germany sought, inter alia, “a straightforward assurance that the United
States will not repeat its unlawful acts” (I.C.J. Reports 2001, p. 511, para. 120).
With regard to this general demand for an assurance of non-repetition, the Court
stated:
*
**
215
Lectures on the US Legal System
Court has stated concerns the Mexican nationals whose cases have been
brought before it by Mexico, the Court has been addressing the issues of
principle raised in the course of the present proceedings from the
viewpoint of the general application of the Vienna Convention, and there
can be no question of making an a contrario argument in respect of any
of the Court’s findings in the present Judgment. In other words, the fact
that in this case the Court’s ruling has concerned only Mexican nationals
cannot be taken to imply that the conclusions reached by it in the present
Judgment do not apply to other foreign nationals finding themselves in
similar situations in the United States.
*
**
THE COURT,
216
International law v. Municipal law
(2) Unanimously,
Rejects the four objections by the United States of America to the
jurisdiction of the Court;
(3) Unanimously,
Finds that, by not informing, without delay upon their detention, the 51
Mexican nationals referred to in paragraph 106 (1) above of their rights under
Article 36, paragraph 1 (b), of the Vienna Convention on Consular Relations of
24 April 1963, the United States of America breached the obligations incumbent
upon it under that subparagraph;
217
Lectures on the US Legal System
Finds that, by not permitting the review and reconsideration, in the light
of the rights set forth in the Convention, of the conviction and sentences of Mr.
César Roberto Fierro Reyna, Mr. Roberto Moreno Ramos and Mr. Osvaldo
Torres Aguilera, after the violations referred to in subparagraph (4) above had
been established in respect of those individuals, the United States of America
breached the obligations incumbent upon it under Article 36, paragraph 2, of the
Convention;
218
International law v. Municipal law
(10) Unanimously,
(11) Unanimously,
219
Lectures on the US Legal System
220
International law v. Municipal law
Although the Romans occupied England under the reign of Julius Caesar,
they did not have time to really establish their legal system. The Angles,
Danes, Jutes and Saxons just continued with their unwritten local
customs. Things changed with the establishment of William the
Conqueror as king, after his victory at Hastings, in 1066, against Harold.
The new King instituted with his closest advisors the Curia Regis that
exercised judicial as executive and legislative powers. But some functions
were later delegated to newly created institutions. The Court of
Exchequer, a judicial offspring of the financial side of the Curia Regis,
was the first Common law court in charge to resolve tax disputes. The
Court of Common Pleas resolved issues between subjects which did not
involve a direct interest of the king; whereas the King’s Bench was
established to hear issues wit a direct royal interest: the pleas of the
Crown.
221
Lectures on the US Legal System
A breach into the Common law had been undergone in the 14th and 15th
centuries in Scotland due to an alliance with France. Its private law is still
today based on Civil and Roman law, whereas other areas are ruled by the
predominant Common law.
The United States are obviously a Common law country due to Oxford
professor William Blackstone’s Commentaries on the Laws of England, a
readable and concise legal book, able to be carried to outlying areas of the
colonies. If the new American lawyers had have been left with
inaccessible and complex case reports, they maybe would have turned to
civil law codes.
222
exception to the judge-made law, with the single exception of Louisiana
that adopted Civil law due to the French occupation.
Each State has so its own Common law; but is there also a federal
Common law? Judge Story responded affirmatively in Swift v. Tyson33. In
absence of federal statutes, solutions for interstates litigations concerning
commercial activities are not to be sought in the decisions of local
tribunals, but in the general principles and doctrines of commercial
jurisprudence. “ Undoubtedly, the decisions of the local tribunals upon
such subjects are entitled to, and will receive, the most deliberate attention
and respect of this court; but they cannot furnish positive rules, or
conclusive authority, by which our own [the Supreme Court’s] judgments
are to be bound up and governed”. However, some decades later, the
Supreme Court reversed in Erie Railroad its former ruling, declaring
expresis verbis that “there is no federal general Common law”34 and
federal courts are to apply the law as declared by the highest state court –
State Common law. However, since then, a new position has been adopted
by the Supreme Court, distinguishing between general federal Common
law, still prohibited under Erie and a specialized federal Common law,
which has been consecrated by the Clearfield35 and Sabbatino36 decisions,
that protects uniquely federal interests like regulating water
apportionment37 or cases affecting international relations38.
33
42 US 1 (1842).
34
Erie Railroad Co v. Tompkins, 304 US 64 (1938).
35
Clearfield Trust Co v. United States, 318 US 363 (1943).
36
Banco nacional de Cuba v. Sabbatino, 376 US 398 (1964).
37
Hinderlinder v. La Plata River Ditch Co, 304 US 92 (1938).
38
Cf the Sabbatino case.
223
Lectures on the US Legal System
This cause comes before us from the circuit court of the southern district of New
York, upon a certificate of division of the judges of that court. The action was
brought by the plaintiff, Swift, as indorsee, against the defendant, Tyson, as
acceptor, upon a bill of exchange dated at Portland, Maine, on the first day of
May 1836, for the sum of $1540.30, payable six months after date, and grace,
drawn by one Nathaniel Norton and one Jairus S. Keith upon and accepted by
Tyson, at the city of New York, in favor of the order of Nathaniel Norton, and by
Norton indorsed to the plaintiff. The bill was dishonored at maturity.
At the trial, the aceptance and indorsement of the bill were admitted, and the
plaintiff there rested his case. The defendant then introduced in evidence the
answer of Swift to a bill of discovery, by which it appeared, that Swift took the
bill, before it *15 became due, in payment of a promissory note due to him by
Norton & Keith; that he understood, that the bill was accepted in part payment of
some lands sold by Norton to a company in New York; that Swift was a bona fide
holder of the bill, not having any notice of anything in the sale or title to the
lands, or otherwise impeaching the transaction, and with the full belief that the
bill was justly due. The particular circumstances are fully set forth in the answer
in the record; but it does not seem necessary further to state them. The defendant
then offered to prove, that the bill was accepted by the defendant, as part
consideration for the purchase of certain lands in the state of Maine, which
Norton & Keith represented themselves to be the owners of, and also represented
to be of great value, and contracted to convey a good title thereto; and that the
representations were in every respect fraudulent and false, and Norton & Keith
had no title to the lands, and that the same were of little or no value. The plaintiff
objected to the admission of such testimony, or of any testimony, as against him,
impeaching or showing a failure of the consideration,on which the bill was
224
Common Law
accepted, under the facts admitted by the defendant, and those proved by him, by
reading the answer of plaintiff to the bill of discovery. The judges of the circuit
court thereupon divided in opinion upon the following point or question of law--
Whether, under the facts last mentioned, the defendant was entitled to the same
defence to the action, as if the suit was between the original parties to the bill,
that is to say, Norton, or Norton & Keith, and the defendant; and whether the
evidence so offered was admissible as against the plaintiff in the action. And this
is the question certified to us for our decision.
In the present case, the plaintiff is a bona fide holder, without notice, for what the
law deems a good and valid consideration, that is, for a preexisting debt; and the
only real question in the cause is, whether, under the circumstances of the present
case, such a pre-existing debt constitutes a valuable consideration, in the sense of
the general rule applicable to negotiable instruments. We say, under the
circumstances of the present case, for the acceptance having been made in New
York, the argument on behalf of the defendant is, that the contract is to be treated
as a New York contract, and therefore, to be governed by the laws of New York,
as expounded by its courts, as well upon general principles, as by the express
provisions of the 34th section of the judiciary act of 1789, ch. 20. And then it is
further contended, that by the law of New York, as thus expounded by its courts,
a pre-existing debt does not constitute, in the sense of the general rule, a valuable
consideration applicable to negotiable instruments.
In the first place, then, let us examine into the decisions of the courts of New
York upon this subject. In the earliest case, Warren v. Lynch, 5 Johns. 289, the
supreme court of New York appear to have held, that a pre- existing debt was a
sufficient consideration to entitle a bona fide holder, without notice, to recover
the amount of a note indorsed to him, which might not, as between the original
225
Lectures on the US Legal System
parties, be valid. The same doctrine was affirmed by Mr. Chancellor KENT, in
Bay v. Coddington, 5 Johns. Ch. 54. Upon that occasion, he said, that negotiable
paper can be assigned or transferred by an agent or factor, or by any other person,
fraudulently, so as to bind the true owner, as against the holder, provided it be
taken in the usual course of trade, and for a fair and valuable consideration,
without notice of the fraud. But he added, that the holders in that case were not
entitled to the benefit of the rule, because it was not negotiated to *17 them in the
usual course of business or trade, nor in payment of any antecedent and existing
debt, nor for cash, or property advanced, debt created, or responsibility incurred,
on the strength and credit of the notes; thus directly affirming, that a pre-existing
debt was a fair and valuable consideration within the protection of the general
rule. And he has since affirmed the same doctrine, upon a full review of it, in his
Commentaries. (3 Kent, Com. º 44, p. 81.) The decision in the case of Bay v.
Coddington was afterwards affirmed in the court of errors (20 Johns. 637), and
the general reasoning of the chancellor was fully sustained. There were, indeed,
peculiar circumstances in that case, which the court seem to have considered as
entitling it to be treated as an exception to the general rule, upon the ground,
either because the receipt of the notes was under suspicious circumstances, the
transfer having been made after the known insolvency of the indorser, or because
the holder had received it as a mere security for contingent responsibilities, with
which the holders had not then become charged. There was, however, a
considerable diversity of opinion among the members of the court upon that
occasion, several of them holding that the decree ought to be reversed, others
affirming that a pre-existing debt was a valuable consideration, sufficient to
protect the holders; and others again insisting, that a pre-existing debt was not
sufficient. From that period, however, for a series of years, it seems to have been
held by the supreme court of the state, that a pre-existing debt was not a sufficient
consideration to shut out the equities of the original parties in favor of the
holders. But no case to that effect has ever been decided in the court of errors.
The cases cited at the bar, and especially Rosa v. Brotherson, 10 Wend. 85;
Ontario Bank v. Worthington, 12 Ibid. 593, and Payne v. Cutler, 13 Ibid. 605, are
directly in point. But the more recent cases Bank of Salina v. Babcock, 21 Ibid.
490, and Bank of Sandusky v. Scoville, 24 Ibid. 115, have greatly shaken, if they
have not entirely overthrown those decisions, and seem to have brought back the
doctrine to that promulgated in the earliest cases. So that, to say the least of it, it
admits of serious doubt, whether any doctrine upon this question can, at the
present time, be treated as finally established; and it is certain. *18 that the court
of errors have not pronounced any positive opinion upon it.
226
Common Law
34th section of the judiciary act of 1789, ch. 20, furnishes a rule obligatory upon
this court to follow the decisions of the state tribunals in all cases to which they
apply. That section provides 'that the laws of the several states, except where the
constitution, treaties or statutes of the United States shall otherwise require or
provide, shall be regarded as rules of decision, in trials at Common law, in the
courts of the United States, in cases where they apply.' In order to maintain the
argument, it is essential, therefore, to hold, that the word 'laws,' in this section,
includes within the scope of its meaning, the decisions of the local tribunals. In
the ordinary use of language, it will hardly be contended, that the decisions of
courts constitute laws. They are, at most, only evidence of what the laws are, and
are not, of themselves, laws. They are often re-examined, reversed and qualified
by the courts themselves, whenever they are found to be either defective, or ill-
founded, or otherwise incorrect. The laws of a state are more usually understood
to mean the rules and enactments promulgated by the legislative authority
thereof, or long-established local customs having the force of laws. In all the
various cases, which have hitherto come before us for decision, this court have
uniformly supposed, that the true interpretation of the 34th section limited its
application to state laws, strictly local, that is to say, to the positive statutes of the
state, and the construction thereof adopted by the local tribunals, and to rights and
titles to things having a permanent locality, such as the rights and titles to real
estate, and other matters immovable and intra-territorial in their nature and
character. It never has been supposed by us, that the section did apply, or was
designed to apply, to questions of a more general nature, not at all dependent
upon local statutes or *19 local usages of a fixed and permanent operation, as, for
example, to the construction of ordinary contracts or other written instruments,
and especially to questions of general commercial law, where the state tribunals
are called upon to perform the like functions as ourselves, that is, to ascertain,
upon general reasoning and legal analogies, what is the true exposition of the
contract or instrument, or what is the just rule furnished by the principles of
commercial law to govern the case. And we have not now the slightest difficulty
in holding, that this section, upon its true intendment and construction, is strictly
limited to local statutes and local usages of the character before stated, and does
not extend to contracts and other instruments of a commercial nature, the true
interpretation and effect whereof are to be sought, not in the decisions of the local
tribunals, but in the general principles and doctrines of commercial jurisprudence.
Undoubtedly, the decisions of the local tribunals upon such subjects are entitled
to, and will receive, the most deliberate attention and respect of this court; but
they cannot furnish positive rules, or conclusive authority, by which our own
judgments are to be bound up and governed. The law respecting negotiable
instruments may be truly declared in the languages of Cicero, adopted by Lord
MANSFIELD in Luke v. Lyde, 2 Burr. 883, 887, to be in a great measure, not the
law of a single country only, but of the commercial world. Non erit alia lex
Romae, alia Athenis; alia nunc, alia posthac; sed et apud omnes gentes, et omni
tempore una eademque lex obtinebit.
227
Lectures on the US Legal System
It becomes necessary for us, therefore, upon the present occasion, to express our
own opinion of the true result of the commercial law upon the question now
before us. And we have no hesitation in saying, that a pre-existing debt does
constitute a valuable consideration, in the sense of the general rule already stated,
as applicable to negotiable instruments. Assuming it to be true (which, however,
may well admit of some doubt from the generality of the language), that the
holder of a negotiable instrument is unaffected with the equities between the
antecedent parties, of which he has no notice, only where he receives it in the
usual course of trade and business, for a valuable consideration, before it
becomes due; we are prepared to say, that receiving it in payment of, or as
security for, a pre-existing debt, *20 is according to the known usual course of
trade and business. And why, upon principle, should not a pre-existing debt be
deemed such a valuable consideration? It is for the benefit and convenience of the
commercial world, to give as wide an extent as practicable to the credit and
circulation of negotiable paper, that it may pass not only as security for new
purchases and advances, made upon the transfer thereof, but also in payment of,
and as security for, pre-existing debts. The creditor is thereby enabled to realize
or to secure his debt, and thus may safely give a prolonged credit, or forbear from
taking any legal steps to enforce his rights. The debtor also has the advantage of
making his negotiable securities of equivalent value to cash. But establish the
opposite conclusion, that negotiable paper cannot be applied in payment of, or as
security for, pre- existing debts, without letting in all the equities between the
original and antecedent parties, and the value and circulation of such securities
must be essentially diminished, and the debtor driven to the embarrassment of
making a sale thereof, often at a ruinous discount, to some third person, and then,
by circuity, to apply the proceeds to the payment of his debts. What, indeed, upon
such a doctrine, would become of that large class of cases, where new notes are
given by the same or by other parties, by way of renewal or security to banks, in
lieu of old securities discounted by them, which have arrived at maturity?
Probably, more than one-half of all bank transactions in our country, as well as
those of other countries, are of this nature. The doctrine would strike a fatal blow
at all discounts of negotiable securities for pre-existing debts.
This question has been several times before this court, and it has been uniformly
held, that it makes no difference whatsoever, as to the rights of the holder,
whether the debt, for which the negotiable instrument is transferred to him, is a
pre-existing debt, or is contracted at the time of the transfer. In each case, he
equally gives credit to the instrument. The cases of Coolidge v. Payson, 2 Wheat.
66, 70, 73, and Townsley v. Sumrall, 2 Pet. 170, 182, are directly in point. In
England, the same doctrine has been uniformly acted upon. As long ago as the
case of Pillans v. Van Mierop, 3 Burr. 1664, the very point was made, and the
objection was overruled.
228
Common Law
That, indeed, was a case of far more stringency *21 than the one now before us;
for the bill of exchange, there drawn in discharge of a pre-existing debt, was held
to bind the party as acceptor, upon a mere promise made by him to accept, before
the bill was actually drawn. Upon that occasion, Lord MANSFIELD, likening the
case to that of a letter of credit, said, that a letter of credit may be given for
money already advanced, as well as for money to be advanced in future: and the
whole court held the plaintiff entitled to recover. From that period downward,
there is not a single case to be found in England, in which it has ever been held
by the court, that a pre-existing debt was not a valuable consideration, sufficient
to protect the holder, within the meaning of the general rule, although incidental
dicta have been sometimes relied on, to establish the contrary, such as the dictum
of Lord Chief Justice ABBOTT, in Smith v. De Witt, 6 Dow. & Ryl. 120, and De
la Chaumette v. Bank of England, 9 Barn. & Cres. 209, where, however, the
decision turned upon very different considerations.
Mr. Justice Bayley, in his valuable work on bills of exchange and promissory
notes, lays down the rule in the most general terms. 'The want of consideration,'
says he, 'in toto or in part, cannot be insisted on, if the plaintiff, or any
intermediate party between him and the defendant took the bill or note bona fide
and upon a valid consideration.' Bayley on Bills, p. 499-500 (5th Lond. edit.
1830). It is observable, that he here uses the words 'valid consideration,'
obviously intended to make the distinction, that it is not intended to apply solely
to cases, where a present consideration for advances of money, on goods or
otherwise, takes place at the time of the transfer and upon the credit thereof. And
in this he is fully borne out by the authorities. They go further, and establish, that
a transfer as security for past, and even for future responsibilities, will, for this
purpose, be a sufficient, valid and valuable consideration. Thus, in the case of
Bosanquet v. Dudman, 1 Stark. 1, it was held by Lord ELLENBOROUGH, that if
a banker be under acceptances to an amount beyond the cash balance in his
hands, every bill he holds of that customer's, bona fide, he is to be considered as
holding for value; and it makes no difference, though he hold other collateral
securities, more than sufficient to cover the excess of his acceptances. *22 The
same doctrine was affirmed by Lord ELDON, in Ex parte Bloxham, 8 Ves. 531,
as equally applicable to past and to future acceptances. The subsequent cases of
Heywood v. Watson, 4 Bing. 496, and Bramah v. Roberts, 1 Bing. (N. C.) 469,
and Percival v. Frampton, 2 Cr. M. & R. 180, are to the same effect. They
directly establish, that a bona fide holder, taking a negotiable note in payment of
or as security for a pre-existing debt, is a holder for a valuable consideration,
entitled to protection against all the equities between the antecedent parties. And
these are the latest decisions, which our researches have enabled us to ascertain to
have been made in the English courts upon the subject.
In the American courts, so far as we have been able to trace the decissions, the
same doctrine seems generally, but not universally, to prevail. In Brush v.
229
Lectures on the US Legal System
230
Common Law
which looked like a door projecting from one of the moving cars. To enforce that
claim he brought an action in the federal court for Southern New York, which
had jurisdiction because the company is a corporation of that state. It denied
liability; and the case was tried by a jury. [304 U.S. 64, 70] The Erie insisted
that its duty to Tompkins was no greater than that owed to a trespasser. It
contended, among other things, that its duty to Tompkins, and hence its liability,
should be determined in accordance with the Pennsylvania law; that under the
law of Pennsylvania, as declared by its highest court, persons who use pathways
along the railroad right of way-that is, a longitudinal pathway as distinguished
from a crossing-are to be deemed trespassers; and that the railroad is not liable for
injuries to undiscovered trespassers resulting from its negligence, unless it be
wanton or willful. Tompkins denied that any such rule had been established by
the decisions of the Pennsylvania courts; and contended that, since there was no
statute of the state on the subject, the railroad's duty and liability is to be
determined in federal courts as a matter of general law.
The trial judge refused to rule that the applicable law precluded recovery. The
jury brought in a verdict of $30,000; and the judgment entered thereon was
affirmed by the Circuit Court of Appeals, which held ( 2 Cir., 90 F.2d 603, 604),
that it was unnecessary to consider whether the law of Pennsylvania was as
contended, because the question was one not of local, but of general, law, and
that 'upon questions of general law the federal courts are free, in absence of a
local statute, to exercise their independent judgment as to what the law is; and it
is well settled that the question of the responsibility of a railroad for injuries
caused by its servants is one of general law. ... Where the public has made open
and notorious use of a railroad right of way for a long period of time and without
objection, the company owes to persons on such permissive pathway a duty of
care in the operation of its trains. ... It is likewise generally recognized law that a
jury may find that negligence exists toward a pedestrian using a permissive path
on the railroad right of way if he is hit by some object projecting from the side of
the train.' [304 U.S. 64, 71] The Erie had contended that application of the
Pennsylvania rule was required, among other things, by section 34 of the Federal
Judiciary Act of September 24, 1789, c. 20, 28 U.S.C. 725, 28 U.S.C.A. s 725,
which provides: 'The laws of the several States, except where the Constitution,
treaties, or statutes of the United States otherwise require or provide, shall be
regarded as rules of decision in trials at Common law, in the courts of the United
States, in cases where they apply.'
Because of the importance of the question whether the federal court was free to
disregard the alleged rule of the Pennsylvania Common law, we granted
certiorari. 302 U.S. 671 , 58 S.Ct. 50, 82 L.Ed. --.
First. Swift v. Tyson, 16 Pet. 1, 18, held that federal courts exercising jurisdiction
on the ground of diversity of citizenship need not, in matters of general
jurisprudence, apply the unwritten law of the state as declared by its highest
court; that they are free to exercise an independent judgment as to what the
Common law of the state is-or should be; and that, as there stated by Mr. Justice
Story, 'the true interpretation of the 34th section limited its application to state
231
Lectures on the US Legal System
laws, strictly local, that is to say, to the positive statutes of the state, and the
construction thereof adopted by the local tribunals, and to rights and titles to
things having a permanent locality, such as the rights and titles to real estate, and
other matters immovable and intra-territorial in their nature and character. It
never has been supposed by us, that the section did apply, or was designed to
apply, to questions of a more general nature, not at all dependent upon local
statutes or local usages of a fixed and permanent operation, as, for example, to the
construction of ordinary contracts or other written instruments, and especially to
questions of general commercial law, where the state tribunals are called upon to
perform the like functions as ourselves, that is, to ascertain, upon general
reasoning and legal analogies, what is the true exposition of the contract or [304
U.S. 64, 72] instrument, or what is the just rule furnished by the principles of
commercial law to govern the case.'
The Court in applying the rule of section 34 to equity cases, in Mason v. United
States, 260 U.S. 545, 559 , 43 S.Ct. 200, 204, said: 'The statute, however, is
merely declarative of the rule which would exist in the absence of the statute.' 2
The federal courts assumed, in the broad field of 'general law,' the power to
declare rules of decision which Congress was confessedly without power to enact
as statutes. Doubt was repeatedly expressed as to the correctness of the
construction given section 34,3 and as to the soundness of the rule which it
introduced. 4 But it was the more recent research of a competent scholar, who
examined the original document, which established that the construction given to
it by the Court was erroneous; and that the purpose of the section was merely to
make certain that, in all matters except those in which some federal law is
controlling, [304 U.S. 64, 73] the federal courts exercising jurisdiction in
diversity of citizenship cases would apply as their rules of decision the law of the
state, unwritten as well as written. 5
Criticism of the doctrine became widespread after the decision of Black & White
Taxicab & Transfer Co. v. Brown & Yellow Taxicab & Transfer Co., 276 U.S.
518 , 48 S.Ct. 404, 57 A.L.R. 426.6 There, Brown &Yellow, a Kentucky
corporation owned by Kentuckians, and the Louisville & Nashville Railroad, also
a Kentucky corporation, wished that the former should have the exclusive
privilege of soliciting passenger and baggage transportation at the Bowling
Green, Ky., Railroad station; and that the Black & White, a competing Kentucky
corporation, should be prevented from interfering with that privilege. Knowing
that such a contract would be void under the Common law of Kentucky, it was
arranged that the Brown & Yellow reincorporate under the law of Tennessee, and
that the contract with the railroad should be executed there. The suit was then
brought by the Tennessee corporation in the federal court for Western Kentucky
to enjoin competition by the Black & White; an injunction issued by the District
Court [304 U.S. 64, 74] was sustained by the Court of Appeals; and this Court,
citing many decisions in which the doctrine of Swift & Tyson had been applied,
affirmed the decree.
Second. Experience in applying the doctrine of Swift v. Tyson, had revealed its
defects, political and social; and the benefits expected to flow from the rule did
232
Common Law
233
Lectures on the US Legal System
234
Common Law
correct.' In disapproving that doctrine we do not hold [304 U.S. 64, 80]
unconstitutional section 34 of the Federal Judiciary Act of 1789 or any other act
of Congress. We merely declare that in applying the doctrine this Court and the
lower courts have invaded rights which in our opinion are reserved by the
Constitution to the several states.
Fourth. The defendant contended that by the Common law of Pennsylvania as
declared by its highest court in Falchetti v. Pennsylvania R. Co., 307 Pa. 203, 160
A. 859, the only duty owed to the plaintiff was to refrain from willful or wanton
injury. The plaintiff denied that such is the Pennsylvania law. 24 In support of
their respective contentions the parties discussed and cited many decisions of the
Supreme Court of the state. The Circuit Court of Appeals ruled that the question
of liability is one of general law; and on that ground declined to decide the issue
of state law. As we hold this was error, the judgment is reversed and the case
remanded to it for further proceedings in conformity with our opinion.
REVERSED.
235
Lectures on the US Legal System
Section 1 - Equity
As we have seen, equity provides remedies for cases where writs do not
exist. Typical equity remedies are specific performances – asking for a
forced execution of the contract - and injunctions that order the defendant
to undertake a positive action.
In 1848, New York was the first State to abolish Chancery courts. Since
then, Rule 2 of the “Field”39 Code of Civil Procedure has established for
federal courts one single form of action, known as “civil action”
independently if it is a complaint at law or a proceeding in equity.
However, the distinction maintains its importance, as there is a right to
jury in Common law procedures, but not for demands in equity. However,
some states still continue to distinguish: New Jersey retains entirely
separate courts of equity and Common law; others like Pennsylvania have
a judge sit alternately as a Common law judge and as an equity judge.
Following the ideas of Jeremy Bentham, David Dudley Field defended the
precept of codification in the United States. His code of civil procedure
had been adopted first in 1850 in New York, than later by some other 30
states. However other proposed codes, like a civil code, had less success40.
Therefore, in 1889, the American Bar Association (ABA), concerned
39
See infra Section 2.
40
Reimann, The Historical School Against Codification : Savigny, Carter, and
the defeat of the New York Civil Code, American Journal of Comparative
Law, 89.95.
236
about the anarchical development of State law set up a specialized
committee in charge of drafting proposals of uniform laws. The first result
was the vote in 1898 of a federal law regarding insolvency based on a
proposal for Uniform law. In 1912, the National Conference of
Commissioners on Uniform State Law was created, composed of delegates
of the fifty States. The most important success of the Conference until
now has been the Uniform Commercial Code, which draft had been
proposed in 1952 and adopted first by Pennsylvania in 1954, for coming
into effects in all the states except Louisiana.
Section 3 – Doctrine
The 1820s saw the publication of two important works in the United
States, “americanizing” Blackstone’s Commentaries, which were, as I said
before, the founding cornerstone of the American Legal System. In 1826,
Justice James Kent from the New York Supreme Court published his
Commentaries on American Law. Right after followed the Commentaries
of Judge Joseph Story. In 1923, the movement of Restatement initiated,
sponsored by the newly created American Law Institute. The Restatement
idea consisted in having a group of lawyers, judges and professors agree
on the essence of the law in particular areas through research and
discussion. As Kempin points it out: ”The Restatements do not present
new law, in the manner of a statute. Its authors endeavor to present what
they consider the best approach from decided cases in all jurisdictions”41.
Beneath the restatements, there are also, among others, the American Law
Reports Annotated that publish leading cases and analyze them in a
comparative approach with the case law of the different states.
41
Op.cit., p. 127.
237
Lecture 14 – The Judge and Case Law
Following this principle, what one court rules the other court cannot
overrule. However, not everything what figures in a judgment is binding
to other judges. Only the ratio decidendi (the holding) - precise legal
considerations in relation of the relevant facts of the case - is binding, and
not the obiter dicta which are general considerations of law.
Nonetheless the stare decisis rule, it would be wrong to think that we face
a set system. Superior courts can overrule without harming the res
judicata. In regard to inferior courts, they may not apply a precedent if
being sure that the superior court will affirm the ruling or by
distinguishing relevant and irrelevant facts. The distinguishing method is
mostly not to research legal considerations, but to distinguish – meaning
that in a precedent, one compares the facts with its case, retaining those
which are favorable to the wanted solution and trying to argument that the
facts that are unfavorable are not the same than in casu.
42
Kempin, op.cit., p.102 sq; cf also one of the cited cases: Marks v. Morris
(Virginia, 1809): “It was Common law we adopted and not English
decisions”.
43
Cf e.g. Miranda v. Arizona, 384 US 436 (1966)
238
239
Lectures on the US Legal System
The real meaning of law is based on the fact that a thing may be within
the letter of the statute and yet not within the statute, because not within
its spirit nor within the intention of its makers. It is not the substitution of
the will of the judge for that of the legislator; for frequently words of
general meaning are used in a statute, words broad enough to include an
act in question, and yet a consideration of the whole legislation, or of the
circumstances surrounding its enactment, or of the absurd results which
follow from giving such broad meaning to the words, makes it
unreasonable to believe that the legislator intended to include the
particular act45. While the real meaning of law doctrine is more a fact-
44
National Society of Professional Engineers v. US, 435 US 6, 37, 38 (1978).
45
Holy Trinity Church v. US, 143 US 457 (1892).
240
approach of the elaboration of the law, the intentional meaning of law
emphasizes a theological approach to interpretation, looking for the spirit
of law46, even if there is no real frontier between those two interpretation
rules.
46
United Steelworkers of America v. Weber, 443 US 193 (1979).
241
242
Interpretation of Law
Lee Loevinger argued the cause for petitioner. With him on the briefs was Martin
Michaelson.
Howard E. Shapiro argued the cause for the United States. With him on the brief
were Solicitor General McCree, Assistant Attorney General Shenefield, and
Robert B. Nicholson.
Stevens, J., delivered the opinion of the Court, in which Stewart, White,
Marshall, and Powell, JJ., joined, and in Parts I and III of which Blackmun and
Rehnquist, JJ., joined. Blackmun, J., filed an opinion Concurring in part and
Concurring in the judgment, in which Rehnquist, J., joined, post, p. 699. Burger,
C. J., filed an opinion Concurring in part and Dissenting in part, post, p. 701.
Brennan, J., took no part in the consideration or decision of the case.
The United States brought this civil antitrust suit against petitioner, the National
Society of Professional Engineers, alleging that petitioner's canon of ethics
prohibiting its members from submitting competitive bids for engineering
services suppressed competition in violation of § 1 of the Sherman Act. Petitioner
defended on the ground, inter alia, that under the Rule of Reason the canon was
243
Lectures on the US Legal System
1. On its face, the canon in question restrains trade within the meaning of § 1 of
the Sherman Act, and the Rule of Reason, under which the proper inquiry is
whether the challenged agreement is one that promotes, or one that suppresses,
competition, does not support a defense based on the assumption that competition
itself is unreasonable. Pp. 686-696.
(d) While ethical norms may serve to regulate and promote competition in
244
Interpretation of Law
professional services and thus fall within the Rule of Reason, petitioner's
argument here is a far cry from such a position; and, although competition may
not be entirely conducive to ethical behavior, that is not a reason, cognizable
under the Sherman Act, for doing away with competition. P. 696.
2. The District Court's injunction, as modified by the Court of Appeals, does not
abridge First Amendment rights. Pp. 696-699.
(a) The First Amendment does not "make it . . . impossible ever to enforce laws
against agreements in restraint of trade," Giboney v. Empire Storage & Ice Co.,
336 U.S. 490, 502, and, although the District Court may consider the fact that its
injunction may impinge upon rights that would otherwise be constitutionally
protected, those protections do not prevent it from remedying the antitrust
violations. Pp. 697-698.
(b) The standard against which the injunction must be Judged is whether the
relief represents a reasonable method of eliminating the consequences of the
illegal conduct, and the injunction meets this standard. P. 698.
(c) If petitioner wishes to adopt some other ethical guideline more closely
confined to the legitimate objective of preventing deceptively low bids, it may
move the District Court to modify its injunction. Pp. 698-699.
245
Lectures on the US Legal System
decide whether the District Court should have considered the factual basis for the
proffered justification before rejecting it. 434 U.S. 815. Because we are satisfied
that the asserted defense rests on a fundamental misunderstanding of the Rule of
Reason frequently applied in antitrust litigation, we affirm.
246
Interpretation of Law
that the National Society has tried to fix specific fees, or even a specific method
of calculating fees. It involves a charge that the members of the Society have
unlawfully agreed to refuse to negotiate or even to discuss the question of fees
until after a prospective client has selected the engineer for a particular project.
Evidence of this agreement is found in § 11 (c) of the Society's Code of Ethics,
adopted in July 1964.
The District Court found that the Society's Board of Ethical Review has
uniformly interpreted the "ethical rules against competitive bidding for
engineering services as prohibiting the submission of any form of price
information to a prospective customer which would enable that customer to make
a price comparison on engineering services." If the client requires that such
information be provided, then § 11 (c) imposes an obligation upon the
engineering firm to withdraw from consideration for that job. The Society's Code
of Ethics thus "prohibits engineers from both soliciting and submitting such price
information," 389 F.Supp. 1193, 1206 (DC 1974), and seeks to preserve the
profession's "traditional" method of selecting professional engineers. Under the
traditional method, the client initially selects an engineer on the basis of
background and reputation, not price.
In 1972 the Government filed its complaint against the Society alleging that
members had agreed to abide by canons of ethics prohibiting the submission of
competitive bids for engineering services and that, in consequence, price
competition among the members had been suppressed and customers had been
deprived of the benefits of free and open competition. The complaint prayed for
an injunction terminating the unlawful agreement.
In its answer the Society admitted the essential facts alleged by the Government
and pleaded a series of affirmative defenses, only one of which remains in issue.
In that defense, the Society averred that the standard set out in the Code of Ethics
was reasonable because competition among professional engineers was contrary
to the public interest. It was averred that it would be cheaper and easier for an
engineer "to design and specify inefficient and unnecessarily expensive structures
and methods of construction." Accordingly, competitive pressure to offer
engineering services at the lowest possible price would adversely affect the
quality of engineering. Moreover, the practice of awarding engineering contracts
to the lowest bidder, regardless of quality, would be dangerous to the public
health, safety, and welfare. For these reasons, the Society claimed that its Code of
Ethics was not an "unreasonable restraint of interstate trade or commerce."
247
Lectures on the US Legal System
The parties compiled a voluminous discovery and trial record. The District Court
made detailed findings about the engineering profession, the Society, its
members' participation in interstate commerce, the history of the ban on
competitive bidding, and certain incidents in which the ban appears to have been
violated or enforced. The District Court did not, however, make any finding on
the question whether, or to what extent, competition had led to inferior
engineering work which, in turn, had adversely affected the public health, safety,
or welfare. That inquiry was considered unnecessary because the court was
convinced that the ethical prohibition against competitive bidding was "on its
face a tampering with the price structure of engineering fees in violation of § 1 of
the Sherman Act." 389 F.Supp., at 1200.
Although it modified the injunction entered by the District Court, the Court of
Appeals affirmed its Conclusion that the agreement was unlawful on its face and
therefore "illegal without regard to claimed or possible benefits." 181 U. S. App.
D.C. 41, 47, 555 F.2d 978, 984.
In Goldfarb v. Virginia State Bar, 421 U.S. 773, the Court held that a bar
association's rule prescribing minimum fees for legal services violated § 1 of the
Sherman Act. In that opinion the Court noted that certain practices by members
of a learned profession might survive scrutiny under the Rule of Reason even
though they would be viewed as a violation of the Sherman Act in another
context. The Court said:
Relying heavily on this footnote, and on some of the major cases applying a Rule
of Reason -- principally Mitchel v. Reynolds, 1 P. Wms. 181, 24 Eng. Rep. 347
(1711); Standard Oil Co. v. United States, 221 U.S. 1; Chicago Board of Trade v.
248
Interpretation of Law
United States, 246 U.S. 231; and Continental T. V., Inc. v. GTE Sylvania Inc.,
433 U.S. 36 -- petitioner argues that its attempt to preserve the profession's
traditional method of setting fees for engineering services is a reasonable method
of forestalling the public harm which might be produced by unrestrained
competitive bidding. To evaluate this argument it is necessary to identify the
contours of the Rule of Reason and to discuss its application to the kind of
justification asserted by petitioner.
Congress, however, did not intend the text of the Sherman Act to delineate the
full meaning of the statute or its application in concrete situations. The legislative
history makes it perfectly clear that it expected the courts to give shape to the
statute's broad mandate by drawing on common-law tradition. The Rule of
Reason, with its origins in common-law precedents long antedating the Sherman
Act, has served that purpose. It has been used to give the Act both flexibility and
definition, and its central principle of antitrust analysis has remained constant.
Contrary to its name, the Rule does not open the field of antitrust inquiry to any
argument in favor of a challenged restraint that may fall within the realm of
reason. Instead, it focuses directly on the challenged restraint's impact on
competitive conditions.
This principle is apparent in even the earliest of cases applying the Rule of
Reason, Mitchel v. Reynolds, supra. Mitchel involved the enforceability of a
promise by the seller of a bakery that he would not compete with the purchaser of
his business. The covenant was for a limited time and applied only to the area in
which the bakery had operated. It was therefore upheld as reasonable, even
though it deprived the public of the benefit of potential competition. The long-run
benefit of enhancing the marketability of the business itself -- and thereby
249
Lectures on the US Legal System
The early cases also foreclose the argument that because of the special
characteristics of a particular industry, monopolistic arrangements will better
promote trade and commerce than competition. United States v. Trans-Missouri
Freight Assn., 166 U.S. 290; United States v. Joint Traffic Assn., 171 U.S. 505,
573-577. That kind of argument is properly addressed to Congress and may
justify an exemption from the statute for specific industries, but it is not permitted
by the Rule of Reason. As the Court observed in Standard Oil Co. v. United
States, 221 U.S., at 65, "restraints of trade within the purview of the statute . . . be
taken out of that category by indulging in general reasoning as to the expediency
or nonexpediency of having made the contracts or the wisdom or want of wisdom
of the statute which prohibited their being made."
The test prescribed in Standard Oil is whether the challenged contracts or acts
"were unreasonably restrictive of competitive conditions." Unreasonableness
under that test could be based either (1) on the nature or character of the
contracts, or (2) on surrounding circumstances giving rise to the inference or
presumption that they were intended to restrain trade and enhance prices. Under
either branch of the test, the inquiry is confined to a consideration of impact on
competitive conditions.
In this respect the Rule of Reason has remained faithful to its origins. From Mr.
Justice Brandeis' opinion for the Court in Chicago Board of Trade to the Court
opinion written by MR. JUSTICE POWELL in Continental T. V., Inc., the Court
has adhered to the position that the inquiry mandated by the Rule of Reason is
whether the challenged agreement is one that promotes competition or one that
suppresses competition. "The true test of legality is whether the restraint imposed
250
Interpretation of Law
There are, thus, two complementary categories of antitrust analysis. In the first
category are agreements whose nature and necessary effect are so plainly
anticompetitive that no elaborate study of the industry is needed to establish their
illegality -- they are "illegal per se." In the second category are agreements whose
competitive effect can only be evaluated by analyzing the facts peculiar to the
business, the history of the restraint, and the reasons why it was imposed. In
either event, the purpose of the analysis is to form a judgment about the
competitive significance of the restraint; it is not to decide whether a policy
favoring competition is in the public interest, or in the interest of the members of
an industry. Subject to exceptions defined by statute, that policy decision has
been made by the Congress.
Price is the "central nervous system of the economy," United States v. Socony-
Vacuum Oil Co., 310 U.S. 150, 226 n. 59, and an agreement that " with the
setting of price by free market forces" is illegal on its face. United States v.
Container Corp., 393 U.S. 333, 337. In this case we are presented with an
agreement among competitors to refuse to discuss prices with potential customers
until after negotiations have resulted in the initial selection of an engineer. While
this is not price fixing as such, no elaborate industry analysis is required to
demonstrate the anticompetitive character of such an agreement. It operates as an
absolute ban on competitive bidding, applying with equal force to both
complicated and simple projects and to both inexperienced and sophisticated
customers. As the District Court found, the ban "impedes the ordinary give and
take of the market place," and substantially deprives the customer of "the ability
to utilize and compare prices in selecting engineering services." 404 F.Supp. 457,
460. On its face, this agreement restrains trade within the meaning of § 1 of the
Sherman Act.
The Society's affirmative defense confirms rather than refutes the anticompetitive
purpose and effect of its agreement. The Society argues that the restraint is
justified because bidding on engineering services is inherently imprecise, would
lead to deceptively low bids, and would thereby tempt individual engineers to do
inferior work with consequent risk to public safety and health. The logic of this
251
Lectures on the US Legal System
argument rests on the assumption that the agreement will tend to maintain the
price level; if it had no such effect, it would not serve its intended purpose. The
Society nonetheless invokes the Rule of Reason, arguing that its restraint on price
competition ultimately inures to the public benefit by preventing the production
of inferior work and by insuring ethical behavior. As the preceding Discussion of
the Rule of Reason reveals, this Court has never accepted such an argument.
It may be, as petitioner argues, that competition tends to force prices down and
that an inexpensive item may be inferior to one that is more costly. There is some
risk, therefore, that competition will cause some suppliers to market a defective
product. Similarly, competitive bidding for engineering projects may be
inherently imprecise and incapable of taking into account all the variables which
will be involved in the actual performance of the project. Based on these
considerations, a purchaser might conclude that his interest in quality -- which
may embrace the safety of the end product -- outweighs the advantages of
achieving cost savings by pitting one competitor against another. Or an individual
vendor might independently refrain from price negotiation until he has satisfied
himself that he fully understands the scope of his customers' needs. These
decisions might be reasonable; indeed, petitioner has provided ample
documentation for that thesis. But these are not reasons that satisfy the Rule; nor
are such individual decisions subject to antitrust attack.
The Sherman Act does not require competitive bidding; it prohibits unreasonable
restraints on competition. Petitioner's ban on competitive bidding prevents all
customers from making price comparisons in the initial selection of an engineer,
and imposes the Society's views of the costs and benefits of competition on the
entire marketplace. It is this restraint that must be justified under the Rule of
Reason, and petitioner's attempt to do so on the basis of the potential threat that
competition poses to the public safety and the ethics of its profession is nothing
less than a frontal assault on the basic policy of the Sherman Act.
The Sherman Act reflects a legislative judgment that ultimately competition will
produce not only lower prices, but also better goods and services. "The heart of
our national economic policy long has been faith in the value of competition."
Standard Oil Co. v. FTC, 340 U.S. 231, 248. The assumption that competition is
the best method of allocating resources in a free market recognizes that all
elements of a bargain -- quality, service, safety, and durability -- and not just the
immediate cost, are favorably affected by the free opportunity to select among
alternative offers. Even assuming occasional exceptions to the presumed
consequences of competition, the statutory policy precludes inquiry into the
question whether competition is good or bad.
252
Interpretation of Law
The fact that engineers are often involved in large-scale projects significantly
affecting the public safety does not alter our analysis. Exceptions to the Sherman
Act for potentially dangerous goods and services would be tantamount to a repeal
of the statute. In our complex economy the number of items that may cause
serious harm is almost endless -- automobiles, drugs, foods, aircraft components,
heavy equipment, and countless others, cause serious harm to individuals or to
the public at large if defectively made. The judiciary cannot indirectly protect the
public against this harm by conferring monopoly privileges on the manufacturers.
By the same token, the cautionary footnote in Goldfarb, 421 U.S., at 788-789, n.
17, quoted (supra) , cannot be read as fashioning a broad exemption under the
Rule of Reason for learned professions. We adhere to the view expressed in
Goldfarb that, by their nature, professional services may differ significantly from
other business services, and, accordingly, the nature of the competition in such
services may vary. Ethical norms may serve to regulate and promote this
competition, and thus fall within the Rule of Reason. But the Society's argument
in this case is a far cry from such a position. We are faced with a contention that a
total ban on competitive bidding is necessary because otherwise engineers will be
tempted to submit deceptively low bids. Certainly, the problem of professional
deception is a proper subject of an ethical canon. But, once again, the equation of
competition with deception, like the similar equation with safety hazards, is
simply too broad; we may assume that competition is not entirely conducive to
ethical behavior, but that is not a reason, cognizable under the Sherman Act, for
doing away with competition.
In sum, the Rule of Reason does not support a defense based on the assumption
that competition itself is unreasonable. Such a view of the Rule would create the
"sea of doubt" on which Judge Taft refused to embark in Addyston, 85 F., at 284,
and which this Court has firmly avoided ever since.
III
The judgment entered by the District Court, as modified by the Court of Appeals,
prohibits the Society from adopting any official opinion, policy statement, or
guideline stating or implying that competitive bidding is unethical. Petitioner
argues that this judgment abridges its First Amendment rights. We find no merit
in this contention.
253
Lectures on the US Legal System
Having found the Society guilty of a violation of the Sherman Act, the District
Court was empowered to fashion appropriate restraints on the Society's future
activities both to avoid a recurrence of the violation and to eliminate its
consequences. See, e. g., International Salt Co. v. United States, 332 U.S. 392,
400-401; United States v. Glaxo Group, Ltd., 410 U.S. 52, 64. While the resulting
order may curtail the exercise of liberties that the Society might otherwise enjoy,
that is a necessary and, in cases such as this, unavoidable consequence of the
violation. Just as an injunction against price fixing abridges the freedom of
businessmen to talk to one another about prices, so too the injunction in this case
must restrict the Society's range of expression on the ethics of competitive
bidding. The First Amendment does not "make it . . . impossible ever to enforce
laws against agreements in restraint of trade . . . ." Giboney v. Empire Storage &
Ice Co., 336 U.S. 490, 502. In fashioning a remedy, the District Court may, of
course, consider the fact that its injunction may impinge upon rights that would
otherwise be constitutionally protected, but those protections do not prevent it
from remedying the antitrust violations.
The standard against which the order must be Judged is whether the relief
represents a reasonable method of eliminating the consequences of the illegal
conduct. We agree with the Court of Appeals that the injunction, as modified,
meets this standard. While it goes beyond a simple proscription against the
precise conduct previously pursued, that is entirely appropriate.
"The District Court is not obliged to assume, contrary to common experience, that
a violator of the antitrust laws will relinquish the fruits of his violation more
completely than the court requires him to do. And advantages already in hand
may be held by methods more subtle and informed, and more difficult to prove,
than those which, in the first place, win a market. When the purpose to restrain
trade appears from a clear violation of law, it is not necessary that all of the
untraveled roads to that end be left open and that only the worn one be closed."
International Salt Co., supra, at 400.
The Society apparently fears that the District Court's injunction, if broadly read,
will block legitimate paths of expression on all ethical matters relating to bidding.
But the answer to these fears is, as the Court held in International Salt, that the
burden is upon the proved transgressor "to bring any proper claims for relief to
the court's attention." Ibid. In this case, the Court of Appeals specifically stated
254
Interpretation of Law
that " the Society wishes to adopt some other ethical guideline more closely
confined to the legitimate objective of preventing deceptively low bids, it may
move the district court for modification of the decree." 181 U. S. App. D.C., at
46, 555 F.2d, at 983. This is, we believe, a proper approach, adequately
protecting the Society's interests. We therefore reject petitioner's attack on the
District Court's order.
Affirmed.
255
Lectures on the US Legal System
'labor' and 'service' both used, but also, as it [*512] were to guard against any
narrow interpretation and emphasize a breadth of meaning, to them is added 'of
any kind;' and, further, as noticed by the circuit judge in his opinion, the fifth
section, which makes specific exceptions, among them professional actors,
artists, lecturers, singers, and domestic [143 U.S. 457, 459] servants, strengthens
the idea that every other kind of labor and service was intended to be reached by
the first section. While there is great force to this reasoning, we cannot think
congress intended to denounce with penalties a transaction like that in the present
case. It is a familiar rule that a thing may be within the letter of the statute and yet
not within the statute, because not within its spirit nor within the intention of its
makers. This has been often asserted, and the Reports are full of cases illustrating
its application. This is not the substitution of the will of the judge for that of the
legislator; for frequently words of general meaning are used in a statute, words
broad enough to include an act in question, and yet a consideration of the whole
legislation, or of the circumstances surrounding its enactment, or of the absurd
results which follow from giving such broad meaning to the words, makes it
unreasonable to believe that the legislator intended to include the particular act.
As said in Stradling v. Morgan, Plow. 205: 'From which cases it appears that the
sages of the law heretofore have construed statutes quite contrary to the letter in
some appearance, and those statutes which comprehend all things in the letter
they have expounded to extend to but some things, and those which generally
prohibit all people from doing such an act they have interpreted to permit some
people to do it, and those which include every person in the letter they have
adjudged to reach to some persons only, which expositions have always been
founded upon the intent of the legislature, which they have collected sometimes
by considering the cause and necessity of making the act, sometimes by
comparing one part of the act with another, and sometimes by foreign
circumstances.'
In Pier Co. v. Hannam, 3 Barn. & Ald. 266, ABBOTT, C. J., quotes from Lord
Coke as follows: 'Acts of parliament are to be so construed as no man that is
innocent or free from injury or wrong be, by a literal construction, punished or
endangered.' In the case of State v. Clark, 29 N. J. Law, 96, 99, it appeared that
an act had been passed, making it a misdemeanor to willfully break down a fence
in the possession of another person. Clark was indicted [143 U.S. 457, 460] under
that statute. The defense was that the act of breaking down the fence, though
willful, was in the exercise of a legal right to go upon his own lands. The trial
court rejected the testimony offered to sustain the defense, and the supreme court
held that this ruling was error. In its opinion the court used this language: 'The act
of 1855, in terms, makes the willful opening, breaking down, or injuring of any
fences belonging to or in the possession of any other person a misdemeanor. In
what sense is the term 'willful' used? In common parlance, 'willful' is used in the
sense of 'intentional,' as distinguished from 'accidental' or 'involuntary.' Whatever
one does intentionally, he does willfully. Is it used in that sense in this act? Did
the legislature intend to make the intentional opening of a fence for the purpose
of going upon the land of another indictable, if done by permission or for a lawful
purpose? * * * We cannot suppose such to have been the actual intent. To adopt
256
Interpretation of Law
such a construction would put a stop to the ordinary business of life. The
language of the act, if construed literally, evidently leads to an absurd result. If a
literal construction of the words of a statute be absurd, the act must be so
construed as to avoid the absurdity. The court must restrain the words. The object
designed to be reached by the act must limit and control the literal import of the
terms and phrases employed.' In U. S. v. Kirby, 7 Wall. 482, 486, the defendants
were indicted for the violation of an act of congress providing 'that if any person
shall knowingly and willfully obstruct or retard the passage of the mail, or of any
driver or carrier, or of any horse or carriage carrying the same, he shall, upon
conviction, for every such offense, pay a fine not exceeding one hundred dollars.'
The specific charge was that the defendants knowingly and willfully retarded the
passage of one Farris, a carrier of the mail, while engaged in the performance of
his duty, and also in like manner retarded the steam-boat Gen. Buell, at that time
engaged in carrying the mail. To this indictment the defendants pleaded specially
that Farris had been indicted for murder by a court of competent authority in
Kentucky; that a bench-warrant had been issued and [143 U.S. 457, 461] placed
in the hands of the defendant Kirby, the sheriff of the county, commanding him to
arrest Farris, and bring him before the court to answer to the indictment; and that,
in obedience to this warrant, he and the other defendants, as his posse, entered
upon the steamboat Gen. Buell and arrested Farris, and used only such force as
was necessary to accomplish that arrest. The question as to the sufficiency of this
plea was certified to this court, and it was held that the arrest of Farris upon the
warrant from the state court was not an obstruction of the mail, or the retarding of
the passage of a carrier of the mail, within the meaning of the act. In its opinion
the court says: 'All laws should receive a sensible construction. General terms
should be so limited in their application as not to lead to injustice, oppression, or
an absurd consequence. It will always, therefore, be presumed that the legislature
intended exceptions to its language which would avoid results of this character.
The reason of the law in such cases should prevail over its letter. The common
sense of man approves the judgment mentioned by Puffendorf, that the Bolognian
law which enacted 'that whoever drew blood in the streets should be punished
with the utmost severity,' did not extend to the surgeon who opened the vein of a
person that fell down in the street in a fit. The same [*513] common sense
accepts the ruling, cited by Plowden, that the statute of 1 Edw. II., which enacts
that a prisoner who breaks prison shall be guilty of felony, does not extend to a
prisoner who breaks out when the prison is on fire, 'for he is not to be hanged
because he would not stay to be burnt.' And we think that a like common sense
will sanction the ruling we make, that the act of congress which punishes the
obstruction or retarding of the passage of the mail, or of its carrier, does not apply
to a case of temporary detention of the mail caused by the arrest of the carrier
upon an indictment for murder.' The following cases may also be cited: Henry v.
Tilson, 17 Vt. 479; Ryegate v. Wardsboro, 30 Vt. 743; Ex parte Ellis, 11 Cal.
220; Ingraham v. Speed, 30 Miss. 410; Jackson v. Collins, 3 Cow. 89; People v.
Insurance Co., 15 Johns. 358; Burch v. Newbury, 10 N. Y. 374; People v. [143
U.S. 457, 462] Commissioners, 95 N. Y. 554, 558; People v. Lacombe, 99 N. Y.
43, 49, 1 N. E. Rep. 599; Chesapeake & Ohio Canal Co. v. Baltimore & Ohio R.
257
Lectures on the US Legal System
Co., 4 Gill & J. 152; Osgood v. Breed, 12 Mass. 525, 530; Wilbur v. Crane, 13
Pick. 284; Oates v. Bank, 100 U. S. 239.
Among other things which may be considered in determining the intent of the
legislature is the title of the act. We do not mean that it may be used to add to or
take from the body of the statute, (Hadden v. Collector, 5 Wall. 107,) but it may
help to interpret its meaning. In the case of U. S. v. Fisher, 2 Cranch, 358, 386,
Chief Justice MARSHALL said: 'On the infiuence which the title ought to have
in construing the enacting clauses, much has been said, and yet it is not easy to
discern the point of difference between the opposing counsel in this respect.
Neither party contends that the title of an act can control plain words in the body
of the statute; and neither denies that, taken with other parts, it may assist in
removing ambiguities. Where the intent is plain, nothing is left to construction.
Where the mind labors to discover the design of the legislature, it seizes
everything from which aid can be derived; and in such case the title claims a
degree of notice, and will have its due share of consideration.' And in the case of
U. S. v. Palmer, 3 Wheat. 610, 631, the same judge applied the doctrine in this
way: 'The words of the section are in terms of unlimited extent. The words 'any
person or persons' are broad enough to comprehend every human being. But
general words must not only be limited to cases within the jurisdiction of the
state, but also to those objects to which the legislature intended to apply them.
Did the legislature intend to apply these words to the subjects of a foreign power,
who in a foreign ship may commit murder or robbery on the high seas? The title
of an act cannot control its words, but may furnish some aid in showing what was
in the mind of the legislature. The title of this act is, 'An act for the punishment of
certain crimes against the United States.' It would seem that offenses against the
United States, not offenses against the human race, were the crimes which the
legislature intended by this law to punish.'
[143 U.S. 457, 463] It will be seen that words as general as those used in the first
section of this act were by that decision limited, and the intent of congress with
respect to the act was gathered partially, at least, from its title. Now, the title of
this act is, 'An act to prohibit the importation and migration of foreigners and
aliens under contract or agreement to perform labor in the United States, its
territories, and the District of Columbia. Obviously the thought expressed in this
reaches only to the work of the manual laborer, as distinguished from that of the
professional man. No one reading such a title would suppose that congress had in
its mind any purpose of staying the coming into this country of ministers of the
gospel, or, indeed, of any class whose toil is that of the brain. The common
understanding of the terms 'labor' and 'laborers' does not include preaching and
preachers, and it is to be assumed that words and phrases are used in their
ordinary meaning. So whatever of light is thrown upon the statute by the
language of the title indicates an exclusion from its penal provisions of all
contracts for the employment of ministers, rectors, and pastors.
Again, another guide to the meaning of a statute is found in the evil which it is
designed to remedy; and for this the court properly looks at contemporaneous
events, the situation as it existed, and as it was pressed upon the attention of the
258
Interpretation of Law
259
Lectures on the US Legal System
allurements of men whose only object is to obtain labor at the lowest possible
rate, regardless of the social and material well-being of our own citizens, and
regardless of the evil consequences which result to American laborers from such
immigration. This class of immigrants care nothing about our institutions, and in
many instances never even heard of them. They are men whose passage is paid by
the importers. They come here under contract to labor for a certain number of
years. They are ignorant of our social condition, and, that they may remain so,
they are isolated and prevented from coming into contact with Americans. They
are generally from the lowest social stratum, and live upon the coarsest food, and
in hovels of a character before unknown to American workmen. They, as a rule,
do not become citizens, and are certainly not a desirable acquisition to the body
politic. The inevitable tendency of their presence among us is to degrade
American labor, and to reduce it to the level of the imported pauper labor.' Page
5359, Congressional Record, 48th Cong.
We find, therefore, that the title of the act, the evil which was intended to be
remedied, the circumstances surrounding the appeal to congress, the reports of
the committee of each house, all concur in affirming that the intent of congress
was simply to stay the influx of this cheap, unskilled labor.
But, beyond all these matters, no purpose of action against religion can be
imputed to any legislation, state or national, because this is a religious people.
This is historically true. From the discovery of this continent to the present hour,
there is a single voice making this affirmation. The commission to Christopher
Columbus, prior to his sail westward, is from "Ferdinand and Isabella, by the
grace of God, king and queen of Castile," etc., and recites that "it is hoped that by
God's assistance some of the continents and islands in the [496] ocean will be
discovered," etc. The first colonial grant, that made to Sir Walter Raleigh in 1584,
was from "Elizabeth, by the grace of God, of England, Fraunce, and Ireland,
queene, defender of the faith," etc.; and the grant authorizing him to enact statutes
of the government of the proposed colony provided that "they be not against the
true Christian faith nowe professed in the Church of England." The first charter of
Virginia, granted by King James I. in 1606, after reciting the application of
certain parties for a charter, commenced the grant in these words: "We, greatly
commending, and graciously accepting of, their Desires for the Furtherance of so
noble a Work, which may, by the Providence of Almighty God, hereafter tend to
the Glory of His Divine Majesty, in propagating of Christian Religion to such
People, as yet live in Darkness and miserable Ignorance of the true Knowledge
and Worship of God, and may in time bring the Infidels and Savages, living in
those parts, to human Civility, and to a settled and quiet Government; DO, by
these our Letters-Patents, graciously accept of, and agree to, their humble and
well-intentioned Desires."
Language of similar import may be found in the subsequent charters of that
colony from the same king, in 1609 and 1611; and the same is true of the various
charters granted to the other colonies. In language more or less emphatic is the
establishment of the Christian religion declared to be one of the purposes of the
grant. The celebrated compact made by the pilgrims in the Mayflower, 1620,
260
Interpretation of Law
recites: "Having undertaken for the Glory of God, and Advancement of the
Christian Faith, and the Honour of our King and Country, a Voyage to plant the
first Colony in the northern Parts of Virginia; Do by these Presents, solemnly and
mutually, in the Presence of God and one another, covenant and combine
ourselves together into a civil Body Politick, for our better Ordering and
Preservation, and Furtherance of the Ends aforesaid."
The fundamental orders of Connecticut, under which a provisional government
was instituted in 1638-39, commence with this declaration: "Forasmuch as it hath
pleased the Allmighty God by the wise disposition of his diuyne pruidence [143
U.S. 457, 467] so to order and dispose of things that we the Inhabitants and
Residents of Windsor, Hartford, and Wethersfield are now cohabiting and
dwelling in and vppon the River of Conectecotte and the Lands thereunto
adioyneing; And well knowing where a people are gathered togather the word of
{515} God requires that to mayntayne the peace and union of such a people there
should be an orderly and decent Gouerment established according to God, to
order and dispose of the affayres of the people at all seasons as occation shall
require; doe therefore assotiate and conioyne our selues to be as one Publike State
or Commonwelth; and doe, for our selues and our Successors and such as shall be
adioyned to vs att any tyme hereafter, enter into Combination and Confederation
togather, to mayntayne and presearue the liberty and purity of the gospell of our
Lord Jesus wch we now prfesse, as also the disciplyne of the Churches, wch
according to the truth of the said gospell is now practised amongst vs."
In the charter of privileges granted by William Penn to the province of
Pennsylvania, in 1701, it is recited: "Because no People can be truly happy,
though under the greatest Enjoyment of Civil Liberties, if abridged of the
Freedom of their Consciences, as to their Religious Profession and Worship; And
Almighty God being the only Lord of Conscience, Father of Lights and Spirits;
and the Author as well as Object of all divine Knowledge, Faith, and Worship,
who only doth enlighten the Minds, and persuade and convince the
Understandings of People, I do hereby grant and declare," etc.
Coming nearer to the present time, the declaration of independence recognizes
the presence of the Divine in human affairs in these words: "We hold these truths
to be self-evident, that all men are created equal, that they are endowed by their
Creator with certain unalienable Rights, that among these are Life, Liberty and
the pursuit of Happiness." "We, therefore, the Representatives of the united States
of America, in General Congress, Assembled, appealing to the Supreme Judge of
the world for the rectitude of our intentions, do, in the Name and by Authority of
the good People of these Colonies, solemnly publish and declare," etc.; "And for
the [143 U.S. 457, 468] support of this Declaration, with a firm reliance on the
Protection of Divine Providence, we mutually pledge to each other our Lives, our
Fortunes, and our sacred Honor."
If we examine the constitutions of the various states, we find in them a constant
recognition of religious obligations. Every constitution of every one of the 44
states contains language which, either directly or by clear implication, recognizes
261
Lectures on the US Legal System
a profound reverence for religion, and an assumption that its influence in all
human affairs is essential to the well-being of the community. This recognition
may be in the preamble, such as is found in the constitution of Illinois, 1870:
"We, the people of the state of Illinois, grateful to Almighty God for the civil,
political, and religious liberty which He hath so long permitted us to enjoy, and
looking to Him for a blessing upon our endeavors to secure and transmit the same
unimpaired to succeeding generations," etc.
It may be only in the familiar requisition that all officers shall take an oath
closing with the declaration, "so help me God." It may be in clauses like that of
the constitution of Indiana, 1816, art. 11, §4: "The manner of administering an
oath or affirmation shall be such as is most consistent with the conscience of the
deponent, and shall be esteemed the most solemn appeal to God." Or in
provisions such as are found in articles 36 and 37 of the declaration of the rights
of the constitution of Maryland, (1867): "That, as it is the duty of every man to
worship God in such manner as he thinks most acceptable to Him, all persons are
equally entitled to protection in their religious liberty: wherefore, no person
ought, by any law, to be molested in his person or estate on account of his
religious persuasion or profession, or for his religious practice, unless, under the
color of religion, he shall disturb the good order, peace, or safety of the state, or
shall infringe the laws of morality, or injure others in their natural, civil, or
religious rights; nor ought any person to be compelled to frequent or maintain or
contribute, unless on contract, to maintain any place of worship or any ministry;
nor shall any person, otherwise competent, be deemed incompetent as a witness
or juror on account of his religious belief: provided, he [143 U.S. 457, 469]
believes in the existence of God, and that, under his dispensation, such person
will be held morally accountable for his acts, and be rewarded or punished
therefor, either in this world or the world to come. That no religious test ought
ever to be required as a qualification for any office or profit or trust in this state,
other than a declaration of belief in the existence of God; nor shall the legislature
prescribe any other oath of office than the oath prescribed by this constitution."
Or like that in articles 2 and 3 of part 1 of the constitution of Massachusetts,
(1780:) "It is the right as well as the duty of all men in society publicly, and at
stated seasons, to worship the Supreme Being, the Great Creator and Preserver of
the universe. * * * As the happiness of a people and the good order and
preservation of civil government essentially depend upon piety, religion, and
morality, and as these cannot be generally diffused through a community but by
the institution of the public worship of God and of public instructions in piety,
religion, and morality: Therefore, to promote their happiness, and to secure the
good order and preservation of their government, the people of this
commonwealth have a right to invest their legislature with power to authorize and
require, and the legislature shall, from time to time, authorize and require, the
several towns, parishes, precincts, and other bodies politic or religious societies to
make suitable provision, at their own expense, for the institution of the public
worship of God and for the support and maintenance of public Protestant teachers
of piety, religion and morality, in all cases where such provisions shall not be
made voluntarily." Or, as in sections 5 and 14 of article 7 of the constitution of
262
Interpretation of Law
Mississippi, (1832:) "No person who denies the being of a God, or a future state
of rewards and punishments, shall hold any office in the civil department of this
state. * * * Religion {516} morality, and knowledge being necessary to good
government, the preservation of liberty, and the happiness of mankind, schools,
and the means of education, shall forever be encouraged in this state." Or by
article 22 of the constitution of Delaware, (1776,) which required all officers,
besides an oath of allegiance, to make and subscribe the following declaration: "I,
A.B., do profess [143 U.S. 457, 470] faith in God the Father, and in Jesus Christ
His only Son, and in the Holy Ghost, one God, blessed for evermore; and I do
acknowledge the Holy Scriptures of the Old and New Testament to be given by
divine inspiration."
Even the constitution of the United States, which is supposed to have little touch
upon the private life of the individual, contains in the first amendment a
declaration common to the constitutions of all the states, as follows: "Congress
shall make no law respecting an establishment of religion, or prohibiting the free
exercise thereof," etc., - and also provides in article 1, § 7, (a provision common
to many constitutions,) that the executive shall have 10 days (Sundays excepted)
within which to determine whether he will approve or veto a bill.
There is no dissonance in these declarations. There is a universal language
pervading them all, having one meaning. They affirm and reaffirm that this is a
religious nation. These are not individual sayings, declarations of private persons.
They are organic utterances. They speak the voice of the entire people. While
because of a general recognition of this truth the question has seldom been
presented to the courts, yet we find that in Updegraph v. Comm., 11 Serg. & R.
394, 400, it was decided that, "Christianity, general Christianity, is, and always
has been, a part of the Common law of Pennsylvania; * * * not Christianity with
an established church and tithes and spiritual courts, but Christianity with liberty
of conscience to all men." And in People v. Ruggles, 8 Johns. 290, 294, 295,
Chancellor KENT, the great commentator on American law, speaking as chief
justice of the supreme court of New York, said: "The people of this state, in
common with the people of this country, profess the general doctrines of
Christianity as the rule of their faith and practice; and to scandalize the author of
those doctrines in not only, in a religious point of view, extremely impious, but,
even in respect to the obligations due to society, is a gross violation of decency
and good order. * * * The free, equal, and undisturbed enjoyment of religious
opinion, whatever it may be, and free and decent discussions on any religious
[143 U.S. 457, 471] subject, is granted and secured; but to revile, with malicious
and blasphemous contempt, the religion professed by almost the whole
community is an abuse of that right. Nor are we bound by any expressions in the
constitution, as some have strangely supposed, either not to punish at all, or to
punish indiscriminately the like attacks upon the religion of Mahomet or of the
Grand Lama; and for this plain reason that the case assumes that we are a
Christian people, and the morality of the country is deeply ingrafted upon
Christianity, and not upon the doctrines or worship of those impostors." And in
the famous case of Vidal v. Girard's Ex'rs, 2 How. 127, 198, this court, while
263
Lectures on the US Legal System
sustaining the will of Mr. Girard, with its provisions for the creation of a college
into which no minister should be permitted to enter, observed: "it is also said, and
truly, that the Christian religion is a part of the Common law of Pennsylvania."
If we pass beyond these matters to a view of American life, as expressed by its
laws, its business, its customs, and its society, we find everywhere a clear
recognition of the same truth. Among other matters note the following: The form
of oath universally prevailing, concluding with an appeal to the Almighty; the
custom of opening sessions of all deliberative bodies and most conventions with
prayer; the prefatory words of all wills, "In the name of God, amen;" the laws
respecting the observance of the Sabbath, with the general cessation of all secular
business, and the closing of courts, legislatures, and other similar public
assemblies on that day; the churches and church organizations which abound in
every city, town, and hamlet; the multitude of charitable organizations existing
everywhere under Christian auspices; the gigantic missionary associations, with
general support, and aiming to establish Christian missions in every quarter of the
globe. These and many other matters which might be noticed, add a volume of
unofficial declarations to the mass of organic utterances that this is a Christian
nation. In the face of all these, shall it be believed that a congress of the United
States intended to make it a misdemeanor for a church of this country to contract
for the services of a Christian minister residing in another nation?
[143 U.S. 457, 472] Suppose, in the congress that passed this act, some member
had offered a bill which in terms declared that, if any Roman Catholic church in
this country should contract with Cardinal Manning to come to this country, and
enter into its service as pastor and priest, or any Episcopal church should enter
into a like contract with Canon Farrar, or any Baptist church should make similar
arrangements with Rev. Mr. Spurgeon, or any Jewish synagogue with some
eminent rabbi, such contract should be adjudged unlawful and void, and the
church making it be subject to prosecution and punishment. Can it be believed
that it would have received a minute of approving thought or a single vote? Yet it
is contended that such was, in effect, the meaning of this statute. The construction
invoked cannot be accepted as correct. It is a case where there was presented a
definite evil, in view of which the legislature used general terms with the purpose
of reaching all phases of that evil; and thereafter, unexpectedly, it is developed
that the general language thus employed is broad enough to reach cases and acts
which the whole history and life of the country affirm could not have been
intentionally legislated against. It is the duty of the courts, under those
circumstances, to say that, however {517} broad the language of the statute may
be, the act, although within the letter, is not with the intention of the legislature,
and therefore cannot be within the statute.
The judgment will be reversed, and the case remanded for further proceedings in
accordance with the opinion.
264
Interpretation of Law
265
Lectures on the US Legal System
force. Of these, 7 were black and 6 white. The most junior black selected into the
program had less seniority than several white production workers whose bids for
admission were rejected. Thereafter one of those white production workers,
respondent Brian Weber, instituted this class action in the United States District
Court for the Eastern District of Louisiana.
The complaint alleged that the filling of craft trainee positions at the Gramercy
plant pursuant to the affirmative action program had resulted in junior black
employees receiving training in preference to more senior white employees, thus
discriminating against respondent and other similarly situated white employees in
violation of §§ 703(a) and (d) of Title VII. The District Court held that the plan
violated Title VII, entered a judgment in favor of the plaintiff class, and granted a
permanent injunction prohibiting Kaiser and the USWA "from denying plaintiffs,
Brian F. Weber and all other members of the class, access to on-the-job training
programs on the basis of race." A divided panel of the Court of Appeals for the
Fifth Circuit affirmed, holding that all employment preferences incidental to bona
fide affirmative action plans, violated Title VII's prohibition against racial
discrimination in employment.... We granted certiorari.... We reverse.
We emphasize at the outset the narrow- * ness of our inquiry. Since the Kaiser-
USWA plan does not involve state action, this case does not present an alleged
violation of the Equal Protection Clause of the Constitution. Further, since the
Kaiser-USWA plan was adopted voluntarily, we are not concerned with what
Title VII requires or with " what a court might order to remedy a past proven
violation of the Act. The only question before us is the narrow statutory issue of
whether Title VII forbids private employers and unions from voluntarily agreeing
upon bona fide affirmative action plans that accord racial preferences in the
manner and for the purpose provided in the Kaiser-USWA plan....
Respondent argues that Congress in- tended in Title VII to prohibit all race-
conscious affirmative action plans. Respondent's argument rests upon a literal
interpretation of §§ 703(a) and (d) of the Act. Those sections make it unlawful to
"discriminate... because of... race" in hiring and in the selection of apprentices for
training programs. Since, the argument runs, McDonald v. Sante Fe Trail Trans.
Co.... settled that Title VII forbids discrimination against whites as well as blacks,
and since the Kaiser-USWA affirmative action plan operates to discriminate
against white employees solely because they are white, it follows that the Kaiser-
USWA plan violates Title VII.
Respondent's argument is not without force. But it overlooks the significance of
the fact that the Kaiser-USWA plan is an affirmative action plan voluntarily
adopted by private parties to eliminate traditional patterns of racial segregation.
In this context respondent's reliance upon a literal construction of §§ 703(a) and
(d) and upon McDonald is misplaced....
The prohibition against racial discrimination in §§ 703(a) and (d) of Title VII
must therefore be read against the background of the legislative history of Title
VII and the historical context from which the Act arose.... Examination of those
sources makes clear that an interpretation of the sections that forbade all race-
266
Interpretation of Law
267
Lectures on the US Legal System
addresses only the first objection. The section provides that nothing contained in
Title VII "shall be interpreted to require any employer... to grant preferential
treatment... to any group because of the race... of such... group on account of a de
facto racial imbalance in the employer's work force. The section does not state
that "nothing in Title" VII shall be interpreted to permit voluntary affirmative
efforts to correct racial imbalances. The natural inference is that Congress chose
not to forbid all voluntary race-conscious affirmative action...
We therefore hold that Title VII's prohibition in §§ 703(a) and (d) against racial
discrimination does not condemn all private, voluntary, race-conscious
affirmative action plans.
III
We need not today define in detail the line of demarcation between permissible
and impermissible affirmative action plans. It suffices to hold that the challenged
Kaiser-USWA affirmative action plan falls on the permissible side of the line.
The purposes of the plan mirror those of the statute. Both were designed to break
down old patterns of racial segregation and hierarchy. Both were structured to
"open employment opportunities for Negroes in occupations which have been
traditionally Closed to them." 110 Cong. Rec. 6548 (remarks of Sen. Humphrey).
At the same time the plan does not unnecessarily trammel the interests of the
white employees. The plan does not require the discharge of white workers and
their replacement with new black hirees.... Nor does the plan create an absolute
bar to the advancement of white employees; half of those trained in the program
will be white. Moreover, the plan is a temporary measure; it is not intended to
maintain racial balance, but simply to eliminate a manifest racial imbalance.
Preferential selection of craft trainees at the Gramercy plant will end as soon as
the percentage of black skilled craft workers in the Gramercy plant approximates
the percentage of blacks in the local labor force.
We conclude, therefore, that the adoption of the Kaiser-USWA plan for
Gramercy plant falls within the area of discretion left by Title VII to the private
sector voluntarily to adopt affirmative action plans designed to eliminate
conspicuous racial imbalance in traditionally segregated job categories.
Accordingly, the judgment of the Court of Appeals for the Fifth Circuit is
Reversed.
MR. JUSTICE REHNQUIST, with " whom THE CHIEF JUSTICE joins,
dissenting.
... Today's decision represents a dramatic and... unremarked switch in the Court's
interpretation of Title VII.
We have never wavered in our understanding that Title VII "prohibits all racial
discrimination in employment, without exception for any particular employees....
[I]n our most recent discussion of the issue, we uttered words seemingly
dispositive of this case: "It is clear beyond cavil that the obligation imposed by
Title VII is to provide an equal opportunity for each applicant regardless of race,
268
Interpretation of Law
269
Lectures on the US Legal System
270
Interpretation of Law
271
Lectures on the US Legal System
272
Part IV – Courts and Lawyers
47
To proof, to please, to touch.
273
274
Lecture # 16– Courts
In regard to states courts, we have at the lowest level the justices of peace,
also called in some states magistrates like in New-York. Some states have
probate courts for settling decedents’ estates. Usually the Justice of peace
is an elected official who serves a two to six year term and is not
necessary a lawyer except in some urban areas like in the State of New-
York. They are performing civil marriages and attesting legal documents;
presiding over courts of first instance in both minor civil and criminal
matters, and they may even hold preliminary hearings in cases involving
more serious crimes. Beneath of them, there are the municipal courts, also
called traffic courts, city courts, small claim courts or police courts. The
judges are or elected or appointed and do deal with civil cases (generally
from $500 to $1000) and certain misdemeanors. The trial courts,
designated as Court of common pleas, county court or superior court, have
general civil and criminal jurisdiction. Their geographical jurisdiction is
normally the county.
At the top of the state judicial pyramid stands a supreme court. It has the
final word on all state constitutional questions and receives and
adjudicates appeals on major questions emanating from the other courts,
but mainly from the appellate court. However, sometimes the local
system, like Oklahoma, has a supreme court for civil and administrative
cases, whereas courts of criminal appeals constitute the last instance in
criminal proceedings.
275
Lectures on the US Legal System
The trial courts of the federal system are constituted by 90 District courts,
organized in regional circuits and composed of some 694 judges
appointed by the President and confirmed by the Senate, in charge during
good behavior, thus serving for life except if there is a good cause for
revocation. The courts have jurisdiction for federal questions cases and
diversity cases where parties of at least two states or a party of a foreign
state are involved and the litigated amount is superior of 75.000$, and that
there is no exclusive jurisdiction of a state court like it is e.g. for divorce
cases.
The highest court in the United States is the federal Supreme Court. It is
in fact the only federal court mentioned and provided for by the
Constitution; all other courts were created by statutes. It stands under the
authority of a Chief Justice, assisted by eight Associate Justices appointed
by the President with the advice and consent of the Senate. It has original
jurisdiction in cases involving ambassadors, public ministers, counsels
and national states; appellate jurisdiction over cases decided by federal
courts and cases decided over by state courts involving federal issues. The
sentences of the court are rendered as opinions, followed by concurring
and/or dissenting opinions.
48
Understanding the Federal Courts, via The Federal Judiciary Hompage,
http://www.uscourts.gov/UFC99.pdf.
276
Courts
277
Lectures on the US Legal System
278
Courts
(e) To protect the United States and its citizens, and for the effective conduct of
military operations and prevention of terrorist attacks, it is necessary for
individuals subject to this order pursuant to section 2 hereof to be detained, and,
when tried, to be tried for violations of the laws of war and other applicable laws
by military tribunals.
(f) Given the danger to the safety of the United States and the nature of
international terrorism, and to the extent provided by and under this order, I find
consistent with section 836 of title 10, United States Code, that it is not
practicable to apply in military commissions under this order the principles of law
and the rules of evidence generally recognized in the trial of criminal cases in the
United States district courts.
(g) Having fully considered the magnitude of the potential deaths, injuries, and
property destruction that would result from potential acts of terrorism against the
United States, and the probability that such acts will occur, I have determined that
an extraordinary emergency exists for national defense purposes, that this
emergency constitutes an urgent and compelling govern-ment interest, and that
issuance of this order is necessary to meet the emergency.
Sec. 2. Definition and Policy.
(a) The term "individual subject to this order" shall mean any individual who is
not a United States citizen with respect to whom I determine from time to time in
writing that:
(1) there is reason to believe that such individual, at the relevant
times,
(i) is or was a member of the organization known as al Qaida;
(ii) has engaged in, aided or abetted, or conspired to commit, acts of international
terrorism, or acts in preparation therefor, that have caused, threaten to cause, or
have as their aim to cause, injury to or adverse effects on the United States, its
citizens, national security, foreign policy, or economy; or
(iii) has knowingly harbored one or more individuals described in subparagraphs
(i) or (ii) of subsection 2(a)(1) of this order; and
(2) it is in the interest of the United States that such individual be subject to this
order.
(b) It is the policy of the United States that the Secretary of Defense shall take all
necessary measures to ensure that any individual subject to this order is detained
in accordance with section 3, and, if the individual is to be tried, that such
individual is tried only in accordance with section 4.
(c) It is further the policy of the United States that any individual subject to this
order who is not already under the control of the Secretary of Defense but who is
under the control of any other officer or agent of the United States or any State
279
Lectures on the US Legal System
280
Courts
281
Lectures on the US Legal System
(1) military tribunals shall have exclusive jurisdiction with respect to offenses by
the individual; and
(2) the individual shall not be privileged to seek any remedy or maintain any
proceeding, directly or indirectly, or to have any such remedy or proceeding
sought on the individual's behalf, in (i) any court of the United States, or any
State thereof, (ii) any court of any foreign nation, or (iii) any international
tribunal.
(c) This order is not intended to and does not create any right, benefit, or
privilege, substantive or procedural, enforceable at law or equity by any party,
against the United States, its departments, agencies, or other entities, its officers
or employees, or any other person.
(d) For purposes of this order, the term "State" includes any State, district,
territory, or possession of the United States.
(e) I reserve the authority to direct the Secretary of Defense, at any time
hereafter, to transfer to a governmental authority control of any individual subject
to this order. Nothing in this order shall be construed to limit the authority of any
such governmental authority to prosecute any individual for whom control is
transferred.
Sec. 8. Publication.
This order shall be published in the Federal Register.
GEORGE W. BUSH
THE WHITE HOUSE,
November 13, 2001.
Norfolk, Virginia
May 3, 200049
Thank you, Judge Doumar, for your kind introduction. I am very pleased to be
here today to help celebrate the 100th anniversary of the founding of the Norfolk
and Portsmouth Bar Association.
49
http://www.supremecourtus.gov/publicinfo/speeches/sp_05-03-00.html.
282
Courts
I am going to speak this afternoon about civil liberty in time of war, focusing first
on the Civil War and then on World War II. I have chosen this subject in part
because of the importance of the Civil War in this historic area.
Even those of you who did not major in history probably know that Abraham
Lincoln was elected President in November of 1860, and was inaugurated as
President on March 4, 1861. Between the time of his election and his
inauguration, the seven states of the deep south -- South Carolina, Georgia,
Florida, Alabama, Mississippi, Louisiana, and Texas -- had seceded from the
Union and elected Jefferson Davis as their President. For the first six weeks of
Lincoln's administration, the cabinet debated what to do about the Union garrison
at Fort Sumter, on an island in the harbor of Charleston, South Carolina. In mid-
April, the Confederate shore batteries opened up on the fort, and the garrison
surrendered the next day. Lincoln called for 75,000 volunteers to put down the
rebellion, and the four states of the upper south -- Virginia, North Carolina,
Tennessee, and Arkansas -- seceded and joined the original seven states of the
Confederacy. The Civil War had begun.
As most of you already know, some of the more well-known Civil War events
occurred in this area. Indeed, the Norfolk Navy Shipyard played an interesting
role during the Civil War. The U. S. government had established the Norfolk
Navy Shipyard in 1801. Its predecessor on the same site was a private shipyard
built in 1767 by a wealthy Scottish merchant named Andrew Sprowle.
On April 20, 1861, Federal troops evacuated the Norfolk Navy Yard, and the
Confederacy fell heir to the enormous amount of guns, and equipment that had
been stored there. Before they evacuated the Navy Yard, however, Federal troops
had deliberately sunk the USS "Merrimack" in hopes of preventing the
Confederate troops from making use of it. The "Merrimack" had been a brand
new steam frigate with the capacity to carry 40 guns and worth over one million
two hundred thousand dollars (in 1861 dollars) fully equipped. Under the control
of the Confederacy, the Norfolk Navy Yard salvaged and rebuilt the Confederate
ironclad "Virginia" from the hull of the scuttled USS "Merrimack".
Accounts from the time state that the refurbished "Virginia", also still referred to
by many as the "Merrimack", bore some resemblance to a huge terrapin, with a
large round chimney about the middle of its back. The ship had a maximum
speed of around five knots or five miles per hour, and it was not suitable to sail in
either high winds or heavy seas. It also took over 30 minutes to turn the vessel.
Thus the sole purpose of the ironclad "Virginia" was to guard the Norfolk harbor.
The reconstruction of the "Virginia" by Confederate workers was completed on
March 5, 1862.
The Confederacy generally intended to use the ironclad "Virginia" to guard the
water route to Richmond from the coast via the James River. The vessel's first
voyage away from the Norfolk Navy Yard occurred on March 8, 1862. On that
day, the "Virginia" sank the federal ship "Cumberland" and burned the Union
ship "Congress" off Hampton Roads (which today is considered part of the
Norfolk/Portsmouth/Hampton Roads metropolitan area). On March 9, 1862, the
283
Lectures on the US Legal System
"Virginia" sailed out to complete the destruction of the federal ship "Minnesota",
which had run aground after the previous day's encounter with the "Virginia". On
this voyage, the "Virginia" met the USS "Monitor", also an experimental ironclad
with a revolving turret amidship. The ensuing five-hour battle was the first naval
engagement in history between ironclad vessels. Although the engagement
resulted in a draw, the "Virginia" was nonetheless driven back to Norfolk for
repairs. The James River remained closed, however, keeping the federal fleet in
Hampton Roads and away from Richmond. In early May of 1862, Confederate
soldiers burned the "Virginia" in order to keep her from falling back into the
hands of Federal troops. The City of Norfolk and the Navy Yard were then
recaptured by Federal troops on May 10 of 1862.
Let us now shift our focus to a city located on the northern border of the
Commonwealth of Virginia. When the Civil War broke out, Washington, D.C.
went from being an interior capital to a capital on the very frontier of the Union,
exposed to possible raids and even investment and capture by the Confederate
forces. President Lincoln, fully aware of this danger, was most anxious that the
75,000 volunteers for whom he had called would arrive in Washington and
defend the city against a possible Confederate attack. Many would come from the
northeast -- Boston, New York, and Philadelphia. But all of the rail connections
from the northeast into Washington ran through the city of Baltimore, 40 miles to
the northeast. Herein lay a problem; there were numerous Confederate
sympathizers in Baltimore and the city itself, at that time, had a reputation for
unruliness -- it was known as "Mob City." To complicate matters further, it was
necessary for passengers enroute from the northeast to Washington to change
stations in Baltimore.
Shortly after troops from the northeast began arriving in Baltimore on their way
to Washington, a riot broke out while soldiers were in transit from one station to
another. Some of the troops were riding in railroad cars drawn by horses through
the downtown streets of the city, while others were marching in military
formation through those same streets. A hostile crowd pelted the troops with
stones. The troops in turn fired shots into the crowd. Several soldiers and several
bystanders were killed.
That night, the chief of police of Baltimore, who was an avowed Confederate
sympathizer, and the Mayor of Baltimore, who was a less open one, spearheaded
a group of Confederate sympathizers who took matters into their own hands.
They blew up the railroad bridges leading into Baltimore from the north. As a
result troops bound for Washington to be sent on a circuitous journey by ship
from a point on the Chesapeake Bay above Baltimore to Annapolis, from which
they traveled to Washington by land.
In response to the situation in Baltimore, Lincoln, at the behest of his Secretary of
State, William H. Seward, took the first step to curtail civil liberty -- he
authorized General Winfield Scott, commander-in-chief of the Army, to suspend
the writ of habeas corpus at any point he deemed necessary along the rail line
from Philadelphia to Washington. Scott took full advantage of this authority, and
284
Courts
several weeks later, federal troops arrested a man named Merryman, whom
authorities suspected of being a major actor in the dynamiting of the railroad
bridges. He was he confined in Fort McHenry, and immediately sued out a writ of
habeas corpus.
The writ of habeas corpus is something that comes to us from English Common
law, and was the means by which one who was arrested or confined by
governmental authority could ask a court to require the person holding him in
custody to show cause why he was being held. The court would then decide
whether there was sufficient reason to hold the person, and if there was not would
order him set free. It has been rightly regarded as a safeguard against executive
tyranny, and an essential safeguard to individual liberty. The United States
Constitution provides that the writ of habeas corpus shall not be suspended,
except when in time of war or rebellion the public safety shall require it.
The day after Merryman sought the writ, Chief Justice Roger Taney, who was
sitting as a circuit judge in Baltimore, ordered the government to show cause why
Merryman should not be released. A representative of the commandant of Fort
McHenry appeared in court for the government to advise Taney that the writ of
habeas corpus had been suspended, and asked for time to consult with the
government in Washington. Taney refused, and issued an arrest warrant for the
commandant. The next day, the marshal reported that in his effort to serve the
writ he had been denied admission to the fort. Taney then issued an opinion in the
case declaring that the President alone did not have the authority to suspend the
writ of habeas corpus -- only Congress could do that -- and holding that
Merryman's confinement was illegal. The Chief Justice, knowing that he could
not enforce his order, sent a copy of it to Lincoln.
Lincoln ignored the order, but in his address to the special session of Congress
which he had called to meet on July 4, 1861, he adverted to it in these words:
"Must [the laws] be allowed to finally fail of execution even had it been perfectly
clear that by the use of the means necessary to their execution some single law,
made in such extreme tenderness of the citizen's liberty that practically it relieves
more of the guilty than of the innocent, should to a very limited extent be
violated? To state the question more directly, are all the laws but one to go
unexecuted, and the government itself go to pieces less that one be violated?"
Lincoln, with his usual incisiveness, put his finger on the debate that inevitably
surrounds issues of civil liberties in wartime. If the country itself is in mortal
danger, must we enforce every provision safeguarding individual liberties even
though to do so will endanger the very government which is created by the
Constitution? The question of whether only Congress may suspend it has never
been authoritatively answered to this day, but the Lincoln administration
proceeded to arrest and detain persons suspected of disloyal activities, including
the mayor of Baltimore and the chief of police.
Newspaper publishers did not escape the government's watchful eye during the
Civil War either -- particularly the New York press, which had a disproportionate
285
Lectures on the US Legal System
impact on the rest of the country. Newspapers in smaller cities frequently simply
reprinted stories which had run earlier in the metropolitan press. In August 1861,
a grand jury sitting in New York was outraged by an article in the New York
Journal of Commerce -- a paper which opposed the war -- that listed over one
hundred Northern newspapers opposed to "the present unholy war." Without
hearing any evidence or receiving any legal instructions from the judge, the grand
jury made a "presentment" as to five anti-war New York newspapers -- a written
notice taken by a grand jury of what it believes to be an indictable offense.
On this thin reed, the administration proceeded to act. Postmaster General
Montgomery Blair directed the Postmaster in New York to exclude from the
mails the five newspapers named by the grand jury. Gerald Hallock, the part
owner and editor of the Journal of Commerce, was obliged to negotiate with the
Post Office Department to see what the paper would have to do to regain its right
to use of the mails. The Post Office Department told him that he must sell his
ownership in the newspaper. Hallock reluctantly agreed, and retired, thereby
depriving the paper of its principal editorialist opposing the war.
The New York News, owned by Benjamin Wood, brother of New York Mayor
Fernando Wood, decided to fight the ban against his paper. He sought to send its
edition south and west by private express, and hired newsboys to deliver the
paper locally. The government ordered U.S. Marshals to seize all copies of the
paper. In fact one newsboy in Connecticut was arrested for having hawked it.
Eventually, Wood, too, gave up. The other New York newspapers did not rally to
the cause of the anti-war newspapers, shouting "First Amendment," as they surely
would today. Quite the contrary, they gloated. James Gordon Bennett's Herald
was "gratified" to report the death of the News, and the Times observed that Ben
Wood should be thankful he could "walk in the streets."
Even clergy were subject to detention for perceived disloyalty. Perhaps the most
egregious example was that of the Reverend J. R. Stewart, the Episcopal rector at
St. Paul's Church in Alexandria, Virginia, who was undoubtedly a southern
sympathizer. For two Sundays in a row, he had omitted the customary Episcopal
prayer for the President of the United States in the course of the service. On the
second of these occasions, he was arrested in the pulpit of the church, and briefly
detained until cooler heads prevailed.
As the Civil War drew to a close in 1864, there was considerable disaffection and
war-weariness in what were called the states of the old northwest -- Ohio,
Indiana, and Illinois. There was evidence of a conspiracy on the part of members
of secret societies, such as the Knights of the Golden Circle and the Sons of
Liberty, to assassinate the Governor of Indiana, free Confederate prisoners held
near Chicago, and seize the federal arsenal at Rock Island, Illinois. These plans
were thwarted when, in the summer of 1864, a cache of arms and incriminating
correspondence was found in the Indianapolis home of the state commander of
the "Sons of Liberty." Edwin Stanton, Lincoln's Secretary of War, decided that
the suspects in this conspiracy should be tried, not in a regular civil court by a
jury, but by a military commission, composed of senior army officers.
286
Courts
In so doing, he went a good deal further than simply suspending the writ of
habeas corpus. Trial before such a commission would raise serious questions, for
example, about denial of the right to jury trial guaranteed by the Bill of Rights.
The suspects were duly tried before such a commission in Indianapolis, and
several were sentenced to be hanged. They appealed to the Supreme Court, which
in a case called Ex Parte Milligan decided in 1866 -- more than a year after the
Civil War was over, by a vote of 5 to 4 that civilians not in the military -- and that
is who these defendants were -- could not be tried by a military commission so
long as the civil courts were open for business.
Here we have an illustration of an old maxim of Roman law -- Inter Arma Silent
Leges -- which loosely translated means that in time of war the laws are silent.
All during the Civil War the courts were unable or unwilling to ride herd on the
Lincoln administration's policies which seriously interfered with civil liberty.
Only after the end of the war was a decision handed down which upheld that
liberty.
Let us now move forward to World War II. I am one of the few in this room old
enough to remember back to the Japanese attack on Pearl Harbor on December 7,
1941. Since it began for the United States by Japan's attack on Pearl Harbor, and
Hitler's declaration of war, there was strong support for the war effort across the
political spectrum in this country. It was "the good war," as Studs Terkel calls it
in his book. Fourteen million people were in the armed services; on the home
front there were sacrifices, and slogans such as "Buy Bonds" and "A Slip of the
Lip May Sink a Ship." Even restaurants got into the act, with the slogan "Food
Will Win the War." On this sign at one restaurant, a customer scrawled "Yes, but
how can we get the enemy to eat here"?
In June of 1942, six months after Pearl Harbor, Richard Quirin and seven other
members of the German armed forces were secretly landed in the United States.
They had been trained in the use of explosives and secret writing at a sabotage
school near Berlin. Four of them were transported by German submarine to
Amagansett Beach on Long Island, New York. They landed under cover of
darkness in June 1942, carrying a supply of explosive and incendiary devices. At
the moment of the landing they wore German uniforms, but immediately
afterwards they buried their uniforms on the beach and went in civilian dress to
New York city. The remaining four who had been trained at the sabotage school
were taken by another German submarine to Ponte Vedra Beach, Florida. They
went through the same procedures as those who landed on Long Island, and
proceeded to Jacksonville in civilian dress. All were ultimately arrested by the
FBI in New York or Chicago; all had been instructed to destroy war industries in
the United States.
President Franklin Roosevelt appointed a military commission to try Quirin and
his cohorts for offenses against the laws of war and the Articles of War enacted
by Congress, and he directed that the defendants have no access to civil courts.
While they were being tried by the military commission, which sentenced all of
them to death, they petitioned the Supreme Court of the United States for review
287
Lectures on the US Legal System
of the procedures under which they were being tried. The Supreme court
convened in a special term on July 29, 1942, to hear arguments in their case.
One of the principal arguments made by able counsel for the petitioners was that
the civil courts throughout the United States were open at the time, there had
been no invasion of any part of the country, and therefore under the Milligan case
there could be no resort to trial by a military commission. Counsel noted that one
of the petitioners, Herbert Haupt, had been born in the United States and was a
United States citizen. At the conclusion of the arguments in the case, and after
deliberation, the Court on July 31st announced its disposition of the case
upholding the government's position, but its full opinion did not come down until
October 1942. In that opinion the Court sharply cut back on the dicta in the
Milligan case, saying that even though the civil courts were open, and even
though it was assumed that one of the German soldiers was a United States
citizen, these defendants could nonetheless properly be tried and sentenced to
death by a court martial.
It is worth noting that this decision was made in the dark days of the summer of
1942, when the fortunes of war of the United States were just beginning to
recover from their lowest ebb. The United States Navy had suffered serious
damage to its fleet at Pearl Harbor, and Japanese troops invading the Philippines
had pushed the United States troops back onto the Bataan Peninsula, resulting in
the grisly Bataan death march. In North Africa, German forces had recaptured
Tobruck and were within striking distance of Cairo, threatening the entire Mid
East. Civil liberties were not high on anyone's agenda, including that of judges.
Hawaii was placed under martial law within days after the attack on Pearl Harbor,
and remained under that regime until it was lifted in the Autumn of 1944. Such a
regime would seem to have been quite justified in the period immediately after
the bombing of Pearl Harbor, when actual invasion of the islands by Japanese
forces was feared. But after the battle of Midway in June 1942, that possibility
was all but eliminated. Yet martial law remained in effect until the Autumn of
1944, when it was lifted by presidential proclamation.
One of the principal incidents of this martial law was that the civil courts in
Hawaii were closed the day after Pearl Harbor, and only gradually permitted to
resume some of their previous functions. They were closed not because of any
external necessity, but because the military governor of Hawaii ordered them
closed. Provost courts, composed of officers appointed by the military governor,
tried criminal cases. Lloyd Duncan, a civilian shipfitter, was charged with
assaulting two military guards at the Pearl Harbor Navy yard, where he worked.
He was tried by a provost court and sentenced to six months in jail. Harry White,
a stockbroker, was charged with having embezzled funds from a client -- surely
an offense as far removed from considerations of public order or security as one
can imagine. He was tried by a provost court and sentenced to four years in
prison. Both of the defendants challenged their convictions by habeas corpus in
the federal courts. When their cases finally reached the Supreme Court, a
majority of the Court in the case of Duncan v. Kahanamoku held that extension
288
Courts
of martial law so long after the threat of invasion had ceased was illegal. Chief
Justice Stone commented in a concurring opinion that if the bars and restaurants
could be reopened within two months after Pearl Harbor, it was hard to see why
the courts should not have been able to reopen a full year later.
The good news for civil liberty in the Duncan decision was that the martial law
regime was held to be illegal; the bad news was that the Supreme Court handed
down its ruling in February 1946, six months after Japan surrendered, and a year
and a half after martial law had been lifted by the President.
One of the most controversial actions of the government during World War II
was the forced relocation of both Japanese aliens and American citizens of
Japanese ancestry away from the west coast. The Supreme Court reluctantly
upheld this program during the war, but the judgment of history has been that a
serious injustice was done these people, because there was no effort to separate
the loyal from the disloyal. As often happens, the latter-day judgments, in my
view, swing the pendulum too far the other way. With respect to the forced
relocation of Japanese-American who were born in the United States of Japanese
nationals -- and were therefore United States citizens -- even given the exigencies
of wartime it is difficult to defend their mass forced relocation under present
constitutional doctrine. But the relocation of the Japanese nationals residing in the
United States -- typically the parents of those born in this country -- stands on
quite a different footing. The authority of the government to deal with enemy
aliens in time of war, according to established case law from our Court, is
virtually plenary.
There were considerable differences between the way the Lincoln administration
infringed on civil liberty and the way FDR's infringed on it. Lincoln often acted
without any authority from Congress, and some of his measures unabashedly
suppressed dissent. There was no such suppression of dissent in World War II,
and most of the administration's acts hostile to civil liberty were based on laws
passed by Congress. So the general trend from the 1860s to the 1940s was in the
direction of greater sympathy to claims of civil liberty. But neither Lincoln nor
FDR -- nor Woodrow Wilson during World War I -- could be described by any
stretch of the imagination as a supporter of civil liberty.
Surely Abraham Lincoln is the greatest of American Presidents, and Franklin
Roosevelt ranks high among the runners up. Lincoln did not himself approve in
advance of most of the arrests, detentions, and trials before military commissions
which took place during the Civil War. His cabinet secretaries and other advisors
did that, but Lincoln acquiesced in almost all of their decisions. The same may be
said for Franklin Roosevelt during the Second World War; he did not originate
the plan for the relocation of the Japanese from the west coast, but he
unhesitatingly acquiesced in it when he was told that it was a necessary war
measure.
Lincoln felt that the great task of his administration was to preserve the Union. If
he could do it by following the Constitution, he would; but if he had to choose
between preserving the Union or obeying the Constitution, he would quite
289
Lectures on the US Legal System
willingly choose the former course. Franklin Roosevelt felt the great task of his
wartime administration was to win World War II, and, like Lincoln, if forced to
choose between a necessary war measure and obeying the Constitution, he would
opt for the former.
This is not necessarily a condemnation. Both Lincoln and FDR fit into this mold.
The courts, for their part, have largely reserved the decisions favoring civil
liberties in wartime to be handed down after the war was over. Again, we see the
truth in the maxim Inter Arma Silent Leges -- time of war the laws are silent.
To lawyers and judges, this may seem a thoroughly undesirable state of affairs,
but in the greater scheme of things it may be best for all concerned. The fact that
judges are loath to strike down wartime measures while the war is going on is
demonstrated both by our experience in the Civil War and in World War II. This
fact represents something more than some sort of patriotic hysteria that holds the
judiciary in its grip; it has been felt and even embraced by members of the
Supreme Court who have championed civil liberty in peacetime. Witness Justice
Hugo Black: he wrote the opinion for the Court upholding the forced relocation
of Japanese Americans in 1944, but he also wrote the Court's opinion striking
down martial law in Hawaii two years later. While we would not want to
subscribe to the full sweep of the Latin maxim -- Inter Arma Silent Leges -- in
time of war the laws are silent, perhaps we can accept the proposition that though
the laws are not silent in wartime, they speak with a muted voice.
Thank you for inviting me to be with you today, and may your Bar Association
have an equally successful second century.
290
Lecture #17 – The Legal Profession
Since the earliest ages, the legal profession has been regulated by states.
Of the American Union. However, the legal training evolved through
time. Until the 1920’, future lawyers were trained in the offices of
established lawyers, where they started their career as a legal clerk.
However they had to pay a fee instead of being paid. The universitarian
teaching quasi did not exist. One of the rare law schools had been the
Litchfield School, created by Judge Tapping Reeve in 1784, which used
the lecture method. However, the school closed in 1833 due to the
competition of published commentaries such as those by Kent and Story.
The first University welcoming legal education was the William and Mary
College in Virginia in 1779. However, the real start of universitarian legal
education has been Harvard and its law school, founded by Isaac Parker,
Chief Justice of Massachusetts in 1815. In 1871, Harvard opted for a new
way of teaching developed by Langdell and Ames: the casebook method
instead of the lectures50. Today, most American law schools rest their
program on this method.
The legal profession is regulated by each state, which sets its own
requirements for lawyers52 to be admitted to practice. However, there is a
somewhat uniform examination since 1931 put in place by the National
Conference of Bar Examiners.
50
Kempin, op.cit., p.85 sq.
51
Farnsworth, Introducción al sistema legal de los Estados Unidos, Zavalia,
Buenos Aires, 1990, p.50.
52
Also called attorneys, attorneys-at-law, counsels, counselors, etc..
291
Lectures on the US Legal System
A lawyer will practice in the state where he has been admitted and being
able as well to practice in other States if he has a three-to-five-year
experience. If he is entitled to practice before the highest State court, he
will be admitted before federal courts.
292
Part V – Proceedings
53
For the example of Texas: Cacheaux, Principles of Texas-Mexican
International Litigation as Applied by Texas Courts, Revista Mexicana de
Derecho Internacional Privado y Comparado, #12, 2002, p. 53.
293
Lectures on the US Legal System
294
Lecture #18 – Proceedings
54
E.g.: The Sherman Act authorizes demands for injunctions.
55
There is no general rule for service of process. It has just to be “adequate” (for
the discussion what has to be meant by “adequate”: Mullane v. Central
Hanover Bank and Trust Co, 339 US 306 (1950).
56
See: Kadic v. Karadzic (2nd Cir, 1995).
295
Lectures on the US Legal System
Parties may opt for a summary judgment trial or a jury trial. In the
first case, we face a short proceeding without the presence of a jury
where the judge hands out the judgment. In the second case, it is the
jury that decides the outcome of the dispute.
The first stage of the trial consists for the seized court to assert its
jurisdiction. It is the court’s power to adjudicate i.e. the power to render a
decision. More precisely, following the Black’s Law Dictionary,
“Jurisdiction is defined as the power of the court to decide a matter in
controversy and presupposes the existence of a duly constituted court with
control over the subject matter and the parties”57. While the defendant
may contest the jurisdiction of the court, it is up to the plaintiff to argue
why the court should have jurisdiction58. Once the jurisdiction established,
the court verifies if it has ratione materiae the competence to hear the case
following the class of actions it has been assigned by the State. In a last
step, venue has to be discussed in order to insure that the seized court is
the proper place for the trial of a suit. For example, a corporate defendant
in Houston might request a change of venue to San Antonio because
adverse publicity in Houston would make it impossible for the corporation
to get a fair trial in Houston, or because most of its files are located in San
Antonio. If there is no contestation to the venue, the court then may sit. In
short, the plaintiff must first find out if its case is a federal or state matter.
In a second stage, he must determine in which district or State he must
57
6th ed., 1990. 853.
58
Carteret Savings Bank v. Shusan, 954 F. 2d 141 (3d Cir. 1992), cert. denied
506 U.S. 817 (1992).
296
Proceedings
look for the court. This is a jurisdiction question. If it is a State case, and
once the State determined, he must identify which court ratione materiae
may hear the case. And finally, he has to verify venue, meaning which
court is the most adequate from a geographical point of view for its client,
notwithstanding the fact that the court will verify venue in respect of both
parties.
“In Suits at Common law, where the value in controversy shall exceed twenty
dollars, the right of trial by jury shall be preserved, and no fact tried by a jury,
shall be otherwise reexamined in any Court of the United States, than according
to the rules of the Common law”.
The latter is called Petit jury. Frederick Maitland defined the jury as “a
body of neighbours summoned under oath by a public official to answer
questions”. The trial jury answers the question of liability or nonliability.
It nearly exists nationwide. It is elected by the attorneys out of a pool by
voir dire proceedings. They can challenge an unlimited number of
proposed jurors for cause, and a limited number for peremptory challenge
that requires no justification. Once the jury is selected, its members are
sworn in59.
The next stage is the opening statement that allows each side to present
what the case is about. Right after, testimony begins. The questioning of a
witness called by the party is called direct examination; the questionning
by the opposite party is known as cross-examination. Finally, the parties
present their closing arguments. The jury then render its verdict that can
be, following the local rules, unanimously or at majority. The decision
only concerns matters of fact, because matters of law are decided by the
judge. That’s why the jury’s verdict is not motivated.
59
The jury constitutes the primary and essential guarantee for a fair trial. The
jury is the judge of the fact, while the magistrate is the keeper of the Law. On the
contrary to the European tradition, in the United States what does matter is that
the trial is impartial, even if sometimes it is not equitable. It is not the issue of the
trial that has the most significant importance, but the means that lead to the final
result. A fair trial leads always to a fair sentence. So at least it is said…
297
Lectures on the US Legal System
In American law the most serious crimes are called felonies in opposition
to misdemeanors and infractions, the latter being only fined. There are
roughly two standards in distinguishing between felonies and
misdemeanors. The first standard involves the time of imprisonment:
felonies being all offenses punishable by more than a year of
imprisonment, the others being felonies. The second standard takes into
consideration the location of imprisonment. If the offense is punishable by
imprisonment in a penitentiary it is a felony; if punishable only by a jail
term it is a misdemeanor. Often both standards just overlap.
“No person shall be held to answer for a capital, or otherwise infamous crime,
unless on a presentment or indictment of a Grand Jury, except in cases arising in
the land or naval forces, or in the Militia, when in actual service in time of War or
public danger”
60
Balwin v. Iowa State Traveling Men’s Association, 283 US 522 (1931).
61
Kempin, Historical Introduction to Anglo-American Law, West Publishing, St
Paul, 1994, 54.
298
Proceedings
Once indicted, the court proceeding starts, unless the defense and the
prosecutor entered into a plea bargaining where the defendant agree to
plead guilty to a lesser criminal charge in exchange for dropping ther
more serious charge. The Petit Jury that exists nationwide for criminal
proceedings, answers the question of guilt or innoncence; the verdict
being to be reached unanimously. If not, mistrial es declared and a new
trial may be held.
299
Lectures on the US Legal System
Kadic v. Karadzic
300
Proceedings
Appeals from the judgment entered September 19, 1994, in the Southern District
of New York (Peter K. Leisure, Judge) dismissing, for lack of subject matter
jurisdiction, two lawsuits by victims of atrocities allegedly committed in Bosnia
by the Bosnian-Serb leader, Radovan Karadzic. Doe v. Karadzic , 866 F. Supp.
734 (S.D.N.Y. 1994).
Judgment reversed and cases remanded.
JON O. NEWMAN, Chief Judge :
Most Americans would probably be surprised to learn that victims of atrocities
committed in Bosnia are suing the leader of the insurgent Bosnian-Serb forces in
a United States District Court in Manhattan. Their claims seek to build upon the
foundation of this Court's decision in Filártiga v. Peña-Irala , 630 F.2d 876 (2d
Cir. 1980), which recognized the important principle that the venerable Alien
Tort Act, 28 U.S.C. § 1350 (1988), enacted in 1789 but rarely invoked since then,
validly creates federal court jurisdiction for suits alleging torts committed
anywhere in the world against aliens in violation of the law of nations. The
pending appeals pose additional significant issues as to the scope of the Alien
Tort Act: whether some violations of the law of nations may be remedied when
committed by those not acting under the authority of a state; if so, whether
genocide, war crimes, and crimes against humanity are among the violations that
do not require state action; and whether a person, otherwise liable for a violation
of the law of nations, is immune from service of process because he is present in
the United States as an invitee of the United Nations.
These issues arise on appeals by two groups of plaintiffs-appellants from the
November 19, 1994, judgment of the United States District Court for the
Southern District of New York (Peter K. Leisure, Judge), dismissing, for lack of
subject matter jurisdiction, their suits against defendant-appellee Radovan
Karadzic, President of the self-proclaimed Bosnian-Serb republic of "Srpska."
Doe v. Karadzic , 866 F. Supp. 734 (S.D.N.Y. 1994) (" Doe "). For reasons set
forth below, we hold that subject matter jurisdiction exists, that Karadzic may be
found liable for genocide, war crimes, and crimes against humanity in his private
capacity and for other violations in his capacity as a state actor, and that he is not
immune from service of process. We therefore reverse and remand.
Background
The plaintiffs-appellants are Croat and Muslim citizens of the internationally
recognized nation of Bosnia-Herzegovina, formerly a republic of Yugoslavia.
Their complaints, which we accept as true for purposes of this appeal, allege that
they are victims, and representatives of victims, of various atrocities, including
brutal acts of rape, forced prostitution, forced impregnation, torture, and summary
execution, carried out by Bosnian-Serb military forces as part of a genocidal
campaign conducted in the course of the Bosnian civil war. Karadzic, formerly a
citizen of Yugoslavia and now a citizen of Bosnia-Herzegovina, is the President
of a three-man presidency of the self-proclaimed Bosnian-Serb republic within
Bosnia-Herzegovina, sometimes referred to as "Srpska," which claims to exercise
301
Lectures on the US Legal System
lawful authority, and does in fact exercise actual control, over large parts of the
territory of Bosnia-Herzegovina. In his capacity as President, Karadzic possesses
ultimate command authority over the Bosnian-Serb military forces, and the
injuries perpetrated upon plaintiffs were committed as part of a pattern of
systematic human rights violations that was directed by Karadzic and carried out
by the military forces under his command. The complaints allege that Karadzic
acted in an official capacity either as the titular head of Srpska or in collaboration
with the government of the recognized nation of the former Yugoslavia and its
dominant constituent republic, Serbia.
The two groups of plaintiffs asserted causes of action for genocide, rape, forced
prostitution and impregnation, torture and other cruel, inhuman, and degrading
treatment, assault and battery, sex and ethnic inequality, summary execution, and
wrongful death. They sought compensatory and punitive damages, attorney's fees,
and, in one of the cases, injunctive relief. Plaintiffs grounded subject-matter
jurisdiction in the Alien Tort Act, the Torture Victim Protection Act of 1991
("Torture Victim Act"), Pub. L. No. 102-256, 106 Stat. 73 (1992), codified at 28
U.S.C. § 1350 note (Supp. V 1993), the general federal-question jurisdictional
statute, 28 U.S.C. § 1331 (1988), and principles of supplemental jurisdiction, 28
U.S.C. § 1367 (Supp. V 1993).
In early 1993, Karadzic was admitted to the United States on three separate
occasions as an invitee of the United Nations. According to affidavits submitted
by the plaintiffs, Karadzic was personally served with the summons and
complaint in each action during two of these visits while he was physically
present in Manhattan. Karadzic admits that he received the summons and
complaint in the Kadic action, but disputes whether the attempt to serve him
personally in the Doe action was effective.
In the District Court, Karadzic moved for dismissal of both actions on the
grounds of insufficient service of process, lack of personal jurisdiction, lack of
subject-matter jurisdiction, and nonjusticiability of plaintiffs' claims. However,
Karadzic submitted a memorandum of law and supporting papers only on the
issues of service of process and personal jurisdiction, while reserving the issues
of subject-matter jurisdiction and nonjusticiability for further briefing, if
necessary. The plaintiffs submitted papers responding only to the issues raised by
the defendant.
Without notice or a hearing, the District Court by-passed the issues briefed by the
parties and dismissed both actions for lack of subject-matter jurisdiction. In an
Opinion and Order, reported at 866 F. Supp. 734, the District Judge preliminarily
noted that the Court might be deprived of jurisdiction if the Executive Branch
were to recognize Karadzic as the head of state of a friendly nation, see Lafontant
v. Aristide , 844 F. Supp. 128 (E.D.N.Y. 1994) (head-of-state immunity), and that
this possibility could render the plaintiffs' pending claims requests for an advisory
opinion. The District Judge
recognized that this consideration was not dispositive but believed that it
"militates against this Court exercising jurisdiction." Doe , 866 F. Supp. at 738.
302
Proceedings
Turning to the issue of subject-matter jurisdiction under the Alien Tort Act, the
Court concluded that "acts committed by non-state actors do not violate the law
of nations," id. at 739. Finding that "[t]he current Bosnian-Serb warring military
faction does not constitute a recognized state," id. at 741 and that "the members
of Karadzic's faction do not act under the color of any recognized state law," id. ,
the Court concluded that "the acts alleged in the instant action[s], while grossly
repugnant, cannot be remedied through [the Alien Tort Act]," id. at 740-41. The
Court did not consider the plaintiffs' alternative claim that Karadzic acted under
color of law by acting in concert with the Serbian Republic of the former
Yugoslavia, a recognized nation.
The District Judge also found that the apparent absence of state action barred
plaintiffs' claim under the Torture Victim Act, which expressly requires that an
individual defendant act "under actual or apparent authority, or color of law, of
any foreign nation," Torture Victim Act § 2(a). With respect to plaintiffs' further
claim that the law of nations, as incorporated into federal Common law, gives rise
to an implied cause of action over which the Court would have jurisdiction
pursuant to section 1331, the Judge found that the law of nations does not give
rise to implied rights of action absent specific Congressional authorization, and
that, in any event, such an implied right of action would not lie in the absence of
state action. Finally, having dismissed all of plaintiffs' federal claims, the Court
declined to exercise supplemental jurisdiction over their state-law claims.
Discussion
Though the District Court dismissed for lack of subject matter jurisdiction, the
parties have briefed not only that issue but also the threshold issues of personal
jurisdiction and justiciability under the political question doctrine. Karadzic urges
us to affirm on any one of these three grounds. We consider each in turn.
I. Subject-Matter Jurisdiction
Appellants allege three statutory bases for the subject matter jurisdiction of the
District Court -- the Alien Tort Act, the Torture Victim Act, and the general
federal-question jurisdictional statute.
A. The Alien Tort Act
1. General Application to Appellants' Claims
The Alien Tort Act provides:
The district courts shall have original jurisdiction of any civil action by an alien
for a tort only, committed in violation of the law of nations or a treaty of the
United States.
28 U.S.C. § 1350 (1988). Our decision in Filártiga established that this statute
confers federal subject-matter jurisdiction when the following three conditions
are satisfied: (1) an alien sues (2) for a tort (3) committed in violation of the law
of nations ( i.e. , international law). Id. at 887; see also Amerada Hess Shipping
Corp. v. Argentine Republic , 830 F.2d 421, 425 (2d Cir. 1987), rev'd on other
303
Lectures on the US Legal System
grounds , 488 U.S. 428 (1989). The first two requirements are plainly satisfied
here, and the only disputed issue is whether plaintiffs have pleaded violations of
international law.
Because the Alien Tort Act requires that plaintiffs plead a "violation of the law of
nations" at the jurisdictional threshold, this statute requires a more searching
review of the merits to establish jurisdiction than is required under the more
flexible "arising under" formula of section 1331. See Filártiga , 630 F.2d at 887-
88. Thus, it is not a sufficient basis for jurisdiction to plead merely a colorable
violation of the law of nations. There is no federal subject-matter jurisdiction
under the Alien Tort Act unless the complaint adequately pleads a violation of the
law of nations (or treaty of the United States).
Filártiga established that courts ascertaining the content of the law of nations
"must interpret international law not as it was in 1789, but as it has evolved and
exists among the nations of the world today." Id. at 881; see also Amerada Hess ,
830 F.2d at 425. We find the norms of contemporary international law by
"´consulting the works of jurists, writing professedly on public law; or by the
general usage and practice of nations; or by judicial decisions recognizing and
enforcing that law.'" Filártiga , 630 F.2d at 880 (quoting United States v. Smith ,
18 U.S. (5 Wheat.) 153, 160-61 (1820)). If this inquiry discloses that the
defendant's alleged conduct violates "well-established, universally recognized
norms of international law," id. at 888, as opposed to "idiosyncratic legal rules,"
id. at 881, then federal jurisdiction exists under the Alien Tort Act.
Karadzic contends that appellants have not alleged violations of the norms of
international law because such norms bind only states and persons acting under
color of a state's law, not private individuals. In making this contention, Karadzic
advances the contradictory positions that he is not a state actor, see Brief for
Appellee at 19, even as he asserts that he is the President of the self-proclaimed
Republic of Srpska, see statement of Radovan Karadzic, May 3, 1993, submitted
with Defendant's Motion to Dismiss. For their part, the Kadic appellants also take
somewhat inconsistent positions in pleading defendant's role as President of
Srpska, Kadic Complaint ¶ 13, and also contending that "Karadzic is not an
official of any government," Kadic Plaintiffs' Memorandum in Opposition to
Defendant's Motion to Dismiss at 21 n.25.
Judge Leisure accepted Karadzic's contention that "acts committed by non-state
actors do not violate the law of nations," Doe , 866 F. Supp. at 739, and
considered him to be a non-state actor. The Judge appears to have deemed state
action required primarily on the basis of cases determining the need for state
action as to claims of official torture, see , e.g. , Carmichael v. United
Technologies Corp. , 835 F.2d 109 (5th Cir. 1988), without consideration of the
substantial body of law, discussed below, that renders private individuals liable
for some international law violations.
We do not agree that the law of nations, as understood in the modern era,
confines its reach to state action. Instead, we hold that certain forms of conduct
violate the law of nations whether undertaken by those acting under the auspices
304
Proceedings
305
Lectures on the US Legal System
306
Proceedings
307
Lectures on the US Legal System
308
Proceedings
(d) the passing of sentences and carrying out of executions without previous
judgment pronounced by a regularly constituted court . . . .
Geneva Convention I art. 3(1). Thus, under the law of war as codified in the
Geneva Conventions, all "parties" to a conflict -- which includes insurgent
military groups -- are obliged to adhere to these most fundamental requirements
of the law of war.
The offenses alleged by the appellants, if proved, would violate the most
fundamental norms of the law of war embodied in common article 3, which binds
parties to internal conflicts regardless of whether they are recognized nations or
roving hordes of insurgents. The liability of private individuals for committing
war crimes has been recognized since World War I and was confirmed at
Nuremberg after World War II, see Telford Taylor, Nuremberg Trials: War
Crimes and International Law , 450 Int'l Conciliation 304 (April 1949) (collecting
cases), and remains today an important aspect of international law, see Jordan
Paust, After My Lai: The Case for War Crimes Jurisdiction Over Civilians in
Federal District Courts , in 4 The Vietnam War and International Law 447 (R.
Falk ed. 1976). The District Court has jurisdiction pursuant to the Alien Tort Act
over appellants' claims of war crimes and other violations of international
humanitarian law.
(c) Torture and summary execution . In Filártiga , we held that official torture is
prohibited by universally accepted norms of international law, see 630 F.2d at
885, and the Torture Victim Act confirms this holding and extends it to cover
summary execution. Torture Victim Act §§ 2(a), 3(a). However, torture and
summary execution -- when not perpetrated in the course of genocide or war
crimes -- are proscribed by international law only when committed by state
officials or under color of law. See Declaration on Torture art. 1 (defining torture
as being "inflicted by or at the instigation of a public official"); Convention
Against Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman, or Degrading Treatment or
Punishment pt. I, art. 1, 23 I.L.M. 1027 (1984), as modified , 24 I.L.M. 535
(1985), entered into force June 26, 1987, ratified by United States Oct. 21, 1994,
34 I.L.M. 590, 591 (1995) (defining torture as "inflicted by or at the instigation of
or with the consent or acquiescence of a public official or other person acting in
an official capacity"); Torture Victim Act § 2(a) (imposing liability on
individuals acting "under actual or apparent authority, or color of law, of any
foreign nation").
In the present case, appellants allege that acts of rape, torture, and summary
execution were committed during hostilities by troops under Karadzic's command
and with the specific intent of destroying appellants' ethnic-religious groups.
Thus, many of the alleged atrocities are already encompassed within the
appellants' claims of genocide and war crimes. Of course, at this threshold stage
in the proceedings it cannot be known whether appellants will be able to prove
the specific intent that is an element of genocide, or prove that each of the alleged
torts were committed in the course of an armed conflict, as required to establish
war crimes. It suffices to hold at this stage that the alleged atrocities are
309
Lectures on the US Legal System
actionable under the Alien Tort Act, without regard to state action, to the extent
that they were committed in pursuit of genocide or war crimes, and otherwise
may be pursued against Karadzic to the extent that he is shown to be a state actor.
Since the meaning of the state action requirement for purposes of international
law violations will likely arise on remand and has already been considered by the
District Court, we turn next to that requirement.
3. The State Action Requirement for International Law Violations
In dismissing plaintiffs' complaints for lack of subject-matter jurisdiction, the
District Court concluded that the alleged violations required state action and that
the "Bosnian-Serb entity" headed by Karadzic does not meet the definition of a
state. Doe , 866 F. Supp. at 741 n.12. Appellants contend that they are entitled to
prove that Srpska satisfies the definition of a state for purposes of international
law violations and, alternatively, that Karadzic acted in concert with the
recognized state of the former Yugoslavia and its constituent republic, Serbia.
(a) Definition of a state in international law . The definition of a state is well
established in international law:
Under international law, a state is an entity that has a defined territory and a
permanent population, under the control of its own government, and that engages
in, or has the capacity to engage in, formal relations with other such entities.
Restatement (Third) § 201; accord Klinghoffer , 937 F.2d at 47; National
Petrochemical , 860 F.2d at 553; see also Texas v. White , 74 U.S. (7 Wall.) 700,
720 (1868). "[A]ny government, however violent and wrongful in its origin, must
be considered a de facto government if it was in the full and actual exercise of
sovereignty over a territory and people large enough for a nation." Ford v. Surget
, 97 U.S. (7 Otto) 594, 620 (1878) (Clifford, J., concurring).
Although the Restatement's definition of statehood requires the capacity to
engage in formal relations with other states, it does not require recognition by
other states. See Restatement (Third) § 202 cmt. b ("An entity that satisfies the
requirements of § 201 is a state whether or not its statehood is formally
recognized by other states."). Recognized states enjoy certain privileges and
immunities relevant to judicial proceedings, see , e.g. , Pfizer Inc. v. India , 434
U.S. 308, 318-20 (1978) (diversity jurisdiction); Sabbatino , 376 U.S. at 408 -12
(access to U.S. courts); Lafontant , 844 F. Supp. at 131 (head-of-state immunity),
but an unrecognized state is not a juridical nullity. Our courts have regularly
given effect to the "state" action of unrecognized states. See , e.g. , United States
v. Insurance Cos. , 89 U.S. (22 Wall.) 99, 101-03 (1875) (seceding states in Civil
War); Thorington v. Smith , 75 U.S. (8 Wall.) 1, 9-12 (1869) (same); Carl Zeiss
Stiftung v. VEB Carl Zeiss Jena , 433 F.2d 686, 699 (2d Cir. 1970), cert. denied ,
403 U.S. 905 (1971) (post-World War II East Germany).
The customary international law of human rights, such as the proscription of
official torture, applies to states without distinction between recognized and
unrecognized states. See Restatement (Third) §§ 207, 702. It would be anomalous
indeed if non-recognition by the United States, which typically reflects disfavor
310
Proceedings
with a foreign regime -- sometimes due to human rights abuses -- had the
perverse effect of shielding officials of the unrecognized regime from liability for
those violations of international law norms that apply only to state actors.
Appellants' allegations entitle them to prove that Karadzic's regime satisfies the
criteria for a state, for purposes of those international law violations requiring
state action. Srpska is alleged to control defined territory, control populations
within its power, and to have entered into agreements with other governments. It
has a president, a legislature, and its own currency. These circumstances readily
appear to satisfy the criteria for a state in all aspects of international law.
Moreover, it is likely that the state action concept, where applicable for some
violations like "official" torture, requires merely the semblance of official
authority. The inquiry, after all, is whether a person purporting to wield official
power has exceeded internationally recognized standards of civilized conduct, not
whether statehood in all its formal aspects exists.
(b) Acting in concert with a foreign state . Appellants also sufficiently alleged
that Karadzic acted under color of law insofar as they claimed that he acted in
concert with the former Yugoslavia, the statehood of which is not disputed. The
"color of law" jurisprudence of 42 U.S.C. § 1983 is a relevant guide to whether a
defendant has engaged in official action for purposes of jurisdiction under the
Alien Tort Act. See Forti v. Suarez-Mason , 672 F. Supp. 1531, 1546 (N.D. Cal.
1987), reconsideration granted in part on other grounds , 694 F. Supp. 707 (N.D.
Cal. 1988). A private individual acts under color of law within the meaning of
section 1983 when he acts together with state officials or with significant state
aid. See Lugar v. Edmonson Oil Co. , 457 U.S. 922, 937 (1982). The appellants
are entitled to prove their allegations that Karadzic acted under color of law of
Yugoslavia by acting in concert with Yugoslav officials or with significant
Yugoslavian aid.
B. The Torture Victim Protection Act
The Torture Victim Act, enacted in 1992, provides a cause of action for official
torture and extrajudicial killing:
An individual who, under actual or apparent authority, or color of law, of any
foreign nation--
(1) subjects an individual to torture shall, in a civil action, be liable for damages
to that individual; or
(2) subjects an individual to extrajudicial killing shall, in a civil action, be liable
for damages to the individual's legal representative, or to any person who may be
a claimant in an action for wrongful death.
Torture Victim Act § 2(a). The statute also requires that a plaintiff exhaust
adequate and available local remedies, id. § 2(b), imposes a ten-year statute of
limitations, id. § 2(c), and defines the terms "extrajudicial killing" and "torture,"
id. § 3.
311
Lectures on the US Legal System
By its plain language, the Torture Victim Act renders liable only those
individuals who have committed torture or extrajudicial killing "under actual or
apparent authority, or color of law, of any foreign nation." Legislative history
confirms that this language was intended to "make[] clear that the plaintiff must
establish some
governmental involvement in the torture or killing to prove a claim," and that the
statute "does not attempt to deal with torture or killing by purely private groups."
H.R. Rep. No. 367, 102d Cong., 2d Sess., at 5 (1991), reprinted in 1992
U.S.C.C.A.N. 84, 87. In construing the terms "actual or apparent authority" and
"color of law," courts are instructed to look to principles of agency law and to
jurisprudence under 28 U.S.C. § 1983, respectively. Id.
Though the Torture Victim Act creates a cause of action for official torture, this
statute, unlike the Alien Tort Act, is not itself a jurisdictional statute. The Torture
Victim Act permits the appellants to pursue their claims of official torture under
the jurisdiction conferred by the Alien Tort Act and also under the general federal
question jurisdiction of section 1331, see Xuncax v. Gramajo , 886 F. Supp. 162,
178 (D. Mass. 1995), to which we now turn.
C. Section 1331
The appellants contend that section 1331 provides an independent basis for
subject-matter jurisdiction over all claims alleging violations of international law.
Relying on the settled proposition that federal Common law incorporates
international law, see The Paquete Habana , 175 U.S. 677, 700 (1900); In re
Estate of Ferdinand E. Marcos Human Rights Litigation ( Marcos I ), 978 F.2d
493, 502 (9th Cir. 1992), cert. denied , 113 S. Ct. 2960 (1993); Filártiga , 630
F.2d at 886, they reason that causes of action for violations of international law
"arise under" the laws of the United States for purposes of jurisdiction under
section 1331. Whether that is so is an issue of some uncertainty that need not be
decided in this case.
In Tel-Oren Judge Edwards expressed the view that section 1331 did not supply
jurisdiction for claimed violations of international law unless the plaintiffs could
point to a remedy granted by the law of nations or argue successfully that such a
remedy is implied. Tel-Oren , 726 F.2d at 779-80 n.4. The law of nations
generally does not create private causes of action to remedy its violations, but
leaves to each nation the task of defining the remedies that are available for
international law violations. Id. at 778 (Edwards, J., concurring). Some district
courts, however, have upheld section 1331 jurisdiction for international law
violations. See Abebe-Jiri v. Negewo , No. 90-2010 (N.D. Ga. Aug. 20, 1993),
appeal argued , No. 93-9133 (11th Cir. Jan. 10, 1995); Martinez-Baca v. Suarez-
Mason , No. 87-2057, slip op. at 4-5 (N.D. Cal. Apr. 22, 1988); Forti v. Suarez-
Mason , 672 F. Supp. 1531, 1544 (N.D. Cal. 1987).
We recognized the possibility of section 1331 jurisdiction in Filártiga , 630 F.2d
at 887 n.22, but rested jurisdiction solely on the applicable Alien Tort Act. Since
that Act appears to provide a remedy for the appellants' allegations of violations
312
Proceedings
related to genocide, war crimes, and official torture, and the Torture Victim Act
also appears to provide a remedy for their allegations of official torture, their
causes of action are statutorily authorized, and, as in Filártiga , we need not rule
definitively on whether any causes of action not specifically authorized by statute
may be implied by international law standards as incorporated into United States
law and grounded on section 1331 jurisdiction.
II. Service of Process and Personal Jurisdiction
Appellants aver that Karadzic was personally served with process while he was
physically present in the Southern District of New York. In the Doe action, the
affidavits detail that on February 11, 1993, process servers approached Karadzic
in the lobby of the Hotel Intercontinental at 111 East 48th St. in Manhattan,
called his name and identified their purpose, and attempted to hand him the
complaint from a distance of two feet, that security guards seized the complaint
papers, and that the papers fell to the floor. Karadzic submitted an affidavit of a
State Department security officer, who generally confirmed the episode, but
stated that the process server did not come closer than six feet of the defendant. In
the Kadic action, the plaintiffs obtained from Judge Owen an order for alternate
means of service, directing service by delivering the complaint to a member of
defendant's State Department security detail, who was ordered to hand the
complaint to the defendant. The security officer's affidavit states that he received
the complaint and handed it to Karadzic outside the Russian Embassy in
Manhattan. Karadzic's statement confirms that this occurred during his second
visit to the United States, sometime between February 27 and March 8, 1993.
Appellants also allege that during his visits to New York City, Karadzic stayed at
hotels outside the "headquarters district" of the United Nations and engaged in
non-United Nations-related activities such as fund-raising.
Fed. R. Civ. P. 4(e)(2) specifically authorizes personal service of a summons and
complaint upon an individual physically present within a judicial district of the
United States, and such personal service comports with the requirements of due
process for the assertion of personal jurisdiction. See Burnham v. Superior Court
, 495 U.S. 604 (1990).
Nevertheless, Karadzic maintains that his status as an invitee of the United
Nations during his visits to the United States rendered him immune from service
of process. He relies on both the Agreement Between the United Nations and the
United States of America Regarding the Headquarters of the United Nations,
reprinted at 22 U.S.C. § 287 note (1988) ("Headquarters Agreement"), and a
claimed federal Common law immunity. We reject both bases for immunity from
service.
A. Headquarters Agreement
The Headquarters Agreement provides for immunity from suit only in narrowly
defined circumstances. First, "service of legal process . . . may take place within
the headquarters district only with the consent of and under conditions approved
by the Secretary-General." Id. § 9(a). This provision is of no benefit to Karadzic,
313
Lectures on the US Legal System
because he was not served within the well-defined confines of the "headquarters
district," which is bounded by Franklin D. Roosevelt Drive, 1st Avenue, 42nd
Street, and 48th Street, see id. annex 1. Second, certain representatives of
members of the United Nations, whether residing inside or outside of the
"headquarters district," shall be entitled to the same privileges and immunities as
the United States extends to accredited diplomatic envoys. Id. § 15. This
provision is also of no benefit to Karadzic, since he is not a designated
representative of any member of the United Nations.
A third provision of the Headquarters Agreement prohibits federal, state, and
local authorities of the United States from "impos[ing] any impediments to transit
to or from the headquarters district of . . . persons invited to the headquarters
district by the United Nations . . . on official business." Id. § 11. Karadzic
maintains that allowing service of process upon a United Nations invitee who is
on official business would violate this section, presumably because it would
impose a potential burden -- exposure to suit -- on the invitee's transit to and from
the headquarters district. However, this Court has previously refused "to extend
the immunities provided by the Headquarters Agreement beyond those explicitly
stated." See Klinghoffer v. S.N.C. Achille Lauro , 937 F.2d 44, 48 (2d Cir. 1991).
We therefore reject Karadzic's proposed construction of section 11, because it
would effectively create an immunity from suit for United Nations invitees where
none is provided by the express terms of the Headquarters Agreement.
The parties to the Headquarters Agreement agree with our construction of it. In
response to a letter from plaintiffs' attorneys opposing any grant of immunity to
Karadzic, a responsible State Department official wrote: "Mr. Karadzic's status
during his recent visits to the United States has been solely as an ´invitee' of the
United Nations, and as such he enjoys no immunity from the jurisdiction of the
courts of the United States." Letter from Michael J. Habib, Director of Eastern
European Affairs, U.S. Dept. of State, to Beth Stephens (Mar. 24, 1993) ("Habib
Letter"). Counsel for the United Nations has also issued an opinion stating that
although the United States must allow United Nations invitees access to the
Headquarters District, invitees are not immune from legal process while in the
United State at locations outside of the Headquarters District. See In re Galvao ,
[1963] U.N. Jur. Y.B. 164 (opinion of U.N. legal counsel); see also Restatement
(Third) § 469 reporter's note 8 (U.N. invitee "is not immune from suit or legal
process outside the headquarters district during his sojourn in the United States").
B. Federal Common law immunity
Karadzic nonetheless invites us to fashion a federal Common law immunity for
those within a judicial district as a United Nations invitee. He contends that such
a rule is necessary to prevent private litigants from inhibiting the United Nations
in its ability to consult with invited visitors. Karadzic analogizes his proposed
rule to the "government contacts exception" to the District of Columbia's long-
arm statute, which has been broadly characterized to mean that "mere entry [into
the District of Columbia] by non-residents for the purpose of contacting federal
government agencies cannot serve as a basis for in personam jurisdiction," Rose
314
Proceedings
v. Silver , 394 A.2d 1368, 1370 (D.C. 1978); see also Naartex Consulting Corp.
v. Watt , 722 F.2d 779, 785-87 (D.C. Cir. 1983) (construing government contacts
exception to District of Columbia's long-arm statute), cert. denied , 467 U.S. 1210
(1984). He also points to a similar restriction upon assertion of personal
jurisdiction on the basis of the presence of an individual who has entered a
jurisdiction in order to attend court or otherwise engage in litigation. See
generally 4 Charles A. Wright & Arthur R. Miller, Federal Practice and
Procedure § 1076 (2d ed. 1987).
Karadzic also endeavors to find support for a Common law immunity in our
decision in Klinghoffer . Though, as noted above, Klinghoffer declined to extend
the immunities of the Headquarters Agreement beyond those provided by its
express provisions, the decision applied immunity considerations to its
construction of New York's long-arm statute, N.Y. Civ. Prac. L. & R. 301
(McKinney 1990), in deciding whether the Palestine Liberation Organization
(PLO) was doing business in the state. Klinghoffer construed the concept of
"doing business" to cover only those activities of the PLO that were not United
Nations-related. See 937 F.2d at 51.
Despite the considerations that guided Klinghoffer in its narrowing construction
of the general terminology of New York's long-arm statute as applied to United
Nations activities, we decline the invitation to create a federal Common law
immunity as an extension of the precise terms of a carefully crafted treaty that
struck the balance between the interests of the United Nations and those of the
United States.
Finally, we note that the mere possibility that Karadzic might at some future date
be recognized by the United States as the head of state of a friendly nation and
might thereby acquire head-of-state immunity does not transform the appellants'
claims into a nonjusticiable request for an advisory opinion, as the District Court
intimated. Even if such future recognition, determined by the Executive Branch,
see Lafontant , 844 F. Supp. at 133, would create head-of-state immunity, but see
In re Doe , 860 F.2d 40, 45 (2d Cir. 1988) (passage of Foreign Sovereign
Immunities Act leaves scope of head-of-state immunity uncertain), it would be
entirely inappropriate for a court to create the functional equivalent of such an
immunity based on speculation about what the Executive Branch might do in the
future. See Mexico v. Hoffman , 324 U.S. 30, 35 (1945) ("[I]t is the duty of the
courts, in a matter so intimately associated with our foreign policy . . ., not to
enlarge an immunity to an extent which the government . . . has not seen fit to
recognize.").
In sum, if appellants personally served Karadzic with the summons and complaint
while he was in New York but outside of the U.N. headquarters district, as they
are prepared to prove, he is subject to the personal jurisdiction of the District
Court.
III. Justiciability
315
Lectures on the US Legal System
We recognize that cases of this nature might pose special questions concerning
the judiciary's proper role when adjudication might have implications in the
conduct of this nation's foreign relations. We do not read Filártiga to mean that
the federal judiciary must always act in ways that risk significant interference
with United States foreign relations. To the contrary, we recognize that suits of
this nature can present difficulties that implicate sensitive matters of diplomacy
historically reserved to the jurisdiction of the political branches. See First
National Bank v. Banco Nacional de Cuba , 406 U.S. 759, 767 (1972). We
therefore proceed to consider whether, even though the jurisdictional threshold is
satisfied in the pending cases, other considerations relevant to justiciability weigh
against permitting the suits to proceed.
Two nonjurisdictional, prudential doctrines reflect the judiciary's concerns
regarding separation of powers: the political question doctrine and the act of state
doctrine. It is the "´constitutional' underpinnings" of these doctrines that
influenced the concurring opinions of Judge Robb and Judge Bork in Tel-Oren .
Although we too recognize the potentially detrimental effects of judicial action in
cases of this nature, we do not embrace the rather categorical views as to the
inappropriateness of judicial action urged by Judges Robb and Bork. Not every
case "touching foreign relations" is non-justiciable, see Baker v. Carr , 369 U.S.
186, 211 (1962); Lamont v. Woods , 948 F.2d 825, 831-32 (2d Cir. 1991), and
judges should not reflexively invoke these doctrines to avoid difficult and
somewhat sensitive decisions in the context of human rights. We believe a
preferable approach is to weigh carefully the relevant considerations on a case-
by-case basis. This will permit the judiciary to act where appropriate in light of
the express legislative mandate of the Congress in section 1350, without
compromising the primacy of the political branches in foreign affairs.
Karadzic maintains that these suits were properly dismissed because they present
nonjusticiable political questions. We disagree. Although these cases present
issues that arise in a politically charged context, that does not transform them into
cases involving nonjusticiable political questions. "[T]he doctrine ´is one of
"political questions," not one of "political cases."'" Klinghoffer , 937 F.2d at 49
(quoting Baker , 369 U.S. at 217 ).
A nonjusticiable political question would ordinarily involve one or more of the
following factors:
[1] a textually demonstrable constitutional commitment of the issue to a
coordinate political department; or [2] a lack of judicially discoverable and
manageable standards for resolving it; or [3] the impossibility of deciding without
an initial policy determination of a kind clearly for nonjudicial discretion; or [4]
the impossibility of a court's undertaking independent resolution without
expressing lack of the respect due coordinate branches of government; or [5] an
unusual need for unquestioning adherence to a political decision already made; or
[6] the potentiality of embarrassment from multifarious pronouncements by
various departments on one question.
316
Proceedings
Baker v. Carr , 369 U.S. at 217 ; see also Can v. United States , 14 F.3d 160, 163
(2d Cir. 1994). With respect to the first three factors, we have noted in a similar
context involving a tort suit against the PLO that "[t]he department to whom this
issue has been ´constitutionally committed' is none other than our own -- the
Judiciary." Klinghoffer , 937 F.2d at 49. Although the present actions are not
based on the Common law of torts, as was Klinghoffer , our decision in Filártiga
established that universally recognized norms of international law provide
judicially discoverable and manageable standards for adjudicating suits brought
under the Alien Tort Act, which obviates any need to make initial policy
decisions of the kind normally reserved for nonjudicial discretion. Moreover, the
existence of judicially discoverable and manageable standards further undermines
the claim such suits relate to matters that are constitutionally committed to
another branch. See Nixon v. United States , 113 S. Ct. 732, 735 (1993).
The fourth through sixth Baker factors appear to be relevant only if judicial
resolution of a question would contradict prior decisions taken by a political
branch in those limited contexts where such contradiction would seriously
interfere with important governmental interests. Disputes implicating foreign
policy concerns have the potential to raise political question issues, although, as
the Supreme Court has wisely cautioned, "it is ´error to suppose that every case or
controversy which touches foreign relations lies beyond judicial cognizance.'"
Japan Whaling Ass'n v. American Cetacean Society , 478 U.S. 221, 229-30
(1986) (quoting Baker , 369 U.S. at 211 ).
The act of state doctrine, under which courts generally refrain from judging the
acts of a foreign state within its territory, see Banco Nacional de Cuba v.
Sabbatino , 376 U.S. 398 , 428; Underhill v. Hernandez , 168 U.S. 250, 252
(1897), might be implicated in some cases arising under section 1350. However,
as in Filártiga , 630 F.2d at 889, we doubt that the acts of even a state official,
taken in violation of a nation's fundamental law and wholly unratified by that
nation's government, could properly be characterized as an act of state.
In the pending appeal, we need have no concern that interference with important
governmental interests warrants rejection of appellants' claims. After
commencing their action against Karadzic, attorneys for the plaintiffs in Doe
wrote to the Secretary of State to oppose reported attempts by Karadzic to be
granted immunity from suit in the United States; a copy of plaintiffs' complaint
was attached to the letter. Far from intervening in the case to urge rejection of the
suit on the ground that it presented political questions, the Department responded
with a letter indicating that Karadzic was not immune from suit as an invitee of
the United Nations. See Habib Letter, supra . After oral argument in the pending
appeals, this Court wrote to the Attorney General to inquire whether the United
States wished to offer any further views concerning any of the issues raised. In a
"Statement of Interest," signed by the Solicitor General and the State
Department's Legal Adviser, the United States has expressly disclaimed any
concern that the political question doctrine should be invoked to prevent the
litigation of these lawsuits: "Although there might be instances in which federal
courts are asked to issue rulings under the Alien Tort Statute or the Torture
317
Lectures on the US Legal System
Victim Protection Act that might raise a political question, this is not one of
them." Statement of Interest of the United States at 3. Though even an assertion
of the political question doctrine by the Executive Branch, entitled to respectful
consideration, would not necessarily preclude adjudication, the Government's
reply to our inquiry reenforces our view that adjudication may properly proceed.
As to the act of state doctrine, the doctrine was not asserted in the District Court
and is not before us on this appeal. See Filártiga , 630 F.2d at 889. Moreover, the
appellee has not had the temerity to assert in this Court that the acts he allegedly
committed are the officially approved policy of a state. Finally, as noted, we think
it would be a rare case in which the act of state doctrine precluded suit under
section 1350. Banco Nacional was careful to recognize the doctrine "in the
absence of . . . unambiguous agreement regarding controlling legal principles,"
376 U.S. at 428 , such as exist in the pending litigation, and applied the doctrine
only in a context -- expropriation of an alien's property -- in which world opinion
was sharply divided, see id. at 428-30.
Finally, we note that at this stage of the litigation no party has identified a more
suitable forum, and we are aware of none. Though the Statement of the United
States suggests the general importance of considering the doctrine of forum non
conveniens , it seems evident that the courts of the former Yugoslavia, either in
Serbia or war-torn Bosnia, are not now available to entertain plaintiffs' claims,
even if circumstances concerning the location of witnesses and documents were
presented that were sufficient to overcome the plaintiffs' preference for a United
States forum.
Conclusion
The judgment of the District Court dismissing appellants' complaints for lack of
subject-matter jurisdiction is reversed, and the cases are remanded for further
proceedings in accordance with this opinion.
318
Proceedings
319
Lectures on the US Legal System
A – Jurisdiction
Section 1 – Transactions
Now that the capias ad respondendum has given way to personal service
of summons or other forms of notice, due process requires only that in
order to subject a defendant who is not present within the territory of the
forum, has a certain minimum contacts with it such that the maintenance
of the suit does not offend “traditional notions of fair play and substantial
justice”63.
In 1945, the Supreme Court defined in one of its most famous ruling, the
International Shoe case64, the criterium of minimum contacts: the quality
and the nature of activities has to be considered. Actually if a person
exercises the privilege of conducting activities within a state, it enjoys the
benefits and protection of the laws of that state. However privileges also
give rise to obligations. So far as those obligations arise out of or are
connected with the activities within the state, a procedure that requires the
defendant to respond to a suit brought to enforce them can, in most
instances, hardly be said to be undue. Whether due process is satisfied
depends rather upon the quality and nature of the activity in relation to the
fair and orderly administration of the laws, which it was the purpose of
the due process clause to insure. Following Mc Gee v. Int’l Life Insurance
62
95 US 714 (1877).
63
Milliken v. Meyer, 311 US 457.
64
International Shoe Co v. State of Washington, 326 US 310.
320
Jurisdiction in personam
Co65, it is sufficient for purposes of due process that the suit is based on
one single but substantial contact like a contract that has substantial
connection with the State. In a more general way, Hanson v. Denckla66
underlines that minimum contacts must have a basis in some act by which
the defendant purposefully avails itself of the privilege of conducting
activities within the forum state, thus invoking the benefits and
protections of its laws. Thus, even if the defendant would suffer minimal
or no inconvenience from being forced to litigate before the tribunals of
another state; even if the forum state has a strong interest in applying its
law to the controversy; even if the forum state is the most convenient
location for litigation, the due process clause, acting as an instrument of
interstate federalism, may sometimes act to divest the state of its power to
render a valid judgment.
The International Shoe decision made it clear that state courts jurisdiction
was considerably greater than hitherto supposed. It remained for each
state to determine the extent to which it would authorize its courts to
“reach out”, consistent with due process. Illinois showed the way in 1955,
and its type of “long-arm statute”, providing detailed and specific
guidance as to the defendant’s activities or contacts that would permit the
exercise of jurisdiction67. From there on, courts have jurisdiction if for
instance there is transaction of any business within the state, commission
of a tortuous act within the state or, last but not least, contracts of
insurance on local risks.
65
355 US 220 (1957).
66
357 US 235 (1958).
67
Example of a long-arm statute : The tribunals of Maryland have juridiction
over persons who “cause tortious injury in the State or outside of the State by
an act or omission outside the State if he regularly does or solicits business,
engages in any other persistent course of conduct in the State or derives
substantial revenue from goods, food, services, or manufactured products
used or consumed in the State” (MD. Code ANN., Cts & Jud. Proc. § 6-103
(b) (4).
68
Jurisdiction to Adjudicate: A suggested Analysis, Harvard Law Review,
1966.1121.
69
Helicopteros nacionales de Colombia S.A. v. Hall, 466 US 408, 415 (1984).
321
Lectures on the US Legal System
contacts with the forum state. In other words, general jurisdiction refers to
the authority of a court to hear any cause of action involving a defendant,
regardless of whether the cause of action arose from the defendant's
activities within the forum state. Natural persons who live and firms
incorporated in the state are subject to general jurisdiction. However, in
regard to other forms of “continous and systematic contacts”, claims of
general jurisdiction over nonresidents more often than not are denied70.
For instance, even at regular intervals, purchasing goods and services,
repeated business trips, local advertising, and so on, are insufficient to
establish general jurisdiction71.
On the contrary, following, Sher v. Johnson72, specific jurisdiction
refers to a situation in which the cause of action arises directly from a
defendant's contacts with the forum state. First, the defendant must
perform some act or consummate some transaction within the forum by
which it purposefully avails itself of the privilege of conducting activities
in the forum, thereby invoking the benefits and protections of the forum
and having fair warning that a particular activity may subject to
jurisdiction73. Second, the claim must be one that arises out of or results
from the defendant's forum-related activities74. Third, the court's exercise
of jurisdiction must be reasonable75. In 1980, the Supreme Court added
another criterion: foreseeability76. The foreseeability that is critical to the
due process analysis is that the defendant's conduct and connection with
the forum State are such that he should reasonably expect to be haled into
court there. In regard to the stream of commerce doctrine, the Supreme
Court ruled that “the placement of a product into the stream of commerce,
without more is not an act of the defendant purposefully directed toward
the forum State. Additional conduct on the part of the defendant is
necessary to establish an act purposefully directed toward the forum State.
Such conduct may include designing the product for market in the forum
State, advertising in the forum State, established channels for providing
regular advice to customers in the forum State, or marketing the product
through a distributor who agreed to serve as a sales agent in the forum
70
Amoco Egypt Oil Co. v. Leonis Navigation Co., 1 F.3d 848, 851 n.3 (9th Cir.
1993).
71
Adams, Personal jurisdiction over nonresidents, International Litigation, ABA,
2003.113, 115 sq.
72
911 F.2d 1357, 1361 (1990).
73
Burger King v. Rudzewicz, 471 U.S. 462, 472, 475 (1985).
74
Ballard v. Savage, 65 F. 3d 1495 (9th Cir. 1995).
75
Idem.
76
World-Wide Volkswagen Corp. v. Woodson, 444 U.S. 286, 295 (1980).
322
Jurisdiction in personam
State”77. However, since then, it is a fact that the courts facing similar
issues remain unsure how to interprete the Asahi doctrine78.
Last but not least, nonetheless what I did say at the beginning, there is still
a survival of the Pennoyer territorialism80 in an active form through
transient jurisdiction. Each state has the power to hale before its courts
any individual who could be found within its borders, and that once
having acquired jurisdiction over such a person by properly serving him
with process, the State can retain jurisdiction to enter judgment against
him, no matter how fleeting his visit, i.e. even if there is nor general
neither specific jurisdiction. Nevertheless, one ought to notice that
Restatement the Third comments that transient jurisdiction is not
acceptable under international law (§421(2)(a) and that’s why Burnham
should be restricted to interstate defendants and not foreign defendants.
77
Asahi v. Superior Court of California, 480 U.S. 102 (1987).
78
Adams, op.cit., 120 sq.
79
Op.cit., p. 123.
80
Cf: Burnham v. Superior Court of California, 495 US 604 (1990).
323
Lectures on the US Legal System
court and attack collaterally the rendered default judgment for lack of
jurisdiction.
324
Jurisdiction in personam
325
Lectures on the US Legal System
In this case notice of assessment for the years in question was personally served
upon a sales solicitor employed by appellant in the State of Washington, and a
copy of the notice was mailed by registered mail to appellant at its address in St.
Louis, Missouri. Appellant appeared specially before the office of unemployment
and moved to set aside the order and notice of assessment on the ground that the
service upon appellant's salesman was not proper service upon appellant; that
appellant was not a corporation of the State of Washington and was not doing
business within the state; that it had no agent within the state upon whom service
could be made; and that appellant is not an employer and does not furnish
employment within the meaning of the statute.
The motion was heard on evidence and a stipulation of facts by the appeal
tribunal which denied the motion [326 U.S. 310, 313] and ruled that respondent
Commissioner was entitled to recover the unpaid contributions. That action was
affirmed by the Commissioner; both the Superior Court and the Supreme Court
affirmed. 154 P.2d 801. Appellant in each of these courts assailed the statute as
applied, as a violation of the due process clause of the Fourteenth Amendment,
and as imposing a constitutionally prohibited burden on interstate commerce. The
cause comes here on appeal under 237(a) of the Judicial Code, 28 U.S.C. 344(a),
28 U.S.C.A. 344(a), appellant assigning as error that the challenged statutes as
applied infringe the due process clause of the Fourteenth Amendment and the
commerce clause.
The facts as found by the appeal tribunal and accepted by the state Superior Court
and Supreme Court, are not in dispute. Appellant is a Delaware corporation,
having its principal place of business in St. Louis, Missouri, and is engaged in the
manufacture and sale of shoes and other footwear. It maintains places of business
in several states, other than Washington, at which its manufacturing is carried on
and from which its merchandise is distributed interstate through several sales
units or branches located outside the State of Washington.
Appellant has no office in Washington and makes no contracts either for sale or
purchase of merchandise there. It maintains no stock of merchandise in that state
and makes there no deliveries of goods in intrastate commerce. During the years
from 1937 to 1940, now in question, appellant employed eleven to thirteen
salesmen under direct supervision and control of sales managers located in St.
Louis. These salesmen resided in Washington; their principal activities were
confined to that state; and they were compensated by commissions based upon
the amount of their sales. The commissions for each year totaled more than
$31,000. Appellant supplies its salesmen with a line of samples, each consisting
of one shoe of a pair, which [326 U.S. 310, 314] they display to prospective
purchasers. On occasion they rent permanent sample rooms, for exhibiting
samples, in business buildings, or rent rooms in hotels or business buildings
temporarily for that purpose. The cost of such rentals is reimbursed by appellant.
The authority of the salesmen is limited to exhibiting their samples and soliciting
orders from prospective buyers, at prices and on terms fixed by appellant. The
salesmen transmit the orders to appellant's office in St. Louis for acceptance or
326
Jurisdiction in personam
rejection, and when accepted the merchandise for filling the orders is shipped
f.o.b. from points outside Washington to the purchasers within the state. All the
merchandise shipped into Washington is invoiced at the place of shipment from
which collections are made. No salesman has authority to enter into contracts or
to make collections.
The Supreme Court of Washington was of opinion that the regular and systematic
solicitation of orders in the state by appellant's salesmen, resulting in a
continuous flow of appellant's product into the state, was sufficient to constitute
doing business in the state so as to make appellant amenable to suit in its courts.
But it was also of opinion that there were sufficient additional activities shown to
bring the case within the rule frequently stated, that solicitation within a state by
the agents of a foreign corporation plus some additional activities there are
sufficient to render the corporation amenable to suit brought in the courts of the
state to enforce an obligation arising out of its activities there. International
Harvester Co. v. Kentucky, 234 U.S. 579, 587 , 34 S.Ct. 944, 946; People's
Tobacco Co. v. American Tobacco Co., 246 U.S. 79, 87 , 38 S.Ct. 233, 235,
Ann.Cas.1918C, 537; Frene v. Louisville Cement Co., 77 U.S.App.D.C. 129, 134
F.2d 511, 516, 146 A.L.R. 926. The court found such additional activities in the
salesmen's display of samples sometimes in permanent display rooms, and the
salesmen's residence within the state, continued over a period of years, all
resulting in a [326 U.S. 310, 315] substantial volume of merchandise regularly
shipped by appellant to purchasers within the state. The court also held that the
statute as applied did not invade the constitutional power of Congress to regulate
interstate commerce and did not impose a prohibited burden on such commerce.
Appellant's argument, renewed here, that the statute imposes an unconstitutional
burden on interstate commerce need not detain us. For 53 Stat. 1391, 26 U.S.C.
1606(a), 26 U.S.C.A. Int.Rev.Code, 1606(a), provides that 'No person required
under a State law to make payments to an unemployment fund shall be relieved
from compliance therewith on the ground that he is engaged in interstate or
foreign commerce, or that the State law does not distinguish between employees
engaged in interstate or foreign commerce and those engaged in intrastate
commerce.' It is no longer debatable that Congress, in the exercise of the
commerce power, may authorize the states, in specified ways, to regulate
interstate commerce or impose burdens upon it. Kentucky Whip & Collar Co. v.
Illinois Central R. Co., 299 U.S. 334 , 57 S.Ct. 277; Perkins v. Pennsylvania, 314
U.S. 586 , 62 S.Ct. 484; Standard Dredging Corp. v. Murphy, 319 U.S. 306, 308 ,
63 S.Ct. 1067, 1068; Hooven & Allison v. Evatt, 324 U.S. 652, 679 , 65 S.Ct.
870, 883; Southern Pacific Co. v. Arizona, 325 U.S. 761, 769 , 65 S.Ct. 1515,
1520
Appellant also insists that its activities within the state were not sufficient to
manifest its 'presence' there and that in its absence the state courts were without
jurisdiction, that consequently it was a denial of due process for the state to
subject appellant to suit. It refers to those cases in which it was said that the mere
solicitation of orders for the purchase of goods within a state, to be accepted
without the state and filled by shipment of the purchased goods interstate, does
327
Lectures on the US Legal System
not render the corporation seller amenable to suit within the state. See Green v.
Chicago, Burlington & Quincy R. Co., 205 U.S. 530, 533 , 27 S.Ct. 595, 596;
International Harvester Co. v. Kentucky, supra, 234 U.S. 586, 587 , 34 S.Ct. 946;
Philadelphia [326 U.S. 310, 316] & Reading R. Co. v. McKibbin, 243 U.S. 264,
268 , 37 S.Ct. 280; People's Tobacco Co. v. American Tobacco Co., supra, 246
U.S. 87 , 38 S.Ct. 235, Ann.Cas.1918C, 537. And appellant further argues that
since it was not present within the state, it is a denial of due process to subject it
to taxation or other money exaction. It thus denies the power of the state to lay
the tax or to subject appellant to a suit for its collection.
Historically the jurisdiction of courts to render judgment in personam is grounded
on their de facto power over the defendant's person. Hence his presence within
the territorial jurisdiction of court was prerequisite to its rendition of a judgment
personally binding him. Pennoyer v. Neff, 95 U.S. 714 , 733. But now that the
capias ad respondendum has given way to personal service of summons or other
form of notice, due process requires only that in order to subject a defendant to a
judgment in personam, if he be not present within the territory of the forum, he
have certain minimum contacts with it such that the maintenance of the suit does
not offend 'traditional notions of fair play and substantial justice.' Milliken v.
Meyer, 311 U.S. 457, 463 , 61 S.Ct. 339, 343, 132 A.L.R. 1357. See Holmes, J.,
in McDonald v. Mabee, 243 U.S. 90, 91 , 37 S.Ct. 343, L.R.A.1917F, 458.
Compare Hoopeston Canning Co. v. Cullen, 318 U.S. 313, 316 , 319 S., 63 S.Ct.
602, 604, 606, 145 A.L.R. 1113. See Blackmer v. United States, 284 U.S. 421 ,
52 S.Ct. 252; Hess v. Pawloski, 274 U.S. 352 , 47 S.Ct. 632; Young v. Masci,
289 U.S. 253 , 53 S.Ct. 599, 88 A.L.R. 170.
Since the corporate personality is a fiction, although a fiction intended to be acted
upon as though it were a fact, Klein v. Board of Tax Supervisors, 282 U.S. 19, 24
, 51 S.Ct. 15, 16, 73 A.L.R. 679, it is clear that unlike an individual its 'presence'
without, as well as within, the state of its origin can be manifested only by
activities carried on in its behalf by those who are authorized to act for it. To say
that the corporation is so far 'present' there as to satisfy due process requirements,
for purposes of taxation or the maintenance of suits against it in the courts of the
state, is to beg the question to be decided. For the terms 'present' or 'presence' are
[326 U.S. 310, 317] used merely to symbolize those activities of the
corporation's agent within the state which courts will deem to be sufficient to
satisfy the demands of due process. L. Hand, J., in Hutchinson v. Chase &
Gilbert, 2 Cir., 45 F.2d 139, 141. Those demands may be met by such contacts of
the corporation with the state of the forum as make it reasonable, in the context of
our federal system of government, to require the corporation to defend the
particular suit which is brought there. An 'estimate of the inconveniences' which
would result to the corporation from a trial away from its 'home' or principal
place of business is relevant in this connection. Hutchinson v. Chase & Gilbert,
supra, 45 F.2d 141.
'Presence' in the state in this sense has never been doubted when the activities of
the corporation there have not only been continuous and systematic, but also give
rise to the liabilities sued on, even though no consent to be sued or authorization
328
Jurisdiction in personam
to an agent to accept service of process has been given. St. Clair v. Cox, 106 U.S.
350, 355 , 1 S.Ct. 354, 359; Connecticut Mutual Life Ins. Co. v. Spratley, 172
U.S. 602, 610 , 611 S., 19 S.Ct. 308, 311, 312; Pennsylvania Lumbermen's Mut.
Fire Ins. Co. v. Meyer, 197 U.S. 407, 414 , 415 S., 25 S.Ct. 483, 484, 485;
Commercial Mutual Accident Co. v. Davis, 213 U.S. 245, 255 , 256 S., 29 S.Ct.
445, 448; International Harvester Co. v. Kentucky, supra; cf. St. Louis S.W.R.
Co. v. Alexander, 227 U.S. 218 , 33 S.Ct. 245, Ann.Cas.1915B, 77. Conversely it
has been generally recognized that the casual presence of the corporate agent or
even his conduct of single or isolated items of activities in a state in the
corporation's behalf are not enough to subject it to suit on causes of action
unconnected with the activities there. St. Clair v. Cox, supra, 106 U.S. 359, 360 ,
1 S.Ct. 362, 363; Old Wayne Mut. Life Ass'n v. McDonough, 204 U.S. 8, 21 , 27
S.Ct. 236, 240; Frene v. Louisville Cement Co., supra, 77 U.S.App.D.C. 133, 134
F.2d 515, 146 A.L.R. 926, and cases cited. To require the corporation in such
circumstances to defend the suit away from its home or other jurisdiction where it
carries on more substantial activities has been thought to lay too great and
unreasonable a burden on the corporation to comport with due process. [326 U.S.
310, 318] While it has been held in cases on which appellant relies that
continuous activity of some sorts within a state is not enough to support the
demand that the corporation be amenable to suits unrelated to that activity, Old
Wayne Mut. Life Ass'n v. McDonough, supra; Green v. Chicago, Burlington &
Quincy R. Co., supra; Simon v. Southern R. Co., 236 U.S. 115 , 35 S.Ct. 255;
People's Tobacco Co. v. American Tobacco Co., supra; cf. Davis v. Farmers' Co-
operative Equity Co., 262 U.S. 312, 317 , 43 S.Ct. 556, 558, there have been
instances in which the continuous corporate operations within a state were
thought so substantial and of such a nature as to justify suit against it on causes of
action arising from dealings entirely distinct from those activities. See Missouri,
K. & T.R. Co. v. Reynolds, 255 U.S. 565 , 41 S.Ct. 446; Tauza v. Susquehanna
Coal Co., 220 N.Y. 259, 115 N.E. 915; cf. St. Louis S.W.R. Co. v. Alexander,
supra.
Finally, although the commission of some single or occasional acts of the
corporate agent in a state sufficient to impose an obligation or liability on the
corporation has not been thought to confer upon the state authority to enforce it,
Rosenberg Bros. & Co. v. Curtis Brown Co., 260 U.S. 516 , 43 S.Ct. 170, other
such acts, because of their nature and quality and the circumstances of their
commission, may be deemed sufficient to render the corporation liable to suit. Cf.
Kane v. New Jersey, 242 U.S. 160 , 37 S.Ct. 30; Hess v. Pawloski, supra; Young
v. Masci, supra. True, some of the decisions holding the corporation amenable to
suit have been supported by resort to the legal fiction that it has given its consent
to service and suit, consent being implied from its presence in the state through
the acts of its authorized agents. Lafayette Insurance Co. v. French, 18 How. 404,
407; St. Clair v. Cox, supra, 106 U.S. 356 , 1 S.Ct. 359; Commercial Mutual
Accident Co. v. Davis, supra, 213 U.S. 254 , 29 S.Ct. 447; State of Washington v.
Superior Court, 289 U.S. 361, 364 , 365 S., 53 S.Ct. 624, 626, 627, 89 A.L.R.
653. But more realistically it may be said that those authorized acts were of such
a nature as to justify the fiction. Smolik v. Philadelphia & [326 U.S. 310, 319]
329
Lectures on the US Legal System
R.C. & I. Co., D.C., 222 F. 148, 151. Henderson, The Position of Foreign
Corporations in American Constitutional Law, 94, 95.
It is evident that the criteria by which we mark the boundary line between those
activities which justify the subjection of a corporation to suit, and those which do
not, cannot be simply mechanical or quantitative. The test is not merely, as has
sometimes been suggested, whether the activity, which the corporation has seen
fit to procure through its agents in another state, is a little more or a little less. St.
Louis S.W.R. Co. v. Alexander, supra, 227 U.S. 228 , 33 S.Ct. 248, Ann.Cas.
1915B, 77; International Harvestor Co. v. Kentucky, supra, 234 U.S. 587 , 34
S.Ct. 946. Whether due process is satisfied must depend rather upon the quality
and nature of the activity in relation to the fair and orderly administration of the
laws which it was the purpose of the due process clause to insure. That clause
does not contemplate that a state may make binding a judgment in personam
against an individual or corporate defendant with which the state has no contacts,
ties, or relations. Cf. Pennoyer v. Neff, supra; Minnesota Commercial Men's
Ass'n v. Benn, 261 U.S. 140 , 43 S.Ct. 293.
But to the extent that a corporation exercises the privilege of conducting activities
within a state, it enjoys the benefits and protection of the laws of that state. The
exercise of that privilege may give rise to obligations; and, so far as those
obligations arise out of or are connected with the activities within the state, a
procedure which requires the corporation to respond to a suit brought to enforce
them can, in most instances, hardly be said to be undue. Compare International
Harvester Co. v. Kentucky, supra, with Green v. Chicago, Burlington & Quincy
R. Co., supra, and People's Tobacco Co. v. American Tobacco Co., supra.
Compare Connecticut Mutual Life Ins. Co. v. Spratley, supra, 172 U.S. 619, 620 ,
19 S.Ct. 314, 315, and Commercial Mutual Accident Co. v. Davis, supra, with
Old Wayne Mut. Life Ass'n v. McDonough, supra. See 29 Columbia Law
Review, 187-195. [326 U.S. 310, 320] Applying these standards, the activities
carried on in behalf of appellant in the State of Washington were neither irregular
nor casual. They were systematic and continuous throughout the years in
question. They resulted in a large volume of interstate business, in the course of
which appellant received the benefits and protection of the laws of the state,
including the right to resort to the courts for the enforcement of its rights. The
obligation which is here sued upon arose out of those very activities. It is evident
that these operations establish sufficient contacts or ties with the state of the
forum to make it reasonable and just according to our traditional conception of
fair play and substantial justice to permit the state to enforce the obligations
which appellant has incurred there. Hence we cannot say that the maintenance of
the present suit in the State of Washington involves an unreasonable or undue
procedure.
We are likewise unable to conclude that the service of the process within the state
upon an agent whose activities establish appellant's 'presence' there was not
sufficient notice of the suit, or that the suit was so unrelated to those activities as
to make the agent an inappropriate vehicle for communicating the notice. It is
enough that appellant has established such contacts with the state that the
330
Jurisdiction in personam
331
Lectures on the US Legal System
332
Jurisdiction in personam
333
Lectures on the US Legal System
over them would offend the limitations on the State's jurisdiction imposed by the
Due Process Clause of the Fourteenth Amendment.
The facts presented to the District Court showed that World-Wide is incorporated
and has its business office in New [444 U.S. 286, 289] York. It distributes
vehicles, parts, and accessories, under contract with Volkswagen, to retail dealers
in New York, New Jersey, and Connecticut. Seaway, one of these retail dealers,
is incorporated and has its place of business in New York. Insofar as the record
reveals, Seaway and World-Wide are fully independent corporations whose
relations with each other and with Volkswagen and Audi are contractual only.
Respondents adduced no evidence that either World-Wide or Seaway does any
business in Oklahoma, ships or sells any products to or in that State, has an agent
to receive process there, or purchases advertisements in any media calculated to
reach Oklahoma. In fact, as respondents' counsel conceded at oral argument, Tr.
of Oral Arg. 32, there was no showing that any automobile sold by World-Wide
or Seaway has ever entered Oklahoma with the single exception of the vehicle
involved in the present case.
Despite the apparent paucity of contacts between petitioners and Oklahoma, the
District Court rejected their constitutional claim and reaffirmed that ruling in
denying petitioners' motion for reconsideration. Petitioners then sought a writ of
prohibition in the Supreme Court of Oklahoma to restrain the District Judge,
respondent Charles S. Woodson, from exercising in personam jurisdiction over
them. They renewed their contention that, because they had no "minimal
contacts," App. 32, with the State of Oklahoma, the actions of the District Judge
were in violation of their rights under the Due Process Clause.
The Supreme Court of Oklahoma denied the writ, 585 P.2d 351 (1978), holding
that personal jurisdiction over petitioners was authorized by Oklahoma's "long-
arm" statute, [444 U.S. 286, 290] Okla. Stat., Tit. 12, 1701.03 (a) (4) (1971).
Although the court noted that the proper approach was to test jurisdiction against
both statutory and constitutional standards, its analysis did not distinguish these
questions, probably because 1701.03 (a) (4) has been interpreted as conferring
jurisdiction to the limits permitted by the United States Constitution. The court's
rationale was contained in the following paragraph, 585 P.2d, at 354:
"In the case before us, the product being sold and distributed by the petitioners is
by its very design and purpose so mobile that petitioners can foresee its possible
use in Oklahoma. This is especially true of the distributor, who has the exclusive
right to distribute such automobile in New York, New Jersey and Connecticut.
The evidence presented below demonstrated that goods sold and distributed by
the petitioners were used in the State of Oklahoma, and under the facts we believe
it reasonable to infer, given the retail value of the automobile, that the petitioners
derive substantial income from automobiles which from time to time are used in
the State of Oklahoma. This being the case, we hold that under the facts
presented, the trial court was justified in concluding [444 U.S. 286, 291] that the
petitioners derive substantial revenue from goods used or consumed in this State."
334
Jurisdiction in personam
II
The Due Process Clause of the Fourteenth Amendment limits the power of a state
court to render a valid personal judgment against a nonresident defendant. Kulko
v. California Superior Court, 436 U.S. 84, 91 (1978). A judgment rendered in
violation of due process is void in the rendering State and is not entitled to full
faith and credit elsewhere. Pennoyer v. Neff, 95 U.S. 714, 732 -733 (1878). Due
process requires that the defendant be given adequate notice of the suit, Mullane
v. Central Hanover Trust Co., 339 U.S. 306, 313 -314 (1950), and be subject to
the personal jurisdiction of the court, International Shoe Co. v. Washington, 326
U.S. 310 (1945). In the present case, it is not contended that notice was
inadequate; the only question is whether these particular petitioners were subject
to the jurisdiction of the Oklahoma courts.
As has long been settled, and as we reaffirm today, a state court may exercise
personal jurisdiction over a nonresident defendant only so long as there exist
"minimum contacts" between the defendant and the forum State. International
Shoe Co. v. Washington, supra, at 316. The concept of minimum contacts, in
turn, can be seen to perform two related, but [444 U.S. 286, 292]
distinguishable, functions. It protects the defendant against the burdens of
litigating in a distant or inconvenient forum. And it acts to ensure that the States,
through their courts, do not reach out beyond the limits imposed on them by their
status as coequal sovereigns in a federal system.
The protection against inconvenient litigation is typically described in terms of
"reasonableness" or "fairness." We have said that the defendant's contacts with
the forum State must be such that maintenance of the suit "does not offend
`traditional notions of fair play and substantial justice.'" International Shoe Co. v.
Washington, supra, at 316, quoting Milliken v. Meyer, 311 U.S. 457, 463 (1940).
The relationship between the defendant and the forum must be such that it is
"reasonable . . . to require the corporation to defend the particular suit which is
brought there." 326 U.S., at 317 . Implicit in this emphasis on reasonableness is
the understanding that the burden on the defendant, while always a primary
concern, will in an appropriate case be considered in light of other relevant
factors, including the forum State's interest in adjudicating the dispute, see
McGee v. International Life Ins. Co., 355 U.S. 220, 223 (1957); the plaintiff's
interest in obtaining convenient and effective relief, see Kulko v. California
Superior Court, supra, at 92, at least when that interest is not adequately protected
by the plaintiff's power to choose the forum, cf. Shaffer v. Heitner, 433 U.S. 186,
211 , n. 37 (1977); the interstate judicial system's interest in obtaining the most
efficient resolution of controversies; and the shared interest of the several States
335
Lectures on the US Legal System
336
Jurisdiction in personam
mistake to assume that this trend heralds the eventual demise of all restrictions on
the personal jurisdiction of state courts. [Citation omitted.] Those restrictions are
more than a guarantee of immunity from inconvenient or distant litigation. They
are a consequence of territorial limitations on the power of the respective States."
Thus, the Due Process Clause "does not contemplate that a state may make
binding a judgment in personam against an individual or corporate defendant
with which the state has no contacts, ties, or relations." International Shoe Co. v.
Washington, supra, at 319. Even if the defendant would suffer minimal or no
inconvenience from being forced to litigate before the tribunals of another State;
even if the forum State has a strong interest in applying its law to the controversy;
even if the forum State is the most convenient location for litigation, the Due
Process Clause, acting as an instrument of interstate federalism, may sometimes
act to divest the State of its power to render a valid judgment. Hanson v. Denckla,
supra, at 251, 254. [444 U.S. 286, 295]
III
Applying these principles to the case at hand, we find in the record before us a
total absence of those affiliating circumstances that are a necessary predicate to
any exercise of state-court jurisdiction. Petitioners carry on no activity
whatsoever in Oklahoma. They close no sales and perform no services there.
They avail themselves of none of the privileges and benefits of Oklahoma law.
They solicit no business there either through salespersons or through advertising
reasonably calculated to reach the State. Nor does the record show that they
regularly sell cars at wholesale or retail to Oklahoma customers or residents or
that they indirectly, through others, serve or seek to serve the Oklahoma market.
In short, respondents seek to base jurisdiction on one, isolated occurrence and
whatever inferences can be drawn therefrom: the fortuitous circumstance that a
single Audi automobile, sold in New York to New York residents, happened to
suffer an accident while passing through Oklahoma.
It is argued, however, that because an automobile is mobile by its very design and
purpose it was "foreseeable" that the Robinsons' Audi would cause injury in
Oklahoma. Yet "foreseeability" alone has never been a sufficient benchmark for
personal jurisdiction under the Due Process Clause. In Hanson v. Denckla, supra,
it was no doubt foreseeable that the settlor of a Delaware trust would
subsequently move to Florida and seek to exercise a power of appointment there;
yet we held that Florida courts could not constitutionally [444 U.S. 286, 296]
exercise jurisdiction over a Delaware trustee that had no other contacts with the
forum State. In Kulko v. California Superior Court, 436 U.S. 84 (1978), it was
surely "foreseeable" that a divorced wife would move to California from New
York, the domicile of the marriage, and that a minor daughter would live with the
mother. Yet we held that California could not exercise jurisdiction in a child-
support action over the former husband who had remained in New York.
337
Lectures on the US Legal System
If foreseeability were the criterion, a local California tire retailer could be forced
to defend in Pennsylvania when a blowout occurs there, see Erlanger Mills, Inc.
v. Cohoes Fibre Mills, Inc., 239 F.2d 502, 507 (CA4 1956); a Wisconsin seller of
a defective automobile jack could be haled before a distant court for damage
caused in New Jersey, Reilly v. Phil Tolkan Pontiac, Inc., 372 F. Supp. 1205 (NJ
1974); or a Florida soft-drink concessionaire could be summoned to Alaska to
account for injuries happening there, see Uppgren v. Executive Aviation
Services, Inc., 304 F. Supp. 165, 170-171 (Minn. 1969). Every seller of chattels
would in effect appoint the chattel his agent for service of process. His
amenability to suit would travel with the chattel. We recently abandoned the
outworn rule of Harris v. Balk, 198 U.S. 215 (1905), that the interest of a creditor
in a debt could be extinguished or otherwise affected by any State having
transitory jurisdiction over the debtor. Shaffer v. Heitner, 433 U.S. 186 (1977).
Having interred the mechanical rule that a creditor's amenability to a quasi in rem
action travels with his debtor, we are unwilling to endorse an analogous principle
in the present case. [444 U.S. 286, 297]
This is not to say, of course, that foreseeability is wholly irrelevant. But the
foreseeability that is critical to due process analysis is not the mere likelihood that
a product will find its way into the forum State. Rather, it is that the defendant's
conduct and connection with the forum State are such that he should reasonably
anticipate being haled into court there. See Kulko v. California Superior Court,
supra, at 97-98; Shaffer v. Heitner, 433 U.S., at 216 ; and see id., at 217-219
(STEVENS, J., concurring in judgment). The Due Process Clause, by ensuring
the "orderly administration of the laws," International Shoe Co. v. Washington,
326 U.S., at 319 , gives a degree of predictability to the legal system that allows
potential defendants to structure their primary conduct with some minimum
assurance as to where that conduct will and will not render them liable to suit.
When a corporation "purposefully avails itself of the privilege of conducting
activities within the forum State," Hanson v. Denckla, 357 U.S., at 253 , it has
clear notice that it is subject to suit there, and can act to alleviate the risk of
burdensome litigation by procuring insurance, passing the expected costs on to
customers, or, if the risks are too great, severing its connection with the State.
Hence if the sale of a product of a manufacturer or distributor such as Audi or
Volkswagen is not simply an isolated occurrence, but arises from the efforts of
the manufacturer or distributor to serve, directly or indirectly, the market for its
product in other States, it is not unreasonable to subject it to suit in one of those
States if its allegedly defective merchandise has there been the source of injury to
its owner or to others. The forum State does not [444 U.S. 286, 298] exceed its
powers under the Due Process Clause if it asserts personal jurisdiction over a
corporation that delivers its products into the stream of commerce with the
expectation that they will be purchased by consumers in the forum State. Cf.
Gray v. American Radiator & Standard Sanitary Corp., 22 Ill. 2d 432, 176 N. E.
2d 761 (1961).
But there is no such or similar basis for Oklahoma jurisdiction over World-Wide
or Seaway in this case. Seaway's sales are made in Massena, N. Y. World-Wide's
338
Jurisdiction in personam
339
Lectures on the US Legal System
Petitioner manufactures tire valve assemblies in Japan and sells them to several
tire manufacturers, including Cheng Shin Rubber Industrial Co. (Cheng Shin).
The sales to Cheng Shin, which amounted to at least 100,000 assemblies annually
from 1978 to 1982, took place in Taiwan, to which the assemblies were shipped
from Japan. Cheng Shin incorporates the assemblies into its finished tires, which
it sells throughout the world, including the United States, where 20 percent of its
sales take place in California. Affidavits indicated that petitioner was aware that
tires incorporating its assemblies would end up in California, but, on the other
hand, that it never contemplated that its sales to Cheng Shin in Taiwan would
subject it to lawsuits in California. Nevertheless, in 1979, a product liability suit
was brought in California Superior Court arising from a motorcycle accident
allegedly caused by defects in a tire manufactured by Cheng Shin, which in turn
filed a cross-complaint seeking indemnification from petitioner. Although the
main suit was eventually settled and dismissed, the Superior Court denied
petitioner's motion to quash the summons issued against it. The State Court of
Appeal then ordered that the summons be quashed, but the State Supreme Court
reversed, finding that petitioner's intentional act of placing its assemblies into the
stream of commerce by delivering them to Cheng Shin in Taiwan, coupled with
its awareness that some of them would eventually reach California, were
sufficient to support state court jurisdiction under the Due Process Clause.
Held:
The judgment is reversed, and the case is remanded.
39 Cal. 3d 35, 702 P.2d 543, reversed and remanded.
JUSTICE O'CONNOR, delivered the opinion of the Court as to Parts I and II-B,
concluding that the state court's exercise of personal jurisdiction over petitioner
would be unreasonable and unfair in violation of the Due Process Clause. Pp.
113-116.
(a) The burden imposed on petitioner by the exercise of state court jurisdiction
would be severe, since petitioner would be required not only to traverse the
distance between Japan and California, but also to submit [480 U.S. 102, 103]
its dispute with Cheng Shin to a foreign judicial system. Such unique burdens
should have significant weight in assessing the reasonableness of extending
personal jurisdiction over national borders. Pp. 113-114.
340
Jurisdiction in personam
(b) The interests of Cheng Shin and the forum State in the exercise of jurisdiction
over petitioner would be slight, and would be insufficient to justify the heavy
burdens placed on petitioner. The only surviving question is whether a Japanese
corporation should indemnify a Taiwanese corporation on the bases of a sale
made in Taiwan and a shipment of goods from Japan to Taiwan. The facts do not
demonstrate that it would be more convenient for Cheng Shin to litigate its claim
in California rather than in Taiwan or Japan, while California's interests are
diminished by Cheng Shin's lack of a California residence and by the fact that the
dispute is primarily about indemnity rather than the safety of consumers. While
the possibility of being sued in California might create an additional deterrent to
petitioner's manufacture of unsafe assemblies, the same effect would result from
pressures placed on petitioner by Cheng Shin, whose California sales would
subject it to state tort law. Pp. 114-115.
(c) The procedural and substantive policies of other nations whose interests are
affected by the forum State's assertion of jurisdiction over an alien defendant
must be taken into account, and great care must be exercised when considering
personal jurisdiction in the international context. Although other nations' interests
will differ from case to case, those interests, as well as the Federal Government's
interest in its foreign relations policies, will always be best served by a careful
inquiry into the reasonableness of the particular assertion of jurisdiction, and an
unwillingness to find an alien defendant's serious burdens outweighed where, as
here, the interests of the plaintiff and the forum State are minimal. P. 115.
JUSTICE O'CONNOR, joined by THE CHIEF JUSTICE, JUSTICE POWELL,
and JUSTICE SCALIA, concluded in Parts II-A and III that, even assuming,
arguendo, that petitioner was aware that some of the assemblies it sold to Cheng
Shin would be incorporated into tires sold in California, the facts do not establish
minimum contacts sufficient to render the State's exercise of personal jurisdiction
consistent with fair play and substantial justice as required by the Due Process
Clause. Since petitioner does not do business, have an office, agents, employees,
or property, or advertise or solicit business in California, and since it did not
create, control, or employ the distribution system that brought its assemblies to,
or design them in anticipation of sales in, California, it did not engage in any
action to purposely avail itself of the California market. The "substantial
connection" between a defendant and the forum State necessary for a finding of
minimum contacts must derive from an action purposely directed toward the [480
U.S. 102, 104] forum State, and the mere placement of a product into the stream
of commerce is not such an act, even if done with an awareness that the stream
will sweep the product into the forum State absent additional conduct indicating
an intent to serve the forum state market. Pp. 108-113, 116.
JUSTICE BRENNAN, joined by JUSTICE WHITE, JUSTICE MARSHALL,
and JUSTICE BLACKMUN, agreed with the Court's conclusion in Part II-B that
the exercise of jurisdiction over petitioner would not comport with "fair play and
substantial justice," but disagreed with Part II-A's interpretation of the stream-of-
commerce theory, and with the conclusion that petitioner did not purposely avail
itself of the California market. As long as a defendant is aware that the final
341
Lectures on the US Legal System
342
Jurisdiction in personam
A and III, in which THE CHIEF JUSTICE, JUSTICE POWELL, and JUSTICE
SCALIA join.
This case presents the question whether the mere awareness on the part of a
foreign defendant that the components it manufactured, sold, and delivered
outside the United States would reach the forum State in the stream of commerce
constitutes "minimum contacts" between the defendant and the forum State such
that the exercise of jurisdiction "does not offend `traditional notions of fair play
and substantial justice.'" International Shoe Co. v. Washington, 326 U.S. 310, 316
(1945), quoting Milliken v. Meyer, 311 U.S. 457, 463 (1940).
I
On September 23, 1978, on Interstate Highway 80 in Solano County, California,
Gary Zurcher lost control of his Honda motorcycle and collided with a tractor.
Zurcher was severely injured, and his passenger and wife, Ruth Ann Moreno, was
killed. In September 1979, Zurcher filed a product liability action in the Superior
Court of the State of [480 U.S. 102, 106] California in and for the County of
Solano. Zurcher alleged that the 1978 accident was caused by a sudden loss of air
and an explosion in the rear tire of the motorcycle, and alleged that the
motorcycle tire, tube, and sealant were defective. Zurcher's complaint named,
inter alia, Cheng Shin Rubber Industrial Co., Ltd. (Cheng Shin), the Taiwanese
manufacturer of the tube. Cheng Shin in turn filed a cross-complaint seeking
indemnification from its codefendants and from petitioner, Asahi Metal Industry
Co., Ltd. (Asahi), the manufacturer of the tube's valve assembly. Zurcher's claims
against Cheng Shin and the other defendants were eventually settled and
dismissed, leaving only Cheng Shin's indemnity action against Asahi.
California's long-arm statute authorizes the exercise of jurisdiction "on any basis
not inconsistent with the Constitution of this state or of the United States." Cal.
Civ. Proc. Code Ann. 410.10 (West 1973). Asahi moved to quash Cheng Shin's
service of summons, arguing the State could not exert jurisdiction over it
consistent with the Due Process Clause of the Fourteenth Amendment.
In relation to the motion, the following information was submitted by Asahi and
Cheng Shin. Asahi is a Japanese corporation. It manufactures tire valve
assemblies in Japan and sells the assemblies to Cheng Shin, and to several other
tire manufacturers, for use as components in finished tire tubes. Asahi's sales to
Cheng Shin took place in Taiwan. The shipments from Asahi to Cheng Shin were
sent from Japan to Taiwan. Cheng Shin bought and incorporated into its tire tubes
150,000 Asahi valve assemblies in 1978; 500,000 in 1979; 500,000 in 1980;
100,000 in 1981; and 100,000 in 1982. Sales to Cheng Shin accounted for 1.24
percent of Asahi's income in 1981 and 0.44 percent in 1982. Cheng Shin alleged
that approximately 20 percent of its sales in the United States are in California.
Cheng Shin purchases valve assemblies from other suppliers as well, and sells
finished tubes throughout the world. [480 U.S. 102, 107]
In 1983 an attorney for Cheng Shin conducted an informal examination of the
valve stems of the tire tubes sold in one cycle store in Solano County. The
343
Lectures on the US Legal System
attorney declared that of the approximately 115 tire tubes in the store, 97 were
purportedly manufactured in Japan or Taiwan, and of those 97, 21 valve stems
were marked with the circled letter "A", apparently Asahi's trademark. Of the 21
Asahi valve stems, 12 were incorporated into Cheng Shin tire tubes. The store
contained 41 other Cheng Shin tubes that incorporated the valve assemblies of
other manufacturers. Declaration of Kenneth B. Shepard in Opposition to Motion
to Quash Subpoena, App. to Brief for Respondent 5-6. An affidavit of a manager
of Cheng Shin whose duties included the purchasing of component parts stated:
"`In discussions with Asahi regarding the purchase of valve stem assemblies the
fact that my Company sells tubes throughout the world and specifically the
United States has been discussed. I am informed and believe that Asahi was fully
aware that valve stem assemblies sold to my Company and to others would end
up throughout the United States and in California.'" 39 Cal. 3d 35, 48, n. 4, 702
P.2d 543, 549-550, n. 4 (1985). An affidavit of the president of Asahi, on the
other hand, declared that Asahi "`has never contemplated that its limited sales of
tire valves to Cheng Shin in Taiwan would subject it to lawsuits in California.'"
Ibid. The record does not include any contract between Cheng Shin and Asahi.
Tr. of Oral Arg. 24.
Primarily on the basis of the above information, the Superior Court denied the
motion to quash summons, stating: "Asahi obviously does business on an
international scale. It is not unreasonable that they defend claims of defect in their
product on an international scale." Order Denying Motion to Quash Summons,
Zurcher v. Dunlop Tire & Rubber Co., No. 76180 (Super. Ct., Solano County,
Cal., Apr. 20, 1983).
The Court of Appeal of the State of California issued a peremptory writ of
mandate commanding the Superior Court to quash service of summons. The court
concluded that "it [480 U.S. 102, 108] would be unreasonable to require Asahi
to respond in California solely on the basis of ultimately realized foreseeability
that the product into which its component was embodied would be sold all over
the world including California." App. to Pet. for Cert. B5-B6.
The Supreme Court of the State of California reversed and discharged the writ
issued by the Court of Appeal. 39 Cal. 3d 35, 702 P.2d 543 (1985). The court
observed: "Asahi has no offices, property or agents in California. It solicits no
business in California and has made no direct sales [in California]." Id., at 48, 702
P.2d, at 549. Moreover, "Asahi did not design or control the system of
distribution that carried its valve assemblies into California." Id., at 49, 702 P.2d,
at 549. Nevertheless, the court found the exercise of jurisdiction over Asahi to be
consistent with the Due Process Clause. It concluded that Asahi knew that some
of the valve assemblies sold to Cheng Shin would be incorporated into tire tubes
sold in California, and that Asahi benefited indirectly from the sale in California
of products incorporating its components. The court considered Asahi's
intentional act of placing its components into the stream of commerce - that is, by
delivering the components to Cheng Shin in Taiwan - coupled with Asahi's
awareness that some of the components would eventually find their way into
344
Jurisdiction in personam
California, sufficient to form the basis for state court jurisdiction under the Due
Process Clause.
We granted certiorari, 475 U.S. 1044 (1986), and now reverse.
II
A
The Due Process Clause of the Fourteenth Amendment limits the power of a state
court to exert personal jurisdiction over a nonresident defendant. "[T]he
constitutional touchstone" of the determination whether an exercise of personal
jurisdiction comports with due process "remains whether the defendant
purposefully established `minimum contacts' in the [480 U.S. 102, 109] forum
State." Burger King Corp. v. Rudzewicz, 471 U.S. 462, 474 (1985), quoting
International Shoe Co. v. Washington, 326 U.S., at 316 . Most recently we have
reaffirmed the oft-quoted reasoning of Hanson v. Denckla, 357 U.S. 235, 253
(1958), that minimum contacts must have a basis in "some act by which the
defendant purposefully avails itself of the privilege of conducting activities
within the forum State, thus invoking the benefits and protections of its laws."
Burger King, 471 U.S., at 475 . "Jurisdiction is proper . . . where the contacts
proximately result from actions by the defendant himself that create a `substantial
connection' with the forum State." Ibid., quoting McGee v. International Life
Insurance Co., 355 U.S. 220, 223 (1957) (emphasis in original).
Applying the principle that minimum contacts must be based on an act of the
defendant, the Court in World-Wide Volkswagen Corp. v. Woodson, 444 U.S.
286 (1980), rejected the assertion that a consumer's unilateral act of bringing the
defendant's product into the forum State was a sufficient constitutional basis for
personal jurisdiction over the defendant. It had been argued in World-Wide
Volkswagen that because an automobile retailer and its wholesale distributor sold
a product mobile by design and purpose, they could foresee being haled into court
in the distant States into which their customers might drive. The Court rejected
this concept of foreseeability as an insufficient basis for jurisdiction under the
Due Process Clause. Id., at 295-296. The Court disclaimed, however, the idea that
"foreseeability is wholly irrelevant" to personal jurisdiction, concluding that
"[t]he forum State does not exceed its powers under the Due Process Clause if it
asserts personal jurisdiction over a corporation that delivers its products into the
stream of commerce with the expectation that they will be purchased by
consumers in the forum State." Id., at 297-298 (citation omitted). The Court
reasoned: [480 U.S. 102, 110]
"When a corporation `purposefully avails itself of the privilege of conducting
activities within the forum State,' Hanson v. Denckla, 357 U.S. [235,] 253
[(1958)], it has clear notice that it is subject to suit there, and can act to alleviate
the risk of burdensome litigation by procuring insurance, passing the expected
costs on to customers, or, if the risks are too great, severing its connection with
the State. Hence if the sale of a product of a manufacturer or distributor . . . is not
simply an isolated occurrence, but arises from the efforts of the manufacturer or
345
Lectures on the US Legal System
distributor to serve, directly or indirectly, the market for its product in other
States, it is not unreasonable to subject it to suit in one of those States if its
allegedly defective merchandise has there been the source of injury to its owners
or to others." Id., at 297.
In World-Wide Volkswagen itself, the state court sought to base jurisdiction not
on any act of the defendant, but on the foreseeable unilateral actions of the
consumer. Since World-Wide Volkswagen, lower courts have been confronted
with cases in which the defendant acted by placing a product in the stream of
commerce, and the stream eventually swept defendant's product into the forum
State, but the defendant did nothing else to purposefully avail itself of the market
in the forum State. Some courts have understood the Due Process Clause, as
interpreted in World-Wide Volkswagen, to allow an exercise of personal
jurisdiction to be based on no more than the defendant's act of placing the product
in the stream of commerce. Other courts have understood the Due Process Clause
and the above-quoted language in World-Wide Volkswagen to require the action
of the defendant to be more purposefully directed at the forum State than the
mere act of placing a product in the stream of commerce.
The reasoning of the Supreme Court of California in the present case illustrates
the former interpretation of World-Wide Volkswagen. The Supreme Court of
California held that, because the stream of commerce eventually brought [480
U.S. 102, 111] some valves Asahi sold Cheng Shin into California, Asahi's
awareness that its valves would be sold in California was sufficient to permit
California to exercise jurisdiction over Asahi consistent with the requirements of
the Due Process Clause. The Supreme Court of California's position was
consistent with those courts that have held that mere foreseeability or awareness
was a constitutionally sufficient basis for personal jurisdiction if the defendant's
product made its way into the forum State while still in the stream of commerce.
See Bean Dredging Corp. v. Dredge Technology Corp., 744 F.2d 1081 (CA5
1984); Hedrick v. Daiko Shoji Co., 715 F.2d 1355 (CA9 1983).
Other courts, however, have understood the Due Process Clause to require
something more than that the defendant was aware of its product's entry into the
forum State through the stream of commerce in order for the State to exert
jurisdiction over the defendant. In the present case, for example, the State Court
of Appeal did not read the Due Process Clause, as interpreted by World-Wide
Volkswagen, to allow "mere foreseeability that the product will enter the forum
state [to] be enough by itself to establish jurisdiction over the distributor and
retailer." App. to Pet. for Cert. B5. In Humble v. Toyota Motor Co., 727 F.2d 709
(CA8 1984), an injured car passenger brought suit against Arakawa Auto Body
Company, a Japanese corporation that manufactured car seats for Toyota.
Arakawa did no business in the United States; it had no office, affiliate,
subsidiary, or agent in the United States; it manufactured its component parts
outside the United States and delivered them to Toyota Motor Company in Japan.
The Court of Appeals, adopting the reasoning of the District Court in that case,
noted that although it "does not doubt that Arakawa could have foreseen that its
product would find its way into the United States," it would be "manifestly
346
Jurisdiction in personam
unjust" to require Arakawa to defend itself in the United States. Id., at 710-711,
quoting 578 F. Supp. 530, 533 (ND Iowa 1982). See also Hutson v. Fehr Bros.,
[480 U.S. 102, 112] Inc., 584 F.2d 833 (CA8 1978); see generally Max
Daetwyler Corp. v. R. Meyer, 762 F.2d 290, 299 (CA3 1985) (collecting "stream
of commerce" cases in which the "manufacturers involved had made deliberate
decisions to market their products in the forum state").
We now find this latter position to be consonant with the requirements of due
process. The "substantial connection," Burger King, 471 U.S., at 475 ; McGee,
355 U.S., at 223 , between the defendant and the forum State necessary for a
finding of minimum contacts must come about by an action of the defendant
purposefully directed toward the forum State. Burger King, supra, at 476; Keeton
v. Hustler Magazine, Inc., 465 U.S. 770, 774 (1984). The placement of a product
into the stream of commerce, without more, is not an act of the defendant
purposefully directed toward the forum State. Additional conduct of the
defendant may indicate an intent or purpose to serve the market in the forum
State, for example, designing the product for the market in the forum State,
advertising in the forum State, establishing channels for providing regular advice
to customers in the forum State, or marketing the product through a distributor
who has agreed to serve as the sales agent in the forum State. But a defendant's
awareness that the stream of commerce may or will sweep the product into the
forum State does not convert the mere act of placing the product into the stream
into an act purposefully directed toward the forum State.
Assuming, arguendo, that respondents have established Asahi's awareness that
some of the valves sold to Cheng Shin would be incorporated into tire tubes sold
in California, respondents have not demonstrated any action by Asahi to
purposefully avail itself of the California market. Asahi does not do business in
California. It has no office, agents, employees, or property in California. It does
not advertise or otherwise solicit business in California. It did not create, control,
or employ the distribution system that brought its valves to California. Cf. Hicks
v. Kawasaki Heavy Industries, [480 U.S. 102, 113] 452 F. Supp. 130 (MD Pa.
1978). There is no evidence that Asahi designed its product in anticipation of
sales in California. Cf. Rockwell International Corp. v. Costruzioni Aeronautiche
Giovanni Agusta, 553 F. Supp. 328 (ED Pa. 1982). On the basis of these facts,
the exertion of personal jurisdiction over Asahi by the Superior Court of
California * exceeds the limits of due process.
B
The strictures of the Due Process Clause forbid a state court to exercise personal
jurisdiction over Asahi under circumstances that would offend "`traditional
notions of fair play and substantial justice.'" International Shoe Co. v.
Washington, 326 U.S., at 316 , quoting Milliken v. Meyer, 311 U.S., at 463 .
We have previously explained that the determination of the reasonableness of the
exercise of jurisdiction in each case will depend on an evaluation of several
factors. A court must consider the burden on the defendant, the interests of the
forum State, and the plaintiff's interest in obtaining relief. It must also weigh in its
347
Lectures on the US Legal System
348
Jurisdiction in personam
III
Because the facts of this case do not establish minimum contacts such that the
exercise of personal jurisdiction is consistent with fair play and substantial
justice, the judgment of the Supreme Court of California is reversed, and the case
is remanded for further proceedings not inconsistent with this opinion.
It is so ordered.
349
Lectures on the US Legal System
350
Jurisdiction in personam
BLACKMUN, J., delivered the opinion of the Court, in which BURGER, C. J.,
and WHITE, MARSHALL, POWELL, REHNQUIST, STEVENS, and
O'CONNOR, JJ., joined. BRENNAN, J., filed a dissenting opinion, post, p. 419.
Thomas J. Whalen argued the cause for petitioner. With him on the briefs were
Austin P. Magner, Cynthia J. Larsen, James E. Ingram, and Barry A. Chasnoff.
George E. Pletcher argued the cause and filed a brief for respondents. *
[ Footnote * ] Robert L. Stern, Stephen M. Shapiro, William H. Crabtree, and
Edward P. Good filed a brief for the Motor Vehicle Manufacturers Association as
amicus curiae urging reversal.
Solicitor General Lee, Assistant Attorney General McGrath, Deputy Solicitor
General Geller, Kathryn A. Oberly, Michael F. Hertz, and Howard S. Scher filed
a brief for the United States as amicus curiae.
JUSTICE BLACKMUN delivered the opinion of the Court.
We granted certiorari in this case, 460 U.S. 1021 (1983), to decide whether the
Supreme Court of Texas correctly ruled that the contacts of a foreign corporation
with the State of Texas were sufficient to allow a Texas state court to assert
jurisdiction over the corporation in a cause of action not arising out of or related
to the corporation's activities within the State.
I
Petitioner Helicopteros Nacionales de Colombia, S. A. (Helicol), is a Colombian
corporation with its principal place of business in the city of Bogota in that
country. It is engaged in the business of providing helicopter transportation for oil
and construction companies in South America. On [466 U.S. 408, 410] January
26, 1976, a helicopter owned by Helicol crashed in Peru. Four United States
citizens were among those who lost their lives in the accident. Respondents are
the survivors and representatives of the four decedents.
At the time of the crash, respondents' decedents were employed by Consorcio, a
Peruvian consortium, and were working on a pipeline in Peru. Consorcio is the
alter ego of a joint venture named Williams-Sedco-Horn (WSH). The venture had
its headquarters in Houston, Tex. Consorcio had been formed to enable the
venturers to enter into a contract with Petro Peru, the Peruvian state-owned oil
company. Consorcio was to construct a pipeline for Petro Peru running from the
interior of Peru westward to the Pacific Ocean. Peruvian law forbade construction
of the pipeline by any non-Peruvian entity.
Consorcio/WSH needed helicopters to move personnel, materials, and equipment
into and out of the construction area. In 1974, upon request of Consorcio/WSH,
the chief executive officer of Helicol, Francisco Restrepo, flew to the United
States and conferred in Houston with representatives of the three joint venturers.
At that meeting, there was a discussion of prices, availability, working
conditions, fuel, supplies, and housing. Restrepo represented that Helicol could
have the first helicopter on the job in 15 days. The Consorcio/WSH
351
Lectures on the US Legal System
352
Jurisdiction in personam
(1982). In ruling that the Texas courts had [466 U.S. 408, 413] in personam
jurisdiction, the Texas Supreme Court first held that the State's long-arm statute
reaches as far as the Due Process Clause of the Fourteenth Amendment permits.
Id., at 872. Thus, the only question remaining for the court to decide was whether
it was consistent with the Due Process Clause for Texas courts to assert in
personam jurisdiction over Helicol. Ibid.
II
The Due Process Clause of the Fourteenth Amendment operates to limit the
power of a State to assert in personam [466 U.S. 408, 414] jurisdiction over a
nonresident defendant. Pennoyer v. Neff, 95 U.S. 714 (1878). Due process
requirements are satisfied when in personam jurisdiction is asserted over a
nonresident corporate defendant that has "certain minimum contacts with [the
forum] such that the maintenance of the suit does not offend `traditional notions
of fair play and substantial justice.'" International Shoe Co. v. Washington, 326
U.S. 310, 316 (1945), quoting Milliken v. Meyer, 311 U.S. 457, 463 (1940).
When a controversy is related to or "arises out of" a defendant's contacts with the
forum, the Court has said that a "relationship among the defendant, the forum,
and the litigation" is the essential foundation of in personam jurisdiction. Shaffer
v. Heitner, 433 U.S. 186, 204 (1977).
Even when the cause of action does not arise out of or relate to the foreign
corporation's activities in the forum State, due process is not offended by a State's
subjecting the corporation to its in personam jurisdiction when there are sufficient
contacts between the State and the foreign corporation. Perkins v. Benguet
Consolidated Mining Co., 342 U.S. 437 (1952); see Keeton v. Hustler Magazine,
Inc., 465 U.S. 770, 779 -780 (1984). In Perkins, the Court addressed a situation in
which state courts had asserted general jurisdiction over a defendant foreign
corporation. During the Japanese [466 U.S. 408, 415] occupation of the
Philippine Islands, the president and general manager of a Philippine mining
corporation maintained an office in Ohio from which he conducted activities on
behalf of the company. He kept company files and held directors' meetings in the
office, carried on correspondence relating to the business, distributed salary
checks drawn on two active Ohio bank accounts, engaged on Ohio bank to act as
transfer agent, and supervised policies dealing with the rehabilitation of the
corporation's properties in the Philippines. In short, the foreign corporation,
through its president, "ha[d] been carrying on in Ohio a continuous and
systematic, but limited, part of its general business," and the exercise of general
jurisdiction over the Philippine corporation by an Ohio court was "reasonable and
just." 342 U.S., at 438 , 445.
All parties to the present case concede that respondents' claims against Helicol
did not "arise out of," and are not related to, Helicol's activities within Texas. We
thus must [466 U.S. 408, 416] explore the nature of Helicol's contacts with the
State of Texas to determine whether they constitute the kind of continuous and
systematic general business contacts the Court found to exist in Perkins. We hold
that they do not.
353
Lectures on the US Legal System
It is undisputed that Helicol does not have a place of business in Texas and never
has been licensed to do business in the State. Basically, Helicol's contacts with
Texas consisted of sending its chief executive officer to Houston for a contract-
negotiation session; accepting into its New York bank account checks drawn on a
Houston bank; purchasing helicopters, equipment, and training services from Bell
Helicopter for substantial sums; and sending personnel to Bell's facilities in Fort
Worth for training.
The one trip to Houston by Helicol's chief executive officer for the purpose of
negotiating the transportation-services contract with Consorcio/WSH cannot be
described or regarded as a contact of a "continuous and systematic" nature, as
Perkins described it, see also International Shoe Co. v. Washington, 326 U.S., at
320 , and thus cannot support an assertion of in personam jurisdiction over
Helicol by a Texas court. Similarly, Helicol's acceptance from Consorcio/WSH of
checks drawn on a Texas bank is of negligible significance for purposes of
determining whether Helicol had sufficient contacts in Texas. There is no
indication that Helicol ever requested that the checks be drawn on a Texas bank
or that there was any negotiation between Helicol and Consorcio/WSH with
respect to the location or identity of the bank on which checks would be drawn.
Common sense and everyday experience suggest that, absent unusual
circumstances, the bank on which a check is drawn is generally of little [466 U.S.
408, 417] consequence to the payee and is a matter left to the discretion of the
drawer. Such unilateral activity of another party or a third person is not an
appropriate consideration when determining whether a defendant has sufficient
contacts with a forum State to justify an assertion of jurisdiction. See Kulko v.
California Superior Court, 436 U.S. 84, 93 (1978) (arbitrary to subject one parent
to suit in any State where other parent chooses to spend time while having
custody of child pursuant to separation agreement); Hanson v. Denckla, 357 U.S.
235, 253 (1958) ("The unilateral activity of those who claim some relationship
with a nonresident defendant cannot satisfy the requirement of contact with the
forum State"); see also Lilly, Jurisdiction Over Domestic and Alien Defendants,
69 Va. L. Rev. 85, 99 (1983).
The Texas Supreme Court focused on the purchases and the related training trips
in finding contacts sufficient to support an assertion of jurisdiction. We do not
agree with that assessment, for the Court's opinion in Rosenberg Bros. & Co. v.
Curtis Brown Co., 260 U.S. 516 (1923) (Brandeis, J., for a unanimous tribunal),
makes clear that purchases and related trips, standing alone, are not a sufficient
basis for a State's assertion of jurisdiction.
The defendant in Rosenberg was a small retailer in Tulsa, Okla., who dealt in
men's clothing and furnishings. It never had applied for a license to do business in
New York, nor had it at any time authorized suit to be brought against it there. It
never had an established place of business in New York and never regularly
carried on business in that State. Its only connection with New York was that it
purchased from New York wholesalers a large portion of the merchandise sold in
its Tulsa store. The purchases sometimes were made by correspondence and
sometimes through visits to New York by an officer of the defendant. The Court
354
Jurisdiction in personam
355
Lectures on the US Legal System
Section 2 – E-commerce
From the early stage on, the fact that a Web page could be accessed from
the forum never has been considered as ascertaining jurisdiction81, except
if there is a announcement in local media as well82 or that the Web page
especially targets local consumers83. In regard to e-commerce cases, the
American case law asserts personal jurisdiction if there is a certain degree
of interactivity which moves along a sliding scale as it results from the
Zippo case84. At one end of the spectrum are situations where the
defendant clearly does business over the Internet. If the defendant enters
into contracts with residents of a foreign jurisdiction that involve the
knowing and repeated transmission of computer files over the Internet,
personal jurisdiction is proper85. At the opposite end are situations where a
defendant has simply posted information on an Internet Web site, which is
accessible to users in a foreign jurisdiction. A passive Web site that does
little more than make information available to those who are interested in
it is not grounds for the exercise of personal jurisdiction86. The middle
ground is occupied by interactive Web sites where a user can exchange
information with the host computer. In these cases, the exercise of
jurisdiction is determined by examining the level of interactivity and
commercial nature of the exchange of information that occurs on the Web
site87.
81
Patriot Systems, Inc. v. C-Cubed Corp., 21 F. Supp.2d 1318 (D. Utah 1998).
82
Heroes, Inc. v. Heroes Foundation, 958 F. Supp. 1, 3-5 (D.D.C. 1996).
83
Vitullo v. Velocity Powerboats, Inc., 1998 W.L. 246152 (N.D. III, 1998).
84
Zippo Manufacturing Co. v. Zippo Dot Com, Inc., 952 F. Supp. 1119, 1123
(W.D. Penn. 1997).
85
Compuserve v. Patterson, 89 F. 2D 1257 (6th Circuit 1996).
86
Bensusan Restaurant v. King, 937 F. Supp. 296 (SDNY 1996).
87
Maritz v. Cybergold, 1996 US Dist. Lexis 14976 (EDMo Aug. 19, 1996.
88
For a more detailled analisys, cf: Graham, El derecho internacional privado del
comercio electrónico, Themis, 2003, # 76 sq.
356
Jurisdiction in personam
jurisdiction89, it has also been ruled that defendant can be healed into the
forum where resides the Webmaster or in other words where the
“administration, maintenance, and upkeep of defendant’s website”
occurs90.
89
E.g. Amberson Holdings LLC v. Westside Story Newspaper, 110 F.Supp 2d 332
(D.N.J., 2000).
90
TFCCS v. Nolan (4th Cir, 2001).
357
Lectures on the US Legal System
Zippo Mfr. Co. v. Zippo Dot Com, Inc., 952 F. Supp. 1119
(W.D. Pa. 1997)
MEMORANDUM OPINION
McLAUGHLIN, District Judge.
This is an Internet domain name dispute. At this stage of the controversy, we
must decide the Constitutionally permissible reach of Pennsylvania's Long Arm
Statute, 42 Pa.C.S.A. § 5322, through cyberspace. Plaintiff Zippo Manufacturing
Corporation ("Manufacturing") has filed a five count complaint against Zippo
Dot Com, Inc. ("Dot Com") alleging trademark dilution, infringement, and false
designation under the Federal Trademark Act, 15 U.S.C. §§ 1051-1127. In
addition, the Complaint alleges causes of action based on state law trademark
dilution under 54 Pa.C.S.A. § 1124, and seeks equitable accounting and
imposition of a constructive trust. Dot Com has moved to dismiss for lack of
personal jurisdiction and improper venue pursuant to Fed.R.Civ.P. 12(b)(2) and
(3) or, in the alternative, to transfer the case pursuant to 28 U.S.C. § 1406(a). For
the reasons set forth below, Defendant's motion is denied.
I. BACKGROUND
The facts relevant to this motion are as follows. Manufacturing is a Pennsylvania
corporation with its principal place of business in Bradford, Pennsylvania.
Manufacturing makes, among other things, well known "Zippo" tobacco lighters.
Dot Com is a California corporation with its principal place of business in
Sunnyvale, California. Dot Com operates an Internet Web site and an Internet
news service and has obtained the exclusive right to use the domain names
"zippo.com", "zippo.net" and "zipponews.com" on the Internet.
Dot Com's Web site contains information about the company, advertisements and
an application for its Internet news service. The news service itself consists of
three levels of membership--public/free, "Original" and "Super." Each successive
level offers access to a greater number of Internet newsgroups. A customer who
wants to subscribe to either the "Original" or "Super" level of service, fills out an
on-line application that asks for a variety of information including the person's
name and address. Payment is made by credit card over the Internet or the
telephone. The application is then processed and the subscriber is assigned a
password which permits the subscriber to view and/or download Internet
newsgroup messages that are stored on the Defendant's server in California.
358
Jurisdiction in personam
Dot Com's contacts with Pennsylvania have occurred almost exclusively over the
Internet. Dot Com's offices, employees and Internet servers are located in
California. Dot Com maintains no offices, employees or agents in Pennsylvania.
Dot Com's advertising for its service to Pennsylvania residents involves posting
information about its service on its Web page, which is accessible to
Pennsylvania residents via the Internet. Defendant has approximately 140,000
paying subscribers worldwide. Approximately two percent (3,000) of those
subscribers are Pennsylvania residents. These subscribers have contracted to
receive Dot Com's service by visiting its Web site and filling out the application.
Additionally, Dot Com has entered into agreements with seven Internet access
providers in Pennsylvania to permit their subscribers to access Dot Com's news
service. Two of these providers are located in the Western District of
Pennsylvania.
The basis of the trademark claims is Dot Com's use of the word "Zippo" in the
domain names it holds, in numerous locations in its Web site and in the heading
of Internet newsgroup messages that have been posted by Dot Com subscribers.
When an Internet user views or downloads a newsgroup message posted by a Dot
Com subscriber, the word "Zippo" appears in the "Message-Id" and
"Organization" sections of the heading. The news message itself, containing text
and/or pictures, follows. Manufacturing points out that some of the messages
contain adult oriented, sexually explicit subject matter.
III. DISCUSSION
A. Personal Jurisdiction
1. The Traditional Framework
Our authority to exercise personal jurisdiction in this case is conferred by state
law. Fed.R.Civ.P. 4(e); Mellon, 960 F.2d at 1221. The extent to which we may
exercise that authority is governed by the Due Process Clause of the Fourteenth
Amendment to the Federal Constitution. Kulko v. Superior Court of California,
436 U.S. 84, 91, 98 S.Ct. 1690, 1696, 56 L.Ed.2d 132 (1978).
359
Lectures on the US Legal System
360
Jurisdiction in personam
S.Ct. 1473, 1478, 79 L.Ed.2d 790 (1984). "Jurisdiction is proper, however, where
contacts proximately result from actions by the defendant himself that create a
'substantial connection' with the forum State." Burger King, 471 U.S. at 475, 105
S.Ct. at 2183-84 (citing McGee v. International Life Insurance Co., 355 U.S. 220,
223, 78 S.Ct. 199, 201, 2 L.Ed.2d 223 (1957)).
The "reasonableness" prong exists to protect defendants against unfairly
inconvenient litigation. World-Wide Volkswagen, 444 U.S. at 292, 100 S.Ct. at
564-65. Under this prong, the exercise of jurisdiction will be reasonable if it does
not offend "traditional notions of fair play and substantial justice." International
Shoe, 326 U.S. at 316, 66 S.Ct. at 158. When determining the reasonableness of a
particular forum, the court must consider the burden on the defendant in light of
other factors including: "the forum state's interest in adjudicating the dispute; the
plaintiff's interest in obtaining convenient and effective relief, at least when that
interest is not adequately protected by the plaintiff's right to choose the forum; the
interstate judicial system's interest in obtaining the most efficient resolution of
controversies; and the shared interest of the several states in furthering
fundamental substantive social policies." World-Wide Volkswagen, 444 U.S. at
292, 100 S.Ct. at 564 (internal citations omitted).
2. The Internet and Jurisdiction
In Hanson v. Denckla, the Supreme Court noted that "[a]s technological progress
has increased the flow of commerce between States, the need for jurisdiction has
undergone a similar increase." Hanson v. Denckla, 357 U.S. 235, 250-51, 78
S.Ct. 1228, 1237-39, 2 L.Ed.2d 1283 (1958). Twenty seven years later, the Court
observed that jurisdiction could not be avoided "merely because the defendant did
not physically enter the forum state." Burger King, 471 U.S. at 476, 105 S.Ct. at
2184. The Court observed that:
[I]t is an inescapable fact of modern commercial life that a substantial amount of
commercial business is transacted solely by mail and wire communications across
state lines, thus obviating the need for physical presence within a State in which
business is conducted. Id.
Enter the Internet, a global " 'super-network' of over 15,000 computer networks
used by over 30 million individuals, corporations, organizations, and educational
institutions worldwide." Panavision Intern., L.P. v. Toeppen, 938 F.Supp. 616
(C.D.Cal.1996) (citing American Civil Liberties Union v. Reno, 929 F.Supp. 824,
830-48 (E.D.Pa.1996)). "In recent years, businesses have begun to use the
Internet to provide information and products to consumers and other businesses."
Id. The Internet makes it possible to conduct business throughout the world
entirely from a desktop. With this global revolution looming on the horizon, the
development of the law concerning the permissible scope of personal jurisdiction
based on Internet use is in its infant stages. The cases are scant. Nevertheless, our
review of the available cases and materials reveals that the likelihood that
personal jurisdiction can be constitutionally exercised is directly proportionate to
the nature and quality of commercial activity that an entity conducts over the
Internet. This sliding scale is consistent with well developed personal jurisdiction
361
Lectures on the US Legal System
principles. At one end of the spectrum are situations where a defendant clearly
does business over the Internet. If the defendant enters into contracts with
residents of a foreign jurisdiction that involve the knowing and repeated
transmission of computer files over the Internet, personal jurisdiction is proper.
E.g. CompuServe, Inc. v. Patterson, 89 F.3d 1257 (6th Cir.1996). At the opposite
end are situations where a defendant has simply posted information on an Internet
Web site which is accessible to users in foreign jurisdictions. A passive Web site
that does little more than make information available to those who are interested
in it is not grounds for the exercise personal jurisdiction. E.g. Bensusan
Restaurant Corp., v. King, 937 F.Supp. 295 (S.D.N.Y.1996). The middle ground
is occupied by interactive Web sites where a user can exchange information with
the host computer. In these cases, the exercise of jurisdiction is determined by
examining the level of interactivity and commercial nature of the exchange of
information that occurs on the Web site. E.g. Maritz, Inc. v. Cybergold, Inc., 947
F.Supp. 1328 (E.D.Mo.1996).
Traditionally, when an entity intentionally reaches beyond its boundaries to
conduct business with foreign residents, the exercise of specific jurisdiction is
proper. Burger King, 471 U.S. at 475, 105 S.Ct. at 2183- 84. Different results
should not be reached simply because business is conducted over the Internet. In
CompuServe, Inc. v. Patterson, 89 F.3d 1257 (6th Cir.1996), the Sixth Circuit
addressed the significance of doing business over the Internet. In that case,
Patterson, a Texas resident, entered into a contract to distribute shareware
through CompuServe's Internet server located in Ohio. CompuServe, 89 F.3d at
1260. From Texas, Patterson electronically uploaded thirty-two master software
files to CompuServe's server in Ohio via the Internet. Id. at 1261. One of
Patterson's software products was designed to help people navigate the Internet.
Id. When CompuServe later began to market a product that Patterson believed to
be similar to his own, he threatened to sue. Id. CompuServe brought an action in
the Southern District of Ohio, seeking a declaratory judgment. Id. The District
Court granted Patterson's motion to dismiss for lack of personal jurisdiction and
CompuServe appealed. Id. The Sixth Circuit reversed, reasoning that Patterson
had purposefully directed his business activities toward Ohio by knowingly
entering into a contract with an Ohio resident and then "deliberately and
repeatedly" transmitted files to Ohio. Id. at 1264- 66.
In Maritz, Inc. v. Cybergold, Inc., 947 F.Supp. 1328 (E.D.Mo.1996), the
defendant had put up a Web site as a promotion for its upcoming Internet service.
The service consisted of assigning users an electronic mailbox and then
forwarding advertisements for products and services that matched the users'
interests to those electronic mailboxes. Maritz, 947 F.Supp. at 1330. The
defendant planned to charge advertisers and provide users with incentives to view
the advertisements. Id. Although the service was not yet operational, users were
encouraged to add their address to a mailing list to receive updates about the
service. Id. The court rejected the defendant's contention that it operated a
"passive Web site." Id. at 1333- 34. The court reasoned that the defendant's
conduct amounted to "active solicitations" and "promotional activities" designed
362
Jurisdiction in personam
363
Lectures on the US Legal System
364
Jurisdiction in personam
Here, Dot Com argues that its contacts with Pennsylvania residents are fortuitous
because Pennsylvanians happened to find its Web site or heard about its news
service elsewhere and decided to subscribe. This argument misconstrues the
concept of fortuitous contacts embodied in World-Wide Volkswagen. Dot Com's
contacts with Pennsylvania would be fortuitous within the meaning of World-
Wide Volkswagen if it had no Pennsylvania subscribers and an Ohio subscriber
forwarded a copy of a file he obtained from Dot Com to a friend in Pennsylvania
or an Ohio subscriber brought his computer along on a trip to Pennsylvania and
used it to access Dot Com's service. That is not the situation here. Dot Com
repeatedly and consciously chose to process Pennsylvania residents' applications
and to assign them passwords. Dot Com knew that the result of these contracts
would be the transmission of electronic messages into Pennsylvania. The
transmission of these files was entirely within its control. Dot Com cannot
maintain that these contracts are "fortuitous" or "coincidental" within the meaning
of World-Wide Volkswagen. When a defendant makes a conscious choice to
conduct business with the residents of a forum state, "it has clear notice that it is
subject to suit there." World-Wide Volkswagen, 444 U.S. at 297, 100 S.Ct. at
567. Dot Com was under no obligation to sell its services to Pennsylvania
residents. It freely chose to do so, presumably in order to profit from those
transactions. If a corporation determines that the risk of being subject to personal
jurisdiction in a particular forum is too great, it can choose to sever its connection
to the state. Id. If Dot Com had not wanted to be amenable to jurisdiction in
Pennsylvania, the solution would have been simple--it could have chosen not to
sell its services to Pennsylvania residents.
Next, Dot Com argues that its forum-related activities are not numerous or
significant enough to create a "substantial connection" with Pennsylvania.
Defendant points to the fact that only two percent of its subscribers are
Pennsylvania residents. However, the Supreme Court has made clear that even a
single contact can be sufficient. McGee, 355 U.S. at 223, 78 S.Ct. at 201. The test
has always focused on the "nature and quality" of the contacts with the forum and
not the quantity of those contacts. International Shoe, 326 U.S. at 320, 66 S.Ct. at
160. The Sixth Circuit also rejected a similar argument in CompuServe when it
wrote that the contacts were "deliberate and repeated even if they yielded little
revenue." CompuServe, 89 F.3d at 1265.
We also conclude that the cause of action arises out of Dot Com's forum- related
conduct in this case. The Third Circuit has stated that "a cause of action for
trademark infringement occurs where the passing off occurs." Cottman
Transmission Systems Inc. v. Martino, 36 F.3d 291, 294 (citing Tefal, S.A. v.
Products Int'l Co., 529 F.2d 495, 496 n. 1 (3d Cir.1976); Indianapolis Colts v.
Metro. Baltimore Football, 34 F.3d 410 (7th Cir.1994). In Tefal, the maker and
distributor of T-Fal cookware sued a partnership of California corporations in the
District of New Jersey for trademark infringement. Tefal, 529 F.2d at 496. The
defendants objected to venue in New Jersey, arguing that the contested trademark
accounted for only about five percent of national sales. Id. On appeal, the Third
Circuit concluded that since substantial sales of the product bearing the allegedly
365
Lectures on the US Legal System
infringing mark took place in New Jersey, the cause of action arose in New
Jersey and venue was proper. Tefal, 529 F.2d at 496-97.
In Indianapolis Colts, also case cited by the Third Circuit in Cottman, an Indiana
National Football League franchise sued a Maryland Canadian Football League
franchise in the Southern District of Indiana, alleging trademark infringement.
Indianapolis Colts, 34 F.3d at 411. On appeal, the Seventh Circuit held that
personal jurisdiction was appropriate in Indiana because trademark infringement
is a tort-like injury and a substantial amount of the injury from the alleged
infringement was likely to occur in Indiana. Id. at 412.
In the instant case, both a significant amount of the alleged infringement and
dilution, and resulting injury have occurred in Pennsylvania. The object of Dot
Com's contracts with Pennsylvania residents is the transmission of the messages
that Plaintiff claims dilute and infringe upon its trademark. When these messages
are transmitted into Pennsylvania and viewed by Pennsylvania residents on their
computers, there can be no question that the alleged infringement and dilution
occur in Pennsylvania. Moreover, since Manufacturing is a Pennsylvania
corporation, a substantial amount of the injury from the alleged wrongdoing is
likely to occur in Pennsylvania. Thus, we conclude that the cause of action arises
out of Dot Com's forum-related activities under the authority of both Tefal and
Indianapolis Colts, supra.
Finally, Dot Com argues that the exercise of jurisdiction would be unreasonable
in this case. We disagree. There can be no question that Pennsylvania has a strong
interest in adjudicating disputes involving the alleged infringement of trademarks
owned by resident corporations. We must also give due regard to the Plaintiff's
choice to seek relief in Pennsylvania. Kulko, 436 U.S. at 92, 98 S.Ct. at 1696-97.
These concerns outweigh the burden created by forcing the Defendant to defend
the suit in Pennsylvania, especially when Dot Com consciously chose to conduct
business in Pennsylvania, pursuing profits from the actions that are now in
question. The Due Process Clause is not a "territorial shield to interstate
obligations that have been voluntarily assumed." Burger King, 471 U.S. at 474,
105 S.Ct. at 2183.
B. Venue Under 28 U.S.C. § 1391
Defendant argues that, under the law of this Circuit, venue is only proper in
trademark cases in the judicial district in which "a substantial part of the events or
omissions giving rise to the claim occurred." In support of this proposition,
Defendant cites Cottman Transmission Systems, Inc. v. Martino, 36 F.3d 291 (3d
Cir.1994). We cannot agree.
Venue in this case is governed by 28 U.S.C. § 1391(b), the relevant portion of
which provides:
(b) A civil action wherein jurisdiction is not founded solely on diversity of
citizenship may, except as otherwise provided by law, be brought only in (1) a
judicial district where any defendant resides, if all defendants reside in the same
State, (2) a judicial district in which a substantial part of the events or omissions
366
Jurisdiction in personam
giving rise to the claim occurred, or a substantial part of the property that is the
subject of the action is situated, or (3) a judicial district in which the defendant
may be found if there is no district in which the action may otherwise be brought.
28 U.S.C. § 1391(b). Subsection (c) further provides that a corporate defendant is
"deemed to reside in any judicial district in which it is subject to personal
jurisdiction at the time the action is commenced." 28 U.S.C. § 1391(c). Dot Com
is the only defendant in this case and it is a corporation. Thus, under the plain
language of 28 U.S.C. § 1391(b)(1), our previous discussion of personal
jurisdiction is dispositive of the venue issue. Contrary to Dot Com's contention,
Cottman does not command a different result.
Cottman involved a suit by a Pennsylvania corporation against a former Michigan
franchisee and his wholly owned corporation for trademark infringement arising
out of the continued use of the plaintiff's trademark after termination of the
franchise agreement. The suit was brought in the Eastern District of
Pennsylvania. Both defendants were Michigan residents and the corporation did
business exclusively in Michigan. In the district court, the plaintiff relied
exclusively on 28 U.S.C. § 1391(b)(2) to establish venue. The district court found
venue proper, reasoning that a "substantial part of the events or omissions giving
rise to the claim occurred" in Pennsylvania. Cottman Transmission v. Metro
Distributing, 796 F.Supp. 838, 844 (E.D.Pa.1992). Thus, on appeal, the only issue
before the Third Circuit was the propriety of venue under § 1391(b)(2). In fact,
the Third Circuit expressly stated that it was analyzing the case under §
1391(b)(2). Cottman, 36 F.3d at 294. The Third Circuit read the record as only
capable of supporting the contention that the defendants attempted to pass off the
trademarks at issue in the Eastern District of Michigan. Id. at 296. Thus, the Third
Circuit reversed, because a "substantial part of the events or omissions giving rise
to the claim" had not occurred in the Eastern District of Pennsylvania. Id.
The fact that the Third Circuit analyzed Cottman under the standard in §
1391(b)(2) does not mean that it applies to every trademark case. In fact, at oral
argument, Dot Com conceded that if its reading of Cottman were the law, it
would effectively render § 1391(b)(1) inapplicable to trademark cases and require
the plaintiff to always satisfy § 1391(b)(2) in order to lay venue. If the Third
Circuit had intended to create such a radical departure from the plain language of
§ 1391, it would have said so.
Since venue has been properly laid in this District, we cannot dismiss the action
under 28 U.S.C. § 1406(a). Jumara v. State Farm Inc. Co., 55 F.3d 873, 877 (3d
Cir.1995). We are also not permitted to compel the Plaintiff to accept a transfer
against its wishes. Carteret v. Shushan, 919 F.2d 225, 232 (3d Cir.1990).
IV. CONCLUSION
We conclude that this Court may appropriately exercise personal jurisdiction over
the Defendant and that venue is proper in this judicial district.
367
Jurisdiction in personam and E-commerce
368
Section 3 – Torts
91
Calder v. Jones, 465 US 783 (1984).
92
465 US 783 (1984).
93
Pavlovich v. The Superior Court of Santa Clara County, CV 786804 (2001).
369
Jurisdiction in personam and E-commerce
370
Cases and Materials
No. 82-1401.
371
Lectures on the US Legal System
(c) Petitioners are not charged with mere untargeted negligence, but rather their
intentional, and allegedly tortious, actions were expressly aimed at California.
They wrote and edited an article that they [465 U.S. 783, 784] knew would have
a potentially devastating impact upon respondent, and they knew that the brunt of
that injury would be felt by respondent in the State in which she lives and works
and in which the magazine has its largest circulation. Under these circumstances,
petitioners must "reasonably anticipate being haled into court there" to answer for
the truth of the statements made in the article. Pp. 789-790.
(d) While petitioners' contacts with California are not to be judged according to
their employer's activities there, their status as employees does not insulate them
from jurisdiction, since each defendant's contact with the forum State must be
assessed individually. P. 790.
(e) First Amendment concerns do not enter into the jurisdictional analysis. Such
concerns would needlessly complicate an already imprecise inquiry. Moreover,
the potential chill on protected First Amendment activity stemming from
defamation actions is already taken into account in the constitutional limitations
on the substantive law governing such actions. Pp. 790-791.
138 Cal. App. 3d 128, 187 Cal. Rptr. 825, affirmed.
REHNQUIST, J., delivered the opinion for a unanimous Court.
John G. Kester argued the cause for petitioners. With him on the briefs was
Aubrey M. Daniel III.
Paul S. Ablon argued the cause for respondent. With him on the brief were
Stephen S. Monroe and Richard P. Towne. *
[ Footnote * ] Briefs of amici curiae urging reversal were filed for the Association
of American Publishers, Inc., by R. Bruce Rich; for the Authors League of
America, Inc., by Irwin Karp; and for the Reporters Committee for Freedom of
the Press et al. by George R. Clark, Peter C. Gould, Barry D. Umansky, Harvey
Lipton, Robert C. Lobdell, W. Terry Maguire, Robert D. Sack, Bruce W.
Sanford, J. Laurent Scharff, and Richard M. Schmidt, Jr.
JUSTICE REHNQUIST delivered the opinion of the Court.
Respondent Shirley Jones brought suit in California Superior Court claiming that
she had been libeled in an article written and edited by petitioners in Florida. The
article was published in a national magazine with a large circulation in California.
Petitioners were served with process by mail in Florida and caused special
appearances to be entered on their behalf, moving to quash the service of process
for lack of personal [465 U.S. 783, 785] jurisdiction. The Superior Court granted
the motion on the ground that First Amendment concerns weighed against an
assertion of jurisdiction otherwise proper under the Due Process Clause. The
California Court of Appeal reversed, rejecting the suggestion that First
Amendment considerations enter into the jurisdictional analysis. We now affirm.
372
Respondent lives and works in California. She and her husband brought this suit
against the National Enquirer, Inc., its local distributing company, and petitioners
for libel, invasion of privacy, and intentional infliction of emotional harm. The
Enquirer is a Florida corporation with its principal place of business in Florida. It
publishes a national weekly newspaper with a total circulation of over 5 million.
About 600,000 of those copies, almost twice the level of the next highest State,
are sold in California. Respondent's and her husband's claims were based on an
article that appeared in the Enquirer's October 9, 1979, issue. Both the Enquirer
and the distributing company answered the complaint and made no objection to
the jurisdiction of the California court.
Petitioner South is a reporter employed by the Enquirer. He is a resident of
Florida, though he frequently travels to California on business. South wrote the
first draft of the challenged article, and his byline appeared on it. He did most of
his research in Florida, relying on phone calls to sources in California for the
information contained in the article. Shortly before publication, South called
respondent's [465 U.S. 783, 786] home and read to her husband a draft of the
article so as to elicit his comments upon it. Aside from his frequent trips and
phone calls, South has no other relevant contacts with California.
Petitioner Calder is also a Florida resident. He has been to California only twice -
once, on a pleasure trip, prior to the publication of the article and once after to
testify in an unrelated trial. Calder is president and editor of the Enquirer. He
"oversee[s] just about every function of the Enquirer." App. 24. He reviewed and
approved the initial evaluation of the subject of the article and edited it in its final
form. He also declined to print a retraction requested by respondent. Calder has
no other relevant contacts with California.
In considering petitioners' motion to quash service of process, the Superior Court
surmised that the actions of petitioners in Florida, causing injury to respondent in
California, would ordinarily be sufficient to support an assertion of jurisdiction
over them in California. But the court felt that special solicitude was necessary
because of the potential "chilling effect" on reporters and editors which would
result from requiring them to appear in remote jurisdictions to answer for the
content of articles upon which they worked. The court also noted that
respondent's rights could be "fully satisfied" in her suit against the publisher
without requiring petitioners to appear as parties. The Superior Court, therefore,
granted the motion.
The California Court of Appeal reversed. 138 Cal. App. 3d 128, 187 Cal. Rptr.
825 (1982). The court agreed that neither petitioner's contacts with California
would be sufficient [465 U.S. 783, 787] for an assertion of jurisdiction on a
cause of action unrelated to those contacts. See Perkins v. Benguet Mining Co.,
342 U.S. 437 (1952) (permitting general jurisdiction where defendant's contacts
with the forum were "continuous and systematic"). But the court concluded that a
valid basis for jurisdiction existed on the theory that petitioners intended to, and
did, cause tortious injury to respondent in California. The fact that the actions
causing the effects in California were performed outside the State did not prevent
373
Lectures on the US Legal System
the State from asserting jurisdiction over a cause of action arising out of those
effects. The court rejected the Superior Court's conclusion that First Amendment
considerations must be weighed in the scale against jurisdiction.
A timely petition for hearing was denied by the Supreme Court of California.
App. 122. On petitioners' appeal to this Court, probable jurisdiction was
postponed. 460 U.S. 1080 (1983). We conclude that jurisdiction by appeal does
not lie. Kulko v. California Superior Court, 436 U.S. 84, 90 , and n. 4 (1978).
Treating the jurisdictional statement as [465 U.S. 783, 788] a petition for writ of
certiorari, as we are authorized to do, 28 U.S.C. 2103, we hereby grant the
petition.
The Due Process Clause of the Fourteenth Amendment to the United States
Constitution permits personal jurisdiction over a defendant in any State with
which the defendant has "certain minimum contacts . . . such that the maintenance
of the suit does not offend `traditional notions of fair play and substantial justice.'
Milliken v. Meyer, 311 U.S. 457, 463 ." International Shoe Co. v. Washington,
326 U.S. 310, 316 (1945). In judging minimum contacts, a court properly focuses
on "the relationship among the defendant, the forum, and the litigation." Shaffer
v. Heitner, 433 U.S. 186, 204 (1977). See also Rush v. Savchuk, 444 U.S. 320,
332 (1980). The plaintiff's lack of "contacts" will not defeat otherwise proper
jurisdiction, see Keeton v. Hustler Magazine, Inc., ante, at 779-781, but they may
be so manifold as to permit jurisdiction when it would not exist in their absence.
Here, the plaintiff is the focus of the activities of the defendants out of which the
suit arises. See McGee v. International Life Ins. Co., 355 U.S. 220 (1957).
The allegedly libelous story concerned the California activities of a California
resident. It impugned the professionalism of an entertainer whose television
career was centered in California. The article was drawn from California sources,
[465 U.S. 783, 789] and the brunt of the harm, in terms both of respondent's
emotional distress and the injury to her professional reputation, was suffered in
California. In sum, California is the focal point both of the story and of the harm
suffered. Jurisdiction over petitioners is therefore proper in California based on
the "effects" of their Florida conduct in California. World-Wide Volkswagen
Corp. v. Woodson, 444 U.S. 286, 297 -298 (1980); Restatement (Second) of
Conflict of Laws 37 (1971).
Petitioners argue that they are not responsible for the circulation of the article in
California. A reporter and an editor, they claim, have no direct economic stake in
their employer's sales in a distant State. Nor are ordinary employees able to
control their employer's marketing activity. The mere fact that they can "foresee"
that the article will be circulated and have an effect in California is not sufficient
for an assertion of jurisdiction. World-Wide Volkswagen Corp. v. Woodson,
supra, at 295; Rush v. Savchuk, supra, at 328-329. They do not "in effect appoint
the [article their] agent for service of process." World-Wide Volkswagen Corp. v.
Woodson, supra, at 296. Petitioners liken themselves to a welder employed in
Florida who works on a boiler which subsequently explodes in California. Cases
which hold that jurisdiction will be proper over the manufacturer, Buckeye Boiler
374
Co. v. Superior Court, 71 Cal. 2d 893, 458 P.2d 57 (1969); Gray v. American
Radiator & Standard Sanitary Corp., 22 Ill. 2d 432, 176 N. E. 2d 761 (1961),
should not be applied to the welder who has no control over and derives no direct
benefit from his employer's sales in that distant State.
Petitioners' analogy does not wash. Whatever the status of their hypothetical
welder, petitioners are not charged with mere untargeted negligence. Rather, their
intentional, and allegedly tortious, actions were expressly aimed at California.
Petitioner South wrote and petitioner Calder edited an article that they knew
would have a potentially devastating impact upon respondent. And they knew
that the brunt of [465 U.S. 783, 790] that injury would be felt by respondent in
the State in which she lives and works and in which the National Enquirer has its
largest circulation. Under the circumstances, petitioners must "reasonably
anticipate being haled into court there" to answer for the truth of the statements
made in their article. World-Wide Volkswagen Corp. v. Woodson, supra, at 297;
Kulko v. California Superior Court, supra, at 97-98; Shaffer v. Heitner, supra, at
216. An individual injured in California need not go to Florida to seek redress
from persons who, though remaining in Florida, knowingly cause the injury in
California.
Petitioners are correct that their contacts with California are not to be judged
according to their employer's activities there. On the other hand, their status as
employees does not somehow insulate them from jurisdiction. Each defendant's
contacts with the forum State must be assessed individually. See Rush v.
Savchuk, supra, at 332 ("The requirements of International Shoe . . . must be met
as to each defendant over whom a state court exercises jurisdiction"). In this case,
petitioners are primary participants in an alleged wrongdoing intentionally
directed at a California resident, and jurisdiction over them is proper on that
basis.
We also reject the suggestion that First Amendment concerns enter into the
jurisdictional analysis. The infusion of such considerations would needlessly
complicate an already imprecise inquiry. Estin v. Estin, 334 U.S. 541, 545
(1948). Morever, the potential chill on protected First Amendment activity
stemming from libel and defamation actions is already taken into account in the
constitutional limitations on the substantive law governing such suits. See New
York Times Co. v. Sullivan, 376 U.S. 254 (1964); Gertz v. Robert Welch, Inc.,
418 U.S. 323 (1974). To reintroduce those concerns at the jurisdictional stage
would be a form of double counting. We have already declined in other contexts
to grant special procedural protections to defendants in libel and defamation
actions in addition to the constitutional protections [465 U.S. 783, 791]
embodied in the substantive laws. See, e. g., Herbert v. Lando, 441 U.S. 153
(1979) (no First Amendment privilege bars inquiry into editorial process). See
also Hutchinson v. Proxmire, 443 U.S. 111, 120 , n. 9 (1979) (implying that no
special rules apply for summary judgment).
375
Lectures on the US Legal System
376
377
Lectures on the US Legal System
94
433 US 186 (1977).
95
§ 66.
378
Lectures on the US Legal System
No. 75-1812.
379
Lectures on the US Legal System
appellants' arguments, upheld the 366 procedure [433 U.S. 186, 187] of
compelling the personal appearance of a nonresident defendant to answer and
defend a suit brought against him in a court of equity, which is accomplished by
the appointment of a sequestrator to seize and hold the property of the
nonresident located in Delaware subject to court order, with release of the
property being made upon the defendant's entry of a general appearance. The
court held that the limitation on the purpose and length of time for which
sequestered property is held comported with due process and that the statutory
situs of the stock (under a provision making Delaware the situs of ownership of
the capital stock of all corporations existing under the laws of that State) provided
a sufficient basis for the exercise of quasi in rem jurisdiction by a Delaware court.
The Delaware Supreme Court affirmed, concluding that International Shoe raised
no constitutional barrier to the sequestration procedure because "jurisdiction
under 366 remains . . . quasi in rem founded on the presence of capital stock [in
Delaware], not on prior contact by defendants with this forum." Held:
1. Whether or not a State can assert jurisdiction over a nonresident must be
evaluated according to the minimum-contacts standard of International Shoe Co.
v. Washington, supra. Pp. 207-212.
(a) In order to justify an exercise of jurisdiction in rem, the basis for jurisdiction
must be sufficient to justify exercising "jurisdiction over the interests of persons
in the thing." The presence of property in a State may bear upon the existence of
jurisdiction by providing contacts among the forum State, the defendant, and the
litigation, as for example, when claims to the property itself are the source of the
underlying controversy between the plaintiff and defendant, where it would be
unusual for the State where the property is located not to have jurisdiction. Pp.
207-208.
(b) But where, as in the instant quasi in rem action, the property now serving as
the basis for state-court jurisdiction is completely unrelated to the plaintiff's cause
of action, the presence of the property alone, i. e., absent other ties among the
defendant, the State, and the litigation, would not support the State's jurisdiction.
Pp. 208-209.
(c) Though the primary rationale for treating the presence of property alone as a
basis for jurisdiction is to prevent a wrongdoer from avoiding payment of his
obligations by removal of his assets to a place where he is not subject to an in
personam suit, that is an insufficient justification for recognizing jurisdiction
without regard to whether the property is in the State for that purpose. Moreover,
the availability of attachment procedures and the protection of the Full Faith and
Credit Clause, also militate against that rationale. Pp. 209-210. [433 U.S. 186,
188]
(d) The fairness standard of International Shoe can be easily applied in the vast
majority of cases. P. 211.
(e) Though jurisdiction based solely on the presence of property in a State has
had a long history, "traditional notions of fair play and substantial justice" can be
380
Jurisdiction in rem
381
Lectures on the US Legal System
382
Jurisdiction in rem
All 28 defendants were notified of the initiation of the suit by certified mail
directed to their last known addresses and by publication in a New Castle County
newspaper. The 21 defendants whose property was seized (hereafter referred to as
appellants) responded by entering a special appearance for [433 U.S. 186, 193]
the purpose of moving to quash service of process and to vacate the sequestration
order. They contended that the ex parte sequestration procedure did not accord
them due process of law and that the property seized was not capable of
attachment in Delaware. In addition, appellants asserted that under the rule of
International Shoe Co. v. Washington, 326 U.S. 310 (1945), they did not have
sufficient contacts with Delaware to sustain the jurisdiction of that State's courts.
The Court of Chancery rejected these arguments in a letter opinion which
emphasized the purpose of the Delaware sequestration procedure:
"The primary purpose of `sequestration' as authorized by 10 Del. C. 366 is not to
secure possession of property pending a trial between resident debtors and
creditors on the issue of who has the right to retain it. On the contrary, as here
employed, `sequestration' is a process used to compel the personal appearance of
a nonresident defendant to answer and defend a suit brought against him in a
court of equity. Sands v. Lefcourt Realty Corp., Del. Supr., 117 A. 2d 365 (1955).
It is accomplished by the appointment of a sequestrator by this Court to seize and
hold property of the nonresident located in this State subject to further Court
order. If the defendant enters a general appearance, the sequestered property is
routinely released, unless the plaintiff makes special application to continue its
seizure, in which event the plaintiff has the burden of proof and persuasion." App.
75-76.
This limitation on the purpose and length of time for which sequestered property
is held, the court concluded, rendered inapplicable the due process requirements
enunciated in Sniadach v. Family Finance Corp., 395 U.S. 337 (1969); Fuentes v.
Shevin, 407 U.S. 67 (1972); and Mitchell v. W. T. Grant Co., 416 U.S. 600
(1974). App. 75-76, 80, 83-85. The court also found no state-law or federal
constitutional barrier to the sequestrator's reliance on Del. Code Ann., Tit. 8, 169
[433 U.S. 186, 194] (1975). App. 76-79. Finally, the court held that the statutory
Delaware situs of the stock provided a sufficient basis for the exercise of quasi in
rem jurisdiction by a Delaware court. Id., at 85-87.
On appeal, the Delaware Supreme Court affirmed the judgment of the Court of
Chancery. Greyhound Corp. v. Heitner, 361 A. 2d 225 (1976). Most of the
Supreme Court's opinion was devoted to rejecting appellants' contention that the
sequestration procedure is inconsistent with the due process analysis developed in
the Sniadach line of cases. The court based its rejection of that argument in part
on its agreement with the Court of Chancery that the purpose of the sequestration
procedure is to compel the appearance of the defendant, a purpose not involved in
the Sniadach cases. The court also relied on what it considered the ancient origins
of the sequestration procedure and approval of that procedure in the opinions of
this Court, Delaware's interest in asserting jurisdiction to adjudicate claims of
383
Lectures on the US Legal System
384
Jurisdiction in rem
independent sovereigns, Mr. Justice Field found that their jurisdiction was
defined by the "principles of public law" that regulate the relationships among
independent nations. The first of those principles was "that every State possesses
exclusive jurisdiction and sovereignty over persons and property within its
territory." The second was "that no State can exercise direct jurisdiction and
authority over persons or property without its territory." Id., at 722. Thus, "in
virtue of the State's jurisdiction over the property of the non-resident situated
within its limits," the state courts "can inquire into that non-resident's obligations
to its own citizens . . . to the extent necessary to control the disposition of the
property." Id., at 723. The Court recognized that if the conclusions of that inquiry
were adverse to the nonresident property owner, his interest in the property would
be affected. Ibid. Similarly, if the defendant consented to the jurisdiction of the
state courts or was personally served within the State, a judgment could affect his
interest in property outside the State. But any attempt "directly" to assert
extraterritorial jurisdiction over persons or property would offend sister States
and exceed the inherent limits of the State's power. A judgment resulting from
such an attempt, Mr. Justice Field concluded, was not only unenforceable [433
U.S. 186, 198] in other States, but was also void in the rendering State because
it had been obtained in violation of the Due Process Clause of the Fourteenth
Amendment. Id., at 732-733. See also, e. g., Freeman v. Alderson, 119 U.S. 185,
187 -188 (1886).
This analysis led to the conclusion that Mitchell's judgment against Neff could
not be validly based on the State's power over persons within its borders, because
Neff had not been personally served in Oregon, nor had he consensually appeared
before the Oregon court. The Court reasoned that even if Neff had received
personal notice of the action, service of process outside the State would have
been ineffectual since the State's power was limited by its territorial boundaries.
Moreover, the Court held, the action could not be sustained on the basis of the
State's power over property within its borders because that property had not been
brought before the court by attachment or any other procedure prior to judgment.
Since the judgment which authorized the sheriff's sale was therefore invalid, the
sale transferred no title. Neff regained his land.
From our perspective, the importance of Pennoyer is not its result, but the fact
that its principles and corollaries derived from them became the basic elements of
the constitutional [433 U.S. 186, 199] doctrine governing state-court
jurisdiction. See, e. g., Hazard, A General Theory of State-Court Jurisdiction,
1965 Sup. Ct. Rev. 241 (hereafter Hazard). As we have noted, under Pennoyer
state authority to adjudicate was based on the jurisdiction's power over either
persons or property. This fundamental concept is embodied in the very
vocabulary which we use to describe judgments. If a court's jurisdiction is based
on its authority over the defendant's person, the action and judgment are
denominated "in personam" and can impose a personal obligation on the
defendant in favor of the plaintiff. If jurisdiction is based on the court's power
over property within its territory, the action is called "in rem" or "quasi in rem."
The effect of a judgment in such a case is limited to the property that supports
385
Lectures on the US Legal System
jurisdiction and does not impose a personal liability on the property owner, since
he is not before the court. In Pennoyer's terms, the owner is affected only
"indirectly" by an in rem judgment adverse to his interest in the property subject
to the court's disposition.
By concluding that "[t]he authority of every tribunal is necessarily restricted by
the territorial limits of the State in which it is established," 95 U.S., at 720 ,
Pennoyer sharply limited the availability of in personam jurisdiction over
defendants not resident in the forum State. If a nonresident defendant could not
be found in a State, he could not be sued there. On the other hand, since the State
in which property [433 U.S. 186, 200] was located was considered to have
exclusive sovereignty over that property, in rem actions could proceed regardless
of the owner's location. Indeed, since a State's process could not reach beyond its
borders, this Court held after Pennoyer that due process did not require any effort
to give a property owner personal notice that his property was involved in an in
rem proceeding. See, e. g., Ballard v. Hunter, 204 U.S. 241 (1907); Arndt v.
Griggs, 134 U.S. 316 (1890); Huling v. Kaw Valley R. Co., 130 U.S. 559 (1889).
The Pennoyer rules generally favored nonresident defendants by making them
harder to sue. This advantage was reduced, however, by the ability of a resident
plaintiff to satisfy a claim against a nonresident defendant by bringing into court
any property of the defendant located in the plaintiff's State. See, e. g., Zammit,
Quasi-In-Rem Jurisdiction: Outmoded and Unconstitutional?, 49 St. John's L.
Rev. 668, 670 (1975). For example, in the well-known case of Harris v. Balk, 198
U.S. 215 (1905), Epstein, a resident of Maryland, had a claim against Balk, a
resident of North Carolina. Harris, another North Carolina resident, owed money
to Balk. When Harris happened to visit Maryland, Epstein garnished his debt to
Balk. Harris did not contest the debt to Balk and paid it to Epstein's North
Carolina attorney. When Balk later sued Harris in North Carolina, this Court held
that the Full Faith and Credit Clause, U.S. Const., Art. IV, 1, required that Harris'
payment to Epstein be treated as a discharge of his debt to Balk. This Court
reasoned that the debt Harris owed Balk was an intangible form of property
belonging to Balk, and that the location of that property traveled with the debtor.
By obtaining personal jurisdiction over Harris, Epstein had "arrested" his debt to
Balk, 198 U.S., at 223 , and brought it into the Maryland court. Under the
structure established by Pennoyer, Epstein was then entitled to proceed against
that debt to vindicate his claim against Balk, even though Balk himself was not
subject to the jurisdiction [433 U.S. 186, 201] of a Maryland tribunal. See also,
e. g., Louisville & N. R. Co. v. Deer, 200 U.S. 176 (1906); Steele v. G. D. Searle
& Co., 483 F.2d 339 (CA5 1973), cert. denied, 415 U.S. 958 (1974).
Pennoyer itself recognized that its rigid categories, even as blurred by the kind of
action typified by Harris, could not accommodate some necessary litigation.
Accordingly, Mr. Justice Field's opinion carefully noted that cases involving the
personal status of the plaintiff, such as divorce actions, could be adjudicated in
the plaintiff's home State even though the defendant could not be served within
that State. 95 U.S., at 733 -735. Similarly, the opinion approved the practice of
considering a foreign corporation doing business in a State to have consented to
386
Jurisdiction in rem
being sued in that State. Id., at 735-736; see Lafayette Ins. Co. v. French, 18
How. 404 (1856). This [433 U.S. 186, 202] basis for in personam jurisdiction
over foreign corporations was later supplemented by the doctrine that a
corporation doing business in a State could be deemed "present" in the State, and
so subject to service of process under the rule of Pennoyer, See, e. g.,
International Harvester Co. v. Kentucky, 234 U.S. 579 (1914); Philadelphia &
Reading R. Co. v. McKibbin, 243 U.S. 264 (1917). See generally Note,
Developments in the Law, State-Court Jurisdiction, 73 Harv. L. Rev. 909, 919-
923 (1960) (hereafter Developments).
The advent of automobiles, with the concomitant increase in the incidence of
individuals causing injury in States where they were not subject to in personam
actions under Pennoyer, required further moderation of the territorial limits on
jurisdictional power. This modification, like the accommodation to the realities of
interstate corporate activities, was accomplished by use of a legal fiction that left
the conceptual structure established in Pennoyer theoretically unaltered. Cf.
Olberding v. Illinois Central R. Co., 346 U.S. 338, 340 -341 (1953). The fiction
used was that the out-of-state motorist, who it was assumed could be excluded
altogether from the State's highways, had by using those highways appointed a
designated state official as his agent to accept process. See Hess v. Pawloski, 274
U.S. 352 (1927). Since the motorist's "agent" could be personally served within
the State, the state courts could obtain in personam jurisdiction over the
nonresident driver.
The motorists' consent theory was easy to administer since it required only a
finding that the out-of-state driver had used the State's roads. By contrast, both
the fictions of implied consent to service on the part of a foreign corporation and
of corporate presence required a finding that the corporation was "doing
business" in the forum State. Defining the criteria for making that finding and
deciding whether they were met absorbed much judicial energy. See, e. g.,
International Shoe [433 U.S. 186, 203] Co. v. Washington, 326 U.S., at 317 -
319. While the essentially quantitative tests which emerged from these cases
purported simply to identify circumstances under which presence or consent
could be attributed to the corporation, it became clear that they were in fact
attempting to ascertain "what dealings make it just to subject a foreign
corporation to local suit." Hutchinson v. Chase & Gilbert, 45 F.2d 139, 141 (CA2
1930) (L. Hand, J.). In International Shoe, we acknowledged that fact.
The question in International Shoe was whether the corporation was subject to the
judicial and taxing jurisdiction of Washington. Mr. Chief Justice Stone's opinion
for the Court began its analysis of that question by noting that the historical basis
of in personam jurisdiction was a court's power over the defendant's person. That
power, however, was no longer the central concern:
"But now that the capias ad respondendum has given way to personal service of
summons or other form of notice, due process requires only that in order to
subject a defendant to a judgment in personam, if he be not present within the
territory of the forum, he have certain minimum contacts with it such that the
387
Lectures on the US Legal System
maintenance of the suit does not offend `traditional notions of fair play and
substantial justice.' Milliken v. Meyer, 311 U.S. 457, 463 ." 326 U.S., at 316 .
Thus, the inquiry into the State's jurisdiction over a foreign corporation
appropriately focused not on whether the corporation was "present" but on
whether there have been
"such contacts of the corporation with the state of the forum as make it
reasonable, in the context of our federal system of government, to require the
corporation to defend the particular suit which is brought there." Id., at 317. [433
U.S. 186, 204]
Mechanical or quantitative evaluations of the defendant's activities in the forum
could not resolve the question of reasonableness:
"Whether due process is satisfied must depend rather upon the quality and nature
of the activity in relation to the fair and orderly administration of the laws which
it was the purpose of the due process clause to insure. That clause does not
contemplate that a state may make binding a judgment in personam against an
individual or corporate defendant with which the state has no contacts, ties, or
relations." Id., at 319.
Thus, the relationship among the defendant, the forum, and the litigation, rather
than the mutually exclusive sovereignty of the States on which the rules of
Pennoyer rest, became the central concern of the inquiry into personal
jurisdiction. The immediate effect of this departure from Pennoyer's conceptual
apparatus was to increase the ability of the state courts to obtain personal
jurisdiction over nonresident defendants. See, e. g., Green, Jurisdictional Reform
in California, [433 U.S. 186, 205] 21 Hastings L. J. 1219, 1231-1233 (1970);
Currie, The Growth of the Long Arm: Eight Years of Extended Jurisdiction in
Illinois, 1963 U. Ill. L. F. 533; Developments 1000-1008.
No equally dramatic change has occurred in the law governing jurisdiction in
rem. There have, however, been intimations that the collapse of the in personam
wing of Pennoyer has not left that decision unweakened as a foundation for in
rem jurisdiction. Well-reasoned lower court opinions have questioned the
proposition that the presence of property in a State gives that State jurisdiction to
adjudicate rights to the property regardless of the relationship of the underlying
dispute and the property owner to the forum. See, e. g., U.S. Industries, Inc. v.
Gregg, 540 F.2d 142 (CA3 1976), cert. pending, No. 76-359; Jonnet v. Dollar
Savings Bank, 530 F.2d 1123, 1130-1143 (CA3 1976) (Gibbons, J., concurring);
Camire v. Scieszka, 116 N. H. 281, 358 A. 2d 397 (1976); Bekins v. Huish, 1
Ariz. App. 258, 401 P.2d 743 (1965); Atkinson v. Superior Court, 49 Cal. 2d 338,
316 P.2d 960 (1957), appeal dismissed and cert. denied sub nom. Columbia
Broadcasting System v. Atkinson, 357 U.S. 569 (1958). The overwhelming
majority of commentators have also rejected Pennoyer's premise that a
proceeding "against" property is not a proceeding against the owners of that
property. Accordingly, they urge that the "traditional notions of fair play and
substantial justice" that govern a State's power to adjudicate in personam should
388
Jurisdiction in rem
also govern its power to adjudicate personal rights to property located in the
State. See, e. g., Von Mehren & Trautman, Jurisdiction to Adjudicate: A
Suggested Analysis, 79 Harv. L. Rev. 1121 (1966) (hereafter Von Mehren &
Trautman); Traynor, Is This Conflict Really Necessary?, 37 Texas L. Rev. 657
(1959) (hereafter Traynor); Ehrenzweig, The Transient Rule of Personal
Jurisdiction: The "Power" Myth and Forum Conveniens, 65 Yale L. J. 289
(1956); Developments; Hazard. [433 U.S. 186, 206]
Although this Court has not addressed this argument directly, we have held that
property cannot be subjected to a court's judgment unless reasonable and
appropriate efforts have been made to give the property owners actual notice of
the action. Schroeder v. City of New York, 371 U.S. 208 (1962); Walker v. City
of Hutchinson, 352 U.S. 112 (1956); Mullane v. Central Hanover Bank & Trust
Co., 339 U.S. 306 (1950). This conclusion recognizes, contrary to Pennoyer, that
an adverse judgment in rem directly affects the property owner by divesting him
of his rights in the property before the court. Schroeder v. City of New York,
supra, at 213; cf. Continental Grain Co. v. Barge FBL-585, 364 U.S. 19 (1960)
(separate actions against barge and barge owner are one "civil action" for purpose
of transfer under 28 U.S.C. 1404 (a)). Moreover, in Mullane we held that
Fourteenth Amendment rights cannot depend on the classification of an action as
in rem or in personam, since that is
"a classification for which the standards are so elusive and confused generally
and which, being primarily for state courts to define, may and do vary from state
to state." 339 U.S., at 312 .
It is clear, therefore, that the law of state-court jurisdiction no longer stands
securely on the foundation established in Pennoyer. We think that the time is ripe
to consider whether the standard of fairness and substantial justice set forth in
International Shoe should be held to govern actions in rem as well as in
personam. [433 U.S. 186, 207]
III
The case for applying to jurisdiction in rem the same test of "fair play and
substantial justice" as governs assertions of jurisdiction in personam is simple and
straightforward. It is premised on recognition that "[t]he phrase, `judicial
jurisdiction over a thing,' is a customary elliptical way of referring to jurisdiction
over the interests of persons in a thing." Restatement (Second) of Conflict of
Laws 56, Introductory Note (1971) (hereafter Restatement). This recognition
leads to the conclusion that in order to justify an exercise of jurisdiction in rem,
the basis for jurisdiction must be sufficient to justify exercising "jurisdiction over
the interests of persons in a thing." The standard for determining whether an
exercise of jurisdiction over the interests of persons is consistent with the Due
Process Clause is the minimum-contacts standard elucidated in International
Shoe.
This argument, of course, does not ignore the fact that the presence of property in
a State may bear on the existence of jurisdiction by providing contacts among the
389
Lectures on the US Legal System
forum State, the defendant, and the litigation. For example, when claims to the
property itself are the source of the underlying controversy between the plaintiff
and the defendant, it would be unusual for the State where the property is located
not to have jurisdiction. In such cases, the defendant's claim to property [433 U.S.
186, 208] located in the State would normally indicate that he expected to
benefit from the State's protection of his interest. The State's strong interests in
assuring the marketability of property within its borders and in providing a
procedure for peaceful resolution of disputes about the possession of that
property would also support jurisdiction, as would the likelihood that important
records and witnesses will be found in the State. The presence of property may
also favor jurisdiction in cases, such as suits for injury suffered on the land of an
absentee owner, where the defendant's ownership of the property is conceded but
the cause of action is otherwise related to rights and duties growing out of that
ownership.
It appears, therefore, that jurisdiction over many types of actions which now are
or might be brought in rem would not be affected by a holding that any assertion
of state-court jurisdiction must satisfy the International Shoe standard. For the
type of quasi in rem action typified by Harris v. Balk and the present case,
however, accepting the proposed analysis would result in significant change.
These are cases where [433 U.S. 186, 209] the property which now serves as the
basis for state-court jurisdiction is completely unrelated to the plaintiff's cause of
action. Thus, although the presence of the defendant's property in a State might
suggest the existence of other ties among the defendant, the State, and the
litigation, the presence of the property alone would not support the State's
jurisdiction. If those other ties did not exist, cases over which the State is now
thought to have jurisdiction could not be brought in that forum.
Since acceptance of the International Shoe test would most affect this class of
cases, we examine the arguments against adopting that standard as they relate to
this category of litigation. Before doing so, however, we note that this type of
case also presents the clearest illustration of the argument in favor of assessing
assertions of jurisdiction by a single standard. For in cases such as Harris and this
one, the only role played by the property is to provide the basis for bringing the
defendant into court. Indeed, the express purpose of the Delaware sequestration
procedure is to compel the defendant to enter a personal appearance. In such
cases, if a direct assertion of personal jurisdiction over the defendant would
violate the Constitution, it would seem that an indirect assertion of that
jurisdiction should be equally impermissible. [433 U.S. 186, 210]
The primary rationale for treating the presence of property as a sufficient basis for
jurisdiction to adjudicate claims over which the State would not have jurisdiction
if International Shoe applied is that a wrongdoer
"should not be able to avoid payment of his obligations by the expedient of
removing his assets to a place where he is not subject to an in personam suit."
Restatement 66, Comment a.
390
Jurisdiction in rem
Accord, Developments 955. This justification, however, does not explain why
jurisdiction should be recognized without regard to whether the property is
present in the State because of an effort to avoid the owner's obligations. Nor
does it support jurisdiction to adjudicate the underlying claim. At most, it
suggests that a State in which property is located should have jurisdiction to
attach that property, by use of proper procedures, as security for a judgment being
sought in a forum where the litigation can be maintained consistently with
International Shoe. See, e. g., Von Mehren & Trautman 1178; Hazard 284-285;
Beale, supra, n. 18, at 123-124. Moreover, we know of nothing to justify the
assumption that a debtor can avoid paying his obligations by removing his
property to a State in which his creditor cannot obtain personal jurisdiction over
him. The Full Faith and Credit Clause, after all, makes the valid in personam
judgment of one State enforceable in all other States. [433 U.S. 186, 211]
It might also be suggested that allowing in rem jurisdiction avoids the uncertainty
inherent in the International Shoe standard and assures a plaintiff of a forum. See
Folk & Moyer, supra, n. 10, at 749, 767. We believe, however, that the fairness
standard of International Shoe can be easily applied in the vast majority of cases.
Moreover, when the existence of jurisdiction in a particular forum under
International Shoe is unclear, the cost of simplifying the litigation by avoiding the
jurisdictional question may be the sacrifice of "fair play and substantial justice."
That cost is too high.
We are left, then, to consider the significance of the long history of jurisdiction
based solely on the presence of property in a State. Although the theory that
territorial power is both essential to and sufficient for jurisdiction has been
undermined, we have never held that the presence of property in a State does not
automatically confer jurisdiction over the owner's interest in that property. This
history must be [433 U.S. 186, 212] considered as supporting the proposition
that jurisdiction based solely on the presence of property satisfies the demands of
due process, cf. Ownbey v. Morgan, 256 U.S. 94, 111 (1921), but it is not
decisive. "[T]raditional notions of fair play and substantial justice" can be as
readily offended by the perpetuation of ancient forms that are no longer justified
as by the adoption of new procedures that are inconsistent with the basic values
of our constitutional heritage. Cf. Sniadach v. Family Finance Corp., 395 U.S., at
340 ; Wolf v. Colorado, 338 U.S. 25, 27 (1949). The fiction that an assertion of
jurisdiction over property is anything but an assertion of jurisdiction over the
owner of the property supports an ancient form without substantial modern
justification. Its continued acceptance would serve only to allow state-court
jurisdiction that is fundamentally unfair to the defendant.
We therefore conclude that all assertions of state-court jurisdiction must be
evaluated according to the standards set forth in International Shoe and its
progeny. [433 U.S. 186, 213]
IV
The Delaware courts based their assertion of jurisdiction in this case solely on the
statutory presence of appellants' property in Delaware. Yet that property is not the
391
Lectures on the US Legal System
subject matter of this litigation, nor is the underlying cause of action related to the
property. Appellants' holdings in Greyhound do not, therefore, provide contacts
with Delaware sufficient to support the jurisdiction of that State's courts over
appellants. If it exists, that jurisdiction must have some other foundation.
Appellee Heitner did not allege and does not now claim that appellants have ever
set foot in Delaware. Nor does he identify any act related to his cause of action as
having taken place in Delaware. Nevertheless, he contends that appellants'
positions as directors and officers of a corporation chartered in Delaware provide
sufficient "contacts, ties, or relations," International Shoe Co. v. Washington, 326
U.S., at [433 U.S. 186, 214] 319, with that State to give its courts jurisdiction
over appellants in this stockholder's derivative action. This argument is based
primarily on what Heitner asserts to be the strong interest of Delaware in
supervising the management of a Delaware corporation. That interest is said to
derive from the role of Delaware law in establishing the corporation and defining
the obligations owed to it by its officers and directors. In order to protect this
interest, appellee concludes, Delaware's courts must have jurisdiction over
corporate fiduciaries such as appellants.
This argument is undercut by the failure of the Delaware Legislature to assert the
state interest appellee finds so compelling. Delaware law bases jurisdiction, not
on appellants' status as corporate fiduciaries, but rather on the presence of their
property in the State. Although the sequestration procedure used here may be
most frequently used in derivative suits against officers and directors, Hughes
Tool Co. v. Fawcett Publications, Inc., 290 A. 2d 693, 695 (Del. Ch. 1972), the
authorizing statute evinces no specific concern with such actions. Sequestration
can be used in any suit against a nonresident, see, e. g., U.S. Industries, Inc. v.
Gregg, 540 F.2d 142 (CA3 1976), cert. pending, No. 76-359 (breach of contract);
Hughes Tool Co. v. Fawcett Publications, Inc., supra (same), and reaches
corporate fiduciaries only if they happen to own interests in a Delaware
corporation, or other property in the State. But as Heitner's failure to secure
jurisdiction over seven of the defendants named in his complaint demonstrates,
there is no necessary relationship between holding a position as a corporate
fiduciary and owning stock or other interests in the corporation. If Delaware
perceived its interest in securing jurisdiction over corporate fiduciaries [433 U.S.
186, 215] to be as great as Heitner suggests, we would expect it to have enacted
a statute more clearly designed to protect that interest.
Moreover, even if Heitner's assessment of the importance of Delaware's interest is
accepted, his argument fails to demonstrate that Delaware is a fair forum for this
litigation. The interest appellee has identified may support the application of
Delaware law to resolve any controversy over appellants' actions in their
capacities as officers and directors. But we have rejected the argument that if a
State's law can properly be applied to a dispute, its courts necessarily have
jurisdiction over the parties to that dispute.
"[The State] does not acquire . . . jurisdiction by being the `center of gravity' of
the controversy, or the most convenient location for litigation. The issue is
392
Jurisdiction in rem
393
Lectures on the US Legal System
96
Capron v. Van Noorden, 6 US 126 (1804).
97
E.g. The Alien Tort Claims Act.
394
However, several courts have recently focused on what is called the
“Common Law of Foreign Relations” which has to apply in cases
where the relationships of the United States with other members of
the international community are involved; and must be treated
exclusively as an aspect of federal law98, because these rules cannot
be left to divergent state interpretations, and thus are federal “in
nature”.
98
Sabbatino, 1964, infra Lecture # 23.
395
Lectures on the US Legal System
I.
PROCEDURAL BACKGROUND AND SUMMARY OF RULING
This case results from the sudden attacks on the United States on September 11,
2001, resulting in the deaths of thousands of innocent civilians. Within a few
days, the President, with the approval of Congress (Pub. L. No. 107-40
(September 8, 2001)), commanded the Armed Forces of the United States to use
all necessary and appropriate force against the persons responsible for those
attacks, who soon came to be known as the “Al Qaeda terrorist network.” The
President dispatched American forces to Afghanistan, where that group was
believed to be functioning with the active support of the “Taliban” government
then in power in that country. In the course of combat operations, American
forces, as well as other nations allied with the United States, captured or secured
the surrender of thousands of persons. Beginning in early January 2002, the
Armed Forces transferred scores of these captives to the United States Naval
Base at Guantanamo Bay, Cuba (“Guantanamo”). Their confinement in
Guantanamo led to this action.
396
Subject matter jurisdiction
The relief that petitioners seek is a writ or order to show cause (1) directing the
respondents to “identify by full name and country of domicile and all other
identifying information in their possession each person held by them within three
days;” (2) directing respondents “to show the true cause(s) of the detention of
each person;” and (3) directing respondents to produce the detainees at a hearing
in this court. (Id. 8:14-23; 9:1-3)
On January 22, 2002, two days after the petition was filed, the Court presided
over a brief hearing at which it expressed strong doubts that it has jurisdiction to
entertain the petition. The Court ordered the parties to address that threshold
question in written briefs. They have done so and appeared at a second hearing
today.
Having reviewed and considered all the arguments and conducted additional
research on its own, the Court rules as follows:
1. Petitioners do not have standing to assert claims on behalf of the detainees.
2. Even if petitioners did have standing, this court lacks jurisdiction to entertain
those claims.
3. No federal court would have jurisdiction over petitioners’ claims, so there is no
basis to transfer this matter to another federal district court.
4. The petition must be dismissed.
397
Lectures on the US Legal System
II.
THE WRIT OF HABEAS CORPUS
Given the importance of the issues that petitioners proclaim are at stake in
this case, a decidedly abbreviated description of the writ of habeas corpus is
appropriate.
“The writ of habeas corpus, providing a means by which the legal authority under
which a person is detained can be challenged, is of immemorial antiquity . . . The
precise origin of the writ . . . is not certain, but as early as 1220 A.D. the words
“habeas corpora” are to be found in an order directing an English sheriff to
produce parties to a trespass action before the Court of Common pleas. . . . Today
it is regarded as “perhaps the most important writ known to the constitutional law
of England . . . .”
Its significance in the United States has been no less great. Article I,9 of the
Constitution gives assurance that the privilege of the writ of habeas corpus shall
not be suspended, unless when in cases of rebellion or invasion the public safety
may require it, and its use by the federal courts was authorized [as long ago as in]
. . . the Judiciary Act of 1789.” (WRIGHT, MILLER AND COOPER, FEDERAL
PRACTICE AND PROCEDURE: JURISDICTION 2D § 4261 and n.3 (citations
omitted).
The statutory authorization for a federal judge to issue a writ of habeas corpus
currently is set forth in 28 U.S.C. § 2241, et. seq. In essence, when a judge issues
such a writ, the authorities responsible for the petitioner’s custody are required to
demonstrate that he is being detained lawfully. As Mr. Justice Black put it, the
“grand purpose” of the writ of habeas corpus is “the protection of individuals
against erosion of their right to be free from wrongful restraints upon their
liberty.” Jones v. Cunningham, 371 U.S. 236, 243, 83 S.Ct. 373, 377 (1963).
398
Subject matter jurisdiction
III.
PETITIONERS DO NOT HAVE STANDING
Respondents argue that petitioners lack standing to assert claims on behalf of the
detainees. Whether a plaintiff (or, in the case of a habeas proceeding, a petitioner)
has standing “is the threshold question in every federal case, determining the
power of the court to entertain the suit . . . . The Art. III judicial power exists only
to redress or otherwise to protect against injury to the complaining party, even
though the court’s judgment may benefit others collaterally. . . .” Warth v. Seldin,
422 U.S. 490, 498-499, 95 S. Ct. 2197, 2205 (1975).
28 U.S.C. § 2242 provides that “[a]pplication for a writ of habeas corpus shall be
in writing signed and verified by the person for whose relief it is intended or by
someone acting in his behalf.” (Emphasis added). Courts use the term “next
friend” to describe the person who acts on behalf of another person (the “real
party in interest”) for whom the relief is sought. The “next friend” has the burden
“clearly to establish the propriety of his status and thereby justify the jurisdiction
of the court.” Whitmore v. Arkansas, 495 U.S. 149, 110 S. Ct. 1717, 1727 (1990).
In seeking dismissal of this petition on the basis that petitioners lack “next friend”
standing, respondents rely primarily on Whitmore v. Arkansas, supra. In
Whitmore, the named petitioner was a death row inmate. He sought to intervene
in an Arkansas state court criminal proceeding in order to prosecute an appeal on
behalf of one Simmons, who had been convicted of multiple murders and had
waived his right to direct appeal. Whitmore tried to get permission to appeal on
behalf of Simmons on the basis that the heinous facts in Simmons’s cases would
become included in a database that Arkansas uses for purposes of comparative
reviews of capital sentences. Whitmore contended that inclusion of the
information about Simmons would make him - - Whitmore - - appear less
deserving of execution. Whitmore also purported to proceed as “next friend” of
Simmons, hoping to overturn the latter’s death sentence on appeal. Although
Whitmore was not seeking a writ of habeas corpus on behalf of Simmons, the
Supreme Court analogized his effort to that of a “next friend” in a habeas case,
and defined the prerequisites for “next friend” standing.
399
Lectures on the US Legal System
Whitmore and the other cases on which respondents rely are all factually
distinguishable because the real party in interest clearly did have access to the
court, could have filed a petition in his own behalf and chose not to do so. Thus,
in Brewer v. Lewis, 989 F.2d 1021 (9 th Cir. 1993), the person denied standing to
seek a writ of habeas corpus was a condemned prisoner’s mother. Her son had
explicitly sought to abandon all further judicial proceedings, and the mother was
unable to establish that he was incompetent. Id. at 1025-1026. Similarly, in
Massie a death row inmate filed a federal habeas corpus petition but then moved
to dismiss it. A journalist who had dealt with the inmate for fifteen years
thereupon filed a “next friend” petition on behalf of the inmate. Like the mother
in Brewer and the “next friend” in Whitmore, the journalist failed to present
“meaningful evidence” of the inmate’s alleged incompetency to dismiss his own
habeas corpus petition. Moreover, at oral argument before the Ninth Circuit, the
inmate explicitly opposed the journalist’s petition. Id. at 1195. Not surprisingly,
the Court found that the journalist lacked standing. Id. at 1199.
400
Subject matter jurisdiction
the detainees were given the opportunity to write to friends or relatives (Pet.
Mem. p.10); others state that some detainees had already been in contact with
diplomats from their home countries (Pet. Mem. pp.16:20- 21); yet other articles
state that a team from the International Red Cross met with the detainees (Pet.
Mem. p.15). In their brief filed a week after respondents’ brief, petitioners did not
explain these inconsistencies, much less provide a basis for the court to disregard
them. Moreover, the Court has been informed that on February 19, 2002, the
parents of three specified Guantanamo detainees did file suit on behalf of their
respective sons. Shafiq Rasul, et al. v. Bush, No. 02-CV 00299 (D., D.C.) See,
“Suit Says U.S. Violates Prisoners Rights in Cuba,” Wall Street Journal, February
20, 2002, at A10. Respondents are correct that as to the first prong of the
Whitmore-Massie test, the immediate question before this court is the adequacy
of the allegations in the petition concerning lack of access to court. They are also
correct that the allegations fail to satisfy that prong. But in court today, counsel
for respondents displayed commendable candor in acknowledging that from a
practical point of view the detainees cannot be said to have unimpeded or free
access to court. Despite the recent filing of a second lawsuit, it would be naive for
this court to find that they do enjoy such access. Thus, although it makes no
actual finding on the issue, the court will proceed to analyze the second prong
under the supposition that the detainees lack access to court.
The second prong of the Whitmore-Massie “next friend” test requires the
petitioners to demonstrate that they have a “significant relationship” with the
detainees. Respondents argue that petitioners cannot demonstrate that they are
dedicated to the best interests of the Guantanamo detainees because they have not
demonstrated such a relationship. On the question of what constitutes a
significant relationship, respondents cite Davis v. Austin, 492 F. Supp. 273 (N.D.
Ga. 1980), in which a distant relative and a minister were not permitted to
proceed on behalf of a death row inmate. But in Davis the real party in interest
explicitly made a competent decision to forego further proceedings. It was
because the “next friends” were proceeding contrary to the inmate’s wishes that
the court found they lacked standing - - not because their ties were too remote. Id.
at 275-276. Respondents also cite Lenhard v. Wolff, 443 U.S. 1306, 100 S. Ct. 3
(1979), in arguing that petitioners fail to demonstrate a significant relationship
with the detainees. In Lenhard, then-Justice Rehnquist granted a stay of a
prisoner’s execution on an application filed by two deputy public defenders who
had been appointed by the trial court. In dicta, Justice Rehnquist noted that
“however worthy and high minded the motives of ‘next friends’ may be, they
inevitably run the risk of making the actual defendant a pawn to be manipulated
on a chessboard larger than his own case.” Id. at 1312. However, in Lenhard, the
lawyers’ right to petition on behalf of the inmate was not in question. Indeed,
Justice Rehnquist lauded them for their “commendable fidelity to their
assignment . . . .” Id. at 1308. Moreover, he stated, [I]t strikes me that from a
purely technical standpoint a public defender may appear as “next friend” with as
401
Lectures on the US Legal System
much justification as the mother of [the real party in interest] . . . . Id. at 1310.
Although Davis and Lenhard are weak authority for respondents, Whitmore,
supra, does buttress their contention that petitioners lack standing, particularly
this language:
“[L]imitations on the “next friend” doctrine are driven by the recognition that it
was not intended that the writ of habeas corpus should be availed of, as a matter
of course, by intruders or uninvited meddlers, styling themselves next friends . . .
. Indeed, if there were no restriction on “next friend” standing in federal courts,
the litigant asserting only a generalized interest in constitutional governance
could circumvent the jurisdictional limits of Art. III simply by assuming the
mantle of “next friend.” Whitmore, 495 U.S. at 163.
The court recognizes that the named petitioners have filed this petition because
they perceive there are rights that need to be vindicated. But that consideration,
standing alone, does not necessarily make them “uninvited meddlers” within the
meaning of Whitmore.5 See Warren v. Cardwell, 621 F.2d 319, 321 n.1 (9 th Cir.
1980) (California lawyer who filed a petition in his own name on behalf of an
Arizona inmate not accessible because of a prison lockdown “was not an
uninvited meddler”). There is a difference between being “uninvited because you
are meant to be excluded” and being “uninvited but welcome.” The next
friend/would-be petitioners in the cases upon which respondents rely fall into the
former category, because their efforts were at odds with the desires of the real
parties on whose behalf they were attempting to proceed. That is not the case
here, because there is no evidence that the Guantanamo detainees affirmatively
object to the petitioners’ efforts, and common sense suggests that they would not.
But neither is there evidence that they are welcome, so petitioners cannot
demonstrate that they fall into the latter category.
More than four weeks have elapsed since petitioners filed the original petition. In
that period, petitioners’ counsel has filed a brief on jurisdiction, an amended
petition and numerous other memoranda and declarations on other issues. During
that same period, the names of at least some of the detainees have been published
by the national press and, as indicated above, parents of three specified detainees
have filed suit. Yet there is nothing in the record even suggesting that any of the
Guantanamo detainees supports this petition. Not one friend, relative, diplomatic
or religious representative, fellow countryman or anyone with a direct tie to a
particular detainee has authorized this petition. Common sense suggests that
something is seriously awry in petitioners’ claims to be the appropriate
representatives of the detainees. This conclusion is reinforced by yet another
telling factor: nowhere have petitioners alleged, much less filed a declaration, that
they attempted to communicate with the detainees and were prevented from
doing so. Although petitioners may regard such efforts as futile and thus
unnecessary, to bolster their claimed standing as “next friends” it would have
been helpful if they had tried anyway.
402
Subject matter jurisdiction
To summarize, the court finds that the cases on which respondents rely to
establish that petitioners lack a sufficient relationship with the detainees or that
petitioners can be dismissed as “uninvited meddlers” are all factually
distinguishable. Yet these cases state the governing legal principles of standing,
and this district court is required to apply them. Petitioners may not be “uninvited
meddlers” in the same sense as the petitioners in those cases, but they do lack a
“significant relationship” with the detainees - - indeed, any relationship. To
permit petitioners to seek a writ of habeas corpus on a record devoid of any
evidence that they have sought authorization to do so, much less obtained implied
authority to do so, would violate the second prong of the Whitmore-Massie test.
IV.
THIS COURT LACKS JURISDICTION TO ISSUE THE WRIT
BECAUSE NO CUSTODIAN IS WITHIN THE TERRITORIAL
JURISDICTION OF THE COURT.
Respondents argue that even if petitioners have standing this court lacks
jurisdiction to entertain this petition because no custodian responsible for the
custody of the detainees is present in the territorial jurisdiction of this district.
Respondents are correct.
The federal statute governing habeas petitions provides that “writs of habeas
corpus may be granted by the Supreme Court, any justice thereof, the district
courts and any circuit judge within their respective jurisdictions.” 28 U.S.C. §
2241(a) (emphasis added). As the Supreme Court has explained, “the phrase
‘within their respective jurisdictions’ acts as an obvious limitation upon the
action of individual judges” because it reflects the conclusion of Congress that it
would be “inconvenient, potentially embarrassing, certainly expensive and on the
whole quite unnecessary to provide every judge anywhere with the authority to
issue the Great Writ on behalf of applicants far distantly removed from the courts
whereon they sat.” Carbo v. United States, 364 U.S. 611, 617, 81 S. Ct. 338, 342
(1961). In Schlanger v. Seamans, 401 U.S. 487, 91 S. Ct. 995 (1971), the
Supreme Court held that the Arizona District Court lacked jurisdiction over a
habeas petition because the only custodian of the petitioner was outside that
403
Lectures on the US Legal System
district. Id. at 490-91. It stated, “the District Court in Arizona has no custodian
within its reach against whom its writ can run. . . . [T]he absence of [petitioner’s]
custodian is fatal to the jurisdiction of the Arizona District Court.” Id. at 491. The
Ninth Circuit has applied this rule several times, and the rule is so well-settled
that it is unnecessary to cite these cases. Moreover, the Ninth Circuit has
expressly held that 28 U.S.C. § 1391(e), which provides for nationwide service of
process on officers of the United States, does not extend habeas corpus
jurisdiction to persons outside the territorial limits of the district court. Dunne v.
Henman, 875 F. 2d 244, 248 (9 th Cir. 1989); accord, Schlanger, 401 U.S. at 490
n.4.
It is clear, then, that because there is no showing or allegation that any named
respondent is within the territorial jurisdiction of the Central District of
California, this court lacks jurisdiction to issue the writ requested by petitioners.
It is also true, however, that in cases where the petitioner’s direct custodian is
outside the territorial jurisdiction of the court where the petition is filed,
jurisdiction does lie in a district court where anyone in the “chain of command”
with control over the petitioner is present. Ex Parte Hayes, 414 U.S. 1327, 1328,
94 S. Ct. 23, 24 (1973); cf. Kinnell v. Warner, 356 F. Supp. 779, 782 (D. Hawaii
1973) (“Anyone in the ‘chain of command’ with control over petitioner’s
whereabouts is that petitioner’s proper custodian for habeas purposes.”). Here,
petitioners have named as respondents several individuals who are custodians of
the detainees, either because they are directly responsible for their detention or
are within the “chain of command” of those directly responsible. At least some of
those respondents are present within the territorial jurisdiction of the District
Court for the District of Columbia. If the federal court in that district can exercise
jurisdiction over this petition, federal law, at least in this circuit, mandates not
dismissal, but transfer to that court.
Whenever a civil action is filed in a court . . . and that court finds that there is a
want of jurisdiction, the court shall, if it is in the interest of justice, transfer such
action . . . to any other such court in which the action or appeal could have been
brought at the time it was filed or noticed . . . . 28 U.S.C. § 1631. In Miller v.
Hambrick, 905 F. 2d 259 (9 th Cir. 1990), the Court of Appeals stated, normally,
transfer will be in the interest of justice because normally dismissal of an action
that could be brought elsewhere is “time-consuming and justice
defeating.”...[This approach] was adapted to habeas corpus in applying 28 U.S.C.
§ 2241(d), the provision to habeas corpus in a State which contains two or more
judicial districts...Now under 28 U.S.C.§ 1631 the same approach can be taken
generally in habeas corpus proceedings... Id. at 262 (citations omitted). In Cruz-
Aguilera v. INS, 245 F.3d 1070, 1073-74 (9 th Cir. 2001), the Court of Appeals
cited the above language from Miller and added that “[b]ecause the statute’s
language is mandatory, federal courts should consider transfer without motion by
the parties.”
Transfer to the United States District Court for the District of Columbia is
404
Subject matter jurisdiction
appropriate if three conditions are met: (1) the transferring court lacks
jurisdiction; (2) the transferee court could have exercised jurisdiction at the time
the action was filed; and (3) the transfer is in the interest of justice. Id. As to
condition (1), this Court has already found that it lacks jurisdiction. As to
condition (3), a court is required to construe a habeas petition in the light most
favorable to the petitioners. That requires this court to assume, without actually
finding, that the allegations in this petition that the detainees’ rights have been
violated are true. Construing the petition that way, transfer would be in the
interests of justice, for it would avoid a “‘time-consuming’” and “‘justice-
defeating’” dismissal. Miller, 905 F.2d at 262 (quoting Goldlawr, Inc. v. Heiman,
369 U.S. 463, 467, 82 S. Ct. 913 (1962)). What remains for determination,
therefore, is whether even though respondents are within the jurisdiction of
another court - - the District of Columbia - - that court (or any federal court) has
the authority to exercise jurisdiction over the parties and claims asserted in this
petition. It is to that question that the Court will now turn.
V.
NO DISTRICT COURT HAS JURISDICTION OVER THIS PETITION
As this Court suggested in its previous order, the key case is Johnson v.
Eisentrager, 339 U.S. 763, 70 S. Ct. 936 (1950). Because the Supreme Court’s
holding in Johnson is controlling here, the decision warrants careful review.
405
Lectures on the US Legal System
Appeals, the Supreme Court in Johnson upheld the district court’s dismissal of
the petition on the ground that petitioners had no basis for invoking federal
judicial power in any district. Id. at 790-91. In reaching that conclusion, the
Supreme Court stated the following:
• “We are cited to no instance where a court, in this or any other country where
the writ is known, has issued it on behalf of an alien enemy who, at no relevant
time and in no stage of his captivity, has been within its territorial jurisdiction.
Nothing in the text of the Constitution extends such a right, nor does anything in
our statutes.” Id. at 767.
Although there has been no decision since Johnson that involves facts
comparable to those in this case, other courts have either followed Johnson or
acknowledged its precedential authority. See, e.g., Zadvydas v. Davis, 533 U.S.
678, 121 S. Ct. 2491, 2500 (2001) (“It is well established that certain
constitutional protections available to persons inside the United States are
unavailable to aliens outside of our geographic borders. See, United States v.
Verdugo-Urquidez, 494 U.S. 259, 269, 273-275, 110 S. Ct 1056 (1990) (Fifth
Amendment’s protections do not extend to aliens outside the territorial
boundaries); Johnson v. Eisentrager, 339 U.S. 763, 784 (same).”) In Verdugo-
Urquidez, supra, the Supreme Court also cited Johnson (494 U.S. at 273) and
added, “If there are to be restrictions on searches and seizures of aliens outside of
the United States which occur incident to . . . American action [abroad], they
must be imposed by the political branches through diplomatic understanding,
treaty or legislation.” Verdugo-Urquidez, supra, 494 U.S. at 275.
406
Subject matter jurisdiction
In all key respects, the Guantanamo detainees are like the petitioners in Johnson:
They are aliens; they were enemy combatants; they were captured in combat;
they were abroad when captured; they are abroad now; since their
capture, they have been under the control of only the military; they have not
stepped foot on American soil; and there are no legal or judicial precedents
entitling them to pursue a writ of habeas corpus in an American civilian court.
Moreover, there are sound practical reasons, such as legitimate security concerns,
that make it unwise for this or any court to take the unprecedented step of
conferring such a right on these detainees. Petitioners nevertheless argue that
Johnson “is both factually and legally inapposite for numerous reasons.”
Petitioners’ first supposed distinction is that in Johnson the petitioners already
had been given access to American courts. Not so; the tribunal in Johnson was a
Military Commission functioning in China; the petitioners there, as here, were
seeking to get into a federal court. Next, petitioners argue that there are issues of
fact that underlie jurisdiction which must be resolved before dismissal.
Petitioners do not state what those supposed issues are and in any event the
question before this court is a purely legal one, as in Johnson. Finally, as
petitioners put it, “[m]ost importantly the detainees are ‘present’ in the United
States of America, because Guantanamo Naval Base is, as a matter of both fact
and law, the United States of America.” (Response, p.15). Petitioners’ last
argument requires the Court to assess the legal and juridical status of the
Guantanamo Bay Naval Base.
B. Detainees were seized and at all times have been held outside the
sovereign territory of the United States.
407
Lectures on the US Legal System
United States shall lease Guantanamo Bay from the Republic of Cuba for use as a
coaling or naval station. Lease Agreement, art. I. Article III of the 1934 Treaty
provides that the 1903 lease shall “continue in effect” until the parties agree to
modify or abrogate it.
As to the legal status of Guantanamo Bay so long as it is leased to the U.S., the
1903 agreement states: “ While on the one hand the United States recognizes the
continuance of the ultimate sovereignty of the Republic of Cuba over the above
described areas of land and water, on the other hand the Republic of Cuba
consents that during the period of occupation by the United States of said areas
under the terms of this agreement the United States shall exercise complete
jurisdiction and control over and within said areas”. Lease Agreement, art. III. It
is telling that in their brief petitioners do not even mention the first clause of the
1903 agreement, which provides that Cuba explicitly retained sovereignty. The
omission suggests that they realize that sovereignty is the dispositive issue.
Relying instead only on the second clause, petitioners argue that because the
Lease Agreement provides that Guantanamo Bay is under the “complete
jurisdiction and control” of the United States, the detainees effectively are being
held within United States territory and thus are entitled to the writ of habeas
corpus. One need only read the lease to realize that petitioners’ argument that
“jurisdiction and control” is equivalent to “sovereignty” is wrong. The agreement
explicitly distinguishes between the two in providing that Cuba retains
“sovereignty” whereas “jurisdiction and control” are exercised by the United
States. Cuba and the United States defined the legal status of Guantanamo Bay,
and this court has no basis, much less authority, to ignore their determination.
Vermilya-Brown Co. v. Connell, 335 U.S. 377, 380, 69 S.Ct. 140 (1948). (“[T]he
determination of sovereignty over an area is for the legislative and executive
departments.”). In addition to the express terms of the Lease Agreement, the only
federal courts that have addressed the issue have held that Guantanamo Bay is not
within the sovereign territory of the United States and is not the functional
equivalent of United States sovereign territory. In Cuban American Bar Assoc. v.
Christopher, 43 F. 3d 1412, 1425 (11 th Cir. 1995), cert. denied, 515 U.S. 1142,
115 S. Ct. 2578 and 516 U.S. 913, 116 S. Ct. 299 (1995), the Eleventh Circuit
had to determine whether Cuban and Haitian migrants temporarily detained at the
Guantanamo Bay Naval Base could assert rights under various United States
statutes and the United States Constitution. Cuban American Bar Assoc., 43 F. 3d
at 1421. Citing the language of the Lease Agreement quoted above, the Court of
Appeals stated “the district court erred in concluding that Guantanamo Bay was a
‘United States territory.’ We disagree that control and jurisdiction is equivalent to
sovereignty.” Id. at 1425. The Court of Appeals then went on to reject the
argument that United States military bases which are leased abroad and remain
under the sovereignty of foreign nations are “‘functionally equivalent’ to being . .
. within the United States.” Id. See also Bird v. United States, 923 F. Supp. 338,
342-43 (D. Conn. 1996) (holding that sovereignty over Guantanamo Bay rested
with Cuba and therefore plaintiff’s tort claim was barred under the “foreign
408
Subject matter jurisdiction
country” exception of the Federal Tort Claims Act). The court finds the analyses
and conclusions of these courts persuasive. For the foregoing reasons, the court
finds that sovereignty over Guantanamo Bay remains with Cuba. The court
therefore holds that petitioners’ claim that the Guantanamo detainees are entitled
to a writ of habeas corpus is foreclosed by the Supreme Court’s holding in
Johnson.
VI.
CONCLUSION
The Court understands that many concerned citizens, here and abroad, believe
this case presents the question of whether the Guantanamo detainees have any
rights at all that the United States is bound, or willing, to recognize. That question
is not before this Court and nothing in this ruling suggests that the captives are
entitled to no legal protection whatsoever. For this Court is not holding that these
prisoners have no right which the military authorities are bound to respect. The
United States, by the [1949] Geneva Convention . . . concluded an agreement
upon the treatment to be accorded captives. These prisoners claim to be and are
entitled to its protection. It is, however, the obvious scheme of the Agreement
that responsibility for observance and enforcement of these rights is upon
political and military authorities. Rights of alien enemies are vindicated under it
only through protests and intervention of protecting powers as the rights of our
citizens against foreign governments are vindicated only by Presidential
intervention.
Johnson, 339 U.S. at 789.
For the foregoing reasons, the Verified Petition For Writ of Habeas Corpus
and the Verified First Amended Petition are both DISMISSED with prejudice.
IT IS SO ORDERED.
409
Lectures on the US Legal System
As we saw, there can be more than one forum having jurisdiction to rule a
case. Consequently, the plaintiff might be forum shopping, i.e. looking for
the forum that suits him the best, regarding to geographical convenience,
advantages of procedural or substantive law, and so on. However, what
does constitute a strategic advantage for the plaintiff does constitute also a
substantive disadvantage for the defender. That’s why Scottish courts
developed in the 19th century the doctrine of forum non conveniens. In
1947, the US Supreme Court took it over in its leading case Gulf Oil
Corp. v. Gilbert99, setting out that a court may resist imposition upon its
jurisdiction even when jurisdiction is authorized by the letter of a general
venue statute. As outlined by the Court, statutes “are drawn with a
necessary generality and usually give a plaintiff a choice of courts, so that
he may be quite sure of some place in which to pursue his remedy. But the
open door may admit those who seek not simply justice but perhaps
justice blended with some harassment. A plaintiff sometimes is under
temptation to resort to a strategy of forcing the trial at a most inconvenient
place for an adversary”. There is no catalogue of circumstances that will
justify or require either grant or denial of remedy. It is left upon the Court
to decide if the forum is convenient or not. However, the principle is to
not disturb the plaintiff’s choice of forum. The following considerations
(called the Gilbert factors) can be taken into account: the access of
sources of proof, the attending of witnesses, the cost of obtaining the
attendance of witnesses, the enforceability of the judgment and the costs
and the justification of a jury, as jury should only deal with litigation in
relation with its community - and here we see once again the principle of
self-government and the importance of the local community-. Since then,
however, the Supreme Court has limited the application of the doctrine to
situation where the alternative forum is not in the United States100.
99
(330 US 501).
100
See e.g. the Bhopal Case: US District Court SDNY (634 F.Supp.842 (1986),
US Court of Appeals, 2nd Circuit (809 F.2d. 195, cert.denied 484 US 871
(1987); Background facts: http://www.bhopal.net/fullreport.html.
410
Where the parties’ choices of fora are both in the United States, the
Federal Transfer Statute provides the proper remedy. One year after the
Gulf Oil ruling, Congress adopted a revision of the Judicial Code, known
as Title 28, US Code. Section 1404(a) of this Act provides, with respect to
the Federal district courts:
On the contrary to the forum non conveniens doctrine, the statute remedy
is not a dismissal but the transfer to the convenient court.
In regard to international cases, the leading case for the forum non
conveniens doctrine is Piper Aircraft Co v. Reyno101. The suit, based on
the fatal crash of a small Piper airplane in Scotland, pitted in the United
States the representative of the estates of several Scottish passengers
against the American manufacturer of the plane (Piper) and the one of the
propeller (Hartzell). Both defendants moved to dismiss the action on the
ground of forum non conveniens, contending that a Scottish forum would
be much more convenient. Plaintiff opposed the dismissal, arguing that it
would result in her claims being tried under Scot law, which was much
less favorable to her. The Supreme Court decided that the change of
applicable law has no substantial weight in the forum non conveniens
inquiry.
Current case law does not allow affirming certainty when an American
court considers that a foreign tribunal is more convenient. In Base Metal
Trading the district court accorded that the foreign court is more
convenient rejecting the argument that the Russian judicial system is
corrupt102, whereas in HSBC USA Inc. v. Prosegur Paraguay S.A. the
Southern District of New York refused to dismiss for forum non
conveniens because it found Paraguay was not an “adecuate alternative
forum” because of a corrupted judicial system103.
101
454 US 235 (1981).
102
Base Metal Trading SA v. Russian Aluminum, 253 F. Supp.2d 681 (SDNY
2003).
103
No 3 Civ 3336 (LAP) (SDNY Sept 30, 2004).
411
Lectures on the US Legal System
412
Forum non conveniens
413
Lectures on the US Legal System
applied and that it required the case to be left to Virginia courts. 1 It therefore
dismissed.
The Circuit Court of Appeals disagreed as to the applicability of New York law,
took a restrictive view of the application of the entire doctrine in federal courts
and, one judge dissenting, reversed. 2 The case is here on certiorari. 328 U.S. 830
, 66 S.Ct. 1123
[330 U.S. 501, 504] I.
It is conceded that the venue statutes of the United States permitted the plaintiff
to commence his action in the Southern District of New York and empower that
court to entertain it. 3 But that does not settle the question whether it must do so.
Indeed the doctrine of forum non conveniens can never apply if there is absence
of jurisdiction or mistake of venue.
This Court, in one form of words or another, has repeatedly recognized the
existence of the power to decline jurisdiction in exceptional circumstances. As
formulated by Mr. Justice Brandeis the rule is: 'Obviously, the proposition that a
court having jurisdiction must exercise it, is not universally true; else the
admiralty court could never decline jurisdiction on the ground that the litigation is
between foreigners. Nor is it true of courts administering other systems of our
law. Courts of equity and of law also occasionally decline, in the interest of
justice, to exercise jurisdiction, where the suit is between aliens or nonresidents,
or where for kindred reasons the litigation can more appropriately be conducted
in a foreign tribunal.' Canada Malting Co., Ltd., v. Paterson Steamships, Ltd., 285
U.S. 413 422, 423, 52 S.Ct. 413, 415.
We later expressly said that a state court 'may in appropriate cases apply the
doctrine of forum non conveniens.' Broderick v. Rosner, 294 U.S. 629, 643 , 55
S.Ct. 589, 592, 79 l.Ed. 1100, 100 A.L.R. 1133; Williams v. State of North
Carolina, 317 U.S. 287 , 294, n. 5, 63 S.Ct. 207, 143 A.L.R. 1273. Even where
federal rights binding on state courts under the Constitution are sought to be
adjudged, this Court has sustained state courts in a refusal to entertain a litigation
between a nonresident and a foreign corporation or between two foreign
corporations. Douglas v. New York, N.H. & H.R. Co., 279 U.S. 377 , 49 S.Ct.
355; Anglo- American Provision Co. v. [330 U.S. 501, 505] Davis Provision Co.
No. 1, 191 U.S. 373 , 24 S.Ct. 92. It has held the use of an inappropriate forum in
one case an unconstitutional burden on interstate commerce. Davis v. Farmers'
Co-operative Equity Co., 262 U.S. 312 , 43 S.Ct. 556. On substantially forum non
conveniens grounds we have required federal courts to relinquish decision of
cases within their jurisdiction where the court would have to participate in the
administrative policy of a state. Railroad Commission of Texas v. Rowan &
Nichols Oil Co., 311 U.S. 570 , 61 S.Ct. 343; Burford v. Sun Oil Co., 319 U.S.
315 , 63 S.Ct. 1098; but cf. Meredith v. Winter Haven, 320 U.S. 228 , 64 S.Ct. 7.
And most recently we decided Williams v. Green Bay & Western R. Co., 326
U.S. 549 , 66 S.Ct. 284, in which the Court, without questioning the validity of
the doctrine held it had been applied in that case without justification. 4
414
Forum non conveniens
It is true that in cases under the Federal Employers' Liability Act, 45 U.S.C.A. 51
et seq., we have held that plaintiff's choice of a forum cannot be defeated on the
basis of forum non conveniens. But this was because the special venue act under
which those cases are brought was believed to require it. Baltimore & Ohio R.
Co. v. Kepner, 314 U.S. 44 , 62 S.Ct. 6, 136 A.L.R. 1222; Miles v. Illinois
Central R. Co., 315 U.S. 698 , 62 S.Ct. 827, 146 A.L.R. 1104. Those decisions do
not purport to modify the doctrine as to other cases governed by the general
venue statutes. [330 U.S. 501, 506] But the court below says that 'The Kepner
case ... warned against refusal of jurisdiction in a particular case controlled by
congressional act; here the only difference is that congressional act, plus judicial
interpretation (under the Neirbo case), spells out the result.' 153 F.2d at page 885.
The Federal Employers' Liability Act, however, which controlled decision in the
Kepner case, specifically provides where venue may be had in any suit on a cause
of action arising under that statute. What the court below refers to as
'congressional act, plus judicial interpretation,' is the general statute of venue in
diversity suits, plus our decision that it gives the defendant 'a personal privilege
respecting the venue, or place of suit, which he may assert, or may waive, at his
election,' Neirbo Co. v. Bethlehem Shipbuilding Corp., Ltd., 308 U.S. 165, 168 ,
60 S.Ct. 153, 154, 128 A.L.R. 1437. The Federal Employers' Liability Act, as
interpreted by Kepner, increases the number of places where the defendant may
be sued and makes him accept the plaintiff's choice. The Neirbo case is only a
declaration that if the defendant, by filing consent to be sued, waives its privilege
to be sued at its place of residence, it may be sued in the federal courts at the
place where it has consented to be sued. But the general venue statute plus the
Neirbo interpretation do not add up to a declaration that the court must respect the
choice of the plaintiff, no matter what the type of suit or issues involved. The two
taken together mean only that the defendant may consent to be sued, and it is
proper for the federal court to take jurisdiction, not that the plaintiff's choice
cannot be questioned. The defendant's consent to be sued extends only to give the
court jurisdiction of the person; it assumes that the court, having the parties
before it, will apply all the applicable law, including, in those cases where it is
appropriate, its discretionary judgment as to whether the suit should be
entertained. In all cases in which the doctrine of forum non conveniens comes
into [330 U.S. 501, 507] play, it presupposes at least two forums in which the
defendant is amenable to process; the doctrine furnishes criteria for choice
between them.
II.
The principle of forum non conveniens is simply that a court may resist
imposition upon its jurisdiction even when jurisdiction is authorized by the letter
of a general venue statute. These statutes are drawn with a necessary generality
and usually give a plaintiff a choice of courts, so that he may be quite sure of
some place in which to pursue his remedy. But the open door may admit those
who seek not simply justice but perhaps justice blended with some harassment. A
plaintiff sometimes is under temptation to resort to a strategy of f rcing the trial at
415
Lectures on the US Legal System
416
Forum non conveniens
not be profitable, therefore, to pursue inquiry as to the source from which our rule
must flow.
III.
Turning to the question whether this is one of those rather rare cases where the
doctrine should be applied, we look first to the interests of the litigants.
The plaintiff himself is not a resident of New York, nor did any event connected
with the case take place there, nor does any witness with the possible exception
of experts live there. No one connected with that side of the case save counsel for
the plaintiff resides there, and he has candidly told us that he was retained by
insurance companies interested presumably because of subrogation. His affidavits
and argument are devoted to controvering claims as to defendant's inconvenience
rather than to showing that the present forum serves any convenience [330 U.S.
501, 510] of his own, with one exception. The only justification for trial in New
York advanced here is one rejected by the district court and is set forth in the
brief as follows: 'This Court can readily realize that an action of this type,
involving as it does a claim for damages in an amount close to $ 400,000, is one
which may stagger the imagination of a local jury which is surely unaccustomed
to dealing with amounts of such a nature. Furthermore, removed from Lynchburg,
the respondent will have an opportunity to try this case free from local influences
and preconceived notions which make it difficult to procure a jury which has no
previous knowledge of any of the facts herein.'
This unproven premise that jurors of New York live on terms of intimacy with
$400,000 transactions is not an assumption we easily make. Nor can we assume
that a jury from Lynchburg and vicinity would be 'staggered' by contemplating
the value of a warehouse building that stood in their region, or of merchandise
and fixtures such as were used there, nor are they likely to be staggered by the
value of chattels which the people of that neighborhood put in storage. It is a
strange argument on behalf of a Virginia plaintiff that the community which gave
him patronage to make his business valuable is not capable of furnishing jurors
who know the value of the goods they store, the building they are stored in, or the
business their patronage creates. And there is no specification of any local
influence, other than accurate knowledge of local conditiions, that would make a
fair trial improbable. The net of this is that we cannot say the District Court was
bound to entertain a provincial fear of the provincialism of a Virginia jury. That
leaves the Virginia plaintiff without even a suggested reason for transporting this
suit to New York. [330 U.S. 501, 511] Defendant points out that not only the
plaintiff, but every person who participated in the acts charged to be negligent,
resides in or near Lynchburg. It also claims a need to interplead an alleged
independent contractor which made the delivery of the gasoline and which is a
Virginia corporation domiciled in Lynchburg, that it cannot interplead in New
York. There also are approximately 350 persons residing in and around
Lynchburg who stored with plaintiff the goods for the damage to which he seeks
to recover. The extent to which they have left the community since the fire and
the number of them who will actually be needed is in dispute. The complaint
417
Lectures on the US Legal System
No. 80-848.
Argued October 14, 1981
Decided December 8, 1981
Respondent, as representative of the estates of several citizens and residents of
Scotland who were killed in an airplane crash in Scotland during a charter flight,
instituted wrongful-death litigation in a California state court against petitioners,
which are the company that manufactured the plane in Pennsylvania and the
company that manufactured the plane's propellers in Ohio. At the time of the
crash the plane was registered in Great Britain and was owned and operated by
companies organized in the United Kingdom. The pilot and all of the decedents'
418
Forum non conveniens
heirs and next of kin were Scottish subjects and citizens, and the investigation of
the accident was conducted by British authorities. Respondent sought to recover
from petitioners on the basis of negligence or strict liability (not recognized by
Scottish law), and admitted that the action was filed in the United States because
its laws regarding liability, capacity to sue, and damages are more favorable to
respondent's position than those of Scotland. On petitioners' motion, the action
was removed to a Federal District Court in California and was then transferred to
the United States District Court for the Middle District of Pennsylvania, pursuant
to 28 U.S.C. 1404(a). The District Court granted petitioners' motion to dismiss
the action on the ground of forum non conveniens. Relying on the test set forth in
Gulf Oil Corp. v. Gilbert, 330 U.S. 501 , and analyzing the "private interest
factors" affecting the litigants' convenience and the "public interest factors"
affecting the forum's convenience, as set forth in Gilbert, the District Court
concluded that Scotland was the appropriate forum. However, the Court of
Appeals reversed, holding that the District Court had abused its discretion in
conducting the Gilbert analysis and that, in any event, dismissal is automatically
barred where [454 U.S. 235, 236] the law of the alternative forum is less
favorable to the plaintiff than the law of the forum chosen by the plaintiff.
Held:
1. Plaintiffs may not defeat a motion to dismiss on the ground of forum non
conveniens merely by showing that the substantive law that would be applied in
the alternative forum is less favorable to the plaintiffs than that of the chosen
forum. The possibility of a change in substantive law should ordinarily not be
given conclusive or even substantial weight in the forum non conveniens inquiry.
Canada Malting Co. v. Paterson Steamships, Ltd., 285 U.S. 413 . Pp. 247-255.
(a) Under Gilbert, supra, dismissal will ordinarily be appropriate where trial in
the plaintiff's chosen forum imposes a heavy burden on the defendant or the
court, and where the plaintiff is unable to offer any specific reasons of
convenience supporting his choice. If substantial weight were given to the
possibility of an unfavorable change in law, however, dismissal might be barred
even where trial in the chosen forum was plainly inconvenient, and the forum non
conveniens doctrine would become virtually useless. Such an approach not only
would be inconsistent with the purpose of the forum non conveniens doctrine, but
also would pose substantial practical problems, requiring that trial courts
determine complex problems in conflict of laws and comparative law, and
increasing the flow into American courts of litigation by foreign plaintiffs against
American manufacturers. Pp. 248-252.
(b) Nor may an analogy be drawn between forum non conveniens dismissals and
transfers between federal courts pursuant to 28 U.S.C. 1404(a), which was
construed in Van Dusen v. Barrack, 376 U.S. 612 , as precluding a transfer if it
resulted in a change in the applicable law. The statute was enacted to permit
change of venue between federal courts, and although it was drafted in
accordance with the doctrine of forum non conveniens, it was intended to be a
revision rather than a codification of the Common law. District courts were given
419
Lectures on the US Legal System
more discretion to transfer under 1404(a) than they had to dismiss on grounds of
forum non conveniens. Van Dusen v. Barrack, supra, distinguished. Pp. 253-254.
2. The District Court properly decided that the presumption in favor of the
plaintiff's forum choice applied with less than maximum force when the plaintiff
or (as here) the real parties in interest are foreign. When the plaintiff has chosen
the home forum, it is reasonable to assume that the choice is convenient; but
when the plaintiff or real parties in interest are foreign, this assumption is much
less reasonable and the plaintiff's choice deserves less deference. Pp. 255-256.
[454 U.S. 235, 237]
3. The forum non conveniens determination is committed to the trial court's
sound discretion and may be reversed only when there has been a clear abuse of
discretion. Here, the District Court did not abuse its discretion in weighing the
private and public interests under the Gilbert analysis and thereby determining
that the trial should be held in Scotland. Pp. 257-261.
(a) In analyzing the private interest factors, the District Court did not act
unreasonably in concluding that fewer evidentiary problems would be posed if
the trial were held in Scotland, a large proportion of the relevant evidence being
located there. The District Court also correctly concluded that the problems posed
by the petitioners' inability to implead potential Scottish third-party defendants -
the pilot's estate, the plane's owners, and the charter company - supported holding
the trial in Scotland. Pp. 257-259.
(b) The District Court's review of the factors relating to the public interest was
also reasonable. Even aside from the question whether Scottish law might be
applicable in part, all other public interest factors favor trial in Scotland, which
has a very strong interest in this litigation. The accident occurred there, all of the
decedents were Scottish, and apart from petitioners, all potential parties are either
Scottish or English. As to respondent's argument that American citizens have an
interest in ensuring that American manufacturers are deterred from producing
defective products and that additional deterrence might be obtained by trial in the
United States where they could be sued on the basis of both negligence and strict
liability, any incremental deterrence from trial in an American court is likely to
be insignificant and is not sufficient to justify the enormous commitment of
judicial time and resources that would be required. Pp. 259-261.
630 F.2d 149, reversed.
MARSHALL, J., delivered the opinion of the Court, in which BURGER, C. J.,
and BLACKMUN and REHNQUIST, JJ., joined, and in Parts I and II of which
WHITE, J., joined. WHITE J., filed an opinion concurring in part and dissenting
in part, post, p. 261. STEVENS, J., filed a dissenting opinion, in which
BRENNAN, J., joined, post, p. 261. POWELL, J., took no part in the decision of
the cases. O'CONNOR, J., took no part in the consideration or decision of the
cases.
420
Forum non conveniens
421
Lectures on the US Legal System
Navigation and Trading Co., Ltd. (Air Navigation). It was operated by McDonald
Aviation, Ltd. (McDonald), a Scottish air taxi service. Both Air Navigation and
McDonald were organized in the United Kingdom. The wreckage of the plane is
now in a hangar in Farnsborough, England.
The British Department of Trade investigated the accident shortly after it
occurred. A preliminary report found that the plane crashed after developing a
spin, and suggested that mechanical failure in the plane or the propeller was
responsible. At Hartzell's request, this report was reviewed by a three-member
Review Board, which held a 9-day adversary hearing attended by all interested
parties. The Review Board found no evidence of defective equipment and
indicated that pilot error may have contributed to the accident. The pilot, who had
obtained his commercial pilot's license only three months earlier, was flying over
high ground at an altitude considerably lower than the minimum height required
by his company's operations manual.
In July 1977, a California probate court appointed respondent Gaynell Reyno
administratrix of the estates of the five passengers. Reyno is not related to and
does not know any of the decedents or their survivors; she was a legal secretary
to the attorney who filed this lawsuit. Several days after her appointment, Reyno
commenced separate wrongful-death [454 U.S. 235, 240] actions against Piper
and Hartzell in the Superior Court of California, claiming negligence and strict
liability. 1 Air Navigation, McDonald, and the estate of the pilot are not parties to
this litigation. The survivors of the five passengers whose estates are represented
by Reyno filed a separate action in the United Kingdom against Air Navigation,
McDonald, and the pilot's estate. 2 Reyno candidly admits that the action against
Piper and Hartzell was filed in the United States because its laws regarding
liability, capacity to sue, and damages are more favorable to her position than are
those of Scotland. Scottish law does not recognize strict liability in tort.
Moreover, it permits wrongful-death actions only when brought by a decedent's
relatives. The relatives may sue only for "loss of support and society." 3
On petitioners' motion, the suit was removed to the United States District Court
for the Central District of California. Piper then moved for transfer to the United
States District Court for the Middle District of Pennsylvania, pursuant to 28
U.S.C. 1404(a). 4 Hartzell moved to dismiss for lack of personal jurisdiction, or
in the alternative, to transfer. 5 In December 1977, the District Court quashed
service on [454 U.S. 235, 241] Hartzell and transferred the case to the Middle
District of Pennsylvania. Respondent then properly served process on Hartzell.
B
In May 1978, after the suit had been transferred, both Hartzell and Piper moved
to dismiss the action on the ground of forum non conveniens. The District Court
granted these motions in October 1979. It relied on the balancing test set forth by
this Court in Gulf Oil Corp. v. Gilbert, 330 U.S. 501 (1947), and its companion
case, Koster v. Lumbermens Mut. Cas. Co., 330 U.S. 518 (1947). In those
decisions, the Court stated that a plaintiff's choice of forum should rarely be
disturbed. However, when an alternative forum has jurisdiction to hear the case,
422
Forum non conveniens
and when trial in the chosen forum would "establish . . . oppressiveness and
vexation to a defendant . . . out of all proportion to plaintiff's convenience," or
when the "chosen forum [is] inappropriate because of considerations affecting the
court's own administrative and legal problems," the court may, in the exercise of
its sound discretion, dismiss the case. Koster, supra, at 524. To guide trial court
discretion, the Court provided a list of "private interest factors" affecting the
convenience of the litigants, and a list of "public interest factors" affecting the
convenience of the forum. Gilbert, supra, at 508-509. 6 [454 U.S. 235, 242]
After describing our decisions in Gilbert and Koster, the District Court analyzed
the facts of these cases. It began by observing that an alternative forum existed in
Scotland; Piper and Hartzell had agreed to submit to the jurisdiction of the
Scottish courts and to waive any statute of limitations defense that might be
available. It then stated that plaintiff's choice of forum was entitled to little
weight. The court recognized that a plaintiff's choice ordinarily deserves
substantial deference. It noted, however, that Reyno "is a representative of
foreign citizens and residents seeking a forum in the United States because of the
more liberal rules concerning products liability law," and that "the courts have
been less solicitous when the plaintiff is not an American citizen or resident, and
particularly when the foreign citizens seek to benefit from the more liberal tort
rules provided for the protection of citizens and residents of the United States."
479 F. Supp., at 731.
The District Court next examined several factors relating to the private interests
of the litigants, and determined that these factors strongly pointed towards
Scotland as the appropriate forum. Although evidence concerning the design,
manufacture, and testing of the plane and propeller is located in the United States,
the connections with Scotland are otherwise "overwhelming." Id., at 732. The real
parties in interest are citizens of Scotland, as were all the decedents. Witnesses
who could testify regarding the maintenance of the aircraft, the training of the
pilot, and the investigation of the accident - all essential to the defense - are in
Great Britain. Moreover, all witnesses to damages are located in Scotland. Trial
would be aided by familiarity with Scottish topography, and by easy access to the
wreckage.
The District Court reasoned that because crucial witnesses and evidence were
beyond the reach of compulsory process, and because the defendants would not
be able to implead potential Scottish third-party defendants, it would be "unfair to
make Piper and Hartzell proceed to trial in this forum." Id., [454 U.S. 235, 243]
at 733. The survivors had brought separate actions in Scotland against the pilot,
McDonald, and Air Navigation. "[I]t would be fairer to all parties and less costly
if the entire case was presented to one jury with available testimony from all
relevant witnesses." Ibid. Although the court recognized that if trial were held in
the United States, Piper and Hartzell could file indemnity or contribution actions
against the Scottish defendants, it believed that there was a significant risk of
inconsistent verdicts. 7
423
Lectures on the US Legal System
The District Court concluded that the relevant public interests also pointed
strongly towards dismissal. The court determined that Pennsylvania law would
apply to Piper and Scottish law to Hartzell if the case were tried in the Middle
District of Pennsylvania. 8 As a result, "trial in this forum would be hopelessly
complex and confusing for a jury." Id., at 734. In addition, the court noted that it
was unfamiliar with Scottish law and thus would have to rely upon experts from
that country. The court also found that the trial would be enormously costly and
time-consuming; that it would be unfair to burden citizens with jury duty when
the Middle District [454 U.S. 235, 244] of Pennsylvania has little connection
with the controversy; and that Scotland has a substantial interest in the outcome
of the litigation.
In opposing the motions to dismiss, respondent contended that dismissal would
be unfair because Scottish law was less favorable. The District Court explicitly
rejected this claim. It reasoned that the possibility that dismissal might lead to an
unfavorable change in the law did not deserve significant weight; any deficiency
in the foreign law was a "matter to be dealt with in the foreign forum." Id., at 738.
C
On appeal, the United States Court of Appeals for the Third Circuit reversed and
remanded for trial. The decision to reverse appears to be based on two alternative
grounds. First, the Court held that the District Court abused its discretion in
conducting the Gilbert analysis. Second, the Court held that dismissal is never
appropriate where the law of the alternative forum is less favorable to the
plaintiff.
The Court of Appeals began its review of the District Court's Gilbert analysis by
noting that the plaintiff's choice of forum deserved substantial weight, even
though the real parties in interest are nonresidents. It then rejected the District
Court's balancing of the private interests. It found that Piper and Hartzell had
failed adequately to support their claim that key witnesses would be unavailable
if trial were held in the United States: they had never specified the witnesses they
would call and the testimony these witnesses would provide. The Court of
Appeals gave little weight to the fact that piper and Hartzell would not be able to
implead potential Scottish third-party defendants, reasoning that this difficulty
would be "burdensome" but not "unfair," 630 F.2d, at 162. 9 Finally, the court
stated that resolution of the suit [454 U.S. 235, 245] would not be significantly
aided by familiarity with Scottish topography, or by viewing the wreckage.
The Court of Appeals also rejected the District Court's analysis of the public
interest factors. It found that the District Court gave undue emphasis to the
application of Scottish law: "`the mere fact that the court is called upon to
determine and apply foreign law does not present a legal problem of the sort
which would justify the dismissal of a case otherwise properly before the court.'"
Id., at 163 (quoting Hoffman v. Goberman, 420 F.2d 423, 427 (CA3 1970)). In
any event, it believed that Scottish law need not be applied. After conducting its
own choice-of-law analysis, the Court of Appeals determined that American law
would govern the actions against both Piper and Hartzell. 10 The same choice-of-
424
Forum non conveniens
law analysis apparently led it to conclude that Pennsylvania and Ohio, rather than
Scotland, are the jurisdictions with the greatest policy interests in the dispute, and
that all other public interest factors favored trial in the United States. 11 [454
U.S. 235, 246]
In any event, it appears that the Court of Appeals would have reversed even if the
District Court had properly balanced the public and private interests. The court
stated:
"[I]t is apparent that the dismissal would work a change in the applicable law so
that the plaintiff's strict liability claim would be eliminated from the case. But . . .
a dismissal for forum non conveniens, like a statutory transfer, `should not,
despite its convenience, result in a change in the applicable law.' Only when
American law is not applicable, or when the foreign jurisdiction would, as a
matter of its won choice of law, give the plaintiff the benefit of the claim to
which she is entitled here, would dismissal be justified." 630 F.2d, at 163-164
(footnote omitted) (quoting DeMateos v. Texaco, Inc., 562 F.2d 895, 899 (CA3
1977), cert. denied, 435 U.S. 904 (1978)).
In other words, the court decided that dismissal is automatically barred if it would
lead to a change in the applicable law unfavorable to the plaintiff.
We granted certiorari in these case to consider the questions they raise concerning
the proper application of the doctrine of forum non conveniens. 450 U.S. 909
(1981). 12 [454 U.S. 235, 247]
II
The Court of Appeals erred in holding that plaintiffs may defeat a motion to
dismiss on the ground of forum non conveniens merely by showing that the
substantive law that would be applied in the alternative forum is less favorable to
the plaintiffs than that of the present forum. The possibility of a change in
substantive law should ordinarily not be given conclusive or even substantial
weight in the forum non conveniens inquiry.
We expressly rejected the position adopted by the Court of Appeals in our
decision in Canada Malting Co. v. Paterson Steamships, Ltd., 285 U.S. 413
(1932). That case arose out of a collision between two vessels in American
waters. The Canadian owners of cargo lost in the accident sued the Canadian
owners of one of the vessels in Federal District Court. The cargo owners chose an
American court in large part because the relevant American liability rules were
more favorable than the Canadian rules. The District Court dismissed on grounds
of forum non conveniens. The plaintiffs argued that dismissal was inappropriate
because Canadian laws were less favorable to them. This Court nonetheless
affirmed:
"We have no occasion to enquire by what law rights of the parties are governed,
as we are of the opinion [454 U.S. 235, 248] that, under any view of that
question, it lay within the discretion of the District Court to decline to assume
jurisdiction over the controversy. . . . `[T]he court will not take cognizance of the
425
Lectures on the US Legal System
case if justice would be as well done by remitting the parties to their home
forum.'" Id., at 419-420 (quoting Charter Shipping Co. v. Bowring, Jones & Tidy,
Ltd., 281 U.S. 515, 517 (1930).
The Court further stated that "[t]here was no basis for the contention that the
District Court abused its discretion." 285 U.S., at 423 .
It is true that Canada Malting was decided before Gilbert, and that the doctrine of
forum non conveniens was not fully crystallized until our decision in that case. 13
However, Gilbert in no way affects the validity of Canada Malting. Indeed, [454
U.S. 235, 249] by holding that the central focus of the forum non conveniens
inquiry is convenience, Gilbert implicitly recognized that dismissal may not be
barred solely because of the possibility of an unfavorable change in law. 14
Under Gilbert, dismissal will ordinarily be appropriate where trial in the
plaintiff's chosen forum imposes a heavy burden on the defendant or the court,
and where the plaintiff is unable to offer any specific reasons of convenience
supporting his choice. 15 If substantial weight were given to the possibility of an
unfavorable change in law, however, dismissal might be barred even where trial
in the chosen forum was plainly inconvenient.
The Court of Appeals' decision is inconsistent with this Court's earlier forum non
conveniens decisions in another respect. Those decisions have repeatedly
emphasized the need to retain flexibility. In Gilbert, the Court refused to identify
specific circumstances "which will justify or require either grant or denial of
remedy." 330 U.S., at 508 . Similarly, in Koster, the Court rejected the contention
that where a trial would involve inquiry into the internal affairs of a foreign
corporation, dismissal was always appropriate. "That is one, but only one, factor
which may show convenience." 330 U.S., at 527 . And in Williams v. Green Bay
& Western R. Co., 326 U.S. 549, 557 (1946), we stated that we would not lay
down a rigid rule to govern discretion, and that "[e]ach case turns on its facts." If
central emphasis were [454 U.S. 235, 250] placed on any one factor, the forum
non conveniens doctrine would lose much of the very flexibility that makes it so
valuable.
In fact, if conclusive or substantial weight were given to the possibility of a
change in law, the forum non conveniens doctrine would become virtually
useless. Jurisdiction and venue requirements are often easily satisfied. As a result,
many plaintiffs are able to choose from among several forums. Ordinarily, these
plaintiffs will select that forum whose choice-of-law rules are most advantageous.
Thus, if the possibility of an unfavorable change in substantive law is given
substantial weight in the forum non conveniens inquiry, dismissal would rarely be
proper.
Except for the court below, every Federal Court of Appeals that has considered
this question after Gilbert has held that dismissal on grounds of forum non
conveniens may be granted even though the law applicable in the alternative
forum is less favorable to the plaintiff's chance of recovery. See, e. g., Pain v.
United Technologies Corp., 205 U.S. App. D.C. 229, 248-249, 637 F.2d 775,
794-795 (1980); Fitzgerald v. Texaco, Inc., 521 F.2d 448, 453 (CA2 1975), cert.
426
Forum non conveniens
denied, 423 U.S. 1052 (1976); Anastasiadis v. S.S. Little John, 346 F.2d 281, 283
(CA5 1965), cert. denied, 384 U.S. 920 (1966). 16 Several Courts have relied
expressly on Canada Malting to hold that the possibility of an unfavorable change
of law should not, by itself, bar dismissal. See Fitzgerald [454 U.S. 235, 251] v.
Texaco, Inc., supra; Anglo-American Grain Co. v. The S/T Mina D'Amico, 169
F. Supp. 908 (ED Va. 1959).
The Court of Appeals' approach is not only inconsistent with the purpose of the
forum non conveniens doctrine, but also poses substantial practical problems. If
the possibility of a change in law were given substantial weight, deciding motions
to dismiss on the ground of forum non conveniens would become quite difficult.
Choice-of-law analysis would become extremely important, and the courts would
frequently be required to interpret the law of foreign jurisdictions. First, the trial
court would have to determine what law would apply if the case were tried in the
chosen forum, and what law would apply if the case were tried in the alternative
forum. It would then have to compare the rights, remedies, and procedures
available under the law that would be applied in each forum. Dismissal would be
appropriate only if the court concluded that the law applied by the alternative
forum is as favorable to the plaintiff as that of the chosen forum. The doctrine of
forum non conveniens, however, is designed in part to help courts avoid
conducting complex exercises in comparative law. As we stated in Gilbert, the
public interest factors point towards dismissal where the court would be required
to "untangle problems in conflict of laws, and in law foreign to itself." 330 U.S.,
at 509 .
Upholding the decision of the Court of Appeals would result in other practical
problems. At least where the foreign plaintiff named an American manufacturer
as defendant, 17 a court could not dismiss the case on grounds of forum non [454
U.S. 235, 252] conveniens where dismissal might lead to an unfavorable change
in law. The American courts, which are already extremely attractive to foreign
plaintiffs, 18 would become even more attractive. The flow of litigation into the
United States would increase and further congest already crowded courts. 19
[454 U.S. 235, 253]
The Court of Appeals based its decision, at least in part, on an analogy between
dismissals on grounds of forum non conveniens and transfers between federal
courts pursuant to 1404(a). In Van Dusen v. Barrack, 376 U.S. 612 (1964), this
Court ruled that a 1404(a) transfer should not result in a change in the applicable
law. Relying on dictum in an earlier Third Circuit opinion interpreting Van
Dusen, the court below held that that principle is also applicable to a dismissal on
forum non conveniens grounds. 630 F.2d, at 164, and n. 51 (citing DeMateos v.
Texaco, Inc., 562 F.2d, at 899). However, 1404(a) transfers are different than
dismissals on the ground of forum non conveniens.
Congress enacted 1404(a) to permit change of venue between federal courts.
Although the statute was drafted in accordance with the doctrine of forum non
conveniens, see Revisor's Note, H. R. Rep. No. 308, 80th Cong., 1st Sess., A132
(1947); H. R. Rep. No. 2646, 79th Cong., 2d Sess., A127 (1946), it was intended
427
Lectures on the US Legal System
428
Forum non conveniens
been chosen, it is reasonable to assume that this choice is convenient. When the
plaintiff is foreign, however, this assumption is much less reasonable. Because
the central purpose of any forum non conveniens inquiry is to ensure that the trial
is convenient, a foreign plaintiff's choice deserves less deference. 24 [454 U.S.
235, 257]
B
The forum non conveniens determination is committed to the sound discretion of
the trial court. It may be reversed only when there has been a clear abuse of
discretion; where the court has considered all relevant public and private interest
factors, and where its balancing of these factors is reasonable, its decision
deserves substantial deference. Gilbert, 330 U.S., at 511 -512; Koster, 330 U.S.,
at 531 . Here, the Court of Appeals expressly acknowledged that the standard of
review was one of abuse of discretion. In examining the District Court's analysis
of the public and private interests, however, the Court of Appeals seems to have
lost sight of this rule, and substituted its own judgment for that of the District
Court.
(1)
In analyzing the private interest factors, the District Court stated that the
connections with Scotland are "overwhelming." 479 F. Supp., at 732. This
characterization may be somewhat exaggerated. Particularly with respect to the
question of relative ease of access to sources of proof, the private interests point
in both directions. As respondent emphasizes, records concerning the design,
manufacture, and testing of the propeller and plane are located in the United
States. She would have greater access to sources of proof relevant to her strict
liability and negligence theories if trial were held here. 25 However, the District
Court did not act [454 U.S. 235, 258] unreasonably in concluding that fewer
evidentiary problems would be posed if the trial were held in Scotland. A large
proportion of the relevant evidence is located in Great Britain.
The Court of Appeals found that the problems of proof could not be given any
weight because Piper and Hartzell failed to describe with specificity the evidence
they would not be able to obtain if trial were held in the United States. It
suggested that defendants seeking forum non conveniens dismissal must submit
affidavits identifying the witnesses they would call and the testimony these
witnesses would provide if the trial were held in the alternative forum. Such
detail is not necessary. 26 Piper and Hartzell have moved for dismissal precisely
because many crucial witnesses are located beyond the reach of compulsory
process, and thus are difficult to identify or interview. Requiring extensive
investigation would defeat the purpose of their motion. Of course, defendants
must provide enough information to enable the District Court to balance the
parties' interests. Our examination of the record convinces us that sufficient
information [454 U.S. 235, 259] was provided here. Both Piper and Hartzell
submitted affidavits describing the evidentiary problems they would face if the
trial were held in the United States. 27
429
Lectures on the US Legal System
The District Court correctly concluded that the problems posed by the inability to
implead potential third-party defendants clearly supported holding the trial in
Scotland. Joinder of the pilot's estate, Air Navigation, and McDonald is crucial to
the presentation of petitioners' defense. If Piper and Hartzell can show that the
accident was caused not by a design defect, but rather by the negligence of the
pilot, the plane's owners, or the charter company, they will be relieved of all
liability. It is true, of course, that if Hartzell and Piper were found liable after a
trial in the United States, they could institute an action for indemnity or
contribution against these parties in Scotland. It would be far more convenient,
however, to resolve all claims in one trial. The Court of Appeals rejected this
argument. Forcing petitioners to rely on actions for indemnity or contributions
would be "burdensome" but not "unfair." 630 F.2d, at 162. Finding that trial in
the plaintiff's chosen forum would be burdensome, however, is sufficient to
support dismissal on grounds of forum non conveniens. 28
(2)
The District Court's review of the factors relating to the public interest was also
reasonable. On the basis of its [454 U.S. 235, 260] choice-of-law analysis, it
concluded that if the case were tried in the Middle District of Pennsylvania,
Pennsylvania law would apply to Piper and Scottish law to Hartzell. It stated that
a trial involving two sets of laws would be confusing to the jury. It also noted its
own lack of familiarity with Scottish law. Consideration of these problems was
clearly appropriate under Gilbert; in that case we explicitly held that the need to
apply foreign law pointed towards dismissal. 29 The Court of Appeals found that
the District Court's choice-of-law analysis was incorrect, and that American law
would apply to both Hartzell and Piper. Thus, lack of familiarity with foreign law
would not be a problem. Even if the Court of Appeals' conclusion is correct,
however, all other public interest factors favored trial in Scotland.
Scotland has a very strong interest in this litigation. The accident occurred in its
airspace. All of the decedents were Scottish. Apart from Piper and Hartzell, all
potential plaintiffs and defendants are either Scottish or English. As we stated in
Gilbert, there is "a local interest in having localized controversies decided at
home." 330 U.S., at 509 . Respondent argues that American citizens have an
interest in ensuring that American manufacturers are deterred from producing
defective products, and that additional deterrence might be obtained if Piper and
Hartzell were tried in the United States, where they could be sued on the basis of
both negligence and strict liability. However, the incremental deterrence that
would be gained if this trial were held in an [454 U.S. 235, 261] American court
is likely to be insignificant. The American interest in this accident is simply not
sufficient to justify the enormous commitment of judicial time and resources that
would inevitably be required if the case were to be tried here.
IV
The Court of Appeals erred in holding that the possibility of an unfavorable
change in law bars dismissal on the ground of forum non conveniens. It also erred
in rejecting the District Court's Gilbert analysis. The District Court properly
430
Forum non conveniens
decided that the presumption in favor of the respondent's forum choice applied
with less than maximum force because the real parties in interest are foreign. It
did not act unreasonably in deciding that the private interests pointed towards
trial in Scotland. Nor did it act unreasonably in deciding that the public interests
favored trial in Scotland. Thus, the judgment of the Court of Appeals is
Reversed.
431
Lectures on the US Legal System
432
Lecture # 23 – Exceptions to Jurisdiction
Section 1 - Immunities
Without entering into historical details, immunities are today ruled under
the Foreign Sovereign Immunities Act of 1976 (FSIA), which takes the
restrictive theory of immunities over. The statute, which applies to
“States” in a very broad sense including political subdivisions and even
corporations where a majority of whose shares of stock are owned by a
State, accords to a State immunity unless one of the exceptions set forth in
§1605 applies. The most important is the commercial exception
distinguishing acts de jure imperii and acts de jure gestionis, the latter
being activities in which a private person could have been engaged. More
precisely, following the Supreme Court in Republic of Argentina v.
Weltover, Inc104:
104
504 US 607 (1992).
105
168 US 250 (1897).
433
Lectures on the US Legal System
106
246 US 297 (1918).
107
Bernstein v. NV Nederlansche-Amerikaansche Stoomvaart-Maatschappij, 173
F.2d 71 (2d Cir. 1949).
108
210 F2d 375 (1954).
109
Banco Nacional de Cuba v. Sabbatino, 376 US 398 (1964).
110
Confirmed recently by W.S. Kirkpatrick and Co v. Environmental Tectonics
Corp, 493 US 400 (1990).
111
The doctrine has not to apply for acts contrary to International Law.
112
E.g. Kalamazoo Spice Extraction Co v. Ethiopia, 729 F.2d 422 (6th Cir 1984):
the doctrine does not apply to the case in which a standard clause of a bilateral
treaty provides the controlling legal standard regarding measures of
compensation for a taking.
113
Alfred Dunhill of London Inc v. Cuba, 425 US 682 (1976): the doctrine does
not apply for commercial activities undertaken by sovereign States.
114
Klinghoffer v. SNC Achille Lauro, 937 F2d 44 (2d Cir 1991).
434
Exceptions to Jurisdiction
115
Allied Bank Int’l v. Banco Credito Agricola de Cartago, 757 F.2d 516 (2d Cir
1985): Liability of Latin American Governments for breaches of sovereign
debts that occur in New York.
116
First National City Bank v. Banco Nacional de Cuba, 406 US 759 (1972): A
foreign State that comes into the United States court as a plaintiff seeking
relief should not be able to invoke the act of State defence to avoid a
counterclaim or set-off..
435
Lectures on the US Legal System
In the early part of 1892 a revolution was initiated in Venezuela, against the
administration thereof, which the revo- [168 U.S. 250, 251] lutionists claimed
had ceased to be the legitimate government. The principal parties to this conflict
were those who recognized Palacio as their head, and those who followed the
leadership of Crespo. Gen. Hernandez belonged to the antiadministration party,
and commanded its forces in the vicinity of Ciudad Bolivar. On the 8th of
August, 1892, an engagement took place between the arimes of the two parties at
Buena Vista, some seven miles from Bolivar, in which the troops under
Hernandez prevailed; and, on the 13th of August, Hernandez entered Bolivar, and
assumed command of the city. All of the local officials had in the meantime left,
and the vacant positions were filled by Gen. Hernandez, who from that date, and
during the period of the transactions complained of, was the civil and military
chief of the city and district. In October the party in revolt had achieved success
generally, taking possession of the capital of Venezuela, October 6th; and on
October 23, 1892, the 'Crespo government,' so called, was formally recognized as
the legitimate government of Venezuela by the United States.
George F. Underhill was a citizen of the United States, who had constructed a
waterworks system for the city of Bolivar, under a contract with the government,
and was engaged in supplying the place with water; and he also carried on a
machiney repair business. Some time after the entry of Gen. Hernandez,
Underhill applied to him, as the officer in command, for a passport to leave the
city. Hernandez refused this request, and requests made by others in Underhill's
behalf, until October 18th, when a passport was given, and Underhill left the
country.
This action was brought to recover damages for the detention caused by reason of
the refusal to grant the passport, for the alleged confinement of Underhill to his
own house, and for certain alleged assaults and affronts by the soldiers of
Hernandez's army.
The cause was tried in the circuit court of the United States for the Eastern
district of New York, and on the conclusion of plaintiff's case the circuit court
ruled that upon the facts plaintiff was not entitled to recover, and directed [168
U.S. 250, 252] a verdict for defendant, on the ground that 'because the acts of
defendant were those of a military commander, representing a de facto
government in the prosecution of a war, he was not civilly responsible therefor.'
436
Exceptions to Jurisdiction
Judgment having been rendered for defendant, the case was taken to the circuit
court of appeals, and by that court affirmed, upon the ground 'that the acts of the
defendant were the acts of the government of Venezuela, and as such are not
properly the subject of adjudication in the courts of another government.' 26 U. S.
App. 573, 13 C. C. A. 51, and 65 Fed. 577. Thereupon the cause was brought to
this court on certiorari.
Walter S. Logan, C. M. Demond, and Salter S. Clark, for plaintiff in error.
F. R. Coudert, F. R. Coudert, Jr., and Joseph Kling, for defendant in error.
Mr. Chief Justice FULLER, after stating the facts in the foregoing language,
delivered the opinion of the court.
Every sovereign state is bound to respect the independence of every other
sovereign state, and the courts of one country will not sit in judgment on the acts
of the government of another, done within its own territory. Redress of
grievances by reason of such acts must be obtained through the means open to be
availed of by sovereign powers as between themselves.
Nor can the principle be confined to lawful or recognized governments, or to
cases where redress can manifestly be had through public channels. The
immunity of individuals from suits brought in foreign tribunals for acts done
within their own states, in the exercise of governmental authority, whether as
civil officers or as military commanders, must necessarily extend to the agents of
governments ruling by paramount force as matter of fact. Where a civil war
prevails (that is, where the people of a country are divided into two hostile
parties, who take up arms and oppose one another by military [168 U.S. 250, 253]
force), generally speaking, foreign nations do not assume to judge of the merits
of the quarrel. If the party seeking to dislodge the existing government succeeds,
and the independence of the government it has set up is recognized, then the acts
of such government, from the commencement of its existence, are regarded as
those of an independent nation. If the political revolt fails of success, still, if
actual war has been waged, acts of legitimate warfare cannot be made the basis of
individual liability. U. S. v. Rice, 4 Wheat. 246; Fleming v. Page, 9 How. 603;
Thorington v. Smith, 8 Wall. 1; Williams v. Bruffy, 96 U.S. 176 ; Ford v. Surget,
97 U.S. 594 ; Dow v. Johnson, 100 U.S. 158 ; and other cases.
Revolutions or insurrections may inconvenience other nations, but by
accommodation to the facts the application of settled rules is readily reached.
And, where the fact of the existence of war is in issue in the instance of complaint
of acts committed within foreign territory, it is not an absolute prerequisite that
that fact should be made out by an acknowledgment of belligerency, as other
official recognition of its existence may be sufficient proof thereof. The Three
Friends, 166 U.S. 1 , 17 Sup. Ct. 495.
In this case the archives of the state department show that civil war was flagrant
in Venezuela from the spring of 1892, that the revolution was successful, and that
the revolutionary government was recognized by the United States as the
government of the country; it being, to use the language of the secretary of state
437
Lectures on the US Legal System
No. 16.
Argued October 22-23, 1963.
Decided March 23, 1964.
438
Exceptions to Jurisdiction
439
Lectures on the US Legal System
6. The act of state doctrine applies and is desirable with regard to a foreign
expropriation even though the expropriation allegedly violates customary
international law. Pp. 427-437.
(a) Disagreement exists as to relevant standards of international law concerning a
State's responsibility toward aliens. P. 430.
(b) The political branch can more effectively deal with expropriation than can the
Judicial Branch. Pp. 431-432.
(c) Conflicts between the Judicial and Executive Branches could hardly be
avoided were the judiciary to adjudicate with respect to the validity of
expropriations. Even if the combination alleged in this case of retaliation,
discrimination, and inadequate compensation made the expropriation here
violative of international law, a judicial determination to that effect would still be
unwise as involving potential conflict with or embarrassment to the Executive
Branch in later litigation. Pp. 432-433.
7. A foreign country's status as a plaintiff does not make the act of state doctrine
inapplicable. Pp. 437-438.
307 F.2d 845, reversed and remanded.
Victor Rabinowitz argued the cause for petitioner. With him on the briefs was
Leonard B. Boudin. [376 U.S. 398, 400]
C. Dickerman Williams argued the cause and filed briefs for respondent Farr,
Whitlock & Co.
Deputy Attorney General Katzenbach, by special leave of Court, argued the cause
for the United States, as amicus curiae, urging reversal. With him on the brief
were Solicitor General Cox, Morton Hollander, John C. Eldridge and Andreas F.
Lowenfeld.
James A. Dixon filed a brief for the Pan-American Life Insurance Co., as amicus
curiae, urging reversal.
Whitney North Seymour argued the cause for Compania Azucarera Vertientes-
Camaguey de Cuba, as amicus curiae, urging affirmance. With him on the brief
were Eastman Birkett, John A. Guzzetta and Thomas W. Cashel.
Briefs of amici curiae, urging affirmance, were filed by Charles S. Rhyne,
Churchill Rodgers, Max Chopnick, Benjamin Busch, Nicholas R. Doman and
Leo M. Drachsler for the American Bar Association; by Pieter J. Kooiman,
Myres S. McDougal and Cecil J. Olmstead for the Executive Committee of the
American Branch of the International Law Association; by Herbert Brownell,
James M. Edwards and Jack P. Jefferies for the Committee on International Law
of the Association of the Bar of the City of New York; and by John Lord O'Brian,
John G. Laylin, Brice M. Clagett and Ky P. Ewing, Jr. for North American Sugar
Industries, Inc., et al.
MR. JUSTICE HARLAN delivered the opinion of the Court.
440
Exceptions to Jurisdiction
The question which brought this case here, and is now found to be the dispositive
issue, is whether the so-called act of state doctrine serves to sustain petitioner's
claims in this litigation. Such claims are ultimately founded on a decree of the
Government of Cuba expropriating certain [376 U.S. 398, 401] property, the
right to the proceeds of which is here in controversy. The act of state doctrine in
its traditional formulation precludes the courts of this country from inquiring into
the validity of the public acts a recognized foreign sovereign power committed
within its own territory.
I.
In February and July of 1960, respondent Farr, Whitlock & Co., an American
commodity broker, contracted to purchase Cuban sugar, free alongside the
steamer, from a wholly owned subsidiary of Compania Azucarera Vertientes-
Camaguey de Cuba (C.A.V.), a corporation organized under Cuban law whose
capital stock was owned principally by United States residents. Farr, Whitlock
agreed to pay for the sugar in New York upon presentation of the shipping
documents and a sight draft.
On July 6, 1960, the Congress of the United States amended the Sugar Act of
1948 to permit a presidentially directed reduction of the sugar quota for Cuba. 1
On the same day President Eisenhower exercised the granted power. 2 The day of
the congressional enactment, the Cuban Council of Ministers adopted "Law No.
851," which characterized this reduction in the Cuban sugar quota as an act of
"aggression, for political purposes" on the part of the United States, justifying the
taking of countermeasures by Cuba. The law gave the Cuban President and Prime
Minister discretionary power to nationalize by forced expropriation property or
enterprises in which American nationals had an interest. 3 Although [376 U.S.
398, 402] a system of compensation was formally provided, the possibility of
payment under it may well be deemed illusory. 4 Our State Department has
described the Cuban law as "manifestly in violation of those principles [376 U.S.
398, 403] of international law which have long been accepted by the free
countries of the West. It is in its essence discriminatory, arbitrary and
confiscatory." 5
Between August 6 and August 9, 1960, the sugar covered by the contract between
Farr, Whitlock and C.A.V. 6 was loaded, destined for Morocco, onto the S. S.
Hornfels, which was standing offshore at the Cuban port of Jucaro (Santa Maria).
On the day loading commenced, the Cuban President and Prime Minister, acting
pursuant to Law No. 851, issued Executive Power Resolution No. 1. It provided
for the compulsory expropriation of all property and enterprises, and of rights and
interests arising therefrom, of certain listed companies, including C.A.V., wholly
or principally owned by American nationals. The preamble reiterated the alleged
injustice of the American reduction of the Cuban sugar quota and emphasized the
importance of Cuba's serving as an example for other countries to follow "in their
struggle to free themselves from the brutal claws of Imperialism." 7 In
consequence [376 U.S. 398, 404] of the resolution, the consent of the Cuban
Government was necessary before a ship carrying sugar of a named company
441
Lectures on the US Legal System
could leave Cuban waters. In order to obtain this consent, Farr, Whitlock, on
August 11, entered into contracts, identical to those it had made with C.A.V.,
[376 U.S. 398, 405] with the Banco Para el Comercio Exterior de Cuba, an
instrumentality of the Cuban Government. The S. S. Hornfels sailed for Morocco
on August 12.
Banco Exterior assigned the bills of lading to petitioner, also an instrumentality
of the Cuban Government, which instructed its agent in New York, Societe
Generale, to deliver the bills and a sight draft in the sum of $175,250.69 to Farr,
Whitlock in return for payment. Societe Generale's initial tender of the documents
was refused by Farr, Whitlock, which on the same day was notified of C.A.V.'s
claim that as rightful owner of the sugar it was entitled to the proceeds. In return
for a promise not to turn the funds over to petitioner or its agent, C.A.V. agreed to
indemnify Farr, Whitlock for any loss. 8 Farr, Whitlock subsequently accepted
the shipping documents, negotiated the bills of lading to its customer, and [376
U.S. 398, 406] received payment for the sugar. It refused, however, to hand over
the proceeds to Societe Generale. Shortly thereafter, Farr, Whitlock was served
with an order of the New York Supreme Court, which had appointed Sabbatino as
Temporary Receiver of C.A.V.'s New York assets, enjoining it from taking any
action in regard to the money claimed by C.A.V. that might result in its removal
from the State. Following this, Farr, Whitlock, pursuant to court order, transferred
the funds to Sabbatino, to abide the event of a judicial determination as to their
ownership.
Petitioner then instituted this action in the Federal District Court for the Southern
District of New York. Alleging conversion of the bills of lading, it sought to
recover the proceeds thereof from Farr, Whitlock and to enjoin the receiver from
exercising any dominion over such proceeds. Upon motions to dismiss and for
summary judgment, the District Court, 193 F. Supp. 375, sustained federal in
personam jurisdiction despite state control of the funds. It found that the sugar
was located within Cuban territory at the time of expropriation and determined
that under merchant law common to civilized countries Farr, Whitlock could not
have asserted ownership of the sugar against C.A.V. before making payment. It
concluded that C.A.V. had a property interest in the sugar subject to the territorial
jurisdiction of Cuba. The court then dealt with the question of Cuba's title to the
sugar, on which rested petitioner's claim of conversion. While acknowledging the
continuing vitality of the act of state doctrine, the court believed it inapplicable
when the questioned foreign act is in violation of international law. Proceeding
on the basis that a taking invalid under international law does not convey good
title, the District Court found the Cuban expropriation decree to violate such law
in three [376 U.S. 398, 407] separate respects: it was motivated by a retaliatory
and not a public purpose; it discriminated against American nationals; and it
failed to provide adequate compensation. Summary judgment against petitioner
was accordingly granted.
The Court of Appeals, 307 F.2d 845, affirming the decision on similar grounds,
relied on two letters (not before the District Court) written by State Department
officers which it took as evidence that the Executive Branch had no objection to a
442
Exceptions to Jurisdiction
judicial testing of the Cuban decree's validity. The court was unwilling to declare
that any one of the infirmities found by the District Court rendered the taking
invalid under international law, but was satisfied that in combination they had
that effect. We granted certiorari because the issues involved bear importantly on
the conduct of the country's foreign relations and more particularly on the proper
role of the Judicial Branch in this sensitive area. 372 U.S. 905 . For reasons to
follow we decide that the judgment below must be reversed.
Subsequent to the decision of the Court of Appeals, the C.A.V. receivership was
terminated by the State Supreme Court; the funds in question were placed in
escrow, pending the outcome of this suit. C.A.V. has moved in this Court to be
substituted as a party in the place of Sabbatino. Although it is true that
Sabbatino's defensive interest in this litigation has largely, if not entirely,
reflected that of C.A.V., this is true also of Farr, Whitlock's position. There is no
indication that Farr, Whitlock has not adequately represented C.A.V.'s interest or
that it will not continue to do so. Moreover, insofar as disposition of the case here
is concerned, C.A.V. has been permitted as amicus to brief and argue its position
before this Court. In these circumstances we are not persuaded that the admission
of C.A.V. as a party is [376 U.S. 398, 408] necessary at this stage to safeguard
any claim either that it has already presented or that it may present in the future
course of this litigation. Accordingly, we are constrained to deny C.A.V.'s motion
to be admitted as a party, 9 without prejudice however to the renewal of such a
motion in the lower courts if it appears that C.A.V.'s interests are not adequately
represented by Farr, Whitlock and that the granting of such a motion will not
disturb federal jurisdiction. Cf. Strawbridge v. Curtiss, 3 Cranch 267;
Indianapolis v. Chase Nat'l Bank, 314 U.S. 63 , at 69; Ex parte Edelstein, 30 F.2d
636, at 638.
Before considering the holding below with respect to the act of state doctrine, we
must deal with narrower grounds urged for dismissal of the action or for a
judgment on the merits in favor of respondents.
II.
It is first contended that this petitioner, an instrumentality of the Cuban
Government, should be denied access to American courts because Cuba is an
unfriendly power and does not permit nationals of this country to obtain relief in
its courts. Even though the respondents did not raise this point in the lower courts
we think it should be considered here. If the courts of this country should be
closed to the government of a foreign state, the underlying reason is one of
national policy transcending the interests of the parties to the action, and this
Court should give effect to that policy sua sponte even at this stage of the
litigation.
Under principles of comity governing this country's relations with other nations,
sovereign states are allowed [376 U.S. 398, 409] to sue in the courts of the
United States, The Sapphire, 11 Wall. 164, 167; Guaranty Trust Co. v. United
States, 304 U.S. 126, 134 . This Court has called "comity" in the legal sense
"neither a matter of absolute obligation, on the one hand, nor of mere courtesy
443
Lectures on the US Legal System
and good will, upon the other." Hilton v. Guyot, 159 U.S. 113, 163 -164.
Although comity is often associated with the existence of friendly relations
between states, e. g., Bank of Augusta v. Earle, 13 Pet. 519, 589; Russian
Republic v. Cibrario, 235 N. Y. 255, 258, 139 N. E. 259, 260, prior to some
recent lower court cases which have questioned the right of instrumentalities of
the Cuban Government to sue in our courts, 10 the privilege of suit has been
denied only to governments at war with the United States, Ex parte Don Ascanio
Colonna, 314 U.S. 510 ; see 7 of the Trading with the Enemy Act, 40 Stat. 416,
417, 50 U.S.C. App. 7; cf. Hanger v. Abbott, 6 Wall. 532; Caperton v. Bowyer,
14 Wall. 216, 236, or to those not recognized by this country, The Penza, 277 F.
91; Russian Republic v. Cibrario, supra. 11 [376 U.S. 398, 410]
Respondents, pointing to the severance of diplomatic relations, commercial
embargo, and freezing of Cuban assets in this country, contend that relations
between the United States and Cuba manifest such animosity that unfriendliness
is clear, and that the courts should be closed to the Cuban Government. We do
not agree. This Court would hardly be competent to undertake assessments of
varying degrees of friendliness or its absence, and, lacking some definite
touchstone for determination, we are constrained to consider any relationship,
short of war, with a recognized sovereign power as embracing the privilege of
resorting to United States courts. Although the severance of diplomatic relations
is an overt act with objective significance in the dealings of sovereign states, we
are unwilling to say that it should inevitably result in the withdrawal of the
privilege of bringing suit. Severance may take place for any number of political
reasons, its duration is unpredictable, and whatever expression of animosity it
may imply does not approach that implicit in a declaration of war.
It is perhaps true that nonrecognition of a government in certain circumstances
may reflect no greater unfriendliness than the severance of diplomatic relations
with a recognized government, but the refusal to recognize has a unique legal
aspect. It signifies this country's unwillingness to acknowledge that the
government in question speaks as the sovereign authority for the territory it
purports to control, see Russian Republic v. Cibrario, supra, at 260-263, 139 N.
E., at 261-263. Political recognition is exclusively a function of the Executive.
The possible incongruity of judicial "recognition," by permitting suit, of a
government not recognized by the Executive is completely [376 U.S. 398, 411]
absent when merely diplomatic relations are broken. 12
The view that the existing situation between the United States and Cuba should
not lead to a denial of status to sue is buttressed by the circumstance that none of
the acts of our Government have been aimed at closing the courts of this country
to Cuba, and more particularly by the fact that the Government has come to the
support of Cuba's "act of state" claim in this very litigation.
Respondents further urge that reciprocity of treatment is an essential ingredient of
comity generally, and, therefore, of the privilege of foreign states to bring suit
here. Although Hilton v. Guyot, 159 U.S. 113 , contains some broad language
about the relationship of reciprocity to comity, the case in fact imposed a
444
Exceptions to Jurisdiction
445
Lectures on the US Legal System
Respondents further contend that if the expropriation was of the sugar itself, this
suit then becomes one to enforce the public law of a foreign state and as such is
not cognizable in the courts of this country. They rely on the principle enunciated
in federal and state cases that a [376 U.S. 398, 414] court need not give effect to
the penal or revenue laws of foreign countries or sister states. See, e. g., The
Antelope, 10 Wheat. 66, 123; Wisconsin v. Pelican Ins. Co., 127 U.S. 265 ;
Huntington v. Attrill, 146 U.S. 657 (all relating to penal laws); 15 Moore v.
Mitchell, 30 F.2d 600, aff'd on other grounds, 281 U.S. 18 ; City of Detroit v.
Proctor, 44 Del. 193, 61 A. 2d 412; City of Philadelphia v. Cohen, 11 N. Y. 2d
401, 184 N. E. 2d 167, 230 N. Y. S. 2d 188 (all relating to revenue laws).
The extent to which this doctrine may apply to other kinds of public laws, though
perhaps still an open question, 16 need not be decided in this case. For we have
been referred to no authority which suggests that the doctrine reaches a public
law which, as here, has been fully executed within the foreign state. Cuba's
restraint of the S. S. Hornfels must be regarded for these purposes to have
constituted an effective taking of the sugar, vesting in Cuba C.A.V.'s property
right in it. Farr, Whitlock's [376 U.S. 398, 415] contract with the Cuban bank,
however compelled to sign Farr, Whitlock may have felt, represented indeed a
recognition of Cuba's dominion over the property.
In these circumstances the question whether the rights acquired by Cuba are
enforceable in our courts depends not upon the doctrine here invoked but upon
the act of state doctrine discussed in the succeeding sections of this opinion. 17
[376 U.S. 398, 416]
IV.
The classic American statement of the act of state doctrine, which appears to have
taken root in England as early as 1674, Blad v. Bamfield, 3 Swans. 604, 36 Eng.
Rep. 992, and began to emerge in the jurisprudence of this country in the late
eighteenth and early nineteenth centuries, see, e. g., Ware v. Hylton, 3 Dall. 199,
230; Hudson v. Guestier, 4 Cranch 293, 294; The Schooner Exchange v.
M'Faddon, 7 Cranch 116, 135, 136; L'Invincible, 1 Wheat. 238, 253; The
Santissima Trinidad, 7 Wheat. 283, 336, is found in Underhill v. Hernandez, 168
U.S. 250 , where Chief Justice Fuller said for a unanimous Court (p. 252):
"Every sovereign State is bound to respect the independence of every other
sovereign State, and the courts of one country will not sit in judgment on the acts
of the government of another done within its own territory. Redress of grievances
by reason of such acts must be obtained through the means open to be availed of
by sovereign powers as between themselves."
Following this precept the Court in that case refused to inquire into acts of
Hernandez, a revolutionary Venezuelan military commander whose government
had been later recognized by the United States, which were made the basis of a
damage action in this country by Underhill. an American citizen, who claimed
that he had been unlawfully assaulted, coerced, and detained in Venezuela by
Hernandez.
446
Exceptions to Jurisdiction
None of this Court's subsequent cases in which the act of state doctrine was
directly or peripherally involved manifest any retreat from Underhill. See
American Banana Co. v. United Fruit Co., 213 U.S. 347 ; Oetjen v. Central
Leather Co., 246 U.S. 297 ; Ricaud v. American Metal Co., 246 U.S. 304 ;
Shapleigh v. Mier, 299 U.S. 468 ; [376 U.S. 398, 417] United States v. Belmont,
301 U.S. 324 , United States v. Pink, 315 U.S. 203 . On the contrary in two of
these cases, Oetjen and Ricaud, the doctrine as announced in Underhill was
reaffirmed in unequivocal terms.
Oetjen involved a seizure of hides from a Mexican citizen as a military levy by
General Villa, acting for the forces of General Carranza, whose government was
recognized by this country subsequent to the trial but prior to decision by this
Court. The hides were sold to a Texas corporation which shipped them to the
United States and assigned them to defendant. As assignee of the original owner,
plaintiff replevied the hides, claiming that they had been seized in violation of the
Hague Conventions. In affirming a judgment for defendant, the Court suggested
that the rules of the Conventions did not apply to civil war and that, even if they
did, the relevant seizure was not in violation of them. 246 U.S., at 301 -302.
Nevertheless, it chose to rest its decision on other grounds. It described the
designation of the sovereign as a political question to be determined by the
legislative and executive departments rather than the judicial department, invoked
the established rule that such recognition operates retroactively to validate past
acts, and found the basic tenet of Underhill to be applicable to the case before it.
"The principle that the conduct of one independent government cannot be
successfully questioned in the courts of another is as applicable to a case
involving the title to property brought within the custody of a court, such as we
have here, as it was held to be to the cases cited, in which claims for damages
were based upon acts done in a foreign country, for it rests at last upon the
highest considerations of international comity and expediency. To permit the
validity of the acts of one sovereign State to be reexamined and perhaps
condemned by [376 U.S. 398, 418] the courts of another would very certainly
imperil the amicable relations between governments and vex the peace of
nations.'" Id., at 303-304.
In Ricaud the facts were similar - another general of the Carranza forces seized
lead bullion as a military levy - except that the property taken belonged to an
American citizen. The Court found Underhill, American Banana, and Oetjen
controlling. Commenting on the nature of the principle established by those
cases, the opinion stated that the rule
"does not deprive the courts of jurisdiction once acquired over a case. It requires
only that, when it is made to appear that the foreign government has acted in a
given way on the subject-matter of the litigation, the details of such action or the
merit of the result cannot be questioned but must be accepted by our courts as a
rule for their decision. To accept a ruling authority and to decide accordingly is
not a surrender or abandonment of jurisdiction but is an exercise of it. It results
447
Lectures on the US Legal System
that the title to the property in this case must be determined by the result of the
action taken by the military authorities of Mexico . . . ." 246 U.S., at 309 .
To the same effect is the language of Mr. Justice Cardozo in the Shapleigh case,
supra, where, in commenting on the validity of a Mexican land expropriation, he
said ( 299 U.S., at 471 ): "The question is not here whether the proceeding was so
conducted as to be a wrong to our nationals under the doctrines of international
law, though valid under the law of the situs of the land. For wrongs of that order
the remedy to be followed is along the channels of diplomacy."
In deciding the present case the Court of Appeals relied in part upon an exception
to the unqualified teachings [376 U.S. 398, 419] of Underhill Oetjen, and
Ricaud which that court had earlier indicated. In Bernstein v. Van Heyghen
Freres Societe Anonyme, 163 F.2d 246, suit was brought to recover from an
assignee property allegedly taken, in effect, by the Nazi Government because
plaintiff was Jewish. Recognizing the odious nature of this act of state, the court,
through Judge Learned Hand, nonetheless refused to consider it invalid on that
ground. Rather, it looked to see if the Executive had acted in any manner that
would indicate that United States Courts should refuse to give effect to such a
foreign decree. Finding no such evidence, the court sustained dismissal of the
complaint. In a later case involving similar facts the same court again assumed
examination of the German acts improper, Bernstein v. N. V. Nederlandsche-
Amerikaansche Stoomvaart-Maatschappij, 173 F.2d 71, but, quite evidently
following the implications of Judge Hand's opinion in the earlier case, amended
its mandate to permit evidence of alleged invalidity, 210 F.2d 375, subsequent to
receipt by plaintiff's attorney of a letter from the Acting Legal Adviser to the
State Department written for the purpose of relieving the court from any
constraint upon the exercise of its jurisdiction to pass on that question. 18 [376
U.S. 398, 420]
This Court has never had occasion to pass upon the so-called Bernstein
exception, nor need it do so now. For whatever ambiguity may be thought to exist
in the two letters from State Department officials on which the Court of Appeals
relied, 19 307 F.2d, at 858, is now removed by the position which the Executive
has taken in this Court on the act of state claim; respondents do not indeed
contest the view that these letters were intended to reflect no more than the
Department's then wish not to make any statement bearing on this litigation.
The outcome of this case, therefore, turns upon whether any of the contentions
urged by respondents against the application of the act of state doctrine in the
premises is acceptable: (1) that the doctrine does not apply to acts of state which
violate international law, as is claimed to be the case here; (2) that the doctrine is
inapplicable unless the Executive specifically interposes it in a particular case;
and (3) that, in any event, the doctrine may not be invoked by a foreign
government plaintiff in our courts. [376 U.S. 398, 421]
V.
448
Exceptions to Jurisdiction
449
Lectures on the US Legal System
450
Exceptions to Jurisdiction
451
Lectures on the US Legal System
452
Exceptions to Jurisdiction
453
Lectures on the US Legal System
increase any affront and the judicial decision might occur at a time, almost
always well after the taking, when such an impact would be contrary to our
national interest. Considerably more serious and far-reaching consequences
would flow from a judicial finding that international law standards had been met
if that determination flew in the face of a State Department proclamation to the
contrary. When articulating principles of international law in its relations with
other states, the Executive Branch speaks not only as an interpreter of generally
accepted and traditional [376 U.S. 398, 433] rules, as would the courts, but also
as an advocate of standards it believes desirable for the community of nations and
protective of national concerns. In short, whatever way the matter is cut, the
possibility of conflict between the Judicial and Executive Branches could hardly
be avoided.
Respondents contend that, even if there is not agreement regarding general
standards for determining the validity of expropriations, the alleged combination
of retaliation, discrimination, and inadequate compensation makes it patently
clear that this particular expropriation was in violation of international law. 37 If
this view is accurate, it would still be unwise for the courts so to determine. Such
a decision now would require the drawing of more difficult lines in subsequent
cases and these would involve the possibility of conflict with the Executive view.
Even if the courts avoided this course, either by presuming the validity of an act
of state whenever the international law standard was thought unclear or by
following the State Department declaration in such a situation, the very
expression of judicial uncertainty might provide embarrassment to the Executive
Branch.
Another serious consequence of the exception pressed by respondents would be
to render uncertain titles in foreign commerce, with the possible consequence of
altering the flow of international trade. 38 If the attitude of the [376 U.S. 398,
434] United States courts were unclear, one buying expropriated goods would
not know if he could safely import them into this country. Even were takings
known to be invalid, one would have difficulty determining after goods had
changed hands several times whether the particular articles in question were the
product of an ineffective state act. 39
Against the force of such considerations, we find respondents' countervailing
arguments quite unpersuasive. Their basic contention is that United States courts
could make a significant contribution to the growth of international law, a
contribution whose importance, it is said, would be magnified by the relative
paucity of decisional law by international bodies. But given the fluidity of present
world conditions, the effectiveness of such a patchwork approach toward the
formulation of an acceptable body of law concerning state responsibility for
expropriations is, to say the least, highly conjectural. Moreover, it rests upon the
sanguine presupposition that the decisions of the courts of the world's major
capital exporting country and principal exponent of the free [376 U.S. 398, 435]
enterprise system would be accepted as disinterested expressions of sound legal
principle by those adhering to widely different ideologies.
454
Exceptions to Jurisdiction
455
Lectures on the US Legal System
456
Exceptions to Jurisdiction
foreign country seeks redress in our courts, counterclaims are permissible. But
immunity relates to the prerogative right not to have sovereign property subject to
suit; fairness has been thought to require that when the sovereign seeks recovery,
it be subject to legitimate counterclaims against it. The act of state doctrine,
however, although it shares with the immunity doctrine a respect for sovereign
states, concerns the limits for determining the validity of an otherwise applicable
rule of law. It is plain that if a recognized government sued on a contract with a
United States citizen, concededly legitimate by the locus of its making,
performance, and most significant contacts, the forum would not apply its own
substantive law of contracts. Since the act of state doctrine reflects the desirability
of presuming the relevant transaction valid, the same result follows; the forum
may not apply its local law regarding foreign expropriations. [376 U.S. 398, 439]
Since the act of state doctrine proscribes a challenge to the validity of the Cuban
expropriation decree in this case, any counterclaim based on asserted invalidity
must fail. Whether a theory of conversion or breach of contract is the proper
cause of action under New York law, the presumed validity of the expropriation
is unaffected. Although we discern no remaining litigable issues of fact in this
case, the District Court may hear and decide them if they develop.
The judgment of the Court of Appeals is reversed and the case is remanded to the
District Court for proceedings consistent with this opinion.
It is so ordered.
457
Lectures on the US Legal System
458
B – Private International Law
117
29 Am.J.Int’l L. 435, 445.
459
460
Lecture # 24 – Extraterritoriality
(1) (a) conduct that, wholly or in substantial part, takes place within its
territories;
(b) the status of persons, or interests in things, present within its
territory;
(c) conduct outside its territory that has or is intended to have substantial
effect within its territory.
(2) the activities, interests, status, or relations of its nationals outside as well
as within its territory;
(3) certain conduct outside its territory by persons not its nationals that is
directed against the security of the state or against a limited class of
other state interests.
The first question that arises concerns the territorial and personal
application of the US Constitution to Americans and foreigners.
461
Lectures on the US Legal System
122
Russian Volunteer Fleet v. United States, 282 US 481 (1931) (takings); Asahi
Metal Indus. V. Superior Court, 480 US 102 (1987) (due process);.
123
Environmental Defense Fund v. Massey, 986 F.2d 528 (DC Cir. 1993).
124
[1989] QB 728. See also : Den Haag, Compagnie européenne des pétroles v.
Sensor Nederland, 1982, 22 ILM 66 (1983).
462
Extraterritoriality
125
A similarly act has been adopted – known as the Amato-Kennedy Act – in
regard to Iran.
126
For the defense of the international legality of the Act: Giesze, Helms-Burton
in Light of the Common Law and Civil Law Legal Traditions, International
Lawyer, 98.51.
127
American Banana Co v. United Fruit Co, 213 US 347 (1909).
128
Foley Bros, Inc. V. Filardo, 336 US 281 (1949).
463
Lectures on the US Legal System
depend on the locality of the defendants’ acts and where restricting the
statute to United States territory would severely diminish the statute’s
effectiveness”129. However, there must be a nexus between the defendant
or the conduct condemned and the United States such that the
extraterritorial application of the statute would not be arbitrary or
fundamentally unfair130. The nexus requierement serves the same purpose
as the minimum contacts test in personal jurisdiction.
129
327 F.3d 56 (2d Cir 2003).
130
United States v. Clark, 315 F.Supp. 2d 1127 (WD Wash, 2004).
131
United States v. Aluminium Co of America (Alcoa), 148 F.2d 416 (2d Cir.
1945). See also: Timberlane Lumber Co v. Bank of America, 549 F.2d 597 (9th
Cir 1976), cert. Denied 472 US 1032 (1977); Hartford Fire Insurance, 509
US 764 (1993).
464
Extraterritoriality
No. 88-1353.
465
Lectures on the US Legal System
466
Extraterritoriality
467
Lectures on the US Legal System
468
Extraterritoriality
469
Lectures on the US Legal System
persons who are part of a national community or who have otherwise developed
sufficient connection with this country to be considered part of that community.
See United States ex rel. Turner v. Williams, 194 U.S. 279, 292 (1904)
(Excludable alien is not entitled to First Amendment rights, because "[h]e does
not become one of the people to whom these things are secured by our
Constitution by an attempt to enter forbidden by law"). The language of these
Amendments contrasts with the words [494 U.S. 259, 266] "person" and
"accused" used in the Fifth and Sixth Amendments regulating procedure in
criminal cases.
What we know of the history of the drafting of the Fourth Amendment also
suggests that its purpose was to restrict searches and seizures which might be
conducted by the United States in domestic matters. The Framers originally
decided not to include a provision like the Fourth Amendment, because they
believed the National Government lacked power to conduct searches and
seizures. See C. Warren, The Making of the Constitution 508-509 (1928); The
Federalist No. 84, p. 513 (C. Rossiter ed. 1961) (A. Hamilton); 1 Annals of Cong.
437 (1789) (statement of J. Madison). Many disputed the original view that the
Federal Government possessed only narrow delegated powers over domestic
affairs, however, and ultimately felt an Amendment prohibiting unreasonable
searches and seizures was necessary. Madison, for example, argued that "there is
a clause granting to Congress the power to make all laws which shall be
necessary and proper for carrying into execution all of the powers vested in the
Government of the United States," and that general warrants might be considered
"necessary" for the purpose of collecting revenue. Id., at 438. The driving force
behind the adoption of the Amendment, as suggested by Madison's advocacy,
was widespread hostility among the former colonists to the issuance of writs of
assistance empowering revenue officers to search suspected places for smuggled
goods, and general search warrants permitting the search of private houses, often
to uncover papers that might be used to convict persons of libel. See Boyd v.
United States, 116 U.S. 616, 625 -626 (1886). The available historical data show,
therefore, that the purpose of the Fourth Amendment was to protect the people of
the United States against arbitrary action by their own Government; it was never
suggested that the provision was intended to restrain the actions of the Federal
Government against aliens outside of the United States territory. [494 U.S. 259,
267]
There is likewise no indication that the Fourth Amendment was understood by
contemporaries of the Framers to apply to activities of the United States directed
against aliens in foreign territory or in international waters. Only seven years after
the ratification of the Amendment, French interference with American
commercial vessels engaged in neutral trade triggered what came to be known as
the "undeclared war" with France. In an Act to "protect the Commerce of the
United States" in 1798, Congress authorized President Adams to "instruct the
commanders of the public armed vessels which are, or which shall be employed
in the service of the United States, to subdue, seize and take any armed French
vessel, which shall be found within the jurisdictional limits of the United States,
470
Extraterritoriality
471
Lectures on the US Legal System
Indeed, we have rejected the claim that aliens are entitled to Fifth Amendment
rights outside the sovereign territory of the United States. In Johnson v.
Eisentrager, 339 U.S. 763 (1950), the Court held that enemy aliens arrested in
China and imprisoned in Germany after World War II could not obtain writs of
habeas corpus in our federal courts on the ground that their convictions for war
crimes had violated the Fifth Amendment and other constitutional provisions.
The Eisentrager opinion acknowledged that in some cases constitutional
provisions extend beyond the citizenry; "[t]he alien . . . has been accorded a
generous and ascending scale of rights as he increases his identity with our
society." Id., at 770. But our rejection of extraterritorial application of the Fifth
Amendment was emphatic:
"Such extraterritorial application of organic law would have been so significant
an innovation in the practice of governments that, if intended or apprehended, it
could scarcely have failed to excite contemporary comment. Not one word can be
cited. No decision of this Court supports such a view. Cf. Downes v. Bidwell,
182 U.S. 244 [(1901)]. None of the learned commentators on our Constitution has
even hinted at it. The practice of every modern government is opposed to it." Id.,
at 784.
If such is true of the Fifth Amendment, which speaks in the relatively universal
term of "person," it would seem even more true with respect to the Fourth
Amendment, which applies only to "the people."
To support his all-encompassing view of the Fourth Amendment, respondent
points to language from the plurality opinion in Reid v. Covert, 354 U.S. 1
(1957). Reid involved an attempt by Congress to subject the wives of American
servicemen to trial by military tribunals without the protection of the Fifth and
Sixth Amendments. The Court held that it was unconstitutional to apply the
Uniform Code of Military [494 U.S. 259, 270] Justice to the trials of the
American women for capital crimes. Four Justices "reject[ed] the idea that when
the United States acts against citizens abroad it can do so free of the Bill of
Rights." Id., at 5 (emphasis added). The plurality went on to say:
"The United States is entirely a creature of the Constitution. Its power and
authority have no other source. It can only act in accordance with all the
limitations imposed by the Constitution. When the Government reaches out to
punish a citizen who is abroad, the shield which the Bill of Rights and other parts
of the Constitution provide to protect his life and liberty should not be stripped
away just because he happens to be in another land." Id., at 5-6 (emphasis added;
footnote omitted).
Respondent urges that we interpret this discussion to mean that federal officials
are constrained by the Fourth Amendment wherever and against whomever they
act. But the holding of Reid stands for no such sweeping proposition: it decided
that United States citizens stationed abroad could invoke the protection of the
Fifth and Sixth Amendments. The concurrences by Justices Frankfurter and
Harlan in Reid resolved the case on much narrower grounds than the plurality and
declined even to hold that United States citizens were entitled to the full range of
472
Extraterritoriality
473
Lectures on the US Legal System
The Court of Appeals found some support for its holding in our decision in INS
v. Lopez-Mendoza, 468 U.S. 1032 (1984), where a majority of Justices assumed
that the Fourth Amendment applied to illegal aliens in the United States. We
cannot fault the Court of Appeals for placing some reliance on the case, but our
decision did not expressly address the proposition gleaned by the court below.
The question presented for decision in Lopez-Mendoza was limited to whether
the Fourth Amendment's exclusionary rule should be extended to civil
deportation proceedings; it did not encompass whether the protections of the
Fourth Amendment extend to illegal aliens in this country. The Court often grants
certiorari to decide particular legal issues while assuming without deciding the
validity of antecedent propositions, compare, e. g., Maine v. Thiboutot, 448 U.S.
1 (1980) (assuming State is a "person" within the meaning of 42 U.S.C. 1983),
with Will v. Michigan Dept. of State Police, 491 U.S. 58 (1989) (State is not a
"person"), and such assumptions - even on jurisdictional issues - are not binding
in future cases that directly raise the questions. Id., at 63, n. 4; Hagans v. Lavine,
415 U.S. 528, 535 , n. 5 (1974). Our statements in Lopez-Mendoza are therefore
not dispositive of how the Court would rule on a Fourth Amendment claim by
illegal aliens in the United States if such a claim were squarely before us. Even
assuming such aliens would be entitled to Fourth Amendment protections, their
situation is [494 U.S. 259, 273] different from respondent's. The illegal aliens in
Lopez-Mendoza were in the United States voluntarily and presumably had
accepted some societal obligations; but respondent had no voluntary connection
with this country that might place him among "the people" of the United States.
Respondent also contends that to treat aliens differently from citizens with
respect to the Fourth Amendment somehow violates the equal protection
component of the Fifth Amendment to the United States Constitution. He relies
on Graham v. Richardson, 403 U.S. 365 (1971), and Foley v. Connelie, 435 U.S.
291 (1978), for this proposition. But the very cases previously cited with respect
to the protection extended by the Constitution to aliens undermine this claim.
They are constitutional decisions of this Court expressly according differing
protection to aliens than to citizens, based on our conclusion that the particular
provisions in question were not intended to extend to aliens in the same degree as
to citizens. Cf. Mathews v. Diaz, 426 U.S. 67, 79 -80 (1976) ("In the exercise of
its broad power over naturalization and immigration, Congress regularly makes
rules that would be unacceptable if applied to citizens").
Not only are history and case law against respondent, but as pointed out in
Johnson v. Eisentrager, 393 U.S. 763 (1950), the result of accepting his claim
would have significant and deleterious consequences for the United States in
conducting activities beyond its boundaries. The rule adopted by the Court of
Appeals would apply not only to law enforcement operations abroad, but also to
other foreign policy operations which might result in "searches or seizures." The
United States frequently employs Armed Forces outside this country - over 200
times in our history - for the protection of American citizens or national security.
Congressional Research Service, Instances of Use of United States Armed Forces
Abroad, 1798-1989 (E. Collier ed. 1989). Application of the Fourth Amendment
474
Extraterritoriality
to those circumstances could significantly disrupt the ability of the political [494
U.S. 259, 274] branches to respond to foreign situations involving our national
interest. Were respondent to prevail, aliens with no attachment to this country
might well bring actions for damages to remedy claimed violations of the Fourth
Amendment in foreign countries or in international waters. See Bivens v. Six
Unknown Federal Narcotics Agents, 403 U.S. 388 (1971); cf. Tennessee v.
Garner, 471 U.S. 1 (1985); Graham v. Connor, 490 U.S. 386 (1989). Perhaps a
Bivens action might be unavailable in some or all of these situations due to
"`special factors counselling hesitation,'" see Chappell v. Wallace, 462 U.S. 296,
298 (1983) (quoting Bivens, supra, at 396), but the Government would still be
faced with case-by-case adjudications concerning the availability of such an
action. And even were Bivens deemed wholly inapplicable in cases of foreign
activity, that would not obviate the problems attending the application of the
Fourth Amendment abroad to aliens. The Members of the Executive and
Legislative Branches are sworn to uphold the Constitution, and they presumably
desire to follow its commands. But the Court of Appeals' global view of its
applicability would plunge them into a sea of uncertainty as to what might be
reasonable in the way of searches and seizures conducted abroad. Indeed, the
Court of Appeals held that absent exigent circumstances, United States agents
could not effect a "search or seizure" for law enforcement purposes in a foreign
country without first obtaining a warrant - which would be a dead letter outside
the United States - from a magistrate in this country. Even if no warrant were
required, American agents would have to articulate specific facts giving them
probable cause to undertake a search or seizure if they wished to comply with the
Fourth Amendment as conceived by the Court of Appeals.
We think that the text of the Fourth Amendment, its history, and our cases
discussing the application of the Constitution to aliens and extraterritorially
require rejection of respondent's claim. At the time of the search, he was a citizen
and resident of Mexico with no voluntary attachment to the [494 U.S. 259, 275]
United States, and the place searched was located in Mexico. Under these
circumstances, the Fourth Amendment has no application.
For better or for worse, we live in a world of nation-states in which our
Government must be able to "functio[n] effectively in the company of sovereign
nations." Perez v. Brownell, 356 U.S. 44, 57 (1958). Some who violate our laws
may live outside our borders under a regime quite different from that which
obtains in this country. Situations threatening to important American interests
may arise halfway around the globe, situations which in the view of the political
branches of our Government require an American response with armed force. If
there are to be restrictions on searches and seizures which occur incident to such
American action, they must be imposed by the political branches through
diplomatic understanding, treaty, or legislation.
The judgment of the Court of Appeals is accordingly
Reversed.
JUSTICE KENNEDY, concurring.
475
Lectures on the US Legal System
I agree that no violation of the Fourth Amendment has occurred and that we must
reverse the judgment of the Court of Appeals. Although some explanation of my
views is appropriate given the difficulties of this case, I do not believe they depart
in fundamental respects from the opinion of the Court, which I join.
In cases involving the extraterritorial application of the Constitution, we have
taken care to state whether the person claiming its protection is a citizen, see, e.
g., Reid v. Covert, 354 U.S. 1 (1957), or an alien, see, e. g., Johnson v.
Eisentrager, 339 U.S. 763 (1950). The distinction between citizens and aliens
follows from the undoubted proposition that the Constitution does not create, nor
do general principles of law create, any juridical relation between our country and
some undefined, limitless class of noncitizens who are beyond our territory. We
should note, however, that the absence of [494 U.S. 259, 276] this relation does
not depend on the idea that only a limited class of persons ratified the instrument
that formed our Government. Though it must be beyond dispute that persons
outside the United States did not and could not assent to the Constitution, that is
quite irrelevant to any construction of the powers conferred or the limitations
imposed by it. As Justice Story explained in his Commentaries:
"A government may originate in the voluntary compact or assent of the people of
several states, or of a people never before united, and yet when adopted and
ratified by them, be no longer a matter resting in compact; but become an
executed government or constitution, a fundamental law, and not a mere league.
But the difficulty in asserting it to be a compact between the people of each state,
and all the people of the other states is, that the constitution itself contains no
such expression, and no such designation of parties." 1 Commentaries on the
Constitution 365, p. 335 (1833) (footnote omitted).
The force of the Constitution is not confined because it was brought into being by
certain persons who gave their immediate assent to its terms.
For somewhat similar reasons, I cannot place any weight on the reference to "the
people" in the Fourth Amendment as a source of restricting its protections. With
respect, I submit these words do not detract from its force or its reach. Given the
history of our Nation's concern over warrantless and unreasonable searches,
explicit recognition of "the right of the people" to Fourth Amendment protection
may be interpreted to underscore the importance of the right, rather than to
restrict the category of persons who may assert it. The restrictions that the United
States must observe with reference to aliens beyond its territory or jurisdiction
depend, as a consequence, on general principles of interpretation, not on an
inquiry as to who formed the Constitution or a construction that some rights are
mentioned as being those of "the people." [494 U.S. 259, 277]
I take it to be correct, as the plurality opinion in Reid v. Covert sets forth, that the
Government may act only as the Constitution authorizes, whether the actions in
question are foreign or domestic. See 354 U.S., at 6 . But this principle is only a
first step in resolving this case. The question before us then becomes what
constitutional standards apply when the Government acts, in reference to an alien,
within its sphere of foreign operations. We have not overruled either In re Ross,
476
Extraterritoriality
140 U.S. 453 (1891), or the so-called Insular Cases (i. e., Downes v. Bidwell, 182
U.S. 244 (1901); Hawaii v. Mankichi, 190 U.S. 197 (1903); Dorr v. United
States, 195 U.S. 138 (1904); Balzac v. Porto Rico, 258 U.S. 298 (1922). These
authorities, as well as United States v. Curtiss-Wright Export Corp., 299 U.S.
304, 318 (1936), stand for the proposition that we must interpret constitutional
protections in light of the undoubted power of the United States to take actions to
assert its legitimate power and authority abroad. Justice Harlan made this
observation in his opinion concurring in the judgment in Reid v. Covert:
"I cannot agree with the suggestion that every provision of the Constitution must
always be deemed automatically applicable to American citizens in every part of
the world. For Ross and the Insular Cases do stand for an important proposition,
one which seems to me a wise and necessary gloss on our Constitution. The
proposition is, of course, not that the Constitution `does not apply' overseas, but
that there are provisions in the Constitution which do not necessarily apply in all
circumstances in every foreign place. In other words, it seems to me that the basic
teaching of Ross and the Insular Cases is that there is no rigid and abstract rule
that Congress, as a condition precedent to exercising power over Americans
overseas, must exercise it subject to all the guarantees of the Constitution, no
matter what the conditions and considerations are that would make adherence to a
[494 U.S. 259, 278] specific guarantee altogether impracticable and anomalous."
354 U.S., at 74 .
The conditions and considerations of this case would make adherence to the
Fourth Amendment's warrant requirement impracticable and anomalous. Just as
the Constitution in the Insular Cases did not require Congress to implement all
constitutional guarantees in its territories because of their "wholly dissimilar
traditions and institutions," the Constitution does not require United States agents
to obtain a warrant when searching the foreign home of a nonresident alien. If the
search had occurred in a residence within the United States, I have little doubt
that the full protections of the Fourth Amendment would apply. But that is not
this case. The absence of local judges or magistrates available to issue warrants,
the differing and perhaps unascertainable conceptions of reasonableness and
privacy that prevail abroad, and the need to cooperate with foreign officials all
indicate that the Fourth Amendment's warrant requirement should not apply in
Mexico as it does in this country. For this reason, in addition to the other
persuasive justifications stated by the Court, I agree that no violation of the
Fourth Amendment has occurred in the case before us. The rights of a citizen, as
to whom the United States has continuing obligations, are not presented by this
case.
I do not mean to imply, and the Court has not decided, that persons in the position
of the respondent have no constitutional protection. The United States is
prosecuting a foreign national in a court established under Article III, and all of
the trial proceedings are governed by the Constitution. All would agree, for
instance, that the dictates of the Due Process Clause of the Fifth Amendment
protect the defendant. Indeed, as Justice Harlan put it, "the question of which
specific safeguards . . . are appropriately to be applied in a particular context . . .
477
Lectures on the US Legal System
can be reduced to the issue of what process is `due' a defendant in the particular
circumstances of a particular case." Reid, supra, at 75. Nothing approaching a
violation of due process has occurred in this case. [494 U.S. 259, 279]
JUSTICE STEVENS, concurring in the judgment.
In my opinion aliens who are lawfully present in the United States are among
those "people" who are entitled to the protection of the Bill of Rights, including
the Fourth Amendment. Respondent is surely such a person even though he was
brought and held here against his will. I therefore cannot join the Court's
sweeping opinion. * I do agree, however, with the Government's submission that
the search conducted by the United States agents with the approval and
cooperation of the Mexican authorities was not "unreasonable" as that term is
used in the first Clause of the Amendment. I do not believe the Warrant Clause
has any application to searches of noncitizens' homes in foreign jurisdictions
because American magistrates have no power to authorize such searches. I
therefore concur in the Court's judgment.
[ Footnote * ] The Court's interesting historical discussion is simply irrelevant to
the question whether an alien lawfully within the sovereign territory of the United
States is entitled to the protection of our laws. Nor is comment on illegal aliens'
entitlement to the protections of the Fourth Amendment necessary to resolve this
case.
JUSTICE BRENNAN, with whom JUSTICE MARSHALL joins, dissenting.
Today the Court holds that although foreign nationals must abide by our laws
even when in their own countries, our Government need not abide by the Fourth
Amendment when it investigates them for violations of our laws. I respectfully
dissent.
I
Particularly in the past decade, our Government has sought, successfully, to hold
foreign nationals criminally liable under federal laws for conduct committed
entirely beyond the territorial limits of the United States that nevertheless has
effects [494 U.S. 259, 280] in this country. Foreign nationals must now take
care not to violate our drug laws, 1 our antitrust laws, 2 our securities laws, 3 and
a host of other federal criminal statutes. 4 The [494 U.S. 259, 281] enormous
expansion of federal criminal jurisdiction outside our Nation's boundaries has led
one commentator to suggest that our country's three largest exports are now "rock
music, blue jeans, and United States law." Grundman, The New Imperialism: The
Extraterritorial Application of United States Law, 14 Int'l Law. 257, 257 (1980).
The Constitution is the source of Congress' authority to criminalize conduct,
whether here or abroad, and of the Executive's authority to investigate and
prosecute such conduct. But the same Constitution also prescribes limits on our
Government's authority to investigate, prosecute, and punish criminal conduct,
whether foreign or domestic. As a plurality of the Court noted in Reid v. Covert,
354 U.S. 1, 5 -6 (1957): "The United States is entirely a creature of the
478
Extraterritoriality
Constitution. Its power and authority have no other source. It can only act in
accordance with all the limitations imposed by the Constitution." (Footnotes
omitted.) See also ante, at 277 (KENNEDY, J., concurring) ("[T]he Government
may act only as the Constitution authorizes, whether the actions in question are
foreign or domestic"). In particular, the Fourth Amendment provides:
"The right of the people to be secure in their persons, houses, papers, and effects,
against unreasonable searches and seizures, shall not be violated; and no
Warrants shall issue but upon probable cause, supported by [494 U.S. 259, 282]
Oath or affirmation, and particularly describing the place to be searched, and the
persons or things to be seized."
The Court today creates an antilogy: the Constitution authorizes our Government
to enforce our criminal laws abroad, but when Government agents exercise this
authority, the Fourth Amendment does not travel with them. This cannot be. At
the very least, the Fourth Amendment is an unavoidable correlative of the
Government's power to enforce the criminal law.
A
The Fourth Amendment guarantees the right of "the people" to be free from
unreasonable searches and seizures and provides that a warrant shall issue only
upon presentation of an oath or affirmation demonstrating probable cause and
particularly describing the place to be searched and the persons or things to be
seized. According to the majority, the term "the people" refers to "a class of
persons who are part of a national community or who have otherwise developed
sufficient connection with this country to be considered part of that community."
Ante, at 265. The Court admits that "the people" extends beyond the citizenry,
but leaves the precise contours of its "sufficient connection" test unclear. At one
point the majority hints that aliens are protected by the Fourth Amendment only
when they come within the United States and develop "substantial connections"
with our country. Ante, at 271. At other junctures, the Court suggests that an
alien's presence in the United States must be voluntary 5 and that the alien must
have "accepted some societal [494 U.S. 259, 283] obligations." 6 Ante, at 273.
At yet other points, the majority implies that respondent would be protected by
the Fourth Amendment if the place searched were in the United States. 7 Ante, at
266, 274-275.
What the majority ignores, however, is the most obvious connection between
Verdugo-Urquidez and the United States: he was investigated and is being
prosecuted for violations of United States law and may well spend the rest of his
life in a United States prison. The "sufficient connection" is supplied not by
Verdugo-Urquidez, but by the Government. [494 U.S. 259, 284] Respondent is
entitled to the protections of the Fourth Amendment because our Government, by
investigating him and attempting to hold him accountable under United States
criminal laws, has treated him as a member of our community for purposes of
enforcing our laws. He has become, quite literally, one of the governed.
Fundamental fairness and the ideals underlying our Bill of Rights compel the
conclusion that when we impose "societal obligations," ante, at 273, such as the
479
Lectures on the US Legal System
obligation to comply with our criminal laws, on foreign nationals, we in turn are
obliged to respect certain correlative rights, among them the Fourth Amendment.
By concluding that respondent is not one of "the people" protected by the Fourth
Amendment, the majority disregards basic notions of mutuality. If we expect
aliens to obey our laws, aliens should be able to expect that we will obey our
Constitution when we investigate, prosecute, and punish them. We have
recognized this fundamental principle of mutuality since the time of the Framers.
James Madison, universally recognized as the primary architect of the Bill of
Rights, emphasized the importance of mutuality when he spoke out against the
Alien and Sedition Acts less than a decade after the adoption of the Fourth
Amendment:
"[I]t does not follow, because aliens are not parties to the Constitution, as citizens
are parties to it, that, whilst they actually conform to it, they have no right to its
protection. Aliens are not more parties to the laws than they are parties to the
Constitution; yet it will not be disputed that, as they owe, on one hand, a
temporary obedience, they are entitled, in return, to their protection and
advantage." Madison's Report on the Virginia Resolutions (1800), reprinted in 4
Elliot's Debates 556 (2d ed. 1836).
Mutuality is essential to ensure the fundamental fairness that underlies our Bill of
Rights. Foreign nationals investigated and prosecuted for alleged violations of
United States criminal laws are just as vulnerable to oppressive Government [494
U.S. 259, 285] behavior as are United States citizens investigated and
prosecuted for the same alleged violations. Indeed, in a case such as this where
the Government claims the existence of an international criminal conspiracy,
citizens and foreign nationals may be codefendants, charged under the same
statutes for the same conduct and facing the same penalties if convicted. They
may have been investigated by the same agents pursuant to the same enforcement
authority. When our Government holds these codefendants to the same standards
of conduct, the Fourth Amendment, which protects the citizen from unreasonable
searches and seizures, should protect the foreign national as well.
Mutuality also serves to inculcate the values of law and order. By respecting the
rights of foreign nationals, we encourage other nations to respect the rights of our
citizens. Moreover, as our Nation becomes increasingly concerned about the
domestic effects of international crime, we cannot forget that the behavior of our
law enforcement agents abroad sends a powerful message about the rule of law to
individuals everywhere. As Justice Brandeis warned in Olmstead v. United
States, 277 U.S. 438 (1928):
"If the Government becomes a lawbreaker, it breeds contempt for law; it invites
every man to become a law unto himself; it invites anarchy. To declare that in the
administration of the criminal law the end justifies the means . . . would bring
terrible retribution. Against that pernicious doctrine, this Court should resolutely
set its face." Id., at 485 (dissenting opinion).
480
Extraterritoriality
This principle is no different when the United States applies its rules of conduct
to foreign nationals. If we seek respect for law and order, we must observe these
principles ourselves. Lawlessness breeds lawlessness.
Finally, when United States agents conduct unreasonable searches, whether at
home or abroad, they disregard our Nation's values. For over 200 years, our
country has considered itself the world's foremost protector of liberties. The [494
U.S. 259, 286] privacy and sanctity of the home have been primary tenets of our
moral, philosophical, and judicial beliefs. 8 Our national interest is defined by
those values and by the need to preserve our own just institutions. We take pride
in our commitment to a Government that cannot, on mere whim, break down
doors and invade the most personal of places. We exhort other nations to follow
our example. How can we explain to others - and to ourselves - that these long
cherished ideals are suddenly of no consequence when the door being broken
belongs to a foreigner?
The majority today brushes aside the principles of mutuality and fundamental
fairness that are central to our Nation's constitutional conscience. The Court
articulates a "sufficient connection" test but then refuses to discuss the underlying
principles upon which any interpretation of that test must rest. I believe that by
placing respondent among those governed by federal criminal laws and
investigating him for violations of those laws, the Government has made him a
part of our community for purposes of the Fourth Amendment.
B
In its effort to establish that respondent does not have sufficient connection to the
United States to be considered one of "the people" protected by the Fourth
Amendment, the Court relies on the text of the Amendment, historical evidence,
and cases refusing to apply certain constitutional provisions outside the United
States. None of these, however, justifies the majority's cramped interpretation of
the Fourth Amendment's applicability. [494 U.S. 259, 287]
The majority looks to various constitutional provisions and suggests that "`the
people' seems to have been a term of art." Ante, at 265. But the majority admits
that its "textual exegesis is by no means conclusive." Ibid. 9 One Member of the
majority even states that he "cannot place any weight on the reference to `the
people' in the Fourth Amendment as a source of restricting its protections." Ante,
at 276 (KENNEDY, J., concurring). The majority suggests a restrictive
interpretation of those with "sufficient connection" to this country to be
considered among "the people," but the term "the people" is better understood as
a rhetorical counterpoint to "the Government," such that rights that were reserved
to "the people" were to protect all those subject to "the Government." Cf. New
Jersey v. T. L. O., 469 U.S. 325, 335 (1985) ("[T]he Court has long spoken of the
Fourth Amendment's strictures as restraints imposed upon `governmental
action'"). "The people" are "the governed."
In drafting both the Constitution and the Bill of Rights, the Framers strove to
create a form of Government decidedly different from their British heritage.
481
Lectures on the US Legal System
Whereas the British Parliament was unconstrained, the Framers intended to create
a Government of limited powers. See B. Bailyn, The Ideological Origins of the
American Revolution 182 (1967); 1 The Complete Anti-Federalist 65 (H. Storing
ed. 1981). The colonists considered the British Government dangerously
omnipotent. After all, the British declaration of rights in [494 U.S. 259, 288]
1688 had been enacted not by the people, but by Parliament. The Federalist No.
84, p. 439 (M. Beloff ed. 1987). Americans vehemently attacked the notion that
rights were matters of "`favor and grace,'" given to the people from the
Government. B. Bailyn, supra, at 187 (quoting John Dickinson).
Thus, the Framers of the Bill of Rights did not purport to "create" rights. Rather,
they designed the Bill of Rights to prohibit our Government from infringing
rights and liberties presumed to be pre-existing. See e. g., U.S. Const., Amdt. 9
("The enumeration in the Constitution of certain rights, shall not be construed to
deny or disparage others retained by the people"). The Fourth Amendment, for
example, does not create a new right of security against unreasonable searches
and seizures. It states that "[t]he right of the people to be secure in their persons,
houses, papers, and effects, against unreasonable searches and seizures, shall not
be violated . . . ." The focus of the Fourth Amendment is on what the Government
can and cannot do, and how it may act, not on against whom these actions may be
taken. Bestowing rights and delineating protected groups would have been
inconsistent with the Drafters' fundamental conception of a Bill of Rights as a
limitation on the Government's conduct with respect to all whom it seeks to
govern. It is thus extremely unlikely that the Framers intended the narrow
construction of the term "the people" presented today by the majority.
The drafting history of the Fourth Amendment also does not support the
majority's interpretation of "the people." First, the Drafters chose not to limit the
right against unreasonable searches and seizures in more specific ways. They
could have limited the right to "citizens," "freemen," "residents," or "the
American people." The conventions called to ratify the Constitution in New York
and Virginia, for example, each recommended an amendment stating, "That every
freeman has a right to be secure from all unreasonable searches and seizures . . .
." W. Cuddihy, Search and Seizure [494 U.S. 259, 289] in Great Britain and the
American Colonies, pt. 2, p. 571, n. 129, 574, n. 134 (1974). But the Drafters of
the Fourth Amendment rejected this limitation and instead provided broadly for
"[t]he right of the people to be secure in their persons, houses, papers, and
effects." Second, historical materials contain no evidence that the Drafters
intended to limit the availability of the right expressed in the Fourth Amendment.
10 The Amendment was introduced on the floor of Congress, considered by
Committee, debated by the House of Representatives and the Senate, and
submitted to the 13 States for approval. Throughout that entire process, no
speaker or commentator, pro or con, referred to the term "the people" as a
limitation. [494 U.S. 259, 290]
The Court also relies on a series of cases dealing with the application of criminal
procedural protections outside of the United States to conclude that "not every
constitutional provision applies to governmental activity even where the United
482
Extraterritoriality
States has sovereign power." Ante, at 268. None of these cases, however,
purports to read the phrase "the people" as limiting the protections of the Fourth
Amendment to those with "sufficient connection" to the United States, and thus
none gives content to the majority's analysis. The cases shed no light on the
question whether respondent - a citizen of a nonenemy nation being tried in a
United States federal court - is one of "the people" protected by the Fourth
Amendment.
The majority mischaracterizes Johnson v. Eisentrager, 339 U.S. 763 (1950), as
having "rejected the claim that aliens are entitled to Fifth Amendment rights
outside the sovereign territory of the United States." Ante, at 269. In Johnson, 21
German nationals were convicted of engaging in continued military activity
against the United States after the surrender of Germany and before the surrender
of Japan in World War II. The Court held that "the Constitution does not confer a
right of personal security or an immunity from military trial and punishment upon
an alien enemy engaged in the hostile service of a government at war with the
United States." 339 U.S., at 785 (emphasis added). As the Court wrote:
"It is war that exposes the relative vulnerability of the alien's status. The security
and protection enjoyed while the nation of his allegiance remains in amity with
the United States are greatly impaired when his nation takes up arms against us. .
. . But disabilities this country lays upon the alien who becomes also an enemy
are imposed temporarily as an incident of war and not as an incident of alienage."
Id., at 771-772. [494 U.S. 259, 291]
The Court rejected the German nationals' efforts to obtain writs of habeas corpus
not because they were foreign nationals, but because they were enemy soldiers.
The Insular Cases, Balzac v. Porto Rico, 258 U.S. 298 (1922), Ocampo v. United
States, 234 U.S. 91 (1914), Dorr v. United States, 195 U.S. 138 (1904), and
Hawaii v. Mankichi, 190 U.S. 197 (1903), are likewise inapposite. The Insular
Cases all concerned whether accused persons enjoyed the protections of certain
rights in criminal prosecutions brought by territorial authorities in territorial
courts. These cases were limited to their facts long ago, see Reid v. Covert, 354
U.S., at 14 (plurality opinion) ("[I]t is our judgment that neither the cases nor
their reasoning should be given any further expansion"), and they are of no
analytical value when a criminal defendant seeks to invoke the Fourth
Amendment in a prosecution by the Federal Government in a federal court. 11
C
The majority's rejection of respondent's claim to Fourth Amendment protection is
apparently motivated by its fear that application of the Amendment to law
enforcement searches against foreign nationals overseas "could significantly
disrupt the ability of the political branches to respond to foreign situations
involving our national interest." Ante, at 273-274. The majority's doomsday
scenario - that American Armed Forces conducting a mission to protect our
national security with no law enforcement objective "would have to articulate
specific facts giving them probable cause to undertake a search or seizure," ante,
483
Lectures on the US Legal System
484
Extraterritoriality
485
Lectures on the US Legal System
486
Extraterritoriality
was committed or the nationality of the victim or the alleged offender"); 1203
(hostage taking outside the United States, if the offender or the person seized is a
United States national, if the offender is found in the United States, or if "the
governmental organization sought to be compelled is the Government of the
United States"); 1546 (fraud and [494 U.S. 259, 281] misuse of visas, permits,
and other immigration documents); 2331 (terrorist acts abroad against United
States nationals); 49 U.S.C. App. 1472(n) (1982 ed. and Supp. V) (aircraft piracy
outside the special aircraft jurisdiction of the United States, if the offender is
found in the United States). Foreign nationals may also be criminally liable for
numerous federal crimes falling within the "special maritime and territorial
jurisdiction of the United States," which includes "[a]ny place outside the
jurisdiction of any nation with respect to an offense by or against a national of the
United States." 18 U.S.C. 7(7). Finally, broad construction of federal conspiracy
statutes may permit prosecution of foreign nationals who have had no direct
contact with anyone or anything in the United States. See Ford v. United States,
273 U.S. 593, 619 -620 (1927).
[ Footnote 5 ] None of the cases cited by the majority, ante, at 271, requires an
alien's connections to the United States to be "voluntary" before the alien can
claim the benefits of the Constitution. Indeed, Mathews v. Diaz, 426 U.S. 67, 77
(1976), explicitly rejects the notion that an individual's connections to the United
States must be voluntary or sustained to qualify for constitutional protection.
Furthermore, even if a voluntariness requirement were sensible in cases
guaranteeing certain governmental benefits to illegal aliens, e. g., Plyler v. Doe,
457 U.S. 202 (1982) [494 U.S. 259, 283] (holding that States cannot deny to
illegal aliens the free public education they provide to citizens and legally
documented aliens), it is not a sensible requirement when our Government
chooses to impose our criminal laws on others.
[ Footnote 6 ] In this discussion, the Court implicitly suggests that the Fourth
Amendment may not protect illegal aliens in the United States. Ante, at 273.
Numerous lower courts, however, have held that illegal aliens in the United
States are protected by the Fourth Amendment, and not a single lower court has
held to the contrary. See, e. g., Benitez-Mendez v. INS, 760 F.2d 907 (CA9
1985); United States v. Rodriguez, 532 F.2d 834, 838 (CA2 1976); Au Yi Lau v.
INS, 144 U.S. App. D.C. 147, 156, 445 F.2d 217, 225, cert. denied, 404 U.S. 864
(1971); Yam Sang Kwai v. INS, 133 U.S. App. D.C. 369, 372, 411 F.2d 683,
686, cert. denied, 396 U.S. 877 (1969).
[ Footnote 7 ] The Fourth Amendment contains no express or implied territorial
limitations, and the majority does not hold that the Fourth Amendment is
inapplicable to searches outside the United States and its territories. It holds that
respondent is not protected by the Fourth Amendment because he is not one of
"the people." Indeed, the majority's analysis implies that a foreign national who
had "developed sufficient connection with this country to be considered part of
[our] community" would be protected by the Fourth Amendment regardless of the
location of the search. Certainly nothing in the Court's opinion questions the
validity of the rule, accepted by every Court of Appeals to have considered the
487
Lectures on the US Legal System
question, that the Fourth Amendment applies to searches conducted by the United
States Government against United States citizens abroad. See, e. g., United States
v. Conroy, 589 F.2d 1258, 1264 (CA5), cert. denied, 444 U.S. 831 (1979); United
States v. Rose, 570 F.2d 1358, 1362 (CA9 1978). A warrantless, unreasonable
search and seizure is no less a violation of the Fourth Amendment because it
occurs in Mexicali, Mexico, rather than Calexico, California.
[ Footnote 8 ] President John Adams traced the origins of our independence from
England to James Otis' impassioned argument in 1761 against the British writs of
assistance, which allowed revenue officers to search American homes wherever
and whenever they wanted. Otis argued that "[a] man's house is his castle," 2
Works of John Adams 524 (C. Adams ed. 1850), and Adams declared that "[t]hen
and there the child Independence was born." 10 Works of John Adams 248 (C.
Adams ed. 1856).
[ Footnote 9 ] The majority places an unsupportable reliance on the fact that the
Drafters used "the people" in the Fourth Amendment while using "person" and
"accused" in the Fifth and Sixth Amendments respectively, see ante, at 265-266.
The Drafters purposely did not use the term "accused." As the majority
recognizes, ante, at 264, the Fourth Amendment is violated at the time of an
unreasonable governmental intrusion, even if the victim of unreasonable
governmental action is never formally "accused" of any wrongdoing. The
majority's suggestion that the Drafters could have used "person" ignores the fact
that the Fourth Amendment then would have begun quite awkwardly: "The right
of persons to be secure in their persons . . . ."
[ Footnote 10 ] The only historical evidence the majority sets forth in support of
its restrictive interpretation of the Fourth Amendment involves the seizure of
French vessels during an "undeclared war" with France in 1798 and 1799.
Because opinions in two Supreme Court cases, Little v. Barreme, 2 Cranch
170(1804), and Talbot v. Seeman, 1 Cranch 1 (1801), "never suggested that the
Fourth Amendment restrained the authority of congress or of United States agents
to conduct operations such as this," ante, at 268, the majority deduces that those
alive when the Fourth Amendment was adopted did not believe it protected
foreign nationals. Relying on the absence of any discussion of the Fourth
Amendment in these decisions, however, runs directly contrary to the majority's
admonition that the Court only truly decides that which it "expressly address[es]."
Ante, at 272 (discussing INS v. Lopez-Mendoza, 468 U.S. 1032 (1984).
Moreover, the Court in Little found that the American commander had violated
the statute authorizing seizures, thus rendering any discussion of the
constitutional question superfluous. See, e. g., Ashwander v. TVA, 297 U.S. 288,
347 (1936) (Brandeis, J., concurring). And in Talbot, the vessel's owners opposed
the seizure on purely factual grounds, claiming the vessel was not French.
Furthermore, although neither Little nor Talbot expressly mentions the Fourth
Amendment, both opinions adopt a "probable cause" standard, suggesting that the
Court may have either applied or been informed by the Fourth Amendment's
standards of conduct. Little, supra, at 179; Talbot, supra, at 31-32 (declaring that
"where there is probable cause to believe the vessel met with at sea is in the
488
Extraterritoriality
condition of one liable to capture, it is lawful to take her, and subject her to the
examination and adjudication of the courts").
[ Footnote 11 ] The last of the Insular Cases cited by the majority, Downes v.
Bidwell, 182 U.S. 244 (1901), is equally irrelevant. In Downes, the Court held
that Puerto Rico was not part of "the United States" with respect to the
constitutional provision that "all Duties, Imposts and Excises shall be uniform
throughout the United States," U.S. Const., Art. I, 8, cl. 1. 182 U.S., at 249 .
Unlike the Uniform Duties Clause, the Fourth Amendment contains no express
territorial limitations. See n. 7, supra.
[ Footnote 12 ] The District Court found no exigent circumstances that would
justify a warrantless search. After respondent's arrest in Mexico, he was
transported to the United States and held in custody in southern California. Only
after respondent was in custody in the United States did the Drug Enforcement
Administration (DEA) begin preparations for a search of his Mexican residences.
On the night respondent was arrested, DEA Agent Terry Bowen contacted DEA
Special Agent Walter White in Mexico to seek his assistance in conducting the
search. Special Agent White contacted Mexican officials the next morning and at
1 p.m. authorized Agent Bowen to conduct the search. A team of DEA agents
then drove to Mexico, met with Mexican officials, and arrived at the first of
respondent's two residences after dark. 856 F.2d 1214, 1226 (CA9 1988). The
search did not begin until approximately 10 p.m. the day after respondent was
taken into custody. App. to Pet. for Cert. 101a. In all that time, particularly when
respondent and Agent Bowen were both in the United States and Agent Bowen
was awaiting further communications from Special Agent White, DEA agents
could easily have sought a warrant from a United States Magistrate.
[ Footnote 13 ] JUSTICE STEVENS concurs in the judgment because he believes
that the search in this case "was not `unreasonable' as that term is used in the first
Clause of the Amendment." Ante, at 279. I do not understand why JUSTICE
STEVENS reaches the reasonableness question in the first instance rather than
remanding that issue to the Court of Appeals. The District Court found that, even
if a warrant were not required for this search, the search was nevertheless
unreasonable. The court found that the search was unconstitutionally general in
its scope, as the agents were not limited by any precise written or oral
descriptions of the type of documentary evidence sought. App. to Pet. for Cert.
102a. Furthermore, the Government demonstrated no specific exigent
circumstances that would justify the increased intrusiveness of searching
respondent's residences between 10 p.m. and 4 a.m., rather than during the day.
Id., at 101a. Finally, the DEA agents who conducted the search did not prepare
contemporaneous inventories of the items seized or leave receipts to inform the
residents of the search and the items seized. Id., at 102a. Because the Court of
Appeals found that the search violated the Warrant Clause, it never reviewed the
District Court's alternative holding that the search was unreasonable even if no
warrant were required. Thus, even if I agreed with JUSTICE STEVENS that the
Warrant Clause did not apply in this case, I would remand to the Court of
Appeals for consideration of whether the search was unreasonable. Barring a
489
Lectures on the US Legal System
490
Extraterritoriality
491
Lectures on the US Legal System
492
Lecture # 25 – Conflict of Laws
132
Richman & Reynolds, Understanding Conflict of Laws, 3rd ed., Lexis Nexis,
2003.
133
Conflict of Laws, 1834.
134
The Logical and Legal Bases in the Conflict of Laws (1942).
135
308 NY 155, 124 NE 2d 99 (1954).
493
Lectures on the US Legal System
England: the marital and family domicile were there and all the
parties were British subjects. Furthermore, there was no doubt
that England hat a great concern in the financial well-being of
its domiciliaries.
It was also at the same time that the ALI decided to draft a second
Restatement, under the direction of professor Willis Reese of Columbia
Law School. Its publication has been adopted in 1971. The core of the
new system is the notion of the most significant relationship – sometimes
also called the “proper law” approach-, as codified in Section 6 of the
Restatement that enounces the factors to take into account:
136
12 NY 2d 473 (1963).
494
Conflict of Laws
137
295 Minn 155, 203 NW 2d 408 (1973).
138
439 Pa 563, 267 854 (1970).
139
Op.cit., p. 273.
495
Lectures on the US Legal System
496
Conflict of Laws
not violate the Due Process Clause of the Fourteenth Amendment or the Full
Faith and Credit Clause. Pp. 307-320. [449 U.S. 302, 303]
(a) Respondent's decedent was a member of Minnesota's work force. The State of
employment has police power responsibilities towards nonresident employees
that are analogous to those it has towards residents, as such employees use state
services and amenities and may call upon state facilities in appropriate
circumstances. Also, the State's interest in its commuting nonresident employees,
such as respondent's decedent, reflects a state concern for the safety and well-
being of its work force and the concomitant effect on Minnesota employers. That
the decedent was not killed while commuting to work or while in Minnesota does
not dictate a different result, since vindication of the rights of the estate of a
Minnesota employee is an important state concern. Nor does the decedent's
residence in Wisconsin constitutionally mandate application of Wisconsin law to
the exclusion of forum law. Employment status is not a sufficiently less important
status than residence, when combined with the decedent's daily commute across
state lines and the other Minnesota contacts present, to prohibit the choice-of-law
result in this case on constitutional grounds. Pp. 313-317.
(b) Petitioner was at all times present and doing business in Minnesota. By virtue
of such presence, petitioner can hardly claim unfamiliarity with the laws of the
host jurisdiction and surprise that the state courts might apply forum law to
litigation in which the company is involved. Moreover, such presence gave
Minnesota an interest in regulating the company's insurance obligations insofar as
they affected both a Minnesota resident and court-appointed representative
(respondent) and a longstanding member of Minnesota's work force (respondent's
decedent). Pp. 317-318.
(c) Respondent became a Minnesota resident prior to institution of the instant
litigation. Such residence and subsequent appointment in Minnesota as personal
representative of her late husband's estate constitute a Minnesota contact which
gives Minnesota an interest in respondent's recovery. Pp. 318-319.
JUSTICE STEVENS concluded:
1. The Full Faith and Credit Clause did not require Minnesota, the forum State, to
apply Wisconsin law to the contract-interpretation question presented. Although
the Minnesota courts' decision to apply Minnesota law was unsound as a matter
of conflicts law, no threat to Wisconsin's sovereignty ensued from allowing the
substantive question as to the meaning of the insurance contract to be determined
by the law of another State. Pp. 322-326.
2. The Due Process Clause of the Fourteenth Amendment did not prevent
Minnesota from applying its own law. Neither the "stacking" rule itself nor
Minnesota's application of it to these litigants raised any [449 U.S. 302, 304]
serious question of fairness. Nor did the Minnesota courts' decision to apply this
rule violate due process because that decision frustrated the contracting parties'
reasonable expectations. The decision was consistent with due process because it
497
Lectures on the US Legal System
did not result in unfairness to either litigant, not because Minnesota had an
interest in the plaintiff as resident or the decedent as employee. Pp. 326-331.
BRENNAN, J., announced the judgment of the Court and delivered an opinion, in
which WHITE, MARSHALL, and BLACKMUN, JJ., joined. STEVENS, J., filed
an opinion concurring in the judgment, post, p. 320. POWELL, J., filed a
dissenting opinion, in which BURGER, C. J., and REHNQUIST, J., joined, post,
p. 332. STEWART, J., took no part in the consideration or decision of the case.
Mark M. Nolan argued the cause and filed a brief for petitioner.
Andreas F. Lowenfeld argued the cause for respondent. With him on the brief
were Samuel H. Hertogs and Bruce J. Douglas.
JUSTICE BRENNAN announced the judgment of the Court and delivered an
opinion, in which JUSTICE WHITE, JUSTICE MARSHALL, and JUSTICE
BLACKMUN joined.
This Court granted certiorari to determine whether the Due Process Clause of the
Fourteenth Amendment 1 or the Full Faith and Credit Clause of Art. IV, 1, 2 of
the United States Constitution bars the Minnesota Supreme Court's choice of
substantive Minnesota law to govern the effect of a provision in an insurance
policy issued to respondent's decedent. 444 U.S. 1070 (1980). [449 U.S. 302,
305]
I
Respondent's late husband, Ralph Hague, died of injuries suffered when a
motorcycle on which he was a passenger was struck from behind by an
automobile. The accident occurred in Pierce County, Wis., which is immediately
across the Minnesota border from Red Wing, Minn. The operators of both
vehicles were Wisconsin residents, as was the decedent, who, at the time of the
accident, resided with respondent in Hager City, Wis., which is one and one-half
miles from Red Wing. Mr. Hague had been employed in Red Wing for the 15
years immediately preceding his death and had commuted daily from Wisconsin
to his place of employment.
Neither the operator of the motorcycle nor the operator of the automobile carried
valid insurance. However, the decedent held a policy issued by petitioner Allstate
Insurance Co. covering three automobiles owned by him and containing an
uninsured motorist clause insuring him against loss incurred from accidents with
uninsured motorists. The uninsured motorist coverage was limited to $15,000 for
each automobile. 3
After the accident, but prior to the initiation of this lawsuit, respondent moved to
Red Wing. Subsequently, she married a Minnesota resident and established
residence with her new husband in Savage, Minn. At approximately the same
time, a Minnesota Registrar of Probate appointed respondent personal
representative of her deceased husband's estate. Following her appointment, she
brought this action in Minnesota District Court seeking a declaration under
498
Conflict of Laws
Minnesota law that the $15,000 uninsured motorist coverage on each of her late
husband's three automobiles could be "stacked" to provide total coverage of
$45,000. Petitioner defended on the ground that whether the three uninsured
motorist [449 U.S. 302, 306] coverages could be stacked should be determined
by Wisconsin law, since the insurance policy was delivered in Wisconsin, the
accident occurred in Wisconsin, and all persons involved were Wisconsin
residents at the time of the accident.
The Minnesota District Court disagreed. Interpreting Wisconsin law to disallow
stacking, the court concluded that Minnesota's choice-of-law rules required the
application of Minnesota law permitting stacking. The court refused to apply
Wisconsin law as "inimical to the public policy of Minnesota" and granted
summary judgment for respondent. 4
The Minnesota Supreme Court, sitting en banc, affirmed the District Court. 5 The
court, also interpreting Wisconsin law to prohibit stacking, 6 applied Minnesota
law after analyzing the relevant Minnesota contacts and interests within the
analytical framework developed by Professor Leflar. 7 See Leflar, Choice-
Influencing Considerations in Conflicts Law, 41 N. Y. U. L. Rev. 267 (1966).
The state court, therefore, examined the conflict-of-laws issue in terms of (1)
predictability of result, (2) maintenance of interstate order, (3) simplification of
the judicial task, (4) advancement of the forum's governmental interests, and (5)
application of the better rule of law. Although stating that the Minnesota contacts
might not be, "in themselves, sufficient to mandate application of [Minnesota]
law," 8 289 N. W. 2d 43, 49 [449 U.S. 302, 307] (1978), under the first four
factors, the court concluded that the fifth factor - application of the better rule of
law - favored selection of Minnesota law. The court emphasized that a majority
of States allow stacking and that legal decisions allowing stacking "are fairly
recent and well considered in light of current uses of automobiles." Ibid. In
addition, the court found the Minnesota rule superior to Wisconsin's "because it
requires the cost of accidents with uninsured motorists to be spread more broadly
through insurance premiums than does the Wisconsin rule." Ibid. Finally, after
rehearing en banc, 9 the court buttressed its initial opinion by indicating "that
contracts of insurance on motor vehicles are in a class by themselves" since an
insurance company "knows the automobile is a movable item which will be
driven from state to state." 289 N. W. 2d, at 50 (1979). From this premise the
court concluded that application of Minnesota law was "not so arbitrary and
unreasonable as to violate due process." Ibid.
II
It is not for this Court to say whether the choice-of-law analysis suggested by
Professor Leflar is to be preferred or whether we would make the same choice-of-
law decision if sitting as the Minnesota Supreme Court. Our sole function is to
determine whether the Minnesota Supreme Court's choice of its own substantive
law in this case exceeded federal constitutional limitations. Implicit in this
inquiry is the recognition, long accepted by this Court, that a set of facts giving
rise to a lawsuit, or a particular issue within a lawsuit, may justify, in
499
Lectures on the US Legal System
constitutional terms, application of the law of more than one jurisdiction. See, e.
g., Watson v. Employers Liability Assurance Corp., 348 U.S. 66, 72 -73 (1954);
n. 11, infra. See generally Clay v. Sun Insurance Office, Ltd., 377 U.S. 179 , [449
U.S. 302, 308] 181-182 (1964) (hereinafter cited as Clay II). As a result, the
forum State may have to select one law from among the laws of several
jurisdictions having some contact with the controversy.
In deciding constitutional choice-of-law questions, whether under the Due
Process Clause or the Full Faith and Credit Clause, 10 this Court has traditionally
examined the contacts of the State, whose law was applied, with the parties and
with the occurrence or transaction giving rise to the litigation. See Clay II, supra,
at 183. In order to ensure that the choice of law is neither arbitrary nor
fundamentally unfair, see Alaska Packers Assn. v. Industrial Accident Comm'n,
294 U.S. 532, 542 (1935), the Court has invalidated the choice of law of a State
which has had no significant contact or significant aggregation of contacts,
creating state interests, with the parties and the occurrence or transaction. 11
[449 U.S. 302, 309]
Two instructive examples of such invalidation are Home Ins. Co. v. Dick, 281
U.S. 397 (1930), and John Hancock Mutual Life Ins. Co. v. Yates, 299 U.S. 178
(1936). In both cases, the selection of forum law rested exclusively on the
presence of one nonsignificant forum contact.
Home Ins. Co. v. Dick involved interpretation of an insurance policy which had
been issued in Mexico, by a Mexican insurer, to a Mexican citizen, covering a
Mexican risk. The policy was subsequently assigned to Mr. Dick, who was
domiciled in Mexico and "physically present and acting in Mexico," 281 U.S., at
408 , although he remained a nominal, permanent resident of Texas. The policy
restricted coverage to losses occurring in certain Mexican waters and, indeed, the
loss occurred in those waters. Dick brought suit [449 U.S. 302, 310] in Texas
against a New York reinsurer. Neither the Mexican insurer nor the New York
reinsurer had any connection to Texas. 12 The Court held that application of
Texas law to void the insurance contract's limitation-of-actions clause violated
due process. 13
The relationship of the forum State to the parties and the transaction was
similarly attenuated in John Hancock Mutual Life Ins. Co. v. Yates. There, the
insurer, a Massachusetts corporation, issued a contract of insurance on the life of
a New York resident. The contract was applied for, issued, and delivered in New
York where the insured and his spouse resided. After the insured died in New
York, his spouse moved to Georgia and brought suit on the policy in Georgia.
Under Georgia law, the jury was permitted to take into account oral modifications
when deciding whether an insurance policy application contained material
misrepresentations. Under New York law, however, such misrepresentations
were to be evaluated solely on the basis of the written application. The Georgia
court applied Georgia law. This Court reversed, finding application of Georgia
law to be unconstitutional.
500
Conflict of Laws
Dick and Yates stand for the proposition that if a State has only an insignificant
contact with the parties and the [449 U.S. 302, 311] occurrence or transaction,
application of its law is unconstitutional. 14 Dick concluded that nominal
residence - standing alone - was inadequate; Yates held that a postoccurrence
change of residence to the forum State - standing alone - was insufficient to
justify application of forum law. Although instructive as extreme examples of
selection of forum law, neither Dick nor Yates governs this case. For in contrast
to those decisions, here the Minnesota contacts with the parties and the
occurrence are obviously significant. Thus, this case is like Alaska Packers,
Cardillo v. Liberty Mutual Ins. Co., 330 U.S. 469 (1947), and Clay II - cases
where this Court sustained choice-of-law decisions based on the contacts of the
State, whose law was applied, with the parties and occurrence.
In Alaska Packers, the Court upheld California's application of its Workmen's
Compensation Act, where the most significant contact of the worker with
California was his execution of an employment contract in California. The
worker, a nonresident alien from Mexico, was hired in California for seasonal
work in a salmon canning factory in Alaska. As part of the employment contract,
the employer, who was doing business in California, agreed to transport the
worker to Alaska and to return him to California when the work was completed.
Even though the employee contracted to be bound by the Alaska Workmen's
Compensation Law and was injured in Alaska, he sought an award under the
California Workmen's Compensation Act. The Court held that the choice of
California law was not "so arbitrary or unreasonable as to amount to a denial of
due process," 294 U.S., at 542 , because "[w]ithout a remedy in California, [he]
would be remediless," ibid., and because of California's interest that the worker
not become a public charge, ibid. 15 [449 U.S. 302, 312]
In Cardillo v. Liberty Mutual Ins. Co., supra, a District of Columbia resident,
employed by a District of Columbia employer and assigned by the employer for
the three years prior to his death to work in Virginia, was killed in an automobile
crash in Virginia in the course of his daily commute home from work. The Court
found the District's contacts with the parties and the occurrence sufficient to
satisfy constitutional requirements, based on the employee's residence in the
District, his commute between home and the Virginia workplace, and his status as
an employee of a company "engaged in electrical construction work in the
District of Columbia and surrounding areas." Id., at 471. 16
Similarly, Clay II upheld the constitutionality of the application of forum law.
There, a policy of insurance had issued in Illinois to an Illinois resident.
Subsequently the insured moved to Florida and suffered a property loss in
Florida. Relying explicitly on the nationwide coverage of the policy and the
presence of the insurance company in Florida and implicitly on the plaintiff's
Florida residence and the occurrence of the property loss in Florida, the Court
sustained the Florida court's choice of Florida law.
The lesson from Dick and Yates, which found insufficient forum contacts to
apply forum law, and from Alaska Packers, Cardillo, and Clay II, which found
501
Lectures on the US Legal System
adequate contacts to sustain the choice of forum law, 17 is that for a State's
substantive [449 U.S. 302, 313] law to be selected in a constitutionally
permissible manner, that State must have a significant contact or significant
aggregation of contacts, creating state interests, such that choice of its law is
neither arbitrary nor fundamentally unfair. Application of this principle to the
facts of this case persuades us that the Minnesota Supreme Court's choice of its
own law did not offend the Federal Constitution.
III
Minnesota has three contacts with the parties and the occurrence giving rise to the
litigation. In the aggregate, these contacts permit selection by the Minnesota
Supreme Court of Minnesota law allowing the stacking of Mr. Hague's uninsured
motorist coverages.
First, and for our purposes a very important contact, Mr. Hague was a member of
Minnesota's work force, having been employed by a Red Wing, Minn., enterprise
for the 15 [449 U.S. 302, 314] years preceding his death. While employment
status may implicate a state interest less substantial than does resident status, that
interest is nevertheless important. The State of employment has police power
responsibilities towards the nonresident employee that are analogous, if
somewhat less profound, than towards residents. Thus, such employees use state
services and amenities and may call upon state facilities in appropriate
circumstances.
In addition, Mr. Hague commuted to work in Minnesota, a contact which was
important in Cardillo v. Liberty Mutual Ins. Co., 330 U.S., at 475 -476 (daily
commute between residence in District of Columbia and workplace in Virginia),
and was presumably covered by his uninsured motorist coverage during the
commute. 18 The State's interest in its commuting nonresident employees reflects
a state concern for the safety and well-being of its work force and the
concomitant effect on Minnesota employers.
That Mr. Hague was not killed while commuting to work or while in Minnesota
does not dictate a different result. To hold that the Minnesota Supreme Court's
choice of Minnesota law violated the Constitution for that reason would require
too narrow a view of Minnesota's relationship with the parties and the occurrence
giving rise to the litigation. An automobile accident need not occur within a
particular jurisdiction for that jurisdiction to be connected to the occurrence. 19
[449 U.S. 302, 315] Similarly, the occurrence of a crash fatal to a Minnesota
employee in another State is a Minnesota contact. 20 If Mr. Hague had only been
injured and missed work for a few weeks, the effect on the Minnesota employer
would have been palpable and Minnesota's interest in having its employee made
whole would be evident. Mr. Hague's death affects Minnesota's interest still more
acutely, even though Mr. Hague will not return to the Minnesota work force.
Minnesota's work force is surely affected by the level of protection the State
extends to it, either directly or indirectly. Vindication of the rights of the estate of
a Minnesota employee, therefore, is an important state concern.
502
Conflict of Laws
503
Lectures on the US Legal System
504
Conflict of Laws
505
Lectures on the US Legal System
Personal Jurisdiction and Choice of Law, 78 Mich. L. Rev. 872, 874, and n. 11
(1980).
[ Footnote 12 ] Dick sought to obtain quasi-in-rem jurisdiction by garnishing the
reinsurance obligation of the New York reinsurer. The reinsurer had never
transacted business in Texas, but it "was cited by publication, in accordance with
a Texas statute; attorneys were appointed for it by the trial court; and they filed
on its behalf an answer which denied liability." 281 U.S., at 402 . There would be
no jurisdiction in the Texas courts to entertain such a lawsuit today. See Rush v.
Savchuk, 444 U.S. 320 (1980); Shaffer v. Heitner, 433 U.S. 186 (1977);
Silberman, supra, at 62-65.
[ Footnote 13 ] The Court noted that the result might have been different if there
had been some connection to Texas upon "which the State could properly lay
hold as the basis of the regulations there imposed." 281 U.S., at 408 , n. 5; see
Watson v. Employers Liability Assurance Corp., 348 U.S. 66, 71 (1954).
[ Footnote 14 ] See generally, Weintraub, supra n. 10, at 455-457.
[ Footnote 15 ] The Court found no violation of the Full Faith and Credit Clause,
since California's interest was considered to be no less than Alaska's, 294 Page
312 U.S., at 547 -548, 549-550, even though the injury occurred in Alaska while
the employee was performing his contract obligations there. While Alaska
Packers balanced the interests of California and Alaska to determine the full faith
and credit issue, such balancing is no longer required. See Nevada v. Hall, 440
U.S., at 424 ; n. 10, supra.
[ Footnote 16 ] The precise question raised was whether the Virginia
Compensation Commission "had sole jurisdiction over the claim." 330 U.S., at
472 -473. In finding that application of the District's law did not violate either due
process or full faith and credit requirements, the Court in effect treated the
question as a constitutional choice-of-law issue.
[ Footnote 17 ] The Court has upheld choice-of-law decisions challenged on
constitutional grounds in numerous other decisions. See Nevada v. Hall, supra
[449 U.S. 302, 313] (upholding California's application of California law to
automobile accident in California between two California residents and a Nevada
official driving car owned by State of Nevada while engaged in official business
in California); Carroll v. Lanza, 349 U.S. 408 (1955) (upholding Arkansas' choice
of Arkansas law where Missouri employee executed employment contract with
Missouri employer and was injured on job in Arkansas but was removed
immediately to a Missouri hospital); Watson v. Employers Liability Assurance
Corp., 348 U.S. 66 (1954) (allowing application of Louisiana direct action statute
by Louisiana resident against insurer even though policy was written and
delivered in another State, where plaintiff was injured in Louisiana); Pacific
Employers Ins. Co. v. Industrial Accident Comm'n, 306 U.S. 493 (1939) (holding
Full Faith and Credit Clause not violated where California applied own
Workmen's Compensation Act in case of injury suffered by Massachusetts
employee temporarily in California in course of employment). Thus, Nevada v.
506
Conflict of Laws
Hall, supra, and Watson v. Employers Liability Assurance Corp., supra, upheld
application of forum law where the relevant contacts consisted of plaintiff's
residence and the place of the injury. Pacific Employers Ins. Co. v. Industrial
Accident Comm'n, supra, and Carroll v. Lanza, supra, relied on the place of the
injury arising from the respective employee's temporary presence in the forum
State in connection with his employment.
[ Footnote 18 ] The policy issued to Mr. Hague provided that Allstate would pay
to the insured, or his legal representative, damages "sustained by the insured,
caused by accident and arising out of the ownership, maintenance or use of [an]
uninsured automobile. . . ." No suggestion has been made that Mr. Hague's
uninsured motorist protection is unavailable because he was not killed while
driving one of his insured automobiles.
[ Footnote 19 ] Numerous cases have applied the law of a jurisdiction other than
the situs of the injury where there existed some other link between that
jurisdiction and the occurrence. See, e. g., Cardillo v. Liberty Mutual Ins. Co.,
330 U.S. 469 (1947); Alaska Packers Assn. v. Industrial Accident Comm'n, 294
U.S. 532 (1935); Rosenthal v. Warren, 475 F.2d 438 (CA2), cert. denied, 414
U.S. 856 (1973); Clark v. Clark, 107 N. H. 351, 222 A. 2d 205 [449 U.S. 302,
315] (1966); Tooker v. Lopez, 24 N. Y. 2d 569, 249 N. E. 2d 394 (1969);
Babcock v. Jackson, 12 N. Y. 2d 473, 191 N. E. 2d 279 (1963).
[ Footnote 20 ] The injury or death of a resident of State A in State B is a contact
of State A with the occurrence in State B. See cases cited in n. 19, supra.
[ Footnote 21 ] Petitioner's statement that the instant dispute involves the
interpretation of insurance contracts which were "underwritten, applied for, and
paid for by Wisconsin residents and issued covering cars garaged in Wisconsin,"
Brief for Petitioner 6, is simply another way of stating that Mr. Hague was a
Wisconsin resident. Respondent could have replied that the insurance contract
was underwritten, applied for and paid for by a Minnesota worker, and issued
covering cars that were driven to work in Minnesota and garaged there for a
substantial portion of the day. The former statement is hardly more significant
than the latter since the accident in any event did not involve any of the
automobiles which were covered under Mr. Hague's policy. Recovery is sought
pursuant to the uninsured motorist coverage.
In addition, petitioner's statement that the contracts were "underwritten . . . by
Wisconsin residents" is not supported by the stipulated facts if petitioner means to
include itself within that phrase. Indeed, the policy, which is part of the record,
recites that Allstate signed the policy in Northbrook, Ill. Under some versions of
the hoary rule of lex loci contractus, and depending on the precise sequence of
events, a sequence which is unclear from the record before us, the law of Illinois
arguably might apply to govern contract construction, even though Illinois [449
U.S. 302, 316] would have less contact with the parties and the occurrence than
either Wisconsin or Minnesota. No party sought application of Illinois law on that
basis in the court below.
507
Lectures on the US Legal System
[ Footnote 22 ] Of course Allstate could not be certain that Wisconsin law would
necessarily govern any accident which occurred in Wisconsin, whether brought in
the Wisconsin courts or elsewhere. Such an expectation would give controlling
significance to the wooden lex loci delicti doctrine. While the place of the
accident is a factor to be considered in choice-of-law analysis, to apply blindly
the traditional, but now largely abandoned, doctrine, Silberman, supra n. 11, at
80, n. 259; see n. 11, supra, would fail to distinguish between the relative
importance of various legal issues involved in a lawsuit as well as the relationship
of other jurisdictions to the parties and the occurrence or transaction. If, for
example, Mr. Hague had been a Wisconsin resident and employee who was
injured in Wisconsin and was then taken by ambulance to a hospital in Red Wing,
Minn., where he languished for several weeks before dying, Minnesota's interest
in ensuring that its medical creditors were paid would be obvious. Moreover,
under such circumstances, the accident itself might be reasonably characterized as
a bistate occurrence beginning in Wisconsin and ending in Minnesota. Thus,
reliance by the insurer that Wisconsin law would necessarily govern any accident
that occurred in Wisconsin, or that the law of another jurisdiction would
necessarily govern any accident that did not occur in Wisconsin, would be
unwarranted. See n. 11, supra; cf. Rosenthal v. Warren, supra (Massachusetts
hospital could not have purchased insurance with expectation that Massachusetts
law would govern damages recovery as to New York patient who died in hospital
and whose widow brought suit in New York).
If the law of a jurisdiction other than Wisconsin did govern, there was a
substantial likelihood, with respect to uninsured motorist coverage, that stacking
would be allowed. Stacking was the rule in most States at the time the policy was
issued. Indeed, the Wisconsin Supreme Court, in [449 U.S. 302, 317] Nelson v.
Employers Mutual Casualty Co., 63 Wis. 2d 558, 563-566, and nn. 2, 3, 217 N.
W. 2d 670, 672, 674, and nn. 2, 3 (1974), identified 29 States, including
Minnesota, whose law it interpreted to allow stacking, and only 9 States whose
law it interpreted to prohibit stacking. Clearly then, Allstate could not have
expected that an antistacking rule would govern any particular accident in which
the insured might be involved and thus cannot claim unfair surprise from the
Minnesota Supreme Court's choice of forum law.
[ Footnote 23 ] The Court has recognized that examination of a State's contacts
may result in divergent conclusions for jurisdiction and choice-of-law purposes.
See Kulko v. California Superior Court, 436 U.S. 84, 98 (1978) (no jurisdiction in
California but California law "arguably might" apply); Shaffer v. Heitner, 433
U.S., at 215 (no jurisdiction in Delaware, although Delaware interest "may
support the application of Delaware law"); cf. Hanson v. Denckla, 357 U.S. 235,
254 , and n. 27 (1958) (no jurisdiction in Florida; the "issue is personal
jurisdiction, not choice of law," an issue which the Court found no need to
decide). Nevertheless, "both inquiries `are often closely related and to a
substantial degree depend upon similar considerations.'" Shaffer, 433 U.S., at 224
-225 (BRENNAN, J., concurring in part and dissenting in part). Here, of course,
jurisdiction in the Minnesota courts is unquestioned, a factor not without
508
Conflict of Laws
509
Lectures on the US Legal System
Fourteenth Amendment prevent Minnesota from applying its own law? The first
inquiry implicates the federal interest in ensuring that Minnesota respect the
sovereignty of the State of Wisconsin; the second implicates the litigants' interest
in a fair adjudication of their rights. 3 [449 U.S. 302, 321]
I realize that both this Court's analysis of choice-of-law questions 4 and scholarly
criticism of those decisions 5 have treated these two inquiries as though they
were indistinguishable. 6 [449 U.S. 302, 322] Nevertheless, I am persuaded
that the two constitutional provisions protect different interests and that proper
analysis requires separate consideration of each.
I
The Full Faith and Credit Clause is one of several provisions in the Federal
Constitution designed to transform the several States from independent
sovereignties into a single, unified Nation. See Thomas v. Washington Gas Light
Co., 448 U.S. 261, 271 -272 (1980) (plurality opinion); Milwaukee County v. M.
E. White Co., 296 U.S. 268, 276 -277 (1935). 7 The Full Faith and Credit Clause
implements this design by directing that a State, when acting as the forum for
litigation having multistate aspects or implications, respect the legitimate interests
of other States and avoid infringement upon their sovereignty. The Clause does
not, however, rigidly [449 U.S. 302, 323] require the forum State to apply
foreign law whenever another State has a valid interest in the litigation. See
Nevada v. Hall, 440 U.S. 410, 424 (1979); Alaska Packers Assn. v. Industrial
Accident Comm'n, 294 U.S. 532, 546 -548 (1935); Pacific Employers Ins. Co. v.
Industrial Accident Comm'n, 306 U.S. 493, 501 -502 (1939). 8 On the contrary,
in view of the fact that the forum State is also a sovereign in its own right, in
appropriate cases it may attach paramount importance to its own legitimate
interests. 9 Accordingly, the fact that a choice-of-law decision may be unsound as
a matter of conflicts law does not necessarily implicate the federal concerns
embodied in the Full Faith and Credit Clause. Rather, in my opinion, the Clause
should not invalidate a state court's choice of forum law unless that choice
threatens the federal interest in national unity by unjustifiably infringing upon the
legitimate interests of another State. 10 [449 U.S. 302, 324]
In this case, I think the Minnesota courts' decision to apply Minnesota law was
plainly unsound as a matter of normal conflicts law. Both the execution of the
insurance contract and the accident giving rise to the litigation took place in
Wisconsin. Moreover, when both of those events occurred, the plaintiff, the
decedent, and the operators of both vehicles were all residents of Wisconsin.
Nevertheless, I do not believe that any threat to national unity or Wisconsin's
sovereignty ensues from allowing the substantive question presented by this case
to be determined by the law of another State.
The question on the merits is one of interpreting the meaning of the insurance
contract. Neither the contract itself, nor anything else in the record, reflects any
express understanding of the parties with respect to what law would be applied or
with respect to whether the separate uninsured motorist coverage for each of the
decedent's three cars could be "stacked." Since the policy provided coverage for
510
Conflict of Laws
accidents that might occur in other States, it was obvious to the parties at the time
of contracting that it might give rise to the application of the law of States other
than Wisconsin. Therefore, while Wisconsin may have an interest in ensuring that
contracts formed in Wisconsin in reliance upon Wisconsin law are interpreted in
accordance with that law, that interest is not implicated in this case. 11 [449
U.S. 302, 325]
Petitioner has failed to establish that Minnesota's refusal to apply Wisconsin law
poses any direct 12 or indirect threat to Wisconsin's sovereignty. 13 In the
absence of any such [449 U.S. 302, 326] threat, I find it unnecessary to evaluate
the forum State's interest in the litigation in order to reach the conclusion that the
Full Faith and Credit Clause does not require the Minnesota courts to apply
Wisconsin law to the question of contract interpretation presented in this case.
II
It may be assumed that a choice-of-law decision would violate the Due Process
Clause if it were totally arbitrary or if it were fundamentally unfair to either
litigant. I question whether a judge's decision to apply the law of his own State
could ever be described as wholly irrational. For judges are presumably familiar
with their own state law and may find it difficult and time consuming to discover
and apply correctly the law of another State. 14 The forum State's interest in the
fair and efficient administration of justice is therefore sufficient, in my judgment,
to attach a presumption of validity to a forum State's decision to apply its own
law to a dispute over which it has jurisdiction.
The forum State's interest in the efficient operation of its judicial system is clearly
not sufficient, however, to justify the application of a rule of law that is
fundamentally unfair to one of the litigants. Arguably, a litigant could
demonstrate such unfairness in a variety of ways. Concern about the fairness of
the forum's choice of its own rule might arise [449 U.S. 302, 327] if that rule
favored residents over nonresident, if it represented a dramatic departure from the
rule that obtains in most American jurisdictions, or if the rule itself was unfair on
its face or as applied. 15
The application of an otherwise acceptable rule of law may result in unfairness to
the litigants if, in engaging in the activity which is the subject of the litigation,
they could not reasonably have anticipated that their actions would later be
judged by this rule of law. A choice-of-law decision that frustrates the justifiable
expectations of the parties can be fundamentally unfair. This desire to prevent
unfair surprise to a litigant has been the central concern in this Court's review of
choice-of-law decisions under the Due Process Clause. 16
Neither the "stacking" rule itself, nor Minnesota's application of that rule to these
litigants, raises any serious question of fairness. As the plurality observes,
"[s]tacking was [449 U.S. 302, 328] the rule in most States at the time the policy
was issued." Ante, at 316, n. 22. 17 Moreover, the rule is consistent with the
economics of a contractual relationship in which the policyholder paid three
separate premiums for insurance coverage for three automobiles, including a
511
Lectures on the US Legal System
512
Conflict of Laws
other than the presumption in favor of the forum's own law to support that
decision, I concur in the plurality's judgment. It is not this Court's function to
establish and impose upon state courts a federal choice-of-law rule, nor is it our
function to ensure that state courts correctly apply whatever choice-of-law rules
they have themselves adopted. 25 Our authority may be exercised in the choice-
of-law area only to prevent a violation of the Full Faith and Credit or the Due
Process Clause. For the reasons stated above, I find no such violation in this case.
[ Footnote 1 ] Article IV, 1, provides:
"Full Faith and Credit shall be given in each State to the public Acts, Records,
and Judicial Proceedings of every other State. And the Congress may by general
Laws prescribe the Manner in which such Acts, Records and Proceedings shall be
proved, and the Effect thereof."
[ Footnote 2 ] Section 1 of the Fourteenth Amendment provides, in part:
"No State shall . . . deprive any person of life, liberty, or property, without due
process of law . . . ."
[ Footnote 3 ] The two questions presented by the choice-of-law issue arise only
after it is assumed or established that the defendant's contacts with the forum
State are sufficient to support personal jurisdiction. Although the choice-of-law
concerns - respect for another sovereign and fairness to the [449 U.S. 302, 321]
litigants - are similar to the two functions performed by the jurisdictional inquiry,
they are not identical. In World-Wide Volkswagen Corp. v. Woodson, 444 U.S.
286, 291 -292 (1980), we stated:
"The concept of minimum contacts, in turn, can be seen to perform two related,
but distinguishable, functions. It protects the defendant against the burdens of
litigating in a distant or inconvenient forum. And it acts to ensure that the States,
through their courts, do not reach out beyond the limits imposed on them by their
status as coequal sovereigns in a federal system."
See also Reese, Legislative Jurisdiction, 78 Column. L. Rev. 1587, 1589-1590
(1978). While it has been suggested that this same minimum-contacts analysis be
used to define the constitutional limitations on choice of law, see, e. g., Martin,
Personal Jurisdiction and Choice of Law, 78 Mich. L. Rev. 872 (1980), the Court
has made it clear over the years that the personal jurisdiction and choice-of-law
inquiries are not the same. See Kulko v. California Superior Court, 436 U.S. 84,
98 (1978); Shaffer v. Heitner, 433 U.S. 186, 215 (1977); id., at 224-226
(BRENNAN, J., dissenting in part); Hanson v. Denckla, 357 U.S. 235, 253 -254
(1958); id., at 258 (Black, J., dissenting).
[ Footnote 4 ] Although the Court has struck down a state court's choice of forum
law on both due process, see, e. g., Home Ins. Co. v. Dick, 281 U.S. 397 (1930),
and full faith and credit grounds, see, e. g., John Hancock Mutual Life Ins. Co. v.
Yates, 299 U.S. 178 (1936), no clear analytical distinction between the two
constitutional provisions has emerged. The Full Faith and Credit Clause, of
course, was inapplicable in Home Ins. Co. because the law of a foreign nation,
513
Lectures on the US Legal System
rather than of a sister State, was at issue; a similarly clear explanation for the
Court's reliance upon the Full Faith and Credit Clause in John Hancock Mutual
Life Ins. cannot be found. Indeed, John Hancock Mutual Life Ins. is probably
best understood as a due process case. See Reese, supra, at 1589, and n. 17;
Weintraub, Due Process and Full Faith and Credit Limitations on a State's Choice
of Law, 44 Iowa L. Rev. 449, 457-458 (1959).
[ Footnote 5 ] See R. Leflar, American Conflicts Law 5, p. 7, 55, pp. 106-107 (3d
ed. 1977). The Court's frequent failure to distinguish between the two Clauses in
the choice-of-law context may underlie the suggestions of various commentators
that either the Full Faith and Credit Clause or the Due Process Clause be
recognized as the single appropriate source for [449 U.S. 302, 322]
constitutional limitations on choice of law. Compare Martin, Constitutional
Limitations on Choice of Law, 61 Cornell L. Rev. 185 (1976) (full faith and
credit), with Reese, supra (due process); see also Kirgis, The Roles of Due
Process and Full Faith and Credit in Choice of Law, 62 Cornell L. Rev. 94
(1976).
[ Footnote 6 ] Even when the Court has explicitly considered both provisions in a
single case, the requirements of the Due Process and Full Faith and Credit
Clauses have been measured by essentially the same standard. For example, in
Watson v. Employers Liability Assurance Corp., 348 U.S. 66 (1954), the Court
separately considered the due process and full faith and credit questions. See id.,
at 70-73. However, in concluding that the Full Faith and Credit Clause did not bar
the Louisiana courts from applying Louisiana law in that case, the Court
substantially relied upon its preceding analysis of the requirements of due
process. Id., at 73. By way of contrast, in Alaska Packers Assn. v. Industrial
Accident Comm'n, 294 U.S. 532, 544 -550 (1935), the Court's full faith and credit
analysis differed significantly from its due process analysis. However, as noted in
the plurality opinion, ante, at 308, n. 10, the Court has since abandoned the full
faith and credit standard represented by Alaska Packers.
[ Footnote 7 ] See also Sumner, The Full-Faith-and-Credit-Clause - Its History
and Purpose, 34 Or. L. Rev. 224, 242 (1955); Weintraub, supra, at 477; R. Leflar,
supra, 73, p. 143.
[ Footnote 8 ] As the Court observed in Alaska Packers, supra, an overly rigid
application of the Full Faith and Credit Clause would produce anomalous results:
"A rigid and literal enforcement of the full faith and credit clause, without regard
to the statute of the forum, would lead to the absurd result that, wherever the
conflict arises, the statute of each state must be enforced in the courts of the other,
but cannot be in its own." 294 U.S., at 547 .
[ Footnote 9 ] For example, it is well established that "the Full Faith and Credit
Clause does not require a State to apply another State's law in violation of its own
legitimate public policy." Nevada v. Hall, 440 U.S. 410, 422 (1979) (footnote
omitted).
514
Conflict of Laws
[ Footnote 10 ] The kind of state action the Full Faith and Credit Clause was
designed to prevent has been described in a variety of ways by this Court. In
Carroll v. Lanza, 349 U.S. 408, 413 (1955), the Court indicated that the Clause
would be invoked to restrain "any policy of hostility to the public Acts" of
another State. In Nevada v. Hall, supra, at 424, n. 24, we approved action which
"pose[d] no substantial threat to our constitutional system of cooperative
federalism." And in Thomas v. Washington Gas Light Co., 448 U.S. 261, 272
(1980), the plurality opinion described the purpose of the Full Faith and Credit
Clause as the prevention of "parochial entrenchment on the interests of other
States."
[ Footnote 11 ] While the justifiable expectations of the litigants are a major
concern for purposes of due process scrutiny of choice-of-law decisions, see Part
II, infra, the decision in John Hancock Mutual Life Ins. Co. v. Yates, 299 U.S.
178 (1936), suggests that this concern may also implicate state interests
cognizable under the Full Faith and Credit Clause. In John Hancock Mutual Life
Ins., the Court struck down on full faith and credit grounds a Georgia court's
choice of Georgia law over a conflicting New York statute in a suit on a New
York life insurance contract brought after the insured's death in New York.
Central to the decision in that case was the Court's apparent concern that
application of Georgia law would result in unfair surprise to one of the
contracting parties. The Court found that [449 U.S. 302, 325] the New York
statute was "a rule of substantive law which became a term of the contract, as
much so as the amount of the premium to be paid or the time for its payment."
Id., at 182 (footnote omitted). This statute "determine[d] the substantive rights of
the parties as fully as if a provision to that effect had been embodied in writing in
the policy." Id., at 182-183. The insurer had no reason to expect that the New
York statute would not control all claims arising under the life insurance policy.
The parties to a life insurance contract normally would not expect the place of
death to have any bearing upon the proper construction of the policy; by way of
contrast, in the case of a liability policy, the place of the tort might well be
relevant. For that reason, in a life insurance contract relationship, it is likely that
neither party would expect the law of any State other than the place of contracting
to have any relevance in possible subsequent litigation. See generally C.
Carnahan, Conflict of Laws and Life Insurance Contracts 15, pp. 51-52, 47, pp.
264-265, 267-268, 60, pp. 325-327 (2d ed. 1958).
Paul Freund has aptly characterized John Hancock Mutual Life Ins. as perhaps
this Court's "most ambitious application of the full faith and credit clause."
Freund, Chief Justice Stone and the Conflict of Laws, 59 Harv. L. Rev. 1210,
1233 (1946). Like Bradford Electric Light Co. v. Clapper, 286 U.S. 145 (1932),
on which the Court relied, see 299 U.S., at 183 , John Hancock Mutual Life Ins.
was one of a series of constitutional decisions in the 1930's that have been limited
by subsequent cases. See Carroll v. Lanza, 349 U.S., at 412 ; Thomas v.
Washington Gas Light Co., supra, at 272-273, n. 18 (plurality opinion). See also
Traynor, Is This Conflict Really Necessary?, 37 Texas L. Rev. 657, 675 (1959).
515
Lectures on the US Legal System
516
Conflict of Laws
517
Lectures on the US Legal System
518
Conflict of Laws
[ Footnote 25 ] In Kryger v. Wilson, 242 U.S. 171, 176 (1916), after rejecting a
due process challenge to a state court's choice of law, the Court stated:
"The most that the plaintiff in error can say is that the state court made a mistaken
application of doctrines of the conflict of laws in deciding that the cancellation of
a land contract is governed by the law of the situs instead of the place of making
and performance. But that, being purely a question of local Common law, is a
matter with which this court is not concerned."
JUSTICE POWELL, with whom THE CHIEF JUSTICE and JUSTICE
REHNQUIST join, dissenting.
My disagreement with the plurality is narrow. I accept with few reservations Part
II of the plurality opinion, which sets forth the basic principles that guide us in
reviewing state choice-of-law decisions under the Constitution. The Court should
invalidate a forum State's decision to apply its own law only when there are no
significant contacts between the State and the litigation. This modest check on
state power is mandated by the Due Process Clause of the Fourteenth
Amendment and the Full Faith and Credit Clause of Art. IV, 1. I do not believe,
however, that the plurality adequately analyzes the policies such review must
serve. In consequence, it has found significant what appear to me to be trivial
contacts between the forum State and the litigation. [449 U.S. 302, 333]
I
At least since Carroll v. Lanza, 349 U.S. 408 (1955), the Court has recognized
that both the Due Process and the Full Faith and Credit Clauses are satisfied if the
forum has such significant contacts with the litigation that it has a legitimate state
interest in applying its own law. The significance of asserted contacts must be
evaluated in light of the constitutional policies that oversight by this Court should
serve. Two enduring policies emerge from our cases.
First, the contacts between the forum State and the litigation should not be so
"slight and casual" that it would be fundamentally unfair to a litigant for the
forum to apply its own State's law. Clay v. Sun Ins. Office, Ltd., 377 U.S. 179 .
182 (1964). The touchstone here is the reasonable expectation of the parties. See
Weintraub, Due Process and Full Faith and Credit Limitations on a State's Choice
of Law, 44 Iowa L. Rev. 449, 445-457 (1959) (Weintraub). Thus, in Clay, the
insurer sold a policy to Clay "`with knowledge that he could take his property
anywhere in the world he saw fit without losing the protection of his insurance.'"
377 U.S., at 182 . quoting Clay v. Sun Ins. Office Ltd., 363 U.S. 207, 221 (1960)
(Black, J., dissenting). When the insured moved to Florida with the knowledge of
the insurer, and a loss occurred in that State, this Court found no unfairness in
Florida's applying its own rule of decision to permit recovery on the policy. The
insurer "must have known it might be sued there." Ibid. See also Watson v.
Employers Liability Assurance Corp., 348 U.S. 66 (1954). 1 [449 U.S. 302, 334]
Second, the forum State must have a legitimate interest in the outcome of the
litigation before it. Pacific Ins. Co. v. Industrial Accident Comm'n, 306 U.S. 493
519
Lectures on the US Legal System
(1939). The Full Faith and Credit Clause addresses the accommodation of
sovereign power among the various States. Under limited circumstances, it
requires one State to give effect to the statutory law of another State. Nevada v.
Hall, 440 U.S. 410, 423 (1979). To be sure, a forum State need not give effect to
another State's law if that law is in "violation of its own legitimate public policy."
Id., at 422. Nonetheless, for a forum State to further its legitimate public policy
by applying its own law to a controversy, there must be some connection between
the facts giving rise to the litigation and the scope of the State's lawmaking
jurisdiction.
Both the Due Process and Full Faith and Credit Clauses ensure that the States do
not "reach out beyond the limits imposed on them by their status as coequal
sovereigns in a federal system." World-Wide Volkswagen Corp. v. Woodson, 444
U.S. 286, 292 (1980) (addressing Fourteenth Amendment limitation on state-
court jurisdiction). As the Court stated in Pacific Ins. Co., supra: "[T]he full faith
and credit clause does not require one state to substitute for its own statute,
applicable to persons and events within it, the conflicting statute of another state."
Id., at 502 (emphasis added). The State has a legitimate interest in applying a rule
of decision to the litigation only if the facts to which the rule will be applied have
created effects within the State, toward which the State's public policy is directed.
To assess the sufficiency of asserted contacts between the forum and the
litigation, the court must determine if the contacts form a reasonable link between
the litigation and a state policy. In short, examination of contacts addresses
whether "the state [449 U.S. 302, 335] has an interest in the application of its
policy in this instance." Currie, The Constitution and the Choice of Law:
Governmental Interests and the Judicial Function, in B. Currie, Selected Essays
on the Conflict of Laws 188, 189 (1963) (Currie). If it does, the Constitution is
satisfied.
John Hancock Mut. Life Ins. Co. v. Yates, 299 U.S. 178 (1936), illustrates this
principle. A life insurance policy was executed in New York, on a New York
insured with a New York beneficiary. The insured died in New York; his
beneficiary moved to Georgia and sued to recover on the policy. The insurance
company defended on the ground that the insured, in the application for the
policy, had made materially false statements that rendered it void under New
York law. This Court reversed the Georgia court's application of its contrary rule
that all questions of the policy's validity must be determined by the jury. The
Court found a violation of the Full Faith and Credit Clause, because "[i]n respect
to the accrual of the right asserted under the contract . . . there was no occurrence,
nothing done, to which the law of Georgia could apply." Id., at 182. In other
words, the Court determined that Georgia had no legitimate interest in applying
its own law to the legal issue of liability. Georgia's contacts with the contract of
insurance were nonexistent. 2 See Home Ins. Co. v. Dick, 281 U.S. 397, 408
(1930).
In summary, the significance of the contacts between a forum State and the
litigation must be assessed in light of [449 U.S. 302, 336] these two important
constitutional policies. 3 A contact, or a pattern of contacts, satisfies the
520
Conflict of Laws
Constitution when it protects the litigants from being unfairly surprised if the
forum State applies its own law, and when the application of the forum's law
reasonably can be understood to further a legitimate public policy of the forum
State.
II
Recognition of the complexity of the constitutional inquiry requires that this
Court apply these principles with restraint. Applying these principles to the facts
of this case, I do not believe, however, that Minnesota had sufficient contacts
with the "persons and events" in this litigation to apply its rule permitting
stacking. I would agree that no reasonable expectations of the parties were
frustrated. The risk insured by petitioner was not geographically limited. See
Clay v. Sun Ins. Office, Ltd., 377 U.S., at 182 . The close proximity of Hager
City, Wis., to Minnesota, and the fact that Hague commuted daily to Red Wing,
Minn., for many years should have led the insurer to realize that there was a
reasonable probability that the risk would materialize in Minnesota. Under our
precedents, it is plain that Minnesota could have applied its own law to an
accident occurring within its borders. See ante, at 318, n. 24. The fact that the
accident did not, in fact, occur in Minnesota is not controlling because the
expectations of the litigants before the cause of [449 U.S. 302, 337] action
accrues provide the pertinent perspective. See Weintraub 455; n. 1, supra.
The more doubtful question in this case is whether application of Minnesota's
substantive law reasonably furthers a legitimate state interest. The plurality
attempts to give substance to the tenuous contacts between Minnesota and this
litigation. Upon examination, however, these contacts are either trivial or
irrelevant to the furthering of any public policy of Minnesota.
First, the post accident residence of the plaintiff-beneficiary is constitutionally
irrelevant to the choice-of-law question. John Hancock Mut. Life Ins. Co. v.
Yates, supra. The plurality today insists that Yates only held that a
postoccurrence move to the forum State could not "in and of itself" confer power
on the forum to apply its own law, but did not establish that such a change of
residence was irrelevant. Ante, at 319. What the Yates Court held, however, was
that "there was no occurrence, nothing done, to which the law of Georgia could
apply." 299 U.S., at 182 (emphasis added). Any possible ambiguity in the Court's
view of the significance of a postoccurrence change of residence is dispelled by
Home Ins. Co. v. Dick, supra, cited by the Yates Court, where it was held
squarely that Dick's post accident move to the forum State was "without
significance." 281 U.S., at 408 .
This rule is sound. If a plaintiff could choose the substantive rules to be applied to
an action by moving to a hospitable forum, the invitation to forum shopping
would be irresistible. Moreover, it would permit the defendant's reasonable
expectations at the time the cause of action accrues to be frustrated, because it
would permit the choice-of-law question to turn on a postaccrual circumstance.
Finally, postaccrual residence has nothing to do with facts to which the forum
521
Lectures on the US Legal System
State proposes to apply its rule; it is unrelated to the substantive legal issues
presented by the litigation.
Second, the plurality finds it significant that the insurer does business in the
forum State. Ante, at 317-318. The State [449 U.S. 302, 338] does have a
legitimate interest in regulating the practices of such an insurer. But this
argument proves too much. The insurer here does business in all 50 States. The
forum State has no interest in regulating that conduct of the insurer unrelated to
property, persons, or contracts executed within the forum State. 4 See Hoopeston
Canning Co. v. Cullen, 318 U.S. 313, 319 (1943). The plurality recognizes this
flaw and attempts to bolster the significance of the local presence of the insurer
by combining it with the other factors deemed significant: the presence of the
plaintiff and the fact that the deceased worked in the forum State. This merely
restates the basic question in the case.
Third, the plurality emphasizes particularly that the insured worked in the forum
State. 5 Ante, at 313-317. The fact that the insured was a nonresident employee in
the forum [449 U.S. 302, 339] State provides a significant contact for the
furtherance of some local policies. See, e. g., Pacific Ins. Co. v. Industrial
Accident Comm'n, 306 U.S. 493 (1939) (forum State's interest in compensating
workers for employment-related injuries occurring within the State); Alaska
Packers Assn. v. Industrial Accident Comm'n, 294 U.S. 532, 549 (1935) (forum
State's interest in compensating the employment-related injuries of a worker hired
in the State). The insured's place of employment is not, however, significant in
this case. Neither the nature of the insurance policy, the events related to the
accident, nor the immediate question of stacking coverage is in any way affected
or implicated by the insured's employment status. The plurality's opinion is
understandably vague in explaining how trebling the benefits to be paid to the
estate of a nonresident employee furthers any substantial state interest relating to
employment. Minnesota does not wish its workers to die in automobile accidents,
but permitting stacking will not further this interest. The substantive issue here is
solely one of compensation, and whether the compensation provided by this
policy is increased or not will have no relation to the State's employment policies
or police power. See n. 5, supra.
Neither taken separately nor in the aggregate do the contacts asserted by the
plurality today indicate that Minnesota's application of its substantive rule in this
case will further any legitimate state interest. 6 The plurality focuses [449 U.S.
302, 340] only on physical contacts vel non, and in doing so pays scant attention
to the more fundamental reasons why our precedents require reasonable policy-
related contacts in choice-of-law cases. Therefore, I dissent.
[ Footnote 1 ] Home Ins. Co. v. Dick, 281 U.S. 397 (1930), is a case where the
reasonable expectations of a litigant were frustrated. The insurance contract
confined the risk to Mexico, where the loss occurred and where both the insurer
and the insured resided until the claim accrued. This Court found a violation of
the Due Process Clause when Texas, the forum State, applied a local rule to allow
the insured to gain a recovery unavailable under Mexican law. Because of the
522
Conflict of Laws
geographic limitation on the risk, and [449 U.S. 302, 334] because there were no
contacts with the forum State until the claim accrued, the insurer could have had
no reasonable expectation that Texas law would be applied to interpret its
obligations under the contract. See Weintraub 455.
[ Footnote 2 ] "It is manifest that Georgia had no interest in the application to this
case of any policy to be found in its laws. When the contract was entered into,
and at all times until the insured died, the parties and the transaction were beyond
the legitimate reach of whatever policy Georgia may have had. Any interest
asserted by Georgia must relate to the circumstance that the action is tried there,
and must arise not from any policy directed to the business of life insurance but
from some policy having to do with the business of the courts. This was
apparently recognized even by the Georgia court; hence the disingenuous
characterization of the matter as one of `procedure' rather than of `substance.'"
Currie 236. See also id., at 232-233.
[ Footnote 3 ] The plurality today apparently recognizes that the significance of
the contacts must be evaluated in light of the policies our review serves. It
acknowledges that the sufficiency of the same contacts sometimes will differ in
jurisdiction and choice-of-law questions. Ante, at 317, n. 23. The plurality,
however, pursues the rationale for the requirement of sufficient contacts in
choice-of-law cases no further than to observe that the forum's application of its
own law must be "neither arbitrary nor fundamentally unfair." Ante, at 313. But
this general prohibition does not distinguish questions of choice of law from
those of jurisdiction, or from much of the jurisprudence of the Fourteenth
Amendment.
[ Footnote 4 ] The petitioner in John Hancock Mut. Life Ins. Co. v. Yates, 299
U.S. 178 (1936), did business in Georgia, the forum State, at the time of that case.
See The Insurance Almanac 715 (1935). Also, Georgia extensively regulated
insurance practices within the State at that time. See Ga. Code 56-101 et seq.
(1933). This Court did not hint in Yates that this fact was of the slightest
significance to the choice-of-law question, although it would have been crucial
for the exercise of in personam jurisdiction.
[ Footnote 5 ] The plurality exacts double service from this fact, by finding a
separate contact in that the insured commuted daily to his job. Ante, at 314-315.
This is merely a repetition of the facts that the insured lived in Wisconsin and
worked in Minnesota. The State does have an interest in the safety of motorists
who use its roads. This interest is not limited to employees, but extends to all
nonresident motorists on its highways. This safety interest, however, cannot
encompass, either in logic or in any practical sense, the determination whether a
nonresident's estate can stack benefit coverage in a policy written in another State
regarding an accident that occurred on another State's roads.
Cardillo v. Liberty Mutual Ins. Co., 330 U.S. 469 (1947), hardly establishes
commutation as an independent contact; the case merely approved the application
of a forum State's law to an industrial accident occurring in a neighboring State
when the employer and the employee both resided in the forum State.
523
Lectures on the US Legal System
524
Conflict of Laws
525
Lecture # 26 - Recognition of Foreign Judgments
In its external aspect, comity is based on the fact that no foreign judgment
has any effect of its own force beyond the limits of the sovereignty from
which its authority is derived. To extent to which the United States honors
the decisions of foreign nations is a matter of choice, governed by the
comity of nations. Following Hilton v. Guyot145, Comity is “neither a
140
Hilton v. Guyot, op.cit., Restatement (Second) of Conflict of Laws (1971), §
98.
141
Somportex Ltd v. Philadelphia Chewing Gum Corp, 453 F2d 435 (3d Cir
1971); Laker Airways v. Sabena Belgian World Airlines, 731 F2d 909 (DC
Cir 1984).
142
See e.g. Yahoo Inc. v. La ligue contre le reacisme et l’antisémitisme, Case #
C-00-21275 JF (NDC 2001).
143
313 US 487 (1941).
144
See e.g. the Uniform Foreign Money-Judgment Recognition Act (1962).
145
159 US 113 (1895).
526
Conflict of Laws
matter of absolute obligation, on the one hand, nor of mere courtesy and
good will, upon the other”. However, the purpose of Comity is “to give
effect, whenever possible, to the executive, legislative and judicial acts of
a foreign sovereign so as to strengthen international cooperation”146.
Its origin lies in the Dutch theory of the Comitas gentium: foreign law can
be applied, but only if the Sovereign wants to; in no case is there an
obligation to do so. Developed by Voet (De Statutis) and Huber (De
conflictu legem) in the 17th century, the idea of comitas resides in the
defense of the absolute sovereignity as traced by the French author Bodin
in its Six livres de la République (1576). Huber’s work was later translated
in English by Lorenzen (1947).
146
Karaha Bodas Company v. Perusahaan (5th Circuit, 2003).
147
Younger v. Harris, 401 U.S. 37, 44 (1971). Compare Fair Assessment in Real
Estate Assn. v. McNary, 454 U.S. 100 (1981), with id., 119-125 (Justice
Brennan concurring, joined by three other Justices).
148
Mast, Foos & Co. v. Stover Manufacturing Co., 177 U.S. 458, 488 (1900).
Recent decisions emphasize comity as the primary reason for restraint in
federal court actions tending to interfere with state courts. E.g., O'Shea v.
Littleton, 414 U.S. 488, 499-504 (1974); Huffman v. Pursue, Ltd., 420 U.S.
592, 599-603 (1975); Trainor v. Hernandez, 431 U.S. 434, 441 (1977); Moore
v. Sims, 442 U.S. 415, 430 (1979). The Court has also cited comity as a reason
to restrict access to federal habeas corpus. Francis v. Henderson, 425 U.S.
536, 541 and n. 31 (1976); Wainwright v. Sykes, 433 U.S. 72, 83, 88, 90
(1977); Engle v. Isaac, 456 U.S. 107, 128-129 (1982). See also Rosewell v.
LaSalle National Bank, 450 U.S. 503 (1981); Fair Assessment in Real Estate
Assn. v. McNary, 454 U.S. 100 (1981) (comity limits federal court
interference with state tax systems). And see Missouri v. Jenkins, 495 U.S. 33
(1990).
527
Annex
THE CONSTITUTION
LITERAL PRINT
We the People of the United States, in Order to form a more perfect Union,
establish Justice, insure domestic Tranquillity, provide for the common defence,
promote the general Welfare, and secure the Blessings of Liberty to ourselves and
our Posterity, do ordain and establish this Constitution for the United States of
America.
Article. I.
Section. 1. All legislative Powers herein granted shall be vested in a Congress of
the United States, which shall consist of a Senate and House of Representatives.
Section. 2. The House of Representatives shall be composed of Members chosen
every second Year by the People of the several States, and the Electors in each
State shall have the Qualifications requisite for Electors of the most numerous
Branch of the State Legislature. No Person shall be a Representative who shall
not have attained to the age of twenty five Years, and been seven Years a Citizen
of the United States, and who shall not, when elected, be an Inhabitant of that
State in which he shall be chosen. Representatives and direct Taxes shall be
apportioned among the several States which may be included within this Union,
according to their respective Numbers, which shall be determined by adding to
the whole Number of free Persons, including those bound to Service for a Term
of Years, and excluding Indians not taxed, three fifths of all other Persons. The
actual Enumeration shall be made within three Years after the first Meeting of the
Congress of the United States, and within every subsequent Term of ten Years, in
such Manner as they shall by Law direct. The Number of Representatives shall
not exceed one for every thirty Thousand, but each State shall have at Least one
Representative; and until such enumeration shall be made, the State of New
Hampshire shall be entitled to chuse three, Massachusetts eight, Rhode-Island
and Providence Plantations one, Connecticut five, New-York six, New Jersey
four, Pennsylvania eight, Delaware one, Maryland six, Virginia ten, North
Carolina five, South Carolina five, and Georgia three. When vacancies happen in
the Representation from any State, the Executive Authority thereof shall issue
Writs of Election to fill such Vacancies. The House of Representatives shall
chuse their Speaker and other Officers; and shall have the sole Power of
Impeachment.
528
Annex : The US Constitution
Section. 3. The Senate of the United States shall be composed of two Senators
from each State, chosen by the Legislature thereof, for six Years; and each
Senator shall have one Vote. Immediately after they shall be assembled in
Consequence of the first Election, they shall be divided as equally as may be into
three Classes. The Seats of the Senators of the first Class shall be vacated at the
Expiration of the second Year, of the second Class at the Expiration of the fourth
Year, and of the third Class at the Expiration of the sixth Year, so that one third
may be chosen every second Year; and if Vacancies happen by Resignation, or
otherwise, during the Recess of the Legislature of any State, the Executive
thereof may make temporary Appointments until the next Meeting of the
Legislature, which shall then fill such Vacancies. No Person shall be a Senator
who shall not have attained to the Age of thirty Years, and been nine Years a
Citizen of the United States, and who shall not, when elected, be an Inhabitant of
that State for which he shall be chosen. The Vice President of the United States
shall be President of the Senate but shall have no Vote, unless they be equally di-
vided. The Senate shall chuse their other Officers, and also a President pro
tempore, in the Absence of the Vice President, or when he shall exercise the
Office of President of the United States. The Senate shall have the sole Power to
try all Impeachments. When sitting for that Purpose, they shall be on Oath or
Affirmation. When the President of the United States is tried the Chief Justice
shall preside: And no Person shall be convicted without the Concurrence of two
thirds of the Members present. Judgment in Cases of Impeachment shall not
extend fur-ther than to removal from Office, and disqualification to hold and
enjoy any Office of honor, Trust or Profit under the United States: but the Party
convicted shall nevertheless be liable and subject to Indictment, Trial, Judgment
and Punishment, according to Law.
Section. 4. The Times, Places and Manner of holding Elections for Senators and
Representatives, shall be prescribed in each State by the Legislature thereof; but
the Congress may at any time by Law make or alter such Regulations, except as
to the Places of chusing Senators. The Congress shall assemble at least once in
every Year, and such Meeting shall be on the first Monday in December, unless
they shall by Law appoint a different Day.
Section. 5. Each House shall be the Judge of the Elections, Returns and
Qualifications of its own Members, and a Majority of each shall constitute a
Quorum to do Business; but a smaller Number may adjourn from day to day, and
may be authorized to compel the Attendance of absent Members, in such Manner,
and under such Penalties as each House may provide. Each House may determine
the Rules of its Proceedings, punish its Members for disorderly Behaviour, and,
with the Concurrence of two thirds, expel a Member. Each House shall keep a
Journal of its Proceedings, and from time to time publish the same, excepting
such Parts as may in their Judgment require Secrecy; and the Yeas and Nays of
the Members of either House on any question shall, at the Desire of one fifth of
those Present, be entered on the Journal. Neither House, during the Session of
Congress, shall, without the Consent of the other, adjourn for more than three
days, nor to any other Place than that in which the two Houses shall be sitting.
529
Lectures on the US Legal System
530
Annex : The US Constitution
by securing for limited Times to Authors and Inventors the exclusive Right to
their respective Writings and Discoveries;.To constitute Tribunals inferior to the
supreme Court; To define and punish Piracies and Felonies committed on the
high Seas, and Offences against the Law of Nations; To declare War, grant
Letters of Marque and Reprisal, and make Rules concerning Captures on Land
and Water; To raise and support Armies, but no Appropriation of Money to that
Use shall be for a longer Term than two Years; To provide and maintain a Navy;
To make Rules for the Government and Regulation of the land and naval Forces;
To provide for calling forth the Militia to execute the Laws of the Union,
suppress Insurrections and repeal Invasions; To provide for organizing, arming,
and disciplining, the Militia, and for governing such Part of them as may be
employed in the Service of the United States, reserving to the States respectively,
the Appointment of the Officers, and the Authority of training the Militia
according to the discipline prescribed by Congress; To exercise exclusive
Legislation in all Cases whatsoever, over such District (not exceeding ten Miles
square) as may, by Cession of Particular States, and the Acceptance of Congress,
become the Seat of the Government of the United States, and to exercise like
Authority over all Places purchased by the Con-sent of the Legislature of the
State in which the Same shall be, for the Erection of Forts, Magazines, Arsenals,
dock-Yards and other needful Buildings;—And To make all Laws which shall be
necessary and proper for carrying into Execution the foregoing Powers and all
other Powers vested by this Constitution in the Government of the United States,
or in any Department or Officer thereof..
Section. 9. The Migration or Importation of such Persons as any of the States
now existing shall think proper to admit, shall not be prohibited by the Congress
prior to the Year one thousand eight hundred and eight, but a Tax or duty may be
imposed on such Importation, not exceeding ten dollars for each Person. The
Privilege of the Writ of Habeas Corpus shall not be suspended, unless when in
Cases or Rebellion or Invasion the public Safety may require it. No Bill of
Attainder or ex post facto Law shall be passed. No Capitation, or other direct,
Tax shall be laid, unless in Proportion to the Census of Enumeration herein
before directed to be taken. No Tax or Duty shall be laid on Articles exported
from any State. No Preference shall be given by any Regulation of Commerce or
Revenue to the Ports of one State over those of another: nor shall Vessels bound
to, or from, one State, be obliged to enter, clear or pay Duties in another. No
Money shall be drawn from the Treasury, but in Consequence of Appropriations
made by Law; and a regular Statement and Account of the Receipts and
Expenditures of all public Money shall be published from time to time. No Title
of Nobility shall be granted by the United States: And no Person holding any
Office of Profit or Trust under them, shall, without the Consent of the Congress,
accept of any present, Emolument, Office, or Title, of any kind whatever, from
any King, Prince or foreign State.
Section. 10. No State shall enter into any Treaty, Alliance, or Confederation;
grant Letters of Marque and Reprisal; coin Money; emit Bills of Credit; make
any Thing but gold and silver Coin a Tender in Payment of Debts; pass any Bill
531
Lectures on the US Legal System
532
Annex : The US Constitution
fourteen Years a Resident within the United States. In Case of the Removal of the
President from Office, or of his Death, Resignation, or Inability to discharge the
Powers and Duties of the said Office, the Same shall devolve on the Vice
President, and the Congress may by Law provide for the Case of Removal, Death,
Resignation or Inability, both of the President and Vice President, declaring what
Officer shall then act as President, and such Officer shall act accordingly, until
the Disability be removed, or a President shall be elected. The President shall, at
stated Times, receive for his Services, a Compensation, which shall neither be
encreased nor diminished during the Period for which he shall have been elected,
and he shall not receive within that Period any other Emolument from the United
States, or any of them. Before he enter on the Execution of his Office, he shall
take the following Oath or Affirmation:—‘‘I do solemnly swear (or affirm) that I
will faithfully execute the Office of President of the United States, and will to the
best of my Ability, preserve, protect and defend the Constitution of the United
States.’’
Section. 2. The President shall be Commander in Chief of the Army and Navy of
the United States, and of the Militia of the several States, when called into the
actual Service of the United States; he may require the Opinion, in writing, of the
principal Officer in each of the executive Departments, upon any Subject relating
to the Duties of their respective Offices, and he shall have Power to Grant
Reprieves and Pardons for Offences against the United States, except in Cases of
Impeach-ment. He shall have Power, by and with the Advice and Consent of the
Senate, to make Treaties, provided two thirds of the Senators present concur; and
he shall nominate, and by and with the Advice and Consent of the Senate, shall
appoint Ambassadors, other public Ministers and Consuls, Judges of the supreme
Court, and all other Officers of the United States, whose Appointments are not
herein otherwise provided for, and which shall be established by Law: but the
Congress may by Law vest the Appointment of such inferior Officers, as they
think proper, in the President alone, in the Courts of Law, or in the Heads of
Departments. The President shall have Power to fill up all Vacancies that may
happen during the Recess of the Senate, by granting Commissions which shall
expire at the End of their next Session.
Section. 3. He shall from time to time give to the Congress Information on the
State of the Union, and recommend to their Consideration such Measures as he
shall judge necessary and expedient; he may, on extraordinary Occasions,
convene both Houses, or either of them, and in Case of Disagreement between
them, with Respect to the Time of Adjournment, he may adjourn them to such
Time as he shall think proper; he shall receive Ambassadors and other public
Ministers; he shall take Care that the Laws be faithfully executed, and shall
Commission all the Officers of the United States.
533
Lectures on the US Legal System
Section. 4. The President, Vice President and all Civil Officers of the United
States, shall be emoved from Office on Impeachment for and Conviction of,
Treason, Bribery, or other high Crimes and Misdemeanors.
Article. III.
Section. 1. The judicial Power of the United States, shall be vested in one
supreme Court, and in such inferior Courts as the Congress may from time to
time ordain and establish. The Judges, both of the supreme and inferior Courts,
shall hold their Offices during good Behaviour, and shall, at stated Times, receive
for their Services, a Compensation, which shall not be diminished during their
Continuance in Office.
Section. 2. The judicial Power shall extend to all Cases, in Law and Equity,
arising under this Constitution, the Laws of the United States, and Treaties made,
or which shall be made, under their Authority;—to all Cases affecting
Ambassadors, other public ministers and Consuls;—to all Cases of admiralty and
maritime Jurisdiction;—to Controversies to which the United States shall be a
Party;—to Controversies between two or more States;—between a State and
Citizens of another State;—between Citizens of different States;—between
Citizens of the same State claiming Lands under Grants of different States, and
between a State, or the Citizens thereof, and foreign States, Citizens or Subjects.
In all Cases affecting Ambassadors, other public Ministers and Consuls, and
those in which a State shall be Party, the supreme Court shall have original
Jurisdiction. In all the other Cases before mentioned, the supreme Court shall
have appellate Jurisdiction, both as to Law and Fact, with such Exceptions, and
under such Regulations as the Congress shall make. The Trial of all Crimes,
except in Cases of Impeachment, shall be by Jury; and such Trial shall be held in
the State where the said Crimes shall have been committed; but when not
committed within any State, the Trial shall be at such Place or Places as the
Congress may by Law have directed.
Section. 3. Treason against the United States, shall consist only in levying War
against them, or in adhering to their En-emies, giving them Aid and Comfort. No
Person shall be convicted of Treason unless on the Testimony of two Witnesses
to the same overt Act, or on Confession in open Court. The Congress shall have
Power to declare the Punishment of Treason, but no Attainder of Treason shall
work Corruption of Blood, or Forfeiture except during the Life of the Person
attainted.
Article. IV.
Section. 1. Full Faith and Credit shall be given in each State to the public Acts,
Records, and judicial Proceedings of every other State. And the Congress may by
534
Annex : The US Constitution
general Laws prescribe the Manner in which such Acts, Records and Proceedings
shall be proved, and the Effect thereof.
Section. 2. The Citizens of each State shall be entitled to all Privileges and
Immunities of Citizens in the several States. A Person charged in any State with
Treason, Felony, or other Crime, who shall flee from Justice, and be found in an-
other State, shall on Demand of the executive Authority of the State from which
he fled, be delivered up, to be removed to the State having Jurisdiction of the
Crime. No Person held to Service or Labour in one State, under the Laws thereof,
escaping into another, shall, in Consequence of any Law or Regulation therein, be
discharged from such Service or Labour, but shall be delivered up on Claim of
the Party to whom such Service or Labour may be due.
Section. 3. New States may be admitted by the Congress into this Union; but no
new State shall be formed or erected within the Jurisdiction of any other State;
nor any State be formed by the Junction of two or more States, or Parts of States,
without the Consent of the Legislatures of the States concerned as well as of the
Congress. The Congress shall have Power to dispose of and make all needful
Rules and Regulations respecting the Territory or other Property belonging to the
United States; and nothing in this Constitution shall be so construed as to
Prejudice any Claims of the United States, or of any particular State.
Section. 4. The United States shall guarantee to every State in this Union a
Republican Form of Government, and shall protect each of them against
Invasion; and on Application of the Legislature, or of the Executive (when the
Legislature cannot be convened) against domestic Violence.
Article. V.
The Congress, whenever two thirds of both Houses shall deem it necessary, shall
propose Amendments to this Constitution, or, on the Application of the
Legislatures of two thirds of the several States, shall call a Convention for
proposing Amendments, which, in either Case, shall be valid to all Intents and
Purposes, as Part of this Constitution, when ratified by the Legislatures of three
fourths of the several States, or by Conventions in three fourths thereof, as the
one or the other Mode of Ratification may be proposed by the Congress;
Provided that no Amendment which may be made prior to the Year One thousand
eight hundred and eight shall in any Manner affect the first and fourth Clauses in
the Ninth Section of the first Article; and that no State, without its Consent, shall
be deprived of its equal Suffrage in the Senate.
Article. VI.
535
Lectures on the US Legal System
All Debts contracted and Engagements entered into, before the Adoption of this
Constitution, shall be as valid against the United States under this Constitution, as
under the Confederation. This Constitution, and the Laws of the United States
which shall be made in Pursuance thereof; and all Treaties made, or which shall
be made, under the Authority of the United States, shall be the supreme Law of
the Land; and the Judges in every State shall be bound thereby, any Thing in the
Constitution or Laws of any state to the Contrary notwithstanding. The Senators
and Representatives before mentioned, and the Members of the several State
Legislatures, and all executive and judicial Officers, both of the United States and
of the several States, shall be bound by Oath or Affirmation, to support this
Constitution; but no religious Test shall ever be required as a Qualification to any
Office or public Trust under the United States.
Article. VII.
The Ratification of the Conventions of nine States, shall be sufficient for the
Establishment of this Constitution between the States so ratifying the same.
Consent of the States present the Seventeenth Day of September in the Year of
our Lord one thousand seven hundred and Eighty seven and of the Independence
of the United States of Amer-ica the Twelfth. In witness whereof We have
hereunto subscribed our Names,
536
Annex : The US Constitution
537
Lectures on the US Legal System
confronted with the witnesses against him; to have compulsory process for
obtaining witnesses in his favor, and to have the Assistance of Counsel for his
defence.
AMENDMENT [VII.]
In Suits at Common law, where the value in controversy shall exceed twenty
dollars, the right of trial by jury shall be preserved, and no fact tried by a jury,
shall be otherwise re-examined in any Court of the United States, than according
to the rules of the Common law.
AMENDMENT [VIII.]
Excessive bail shall not be required, nor excessive fines imposed, nor cruel and
unusual punishments inflicted.
AMENDMENT [IX.]
The enumeration in the Constitution, of certain rights, shall not be construed to
deny or disparage others retained by the people.
AMENDMENT [X.]
The powers not delegated to the United States by the Constitution, nor prohibited
by it to the States, are reserved to the States respectively, or to the people.
AMENDMENT [XI.]
The Judicial power of the United States shall not be construed to extend to any
suit in law or equity, commenced or prosecuted against one on the United States
by Citizens of another State, or by Citizens or Subjects of any Foreign State.
AMENDMENT [XII.]
The Electors shall meet in their respective states and vote by ballot for President
and Vice-President, one of whom, at least, shall not be an inhabitant of the same
state with them-selves; they shall name in their ballots the person voted for as
President, and in distinct ballots the person voted for as Vice-President, and they
shall make distinct lists of all persons voted for as President, and of all persons
voted for as Vice-President, and of the number of votes for each, which lists they
shall sign and certify, and transmit sealed to the seat of the government of the
United States, directed to the President of the Senate;—The President of the
Senate shall, in the presence of the Senate and House of Representatives, open all
the certifi-cates and the votes shall then be counted;—The person having the
greatest Number of votes for President, shall be the President, if such number be
a majority of the whole number of Electors appointed; and if no person have such
majority, then from the persons having the highest numbers not exceeding three
on the list of those voted for as President, the House of Representatives shall
choose immediately, by ballot, the President. But in choosing the President, the
votes shall be taken by states, the representation from each state having one vote;
a quorum for this purpose shall consist of a member or members from two-thirds
538
Annex : The US Constitution
of the states, and a majority of all the states shall be necessary to a choice. And if
the House of Rep-resentatives shall not choose a President whenever the right of
choice shall devolve upon them, before the fourth day of March next following,
then the Vice-President shall act as President, as in the case of the death or other
constitutional disability of the President—The person having the greatest number
of votes as Vice-President, shall be the Vice-President, if such number be a
majority of the whole number of Electors appointed, and if no person have a
majority, then from the two highest numbers on the list, the Senate shall choose
the Vice-President;
AMENDMENT XIII.
SECTION 1. Neither slavery nor involuntary servitude, except as a punishment for
crime whereof the party shall have been duly convicted, shall exist within the
United States, or any place subject to their jurisdiction.
AMENDMENT XIV.
SECTION. 1. All persons born or naturalized in the United States and subject to
the jurisdiction thereof, are citizens of the United States and of the State wherein
they reside. No State shall make or enforce any law which shall abridge the privi-
leges or immunities of citizens of the United States; nor shall any State deprive
any person of life, liberty, or property, without due process of law; nor deny to
any person within its jurisdiction the equal protection of the laws.
539
Lectures on the US Legal System
SECTION. 4. The validity of the public debt of the United States, authorized by
law, including debts incurred for payment of pensions and bounties for services
in suppressing insurrection or rebellion, shall not be questioned. But neither the
United States nor any State shall assume or pay any debt or obligation incurred in
aid of insurrection or rebellion against the United States, or any claim for the loss
or emancipation of any slave; but all such debts, obligations and claims shall be
held illegal and void..
AMENDMENT XV.
SECTION. 1. The right of citizens of the United States to vote shall not be denied
or abridged by the United States or by any State on account of race, color, or
previous condition of ser-vitude.
SECTION. 2. The Congress shall have power to enforce this article by appropriate
legislation.
AMENDMENT XVI.
The Congress shall have power to lay and collect taxes on incomes, from
whatever source derived, without apportionment among the several States, and
without regard to any census or
enumeration.
AMENDMENT [XVII.]
The Senate of the United States shall be composed of two Senators from each
State, elected by the people thereof, for six years; and each Senator shall have one
vote. The electors in each State shall have the qualifications requisite for electors
of the most numerous branch of the tate legislatures.When vacancies happen in
the representation of any State in the Senate, the executive authority of such State
shall issue writs of election to fill such vacancies: Provided, That the legislature
of any State may empower the executive thereof to make temporary appointments
540
Annex : The US Constitution
until the people fill the vacancies by election as the legislature may direct. This
amendment shall not be so construed as to affect the election or term of any
Senator chosen before it becomes valid as part of the Constitution.
AMENDMENT [XVIII.]
SECTION. 1. After one year from the ratification of this article the manufacture,
sale, or transportation of intoxicating liquors within, the importation thereof into,
or the exportation thereof from the United States and all territory subject to the
jurisdiction thereof for beverage purposes is hereby prohibited.
SECTION. 2. The Congress and the several States shall have concurrent power to
enforce this article by appropriate legislation.
SECTION. 3. This article shall be inoperative unless it shall have been ratified as
an amendment to the Constitution by the legislatures of the several States, as
provided in the Constitution, within seven years from the date of the submission
hereof to the States by the Congress.
AMENDMENT [XIX.]
The right of citizens of the United States to vote shall not be denied or abridged
by the United States or by any State on account of sex. Congress shall have
power to enforce this article by appro-priate legislation.
AMENDMENT [XX.]
SECTION. 1. The terms of the President and Vice President shall end at noon on
the 20th day of January, and the terms of Senators and Representatives at noon on
the 3d day of January, of the years in which such terms would have ended if this
article had not been ratified; and the terms of their successors shall then begin.
SECTION. 2. The Congress shall assemble at least once in every year, and such
meeting shall begin at noon on the 3d day of January, unless they shall by law
appoint a different day.
SECTION. 3. If, at the time fixed for the beginning of the term of the President,
the President elect shall have died, the Vice President elect shall become
President. If a President shall not have been chosen before the time fixed for the
beginning of his term, or if the President elect shall have failed to qualify, then
the Vice President elect shall act as President until a President shall have
qualified; and the Congress may by law provide for the case wherein neither a
President elect nor a Vice President elect shall have qualified, declaring who shall
then act as President, or the manner in which one who is to act shall be selected,
and such person shall act accordingly until a President or Vice President shall
have qualified.
541
Lectures on the US Legal System
SECTION. 4. The Congress may by law provide for the case of the death of any
of the persons from whom the House of Representatives may choose a President
whenever the right of choice shall have devolved upon them, and for the case of
the death of any of the persons from whom the Senate may choose a Vice
President whenever the right of choice shall have de-volved upon them.
SECTION. 5. Sections 1 and 2 shall take effect on the 15th day of October
following the ratification of this article.
SECTION. 6. This article shall be inoperative unless it shall have been ratified as
an amendment to the Constitution by the legislatures of three-fourths of the
several States within seven years from the date of its submission.
AMENDMENT [XXI.]
SECTION. 1. The eighteenth article of amendment to the Constitution of the
United States is hereby repealed.
SECTION. 2. The transportation or importation into any State, Territory, or
possession of the United States for delivery or use therein of intoxicating liquors,
in violation of the laws thereof, is hereby prohibited.
SECTION. 3. This article shall be inoperative unless it shall have been ratified as
an amendment to the Constitution by conven-tions in the several States, as
provided in the Constitution, within seven years from the date of the submission
hereof to the States by the Congress.
AMENDMENT [XXII.]
SECTION. 1. No person shall be elected to the office of the President more than
twice, and no person who has held the office of President, or acted as President,
for more than two years of a term to which some other person was elected
President shall be elected to the office of the President more than once. But this
Article shall not apply to any person holding the office of President, when this
Article was proposed by the Congress, and shall not prevent any person who may
be holding the office of President, or acting as President, during the term within
which this Article becomes operative from holding the office of President or
acting as President during the remainder of such term.
SECTION. 2. This article shall be inoperative unless it shall have been ratified as
an amendment to the Constitution by the legislatures of three-fourths of the
several States within seven years from the date of its submission to the States by
the Congress.
542
Annex : The US Constitution
AMENDMENT [XXIII.]
SECTION. 1. The District constituting the seat of Govern-ment of the United
States shall appoint in such manner as the Congress may direct:
A number of electors of President and Vice President equal to the whole number
of Senators and Representatives in Congress to which the District would be
entitled if it were a State, but in no event more than the least populous State; they
shall be in addition to those appointed by the States, but they shall be considered,
for the purposes of the election of President and Vice President, to be electors
appointed by a State; and they shall meet in the District and perform such duties
as provided by the twelfth article of amendment.
SECTION. 2. The Congress shall have power to enforce this article by
appropriate legislation.
AMENDMENT [XXIV.]
SECTION. 1. The right of citizens of the United States to vote in any primary or
other election for President or Vice President, for electors for President or Vice
President, or for Senator or Representative in Congress, shall not be denied or
abridged by the United States or any State by reason of failure to pay any poll tax
or other tax.
SECTION. 2. The Congress shall have power to enforce this article by appropriate
legislation.
AMENDMENT [XXV.]
SECTION. 1. In case of the removal of the President from office or of his death or
resignation, the Vice President shall become President.
SECTION. 2. Whenever there is a vacancy in the office of the Vice President, the
President shall nominate a Vice President who shall take office upon
confirmation by a majority vote of both Houses of Congress.
SECTION. 3. Whenever the President transmits to the President pro tempore of
the Senate and the Speaker of the House of Representatives has written
declaration that he is unable to discharge the powers and duties of his office, and
until he transmits to them a written declaration to the contrary, such powers and
duties shall be discharged by the Vice President as Acting President.
SECTION. 4. Whenever the Vice President and a majority of either the principal
officers of the executive departments or of such other body as Congress may by
law provide, transmit to the President pro tempore of the Senate and the Speaker
of the House of Representatives their written declaration that the President is
unable to discharge the powers and duties of his office, the Vice President shall
immediately assume the powers and duties of the office as Acting President.
Thereafter, when the President transmits to the President pro tempore of the
543
Lectures on the US Legal System
Senate and the Speaker of the House of Representatives has written declaration
that no inability exists, he shall resume the powers and duties of his office unless
the Vice President and a majority of either the principal officers of the executive
department or of such other body as Congress may by law provide, transmit
within four days to the President pro tempore of the Senate and the Speaker of the
House of Representatives their written declaration that the President is unable to
discharge the powers and duties of his office. There-upon Congress shall decide
the issue, assembling within forty-eight hours for that purpose if not in session. If
the Congress, within twenty-one days after receipt of the latter written
declaration, or, if Congress is not in session, within twenty-one days after
Congress is required to assemble, determines by two-thirds vote of both Houses
that the President is unable to dis-charge the powers and duties of his office, the
Vice President shall continue to discharge the same as Acting President;
otherwise, the President shall resume the powers and duties of his office.
AMENDMENT [XXVI]
SECTION. 1. The right of citizens of the United States, who are eighteen years of
age or older, to vote shall not be denied or abridged by the United States or by
any State on account of age.
SECTION. 2. The Congress shall have power to enforce this article by appropriate
legislation.
AMENDMENT [XXVII]
No law varying the compensation for the services of the Senators and
Representatives shall take effect, until an election of Representatives shall have
intervened.
544